TEXT-BOOK OF PROSE; FROM BUKKE, AVEBSTEK, AND BACON. NOTES, AND SKETCHES OP THE AUTHORS' LIVES. FOR USE IN SCHOOLS AND CLASSES, BY THE REV. HENRY N. HUDSON. JOHN S. PRELL Civil & Mechanical Engineer. SAJSf FBANCISCO.CAL. B O S T O if: PUBLISHED BY GINN BROTHERS. 187G. Entered according to Act of Congress in the year 1876, BY HENEY N. HUDSON, In the Office of the Librarian of Congress, at Washington. i7( J. F. Loughlin, Book, Job, and Music Printer, 18 Post Office Square, Boston. PREFACE. TnE TEXT-BOOK OF PROSE here offered to the public is intended as a sort of companion-volume to the Text-Book of Poetry published u few months ago. Both volumes have originated in the same experiences, and the contents of both are ordered on the same principle, namely, that of teaching English literature by authors, and not by mere literary chips and splinters. Both the method of the work and the reasons for that method are set forth with somo fulness in the Preface to the former volume. I have seen no cause to recede at all from the statement there made of them ; and as a repetition of them here would be something ungraceful, I must be content with referring the reader to that Preface, merely remarking withal, that the matter was no recent or sudden thing with me, but the slow result of the experience and reflection of many years. And I am moved to renew my protest, if that be the right name for it, against putting young students through a course of mere nibbles and snatches from a multitude of authors, where they cannot stay long enough with any one to de- velop any real taste for him, or derive any solid benefit from him. I shall hope to be excused for observing, further, that the miscellaneous selections now so commonly in use in- ne error of so gross a character, that it ought not to be left unnoticed. Those selections make a merit, appar- ently, of ranging over as wide a field of authorship as may be, and value themselves in proportion to the number of authors included. So their method is to treat the giants and the pigmies, the big guns and the popguns of litera- ture on a footing of equality: nay, you shall often find the 615 IV PREFACE. smaller made even more prominent than the greater ; per- haps because the former are more apt to be popular than the latter. For instance, two pages will be given to Mac- aulay, or to a writer of still lower grade, where one is given to Jeremy Taylor or Addison or Burke. So, again, some fifth-rate or sixth-rate author, whose name is hardly known out of Boston, comes in for a larger space than is accorded to Daniel Webster. Or, once more, Edgar A. Poe's vapid inanities done into verse, where all is mere jugglery of words, or an exercise in verbal legerdemain, are made quite as much of as the choice workmanship of our best Ameri- can poets, Bryant, Longfellow, and Whittier. This is an application of the levelling principle so unjust and so inexpedient, that we may well marvel how it should be tolerated in any walks of liberal learning and culture. No thoughtful person, I take it, will have any difficulty in gathering that this volume is made up, like its prede- cessor, with a special view to the oldest and ripest pupils in our high-schools and seminaries and academies. These pupils, it may well be supposed, are old enough and ripe enough to unfold at least the beginnings of literary and intellectual taste, so as to be at home and find delight in tasteful and elegant authorship, where the graces may do something towards making the ways of learning ways of pleasantness to them. Of the three authors here drawn upon, two are, by gen- eral suffrage, the very greatest in the prose literature of the English-speaking world, while the third is, I believe, generally and justly held to be, by all odds, the first in the prose literature of our own country. In the case of Burke and Webster, the works from which I had to select are somewhat voluminous, and it is quite likely that my selec- tions are not in all cases the most judicious that might have been made. On this point I can but plead that, after an acquaintance of many years with those authors, I have used my best care and diligence in looking out such por- tions as seemed to me to combine, in the greatest degree, the two qualities of literary excellence and of fitness to the PREFACE. V purposes of this volume. Nor, perhaps, will it be amiss to add, in reference to Burke and Webster, that I often found it not easy to choose between several pieces, and that I was compelled by lack of room to omit a considerable number of pieces which I would have liked to retain : an embarrass- ment naturally springing from a redundancy of wealth. As to the principle on which the selections proceed, my aim has been, throughout, to unite the culture of high and pure literary tastes with the attainment of useful and lib- eral knowledge. I think it will not be questioned that there is something of special reason why our young people of both sexes should be early and carefully instructed in the principles of our federal Constitution, and in the structure and working of our august national State. We pride ourselves on the alleged competency of the American people for self-government. Yet it is but too evident that, in political matters, a large majority of them have not advanced beyond the "little learning" which is proverbially "a dangerous thing." The degree of intelligence which naturally issues in conceit and presumption is the utmost that can be affirmed of them. Thus it comes about that, for the seats of public trust, shallow, flashy demagogues are very commonly preferred to solid, judicious, honest men. At this day, our average voter certainly has not more judgment of his own than he had fifty years ago, and he has far less respect for the judgment of wiser men. The popular mind is indeed busy enough with the vulgar politics of the hour; but in the true grounds and forces of social and political well-being it is discouragingly ignorant, while it is more and more casting oiT those habits of mod- esty and reverence which might do the work of knowledge. This may explain why so much of the present volume is occupied with discourses relating to government, and to the duties and interests of men as stockholders in the commonwealth. In the common principles of all social and civil order, Burke is unquestionably our best and wisest teacher. In handling the particular questions of his time, lie always involves those principles, and brings them vi PEEFACE. to their practical bearings, where they most "come homo to the business and bosoms of men." And his pages are everywhere bright with the highest and purest political morality, while at the same time he is a consummate mas- ter in the intellectual charms and graces of authorship. Webster, also, is abundantly at home in those common principles : his giant grasp wields them with the ease and grace of habitual mastery : therewithal he is by far the ablest and clearest expounder we have of what may be termed the specialties of our American political system. So that you can hardly touch any point of our stupendous National Fabric, but that he will approve himself at once your wisest and your pleasantest teacher. In fact, I hardly know which to commend most, his political wisdom, his ponderous logic, the perfect manliness of his style, or the high-souled enthusiasm which generally animates and tones his discourse ; the latter qualities being no less useful to inspire the student with a noble patriotic ardour than the former to arm him with sound and fruitful instruction. And so, between Burke and Webster, it' the selections are made with but tolerable judgment, our youth may here learn a good deal of what it highly concerns them to know as citizens of a free republican State. I am not unmindful that, in thus placing Webster along- side of Burke, I may be inviting upon him a trial some- thing too severe. I do not by any means regard him as the peer of Burke; but it is my deliberate judgment that he comes neare? to Burke, and can better stand a fair com- parison with him, than any other English-speaking states- man of modern times. In pure force of intellect. Burke was no doubt something ahead of him, and was far beyond him in strength and richness of imagination; for he was, as Johnson described him, emphatically "a constellation ": on the other hand, Burke's tempestuous sensibility some- times whirled him into exorbitances, where AVebster's cooler temperament and more balanced make-up would probably have held him firm in his propriety. And Webster, though far above imitating any man, abounds in marks of a very PKEFACE. Vll close and diligent study of Burke. It seems specially noteworthy, that he was thoroughly at one with Burke in an intense aversion to political metaphysics, and to those speculative abstractions which, if attempted to he carried into the practical work of government, can never do any thing but mischief. In regard to f the/ selections from Bacon, I there had nothing to distfact 4ry choice, or cause me any embarrass- ment. The settled "verdict of mankind points at once to his Essays as a. book which no liberally-educated person can rightly affordv v to be unacquainted with. Other of his works may better illustrate the vast height and compass of his genius ; but they are, for the most part, little suited, or rather quite unsuited to the ends of this volume. But his Essays everywhere touch the common interests and con- cerns of human life; they are freighted to the utmost with solid practical sense; and as specimens of moral and civil discourse it is hardly possible to overstate the wisdom and beauty of them. Of the fifty-eight Essays, I here give thirty ; and I was nowise at a loss which to select. Nor, had my space been ever so large, should I have greatly cared to include any more of them. I have a good right to know that Bacon and Burke are among our very best authors for the use to which this volume looks. The Essays, the Letter to the Sheriffs of Bristol, and the Speech to the Electors of Bristol, I have been using several years, with good effect, in some of my own classes. There are many other portions of Burko equally good, and some still better, for such use; which, however, were not to be had in a practicable shape. And I have long been wishing to make a like use of Webster, but have never been able to do so, because none of his works w-rf ;it hand in a suitable form. I feel right well assured that he will amply reward the same study, and that, if not so good in himself as the other two, he has some obvious points of preference in the education of American youth. Nor can I think it fitting or just to be using only such fragments of him as arc commonly served up for mere Viii PREFACE. exercises in declamation and elocution : in fact, I have little faith in such exercises, save in connection with the attain- ment of something higher and better. For manner, to be really good, must be held subordinate to matter; and the pursuit of manner for its own sake, or even as a paramount aim, can hardly fail to result in a very bad manner. I submit that the art, or the habit, of pronouncing nothing in such a way as to make it pass for something grand, is not so little known among us as to call for special encour- agement and aid by books and teachers. At present wo seem to be in no little danger of educating people into a good deal more tongue than mind. In conclusion, it may not be amiss to say that this vol- ume is not designed for any "auction of popularity.' 7 The thought of popular favour has had no part or lot in the preparation of it. For I know right well that, in prepara- tions of this sort, a great many people altogether prefer something which may seem to teacli a little of every thing, while really giving no true instruction whatever. So the most I venture to hope for is, that the book may commend itself to the judicious; the number of whom, I fear, is not large enough to make up any thing like a popularity. And this leads me to remark that our young students, it seems to me, can be better occupied than with the transient, shift- ing literary fashions and popularities of the day. I am not myself a very aged man, yet I am old enough to have outlived two generations of "immortal" writers who have already sunk into oblivion ; and of the popular authors now living probably very few will be heard of thirty years hence. Surely, in forming the mind and taste of the young, it is better to use authors who have already lived long enough to afford some guaranty that they may survive the next twenty years. BOSTON, January, 1876. CONTENTS. BURKE. Pago. Sketch of his Life 1 Letter to the Sheriffs of Bristol 9 How to retain the Colonies 47 The People of New England 49 Speech on Economical Reform 50 Obedience to Instructions 113 Speech to the Electors of Bristol 115 Growth of the American Trade 152 Character of George Grenville 154 Lord Chatham and Charles Townshend .... 155 State of Things in France 159 The Revolution in France 163 Liberty in the Abstract 190 Freedom as an Inheritance 192 The Revolutionary Third Estate 198 The Rights of Men 204 Abuse of History 207 English Toleration 209 How a Wise Statesman proceeds 211 True Principles of Reform 213 Fanaticism of Liberty 217 The Ethics of Vanity 219 The Old and the New Whigs 22G A Letter to a Noble Lord 248 France at War with Humanity 285 Fanatical Atheism 296 How to deal with Jacobin France 298 ix X CONTESTS. Page. Desolation of the Carnatic 299 Unlawfulness of Arbitrary Power 307 Cruelties of Debi Sing 311 Impeachment of Hastings 315 Justice and Revenge 318 Appeal for Judgment upon Hastings 321 " The Labouring Poor" 325 WEBSTER. Sketch of his Life 32C Speech in Reply to Hayne 335 Blessings of the Constitution 385 Presidential Nullification 395 The Spoils to the Victors 402 Fraudulent Party Outcries 407 The Position of Mr. Calhoun 411 South Carolina Nulliacation 412 The Presidential Protest 421 The Character of Washington 4G1 Alexander Hamilton 473 First Settlement of New England 475 The First Century of New England 483 The Second Century of New England .... 489 Appeal against the Slave-Trade 492 Bunker-Hill Monument begun 494 Bunker-Hill Monument finished 498 Adams in the Congress of 1776 500 Right Use of Learning 505 The Murder of Mr. White 500 Character of Lord Byron 511 Character of Judge Story 512 Religion as an Element of Greatness 515 Each to interpret the Law for himself .... 510 Irredeemable Paper 518 Benefits of the Credit System 521 CONTENTS. Xi Page. Abuse of Executive Patronage 626 Philanthropic Love of Power 527 The Spirit of Disunion 529 Importance of the Navy 532 The Log Cabin 533 Speaking for the Union 535 Obedience to Instructions 536 Peaceable Secession 537 Standing upon the Constitution 540 Appeal for the Union 543 BACON. Sketch of his Lifo 553 FROM THE ESSAYS : Of Truth 561 Of Death 563 Of Unity in Religion 565 Of Revenge 569 Of Adversity 570 Of Parents and Children 572 Of Marriage and Single Lifo 673 Of Great Place 575 Of Boldness 578 Of Goodness, and Goodness of Nature . . .579 Of Atheism 581 Of Superstition 684 Of Travel 686 Of Wisdom for a Man's Self 587 Of Innovations 589 Of Seeming Wise 590 Of Friendship 591 Of Expense 597 Of Suspicion . . 598 Of Discourse 599 Of Riches 601 Xll CONTENTS. FBOM THE ESSAYS : Page> Of Nature in Men .604 Of Custom and Education 605 Of Youth and Age 607 Of Beauty 608 Of Deformity 609 Of Studies .' 610 Of Praise 611 Of Judicature 613 Of Anger 610 FROM THE ADVANCEMENT OP LEARNING : Discredits of Learning 618 Dignity and Value of Knowledge . . . .624 Miscellaneous 632 EDMUND BURKE: SKETCH OF HIS LIFE. EDMUND BURKE, the greatest of political philosophers, was born in the City of Dublin on the 12th of January. The day of his birth we learn from a letter of his to Lord Rockingham, dated January 12, 1775, in which lie says, " My birth-day ; I need not say how long ago." But what was so well known then stands in some doubt now. The time of his entering col- lege i- easily ascertained; and from the registry then made of his age it Mvms probable that the year of his birth was 1728 ; but this is somewhat uncertain ; it inny have been 1729. His father, llichard Burke, was a respectable attorney, of good practice, but of a rather irritable and unhap- py temper. ( n' course lie was a I'rotcstant, el>e he could not have been a member of the Dublin \\ar. His wife, the mother of all his children, was Mary Nagle, and she and all her family were devout Roman Catholics. Of their children only four grew to maturity, three sons, Garret, Ed- mund, and Richard, and one daughter, Juliana. The sons were educated in the religion of their father; the daughter in that of her mother. In his earlier years, Edmund's health was frail and delicate, and much of his childhood was spent with his mother's kindred, the Nagles, at Cas- tletown Roche, in the south of Ireland. As these people were of a pleasant and amiable temper, he is said to have been much happier with them than at his father's house. There it was that his great, warm, manly heart had much of it> best early nursing; thus rightly predisposing him to be, what he afterwards became, the untiring champion of the oppressed Roman Catholics of his native land against the dreadful bigotry and intolerance of the then governing classes of Ireland. In May, 1741, Burke, then in his fourteenth year, went to Ballitorc, some twenty-eight miles south of Dublin, where he spent the next two years in the, school of Abraham Shackleton, a most intelligent, upright, and amiable Quaker, for whom he ever after entertained the deepest respect and affection. There his preparation for college was made ; and, what was still better, there he. formed a life-long friendship with his good teach- er's son, Richard Shackleton, whose noble and benevolent character was thenceforth enshrined among his dearest memories. As Burke was him- self a most lovely character, the love he bore the Shacklctons was heartily reciprocated by them. In the Spring f 1743, Burke entered Trinity College, Dublin. Though well grounded in the classics, especially in Latin, he did not particularly distinguish himself in the prescribed studies, his passion for general read- ing being so stioni: as to divert him overmuch from them. However, he took his regular degree in 1748, and not long after set out for London, to cii^MLre in the study of the law, his name having been entered in the Mid- ;nple some time before. He continued nominally a Templar for three years, and then threw up the study of the law altogether. In truth, he never did, and probably never could, draw his mind down closely to that study : the instincts of his genius were against it ; and surely no man ever had those instincts in greater strength. His most discursive and most 2 BURKE. comprehensive intellect could not possibly set up its rest in so circum- scribed a field. During that period, however, he was any thing but idle. His prodigious mental hunger kept foraging far and wide in miscellaneous reading: besides, he spent much time in travelling about the country, run- versing variously and minutely with English life, face to lace, and storing his mind with first-hand knowledge in all matters of trade, commerce, and manufactures. All this was highly displeasing to Burke's father, whose heart was set upon having his son bred to the law. As he now cither stopped the sup- plies or dealt them grudgingly and sparely, Burke began to turn his thoughts to literature for the means of living. He had already made ac- quaintance with some of the wits of London ; and all through his life he cultivated habitudes more or less with that class of men ; though the uu- happy foibles so common among them never found any thing, apparently, in his nature to stick upon. It is said that at this time he was a frequent, not to say constant, attendant at the Drury-Lanc theatre ; and it is certain that with* David Garrick, the great actor'of the time, he formed a friend- ship which continued till the death of Garriek. A few years before, Lord Bolingbroke had died, leaving some of his boldest deistical and freethinking speculations in manuscript. In the Spring of 1754, these were ushered before the public with a grand flourish of trumpets, as something that was going to change the intellectual and moral face of the world. They had their brief turn of popularity ; the lit- erary fashion-mongers of the hour being all agog with them. Whatever may have been thought of the author's philosophy, he was generally held to have beaten all former writers in the use of English : even Lord Chester- field and William Pitt concurred with the rest in pronouncing his style inimitable. Burke was not at all taken with the Bolingbrokc furor; he disliked him exceedinglv both as a thinker and as a man : in fact, Boling- broke might almost be described as, in philosophy and politics, his "pet aversion." Accordingly, his first literary performance was a philosophic satire on his lordship's posthumous lucubrations, which appeared in 1756, with the title, "A Vindication of Natural Society; or, a View of the Miser- ies and Evils arising to Mankind from every species of Artificial Society; in a Letter to Lord , by a late Noble Writer." This was meant as a redact to ad absurdum of the Bolingbroke philosophy, by showing that the same principles and the same mode of reasoning, which Bolingbroke had used against revealed Religion, would hold equally good against all civil- ized society among mankind. But the irony was so well concealed, and the imitation of Bolingbroke's style so perfect, that the pamphlet was generally ascribed at once to his lordship's pen. Burke's next literary undertaking was his treatise On the Sublime and Beautiful, published a few months after the forecited work. This at once placed him high among the leading authors of the time : Hume praised it ; Johnson thought it a model of philosophical criticism. A second edition was soon called for, and came out considerablv enlarged and improved, with an excellent Preface added, and also a Discourse on Taste. The work is indeed written with great ability and elegance, and in a style of philo- sophic calmness well suited to the theme. But the whole subject is dis- cussed on the low, mechanical notions then prevalent, and the theory of it has long been justly discarded as monstrous and absurd: it {.imply 'drags the entire body of poetry down into an earthy region where the soul of poetry cannot possibly live. At this period, we have an episode in Burke's life, which is highly inter- esting, as illustrating his native generosity of disposition. A pitted and heroic young Armenian, named Joseph Emin, who had been in Calcutta, and had there gathered some knowledge of the English hinguage and char- acter, made his appearance in London, with his heart full of noble and SKETCH OF HIS LIFE. 3 patriotic aspirations for the political regeneration of his native land. He was burning with desire to learn the arts and ways of European civiliza- tion, and thus qualify himself for the great designs lie was meditating in behalf of his betoveu Armenia. Burke, while walking one day in St. James' Park with a gentleman who already knew Emin, accidentally met him and was introduced to him. His penetrating eye at once saw the gen- ius of the man, and his big warm heart was equally prompt to sympathize with the man's heroic as].irations. The storv is much too long for any thing more than a passing glance at it here : sutlicc it to say, that Burke, then in the ardour of youthful genius, earnestly espoused the stranger's cause, and, though poor himself, offered to share his last guinea with the brave Armenian. lie found some employment for him on liberal terms, lent him books, opened his doors to him, gave him advice, and did all ho could to further his plans. Early in 1757, Burke was married to Mary Jane Nugent, daughter to Christopher Nugent, M.D., of Bath, who afterwards removed to London. Dr. Nugent was himself also a native of Ireland; and the marriage proved eminently happy in every respect: nothing, indeed, can well be conceived more noble and beautiful than the great statesman's wedded life; for in his home Burke was one of the loveliest of men, whilst his wife also was one of the loveliest of women. She was not, we are told, what is called a regular bcautv ; but was ever sweet and gentle in her disposition, and inex- pro-ibly graceful and winning in her manners. Stern men of the world spoke of her :i> all that was amiable among women, and the most discrim- inating of her own sex gave her similar praise. As her sole ambition was to make her hu>l>and happv in his home, she was so quiet and retiring in her ways, that few of his friends had any acquaintance with her. cxeept those who habitually vi.-ited at his house. Kver soothing his natural irrita- bilitv, standing bv his side in hours of despondency, cheering him in pov- erty, nursing him in sickness, consoling him in sorrow, such was her way of showing " how divine a thing a woman may be made." With this new respon.-ibility on his hands, Burke now had enough to do; for he was receiving but little from his father, and Dr. Nugent, though in heart and will all that a good father-in-law could be, was by no means rich, llis next literary work was An A<-'-ount n/'tlt- A'l/ro^m/i S&tltmmU in Anurn-ii, published in the Spring of 17.~>7, and again, with improvements, in 17f>s. This was soon followed by his A'.-.svn/ towards an Abridgment of Enifl'iKk Ilistnrif. In 17.")H, whi'ie Pitt, as Prime Minister, was carrying all before him, and was touching every fibre of old England into resurgent life, IJurke set on foot the Annual Router. This wa> meant to embrace a review of the his- torv, poliiies, and literature of each vear. The lirst volume, published in 17.")'.. uave a complete historv of the war, then in progress, from its begin- a complete historv of the war, then in p ning to the close of 1758. The undertaking was entirely successful. The Annwil JtH/ixttr soon became, and still remains, a standard authority as a poiitiral, military, and literary chronicle of the time. At lirst, Uurke, it is did all the writing for it ; and he continued to do the better part of it for many years, till his time and strength were ail drawn off to more im- : -it labours. lie himself, however, reaped n;> great pecuniary advan- tn it, receiving onlv .!()() for each volume. In the Spring of 1761, the Earl of Halifax went to Ireland as Lord Licu- ,r, with William (Jerard Hamilton, commonly called Single-speech Hamilton, for his Chief Secretary. Uurke had for some time been on terms of intimacy with Hamilton ; and he now attended him to Ireland, in what capacity is not altogether clear, but probably as a sort of confidential adviser. This was the first that Burke had to do with public affairs. "While he was in Dublin with Hamilton, his father died. He was now in a position to do something for the relief of his oppressed native laud, and he 4 BURKE. made the best use of his opportunities to that end. Hamilton retained his office till 1764, when he was dismissed, and Burke returned with him to England. Meanwhile Hamilton had secured for himself a very lucrative sinecure as Superintendent of the Irish finances, which he held for twenty years. He also procured a pension of 300 a-\ ear from the Irish treasury for his confidential friend. Burke kept up his connection with Hamilton some time longer, till at length Hamilton's patronage became so oppressive, that he separated from him in disgust, and ev< n refused the pension. Burke was now thirty-seven years old, and, though holding no recog- nized official place, had served a sort of apprenticeship in public life. Still he had no means of support but what the Annual Register brought him, with such help as Dr. Nugent could afford. Some years before, his older brother, Garret, had inherited a farm in Ireland from a maternal relative. In April, 1765, he died unmarried, and the inheritance fell to Edmund as the next in succession. The estate is said to have been worth about Gioito. Meanwhile the Crown and Parliament had got under full headway in that fatal course of legislation which was to end in the loss of the American Colonies. Burke watched all these misdoings with the keenest scrutiny, and was free and outspoken in condemnation of them. At length, in the Summer of 17 (')."). the Grenville government broke down utterly, and the Marquess of Kockingham was called to the helm. The new Whig Ministry was formed early in July ; and a lew days afterward Burke became acquainted with the Marquess, and was soon selected by him for his private secretary. Thus began a very noble friendship, both political and personal, which continued, without a moment of coldness, till the death of Kockingham. On the 26th of December, 1765, Burke was elected member of Parlia- ment for Wendover. This was a small, close borough, under the influence of Lord Verney. William Burke, a kinsman of Edmund's, though in what degree is unknown, was to have had the election; but he cheerfully withdrew in favour of his great relative, and his patron. Lord Verney, readily consented to the change, and had William returned for another constituency that was also under his influence. On the 14th of January, Burke took his seat in the House among the supporters of the Ministry. Fourteen days later, he made his first speech, and was at once so far master of the situation as to hold the close attention of the great Pitt, who highly commended the effort. The question was on receiving a petition from the American Colonies. Even some of the Ministers opposed the reception on the ground of its being subversive of the authority of the House; but Burke justly urged that the offering of such a petition was itself an ac- knowledgment of the House's jurisdiction. On the 3d of February, he spoke again, with still greater success, filling the House with wonder and astonishment. This was in favour of what is called the Declarato which affirmed the unlimited power of the Crown and Parliament over the Colonies, a doctrine always maintained by Burke, against Pitt and a few other members. The Kockingham policy was, to affirm in full the impe- rial power of Great Britain, and then repeal all the offensive Acts and re- dress all the actual grievances under which the Colonies were suffering. On the 21st of February, the question of repealing the Stamp Act came up, when he spoke the third time, and again won the applause of the. House by the originality and freshness of his arguments and his style of putting them. He had already sprung up, as at one bound, to the highest rank of parliamentary orators. And from this time onwards, though, from his thorough mastery of every subject that came before the House, and from his overflowing fulness of thought, he probably too ; here he spent so much of his time as could be spared from his parliamentary duties, which he never neglected; here all his do- me.-tic happiness, all his private joyfl were centred. As the doors of 1'arliamrnt were then closed against the public, and no reporters were admitted, of course IJurke could not from his seat in the House reach the ear of the nation at large. For this purpose he had re- cour--r to the pen. A Mr. Kuox, acting as the mouth-piece of (Jrenvillc, had put forth a pamphlet entitled The Present /State of the Nation, endeav- ouring to show that the country was going to rack and ruin from the aban- donment of the (irenville policy. The work would have passed out of all remembrance long ago, but for an elaborate replv which Burke set forth in 176l>, under the title of Ol>x< rent ions nn a Lul>>. Pult/ii-dt 'on, &c. This was such a piece of political writing as England had never before seen; full of profound and comprehensive statesmanship, displaying a thorough knowl- edge of every subject that came within its range, and anticipating many of the most important conclusions which Adam Smith published some seven years later in his great work on the Wealth of Nations. This was followed, in 1770. bv a still greater work entitled Thotif/hls on the Cause of .tot Duoontodt, which, though dealing with an occasional question, abounds in matter of universal application, and is among our best text- books of statesmanship for all time.s. Of Uurke's many labours in Parliament, not the least memorable was in connection with a long and hard struggle for the freedom of the Pros. The rea-ons \\ere growing stronger everv dav whv the proceedings of the '.wo Houses .should be freelv laid before the public; but the House of Com- mons insisted on treating such publication as a breach of privilege, and went to waging an ill-timed war on certain printers. IJurke took the lead in this contest; which was finally brought to a close in 1771 by an indirect but effectual assertion of the Liberty of the Pros as the daily chronicler of public events, including the, deliates'in Parliament. Thus he bore a leading part in giving birth to what is aptly called the Fourth Estate. After the measure was carried, Burke, foreseeing the vast consequences to flow from it, uttered the remark, ' Posterity will bless the, pertinacity of that day." Burke had been twice elected member for Wendover through the influ- ence of Lord Vcrncy. But when, in 1774, the time came for a third elec- 6 KURKE. tion, Lord Verney's affairs were so deeply embarrassed, that he had to sock out some men of wealth for the seats in his pi ft. Thereupon Lord Rockingham. placed his own borough of Mai ton at Burke's disposal. Just as the election was over, a deputation came on from Bristol, earnestly re- questing him to be one of the candidates for that city. As all his friends agreed it were much better he should be one of the two representatives for that large and influential constituency, he posted off at once to attend tho canvass there, and was elected. All through these years, the American question held perhaps the fore- most place in the parliamentary debates. Though it was almost hopeless to struggle against the course of the Ministry, Burke kept up his champi- onship of the Colonies. Two of his great speeches in this behalf, that on American Taxation, and that on Conciliation with America, delivered April 19, 1774, and .March 22, 1775, were carefully written out and publi>hed by himself. Of his many other speeches on the subject, only a tew notes and fragments have been preserved, and room cannot here be spared for com- ment on them. One of them, however, it would be hardly right to pass over. On the 6th of February, 1778, he made a motion for papers touch- ing the employment of the Indians in the war, and spoke upwards of three hours in support of the motion. One of his stnmgot points \\-us in reply to the assertion that the Colonists were ready to employ them, lie urged that, if the Americans used the Indians as allies, they could only set them upon the King's disciplined troops, who were al>le to defend themselves ; \\ hile to employ them against the Colonists, was abandoning unprotected women and children to the cruelties of the war-whoop and tin: scalping-knife, wher- ever those savages pursued their career. The galleries of the House were closed that day, and no trustworthy report of the speech was made; but all who heard it agreed that it surpassed any of his pre\ ions efforts; and Sir George Savile, a most competent judge, pronounced it the noble.-t triumph of eloquence within human memory. At Burke's ludicrous parody on Burgoyne's proclamation to the Indians, even Lord North him>elf was almost bursting with laughter; while, in the more pathetic parts, tears liko those which rolled down the iron cheeks of Pinto suffused the grim features of Colonel Barre, who, in his military career, had himself experienced the horrors of Indian warfare, lie urged' Burke to publish the speech, and de- clared that, if this were done, he would go him.-elf and nail it up on every church-door in the kingdom beside the royal Proclamation for a general fasten the 27th of the month. And Governor Johnstone congratulated the Ministry on having hud the galleries closed that day, lest the public feelings should have been wrought up to such a pitch as might have been fatal to the lives of the Ministers. On the final triumph of the American cause in 1782, the Ministry of Lord North came to an end, and the Marquess of Kockingham was again called to the office of Prime Minister. Burke then became Paymaster of the Forces, but had no seat in the Cabinet, t'p to that time, the Paymas- ter, besides his regular salary, had had the use of the money appropriated to the military service. This gave him a very large income, sometimes not less than .t'40.000 a-year. In accordance with a plan which he had him- self proposed some two years before, Burke now insisted on a total reform in his department, accepting only the regular salary, the u.-c of the money to go to the service of the State. But the death of Rockingham on the 30th of June following put an end to the Ministry. The verv dav before the Marquess died, he had a codicil added to his will, expres.-lv cancelling every paper that might be found containing an acknowledgment of debt due to him from his " admirable friend Edmund Burke." How far his bounty to Burke had extended, is not precisely known; but it is supposed to have reached the sum of about ,30,000. Perhaps I should here remark that the people of Bristol became dis>ati.->- SKETCH OF HIS LIFE. 7 fiecl with Burke on account of his persevering efforts to lighten tho bur- dens and oppressions of his native Ireland. So, in the fall of 1780, after being their representative for six years, he found the current there so strong against him, that he withdrew from the canvass; but was forthwith returned again for Malton, which borough he continued to represent dur- ing the rot of his twenty-eight years in the House of Commons. The Spring of 178.'} witnessed the formation of what was called the Coa- lition Ministry, Avhich was composed of men of several parties. Burke again became' Paymaster, still without a seat in the Cabinet^ But the Ministry proved an ill-starred arrangement, and soon went to pieces; and Burke's greatest political mistake was the part he took in forming it. Sonic time before this, he began to interest himself deeply in the wrongs of India. Jlis sensibilities, always most keenly alive to the sufferings of others, got wrought up to an extraordinary pitch in this behalf. On the 30th of July, 17S4, he brought the matter before Parfiament, and in tho course of that dav made no less than four speeches, ever growing more ve- hement as he went on, and in each denouncing woe and vengeance on the nation which allowed such iniquities to go unpunished; and he made a solemn oath before the House that the wrongs done to humanity in tho Fast should be avenged on the authors of them. For several years lie gave his whole soul to this cause, prosecuting it with incredible industry and en- ergy. All through the. arraignment and trial of Warren Hastings, u hich hisf'ed some ten \ears, he was the leader and the master-spirit. It is true, both hi- - of genius and his rectitude of purpose, were sometimes not a little ob.-cured by his inlirmilies of temper : in his raptures of pro- phetic fury, he was sometimes the pity of his friends and the derision of his enemies; but time has amply proved that his folly was wiser than the v i-dom of all who maligned or oppo.-ed him. The trial ended, to bo sure, in a formal acquittal of Hastings. This made his long labour seem a failure; and he himself >o considered it. But it was in effect, a grand : f..r it wrought a silent but thorough change in the government of India, and may be justly regarded as having saved the British empire in the 1 I- '...in the Summer of 1784 to that of 1789 Burke was probably the most unpopular man in F.ngland. At every turn he was met by the most^in- 1 hostility; from week to week he was hunted down by^thc most unrelenting obloquy. This was indeed partly owing to his own intemper- ance of conduct, foV his great warm heart kept boiling at the cruelties and inifjiiitics he had undertaken to expose; but it was chiefly because he held himself unflinchingly to the tn-k of speaking odious truth. At length, the outbreak nf the. French Involution, in 178'.), trave things a new turn, and brought about, an entire recast of parties in Fngland. Burke seems for a while to have, been struck dumb by that tremendous social and political whirlwind; hut he: watched its progress A\ ith the utmost concentration of mind. Knrly in February, 17'M), the, subject came up incidentally in the House of Commons, when Burke astounded both the House and the na- tion by his strong declarations of judgment. Up to this time, be and - Fo\ b:id b'-cn |':i~t /in/ii.'ni/ friends ; I say political, for Fox was too profligate in his morals for tho personal friend-hip of such a man u< Burke. But Fox :md the younger portion of the Whins were now whirled awav with the new revohuionarv enthusiasm. A most decided and ineura- !)' rupture ber\\ei-u Fx and Burke was the consequence. As things in France kept growing on from bud to worse, Burke's feelings got so wrought up, that, he declared he would break with his dearest friends, and join bauds with his bitterest, foes, on that question. In short, his great mind, through all it> faculties, was fired into extraordinary activity on that all- abeorbing theme. A Fivm-h gentleman, whose acquaintance he, had made borne time before, requested an expression of his judgment on the doings ill 8 BURKE. France. This seems to have kindled and started in him a regular train of thought; and the result appeared in his Inflections on the Revolution in France, published in the Fall of 1790. This marvellous production carried all before it, and the name of Edmund Burke suddenly became greater and more powerful than it had ever been. It was the theme of every tongue ; hardly any thing else was talked of or read ; edition after edition was called for; and thirty thousand copies were soon in the hands of the pub.ie. Nor was its effect confined to England ; "all Europe rung from side to side" with the fame of it. From this time forward his powers were mainly concentrated on the same great theme, the opposition to him being of just the right kind and degree to keep his mind in a steady glow. His A ppml from the. Nnctot/ie Old W/iifjs, his Letter to a Noble Lord, his four Letters on a R< /Itinerant StaU; to tlte commander of a vessel, authorizing him to rapture and take purssion of any ships belonging to the enemy wherever he may find them. Of course! .sei/ures so made, being sanctioned by international law, are not subject to the charge of piracy. 10 BURKE. appears to me of a much deeper malignity. 3 Dtfring its progress through the House of Commons, it has been amended, so as to express, more distinctly than at first it did, the avowed senti- ments of those who framed it ; and the main ground of my ex- ception to it is, because it does express, and does carry into execution, purposes which appear to me contradictory t all the principles, not only of the constitutional policy of Great Britain, but even of that species of hostile justice which no as- perity of war wholly extinguishes in the minds of a civilized people. It seems to have in view two capital objects: the (ir>t, to ena- ble administration to confine, as long as it shall think proper, those whom that Act is pleased to qualify by the name of i>u-<(t( s. Those so qualified I understand to be the commanders and mari- ners of such privateers and ships of war belonging to the colo- nies as in the course of this unhappy contest may fall into the hands of the Crown. They are therefore to be detained in prison, under the criminal description of piracy, t a future trial and ignominious punishment, whenever circumstances shall make it convenient to execute vengeance on them, under the colour of that odious and infamous offence. To this first purpose of the law I have no small dislike, be- cause the Act does not (as all laws and all equitable transactions ought to do) fairly describe its object. The persons who make a naval war upon us, in consequence of the present troubles, may be rebels ; but to call and treat them as pirates is confound- ing not only the natural distinction of things, but the order of crimes, which, whether by putting them from a higher part 3 This famous statute, called Habeas Corpus because writs issued in pursu- ance of it formerly began with those two words, wa- passe-1 in the reign of Charles the Second, 1G79. It was meant as an effective remedy, and su< h it has proved to be, against arbitrary imprisonment, that is, the punishment of alleged or imputed crimes, without a trial or a hearing. From a very early pe- riod, such imprisonment was indeed unlawful in England; but the servile inge- nuity of crown lawyers still found out ways of eluding the law : so that, if the King or any of his favorites had a grudge again.t a person, he could lubricate a criminal charge, and have him incarcerated; and there he was, without remedy or redress, as he could not bring the question of his guilt or innocence to a trial. But, by this Act, a person so held, or his friends, might apply to any one of the judges, and on such application the judge was obliged, under heavy penalties, to issue his writ requiring the custodian to bring forth the body of the prisoner, together with the warrant for committal, into court, that he, the judge, might determine of its sufficiency, and either remand the accu.-ed t<> prison, admit him to bail, or discharge him, according to the merits of the case. And any oilicer or jailer to whom such writ was directed was also bound, under severe penal- ties, to prompt obedience. Thus, among all English-speaking peoples, the Act in question stands to this day the main security of personal freedom against op- pressive power. LETTER TO THE SHERIFFS OF BRISTOL. 11 of the scale to the lower or from the lower to the higher, is never done without dangerously disordering the whole frame of jurisprudence. Though piracy may be, in the eye of the law, a less offence than treason, yet, as both are, in effect, punished with the same death, the same forfeiture, and the same corrup- tion of blood, I never would take, from any fellow-creature whatever, any sort of advantage which he may derive to his safety from the pity of mankind, or to his reputation from their general feelings, by degrading his offence, when I cannot soften his punishment. The general sense of mankind tells me that those offences which may possibly arise from mistaken virtue are not in the class of infamous actions. Lord Coke, the oracle of the English law, conforms to that general sense, where he says that "those thing-* which are of the highest criminality may be of the least disgrace." The Act prepares a sort of masked proceeding, not honourable to the justice of the king- dom, and by no means necessary for its safety. I cannot enter into it. If Lord Balmeriuo, in the last rebellion, had driven off the cattle of twenty clans, I should have thought it would have been a scandalous and low juggle, utterly unworthy of the man- liness of an English judicature, to have tried him for felony as a stealer of cows. 4 Besides, I must honestly tell you that I could not vote for, or countenance in any way, a statute which stigmatizes with the crime of piracy these men whom an Act of Parliament had pre- viously put out of the protection of the law. When the legisla- ture of this kingdom had ordered all their ships and goods, for the mere new-created olTence of exercising trade, to be divided as ;i spoil among the seamen of the navy, 6 to consider the ueces.strv reprisal of an unhappy, proscribed, interdicted peo- ple, as the crime of piracy, would have appeared, in any other ]<--islature than ours, a strain of the most insulting and most unnatural cruelty and injustice. I assure you I never remem- ber to have hoard of any thing like it in anytime or country. The second professed purpose of the Act is to detain in Eng- land for trial those who shall commit high treason in America. 4 Lord Balmerino was a Scottish nobleman, who took part with Charles Ed- wan], commonly railed the, Pretender, in his attempt to regain the British tin-one. At the battle of Culloden, in 1T4.">, where that attempt was crushed, Balmerino was taken prisoner, and was afterwards tried, convicted, and exe- cuted/w treason. 5 J5y the Act of Parliament here referred to, all the property of Americans, whether of ships or goods, on the high seas or in harbour, was declared " to be forfeited to the raptors, bring the ollirers and crews of his Majesty's ships of war." This Act was supplementary to another which had interdicted all trade to the colonists, thus making commerce a crime. 12 BURKE. That you may be enabled to enter into the true spirit of the present law, it is necessary, Gentlemen, to apprise you that there is an Act, made so long ago as in the reign of Henry the Eighth, before the existence or thought of any English colonies in America, for the trial in this kingdom of treason committed out of the realm. In the year 1709 Parliament thought proper to acquaint the Crown with their construction of that Act in a formal address, wherein they entreated his Majesty to cause persons charged with high treason in America to be brought into this kingdom for trial. By this Act of Henry the Eighth, so construed and so applied, almost all that is substantial and beneficial in a trial by jury is taken away from the subject in the colonies. This is, however, saying too little ; for to try a man under that Act is, in effect, to condemn him unheard. A person is brought hither in the dungeon of a ship's ^old; thence he is vomited into a dungeon on land, loaded with irons, unfur- nished with money, unsupported by friends, three thousand miles from all means of calling upon or confronting evidence, where no one local circumstance that tends to detect perjury can possibly be judged of ; such a person may be executed ac- cording to form, but he can never be tried according to justice. I therefore could never reconcile myself to the bill I send you, which is expressly provided to remove all inconveniences from the establishment of a mode of trial which has ever ap- peared to me most unjust and most unconstitutional. Far from removing the difficulties which impede the execution of so mis- chievous a project, I would heap new difficulties upon it, if it were in my power. All the ancient, honest juridical principles and institutions of England are so many clogs to check and retard the headlong course of violence and oppression. They were invented for this one good purpose, that what was not just should not be convenient. Convinced of this, I would leave things as I found them. The old, cool-headed, general law is as good as any deviation dictated by present heat. I could see no fair, justifiable expedience pleaded to favour this new suspension of the liberty of the subject. If the English in the colonies can support the independency to which they have been unfortunately driven, I suppose nobody has such a fanatical zeal for the criminal justice of Henry the Eighth, that he will contend for executions which must be retaliated tenfold on his own friends, or who has conceived so strange an idea of English dignity as to think the defeats in America compensated (5 The purpose of this old statute was to provide for the trial and punishment, in England, of crimes committed at sea, and which must be tried and puiiMu-d in England, or not at all. To apply this Act to the colonists was indeed a mon- strous perversion. LETTER TO THE SHERIFFS ^F BRISTOL. 13 by the triumphs at Tyburn. 7 If, on th^ contrary, the colonies are reduced to the obedience of the Crown, there must be, under that authority, tribunals in the country itself fully competent to administer justice on all offenders. But if there are not, and that we must suppose a thing so humiliating to our government as that all this vast continent should unanimously concur in thinking that no ill fortune can convert resistance to the royal authority into a criminal act, we may call the effect of our vic- tory peace, or obedience, or what we will, but the war is not ended; the hostile mind continues in full vigour, and it con- tinues under a worse form. If your peace be nothing more t ban a snlien pause from arms, if their quiet be nothing but the med- itation of revenge, where smitten pride smarting from its wounds - into ne\v rancour, neither the Act of Henry the Eighth nor its handmaid <>f this ivign will answer any wise end of policy or justice. For, if the bloody fields which they saw and felt are not Miflirient to subdue the reason of America, (to use the expressive phrase of a great lord in oliice, ) it is not the judicial Slaughter which is made in another hemisphere against their universal sense of justice that will ever reconcile them to the .British government. 1 take it for -ranted, (Jentleineii. that we sympathize in a proper horror of all punishment further than as it serves for an exMnple. To whom, then, does the example of an execution in England for this American rebellion apply? Piemember, you are told everyday, that the present is a contest between the two countries, and that we in Kngland are at war for our own dignity against our rebellious children. Is this true? If it be, it is surely among such rebellious children that examples for disobe- dience should be made, to be in any degree instructive : for who ever thought of teaching parents their duty by an example from the punishment of an undutiful son? As well might the exe- cution of a fugitive negro in the plantations be considered as a to teach masters humanity to their slaves. Such execu- tions may indeed satiate our revenge; they may harden our hearts, and puff us up with pride and arrogance. Amo j tnis is not instruction. If any thing can be drawn from such examples by a parity of the case, it N to show how deep their crime and how heavy their punishment will be, who shall at, any time < la re to resist a dis- tant power a-tually di-pos'mg of their property without their \oiceorconseiit to the disposition, and overturning their fran- chises without charge or hearing. God forbid that England r Tyburn was ;i place in or near London where persons convicted of capital Crimea were executed. 14 BURKE. should ever read this lesson written in the blood of any of her offspring ! War is at present carried on between the King's natural and foreign troops, on one side, and the English in America, on the other, upon the usual footing of other wars ; and accordingly an exchange of prisoners has been regularly made from the be- ginning. If, notwithstanding this hitherto equal procedure, upon some prospect of ending the war with success ( which how- ever may be delusive) administration prepares to act against those as traitors who remain in their hands at the end of the troubles, in my opinion we shall exhibit to the world as inde- cent a piece of injustice as ever civil fury has produced. If the prisoners who have been exchanged, have not by that exchange been virtually ]KiriIt' discussion under a commission of Over and Terminer/ It is as opposite to reason and prudence as it is to humanity and justice. This Act, proceeding on these principles, that is, preparing to end the present troubles by a trial of one sort of hostility under the name of piracy, and of another by the name of treason, and executing the Act of Henry the Kighth according to a now and unconstitutional interpretation, I have thought evil and dan- gerous, even though the in.st rumeiits of effecting such purposes had been merely of a neutral quality. But it really appears to me that the means which this Act employs are at least as exceptionable as the end. Permit me to open myself a little upon this subject; because it is of im- portance to me, when I am obliged to submit to the power without acquiescing in the reason of an Act of legislature, that I should justify my dissent by such arguments as may be sup- posed to have weight with a sober man. The main operative regulation <>f the Act is to suspend thu moil Law and the statute llulmm Cnr/>nx (the sole secure tfefl either for liberty or justice) with regard to all those who have been out of the realm, or on the high seas, within a given time. The rest of the people, as I understand, are to continue as they -tood before. I confess, (Jentleman, that this appears to me as bad in the principle, and far worse in it- consequence, than an universal .. nsion of the Halifax Curium Act ; and the limiting qualili- n, instead of taking out the sting, does in my humble opin- ion sharpen and envenom it to a greater degree. Liberty, if I understand it at all. is a i/nnn/1. principle, and 1 he clear right of all the subjects within the realm, or of none. Partial freedom si-em* to me a most invidious mode of slavery. But, unfortu- nat.-ly, it is the kind of slavery the most easily admitted in times of civil discord : for parties are, but too apt to forget thoir own future safety in their desire of sacrificing their enemies. 8 Thnt is, authority to hear and determine legal causes; oyer being an old >i.nnau-i'rench word meaning to hear. 16 BURKE. People without much difficulty admit the entrance of that in- justice of which they are not to be the immediate victims. In times of high proceeding it is never the faction of the predom- inant power that is in danger; for no tyranny chastises i; instruments. It is the obnoxious and the suspected who want the protection of law ; and there is nothing to bridle the partial violence of State factions but this, "that, whenever an Act is made for a cessation of law and justice, the whole people should be universally subjected to the same suspension of their franchises." The alarm of such a proceeding would then be universal. It would operate as a sort of call <>f the nation. It would become every man's immediate and in.-tanl coneeni to be made very sensible of the absolute necessiiiurf this total eclipse of liberty. They would more carefully advert to every renewal, and more powerfully resist it. These great determined meas- ures are not commonly so dangerous to freedom. They are marked with too strong lines to slide into use. JS'o pica, nor pretence, of inconn ni< art or tr',1 i.ctinijtk (which must in their nature be daily and ordinary incident-) can be admitted as a reason for such mighty operations. But the true danger is when liberty is nibbled away, for expedients, and by parts. The Habeas Corpus Act supposes, contrary to the genius of most other laws, that the lawful magistrate may see particular men with a malignant eye, and it provides for that identical case. But when men, in particular descriptions, marked out by the magistrate himself, arc delivered over by Parliament to this possible malignity, it is not the Hula UK ( 'nrjiux that is occa- sionally suspended, but its spirit that is mistaken, and its prin- ciple that is subverted. Indeed, nothing is security to any in- dividual but the common interest of all. This Act, therefore, has this distinguished evil in it, that it is the lirst partial suspension of the Habeas Corpus that has been made. The precedent, which is always of very great impor- tance, is now established. For the first time a distinction is made among the people within this realm. Before thi- every man putting his foot on English ground, every stranger owing only a local and temporary allegiance, even negro slaves who had been sold in the colonies and under an Act of Parlia- ment, became as free as every other man who breathed the same air with them. .Now a line is drawn, which may be ad- vanced further and further at pleasure, on the same argument of mere expedience on which it was first described. There is no eiiuality among us; we are not fellow-citi/ens, if the mariner who lands on the quay does not rest on as firm legal ground as the merchant who sits in his counting-house. Other laws may injure the community ; this dissolves it. As things now stand, LETTER TO THE SHERIFFS OF BRISTOL. 17 every man in the West Indies, every one inhabitant of three unoffending provinces on the continent, every person coming from the East Indie-, every gentleman who has travelled for his health or education, every mariner who has navigated the seas, is, for no other offence, under a temporary proscription. Let any of these facts (now become presumptions of guilt) be proved against him, and the bare suspicion of the Crown puts him out of the law. It is even by no means clear to me whether the negative proof does not lie upon the person apprehended on suspicion, to the subversion of all justice. I have not debated against this bill in its progress through the House, because it would have been vain to oppose, and impossible to correqt it. It is some time since I have been clearly convinced that, in the present state of things, all oppo- sition to any measures proposed by .Ministers, where the name of America appears, is vain and frivolous. You may be sure that I do not speak of my opposition, which in all circumstances must be so, but that of men of the greatest wisdom and author- ity in the nation. Every thing proposed against America is supposed of course to be in favour of Great Britain. Good and ill success are equally admitted as reasons for persevering in the present methods. Several very prudent and very well- intentioned persons were of opinion that, during the prevalence of such dispositions, all struggle rather inflamed than lessened the distemper of the public counsels. Finding such resistance to be considered as factious by most within doors and by very many without, I cannot conscientiously support what is against my opinion, nor prudently contend with what I know is irre- sistible. Preserving my principles unshaken, I reserve my activity for rational endeavours; and I hope that my past con- duct has given sullicient evidence that, if I am a single day from my place, it is not owing to indolence or love of dissipation. The slightest hope of doing good is sullicient to recall me to what 1 quitted with re-ret. In declining for some time my u^ual strict attendance, I do not in the least condemn the spirit hose gentlemen who, with a just confidence in their abilities, ( in which I claim a sort of share from my love and admiration re. of opinion that their exertions in this desperate might be of some service. They thought that by con- tnvting the sphere of it - application they might lessen the ma- lty of an evil principle. Perhaps they were in the right. JJut when my opinion was so very clearly to the contrary, for the reasons I have just stated, i um sure my attendance would have been ridiculous. ' J 9 In the Summer of 1776, the British had gained some inipurtaut advantages 18 BURKE. I must add, in further explanation of my conduct, that, far from softening the features of such a principle, and thereby re- moving any part of the popular odium or natural terrors at- tending it, I should be sorry that any thing framed in contra- diction to the spirit of our Constitution did not instantly pro- duce, in fact, the grossest of the evils with which it was preg- nant in its nature. It is by lying dormant a long time, or being at first very rarely exercised, that arbitrary power steals upon a people. On the next unconstitutional Act, all the fashionable world will be ready to say, "Your prophecies are ridiculous, your fears are vain; you see how little of the mischiefs which you formerly foreboded are come to pass." Thus, by degrees, that artful softening of all arbitrary power, the alleged infre- quency or narrow extent of its operation, will be received as a sort of aphorism ; and Mr. Hume will not be singular in telling us that the felicity of mankind is no more disturbed by it than by earthquakes or thunder, or the other more unusual acci- dents of Nature. The Act of which I speak is among the fruits of the Ameri- can war, a war in my humble opinion productive of many mischiefs, of a kind which distinguish it from all others. Not only our policy is deranged, and our empire distracted, but our laws and our legislative spirit appear to have been totally per- verted by it. We have made war on our colonies, not by arms only, but l>y laws. As hostility and law are not very concordant ideas, every step we have taken in this business has been made by trampling on some maxim of justice or some capital princi- ple of wise government. What precedents were established, and what principles overturned, (1 will not say of English privi- lege, but of general justice,) in the Boston Tort, the Massachu- setts Charter, the Military Bill, 1 and all that long array of in the war, especially the victory on Long Island, and the possession of Now York city. This turn of success rendered the British government and people more confident than ever of reducing the insurgent colonies to gubmis.-ion : moderation was cast off, the voice of conciliation was drowned in songs of tri- umph, and the tide of infatuation ran to the highest pitch. This naturally brought the opposition in Parliament to a point correspondingly low; insomuch that in the Fall and Winter following most of the Koekingham Whigs, Burke among them, carried out the plan of partial secession which they had for some time entertained. They attended during the hours of general business in the morning; but as soon as the special questions came up. they made their bows to the Speaker, and withdrew. Notwithstanding the reasons given in the text, the act was one of doubtful expediency, 1 Of these three bills, the llrst, hastily passed in 1774, was for closing the bar- bour, and thereby squelching the commerce of Boston : it prohibited "the lad- ing or unlading of all goods or merchandise- at any place within the precincts ol' Boston," until the colony should be brought to entire submission. The sec. LETTER TO THE SHERIFFS OF BRISTOL. 19 hostile Acts of Parliament by which the war with America has been begun and supported ! Had the principles of any of these Acts been first exerted on English ground, they would proba- bly have expired as soon as they touched it. But, by being removed from our persons, they have rooted in our laws, and the latest posterity will taste the fruits of them. ^Sor is it tlu- worst eflVrt of this unnatural contention, that our laws are corrupted. "Whilst nnmm /* remain entire, they will correct the vices of law, and soften it at length to their own temper. But we have to lament that in most of the late pro- ceedings we see very IV w traces of that generosity, humanity, and dignity of mind, which formerly characterized this nation. "War suspends the rules of moral obligation, and what is long suspended is in danger of being totally abrogated. Civil wars strike deepest of all into the manners of the people. They viti- ate t heir polities ; they corrupt their morals ; they pervert even the natural taste and relish of equity and justice. By teaching us to consider our fellow-citizens in an hostile light, the whole body of our nation becomes gradually less dear to us. The very names of affection and kindred, which were the bond of charity whilst we agreed, become new incentives to hatred and rage when the communion of our country is dissolved. We may Hatter ourselves that we shall not fall into this misfortune. But we have 1,0 charter of exemption, that I know of, from the ordinary frailties of our nature. What but that blindness of heart which arises from the frenzy of civil contention could have made any persons con- ceive the present situation of the British affairs as an object of triumph to themselves or of congratulation to their sovereign? Nothing, surely, could be more lamentable to those who re- member the nourishing days of this kingdom, than to seethe insane joy of several unhappy people, amidst the sad spectacle which our affairs and conduct exhibit to the scorn of Europe. AVe behold (and it seems some people rejoice in beholding) our native land, which used to sit the envied arbiter of all her neighbours, reduced to a servile dependence on their mercy, acquiescing in assurances of friendship which she does not trust, complaining of hostilities which she dares not resent, oiid, passed the same session, revoked and annulled the royal charter of Massa- Bay, in pursuance of which the public affairs of the colony had been conducted more than eighty years; the Act took the appointment of all judicial and municipal olliccr.-. awa\ from the colonists, and vested it in the Crown. The third, also passed the same session, was for quartering British troops upon the inhabitants of Boston; thus compelling them to support the instruments of their own oppression. All conceived in the spirit of a most insane policy; utterly impotent, too, nave to exasperate and inflame. 20 BURKE. deficient to her allies, lofty to her subjects, and submissive to her enemies; 2 whilst the liberal government of this free na- tion is supported by the hireling sword of German boors and vassals, and three millions of the subjects of Great ttajtain are seeking for protection to English privileges in the arms of France ! These circumstances appear to me more like shocking prod- igies than natural changes in human affairs. Men of firmer minds may see them without staggering or astonishment. Some may think them matters of congratulation and c^fcpli- mentary addresses ; but I trust your candour will 1 > gent to my weakness as not to have the worse opinion of me for my declining to participate in this joy, and my rejecting all share whatsoever in such a triumph. I am too old, too stiff in my inveterate partialities, to be ready at all the fashionable ev- olutions of opinion. I scarcely know how to adapt my mind to the feelings with which the Court Gazettes im an to impress t he people. It is not instantly that I can be brought to rejoice, when I hear of the slaughter and captivity of long lists of those names which have been familiar to my cars from my infancy, and to rejoice that they have fallen under the sword of strangers, whose barbarous appellations I scarcely know how to pronounce. The glory acquired at the White Plains by Colonel Eahl has no charms for me, and 1 fairly acknowledge that I have not yet learned to delight in finding Fort Kniphauseii in the heart of the British dominions. 3 It might be some consolation for the loss of our old regards, if our reason were enlightened in proportion as our honest prej- udices are removed. Wanting feelings for the honour of our country, we might then in cold blood be brought to think a little of our interests as individual citizens and our private con- science as moral agents. Indeed, our affairs are in a bad condition. I do assure those gentlemen who have prayed for war, and obtained the blessing they have sought, that they are at this instant in very great straits. The abused wealth of this country continues a little longer to feed its distemper. As yet they, and their German 2 The special allusion here is to the negotiations, th% in progress, which resulted in an alliance between France and the colonies. The IJritish govern- ment were aware of those proceedings, hut had to ignore them, through tear of provoking Trance to an early championship ol'tlie American cause. 3 General Kniphauseii was a commander of the (ierman troops serving un- der General Howe. Alter the capture of Fort Washington, which stood on the Hudson not far above New York city, Colonel Ulial, or Hall, who was under Kniphausen, and was the hero of that exploit, changed the name to Fort Knip. hauseu. LETTER TO THE SHERIFFS OF BRISTOL. 21 allies of twenty hireling States, have contended only with the unprepared strength of our own infant colonies. But America is not subdued. ."Xot one unattacked village which was origin- ally averse throughout that vast continent has yet submitted from love or terror. You have the ground you encamp on, and you have no more. The cantonments of your troops and your dominions arc exactly of the same extent. You spread devas- tation, but you do not enlarge the sphere of authority. The events of this war are of so much greater magnitude than tl^Bb who either wished or feared it ever looked for, that this alone ought to lill every considerate mind with anxiety and dif- fidence. Wise men often trembler at the very things which fill the thoughtless with security. For many reasons I do not choose to expose to public view all the particulars of the state in which yon stood with regard to foreign powers during the whole course of the last year. Whether you are yet wholly out of danger from them is more than 1 know, or than your rulers can divine. ]>ut even if I were certain of my safety, I could not easily forgive tho.-e \vho had brought me into the most dreadful perils, because by accidents, unforeseen by them or me, I have escaped. ] Relieve me, Gentlemen, the way still before you is intricate, dark, and full of perplexed and treacherous mazes. Those who think they have the clew may lead us out of this labyrinth. AVe may trust them as amply as we think proper; but as they have most certainly a call for all the reason which their stock i'urnisli, why should we think it proper to disturb its opera- tion by inflaming their passions? 1 may be unable to lend a helping hand to those who direct the State; but I should be a>haincs creature, without civil wisdom or military skill, without a eonsriou.-iic*s of any other qualification for power but his senility to it, bloated with pride and arrogance, calling for bat this which he is not to light, contending for a violent do- minion which he can never exercise, and satisfied to be himself 22 BURKE. mean and miserable, in order to render others contemptible and wretched. If you and I find our talents not of the great and ruling kind, our conduct, at least, is conformable to our faculties. No man's life pays the forfeit of our rashness. Xo desolate widow weeps tears of blood over our ignorance. Scrupulous and sol >er in a well-grounded distrust of ourselves, we would keep in the port of peace and security ; and perhaps in recommending to others something of the same diffidence, we should show our- selves more charitable to their welfare than injurious to their abilities. There are many circumstances in the zeal shown for civil war which seem to discover but little of real magnanimity. The addressers offer their own persons, and they arc sat islicd with hiring Germans. They promise their private fortunes, and they mortgage their country. They have all the merit of volunteers, without risk of person or charge of contribution ; and when the unfeeling arm of a foreign soldiery pours out their kindred blood like water, they exult and triumph as if they themselves had performed some notable exploit. J am really ashamed of the fashionable language which has been held for some time past, which, to say the best of it, is full of levity. You know that I allude to the general cry against the cowardice of the Amer- icans, as if we despised them for not making the King's soldiery purchase the advantage they have obtained at a dearer rate. It is not, Gentlemen, it is not to respect the dispensations of Providence, nor to provide any decent retreat in the mutability of human affairs. It leaves no medium between insolent victory and infamous defeat. It tends to alienate our minds further and further from our natural regards, and to make an eternal rent and schism in the British nation. Those who do not wish for such a separation would not dissolve that cement of reciprocal esteem and regard which can alone bind together the part.- of this great fabric. It ought to be our wish, as it is our duty, not- only to forbear this style of outrage ourselves, but to make every one as sensible as we can of the impropriety and un- worthiness of the tempers which give rise to it, and which de- signing men are labouring with such malignant industry to diffuse amongst us. It is our business to counteract them, if possible, if possible, to awake our natural regards, and to revive the old partiality to the English name. "Without some- thing of this kind I do not see how it is ever practicable really to reconcile with those whose affection, after all, must he the surest hold of our government, and which is a thousand times more worth to us than the mercenary zeal of all the circles of Germany. LETTER TO THE SHERIFFS OF BRISTOL. 23 I can well conceive a, country completely overrun, and mis- erably wasted, without approaching in the least to settlement. In my apprehension, as long as English government is attempt- ed to be supported over Englishmen by the sword alone, things will thus continue. I anticipate in my mind the moment of the final triumph of foreign military force. When that hour arrives, (for it may arrive,) then it is that all this mass of weakness and violence will appear in its full light. If we should be expelled from America, the delusion of the partisans of military govern- ment might si ill continue. They might still feed their imagina- tions with the possible good consequences which might have attended success. [Nobody could prove the contrary by facts. But in case the sword should do all that the sword can do, the ntceeflfl <>f their arms and the defeat of their policy will be one and the same thing. You will never see any revenue from America. Some increase of the means of corruption, without I llie public burdens, is the very best that can happen. Is it for this that \ve are at war, and in such a war? As to th' diilicnlties of laying once more the foundations of that government which, for the sake of conquering what was our own, has been voluntarily and wantonly pulled down by a Court faction here, 1 trnnblr to look at them. Has any of these gentlemen who are so rjigrr to govern all mankind shown him- self posse-^cd of the first qualification towards government, some knowledge of the object, and of the difficulties which occur in the task they have undertaken? I a.-suiv you that, on the mo.st prosperous issue of your arms, you will not be where you stood when you called in war to supply tin- defect* of your political establishment. Nor would any disorder or disobedience to government which could arise from the moist abject concession on our part ever equal those which will be felt after the most triumphant violence. You have got all the intermediate evils of war into the bargain. I think I know America, if I do not, my ignorance is incura- b;,'. Tor I have spared no pains to understand it, and I do >leinnly assure those of my constituents who put any sort of confidence in my industry and integrity, that every thing that has been done there has arisen from a total misconception of the object ; that our means of originally holding America, that our means of reconciling with it after quarrel, of recover- ,:ft<-r separation, of keeping it after victory, did depend, and inu>t depend, in their several stages and periods, upon a tol;il renunciation of that unconditional submission which has taken such po->es>ion of the minds of violent men. The whole of those maxims upon which we have made and continued this war must be abandoned. Nothing, indeed, (for I would not de- 24 BURKE. ceive you,) can place us in our former situation. That hope must be laid aside. But there is a difference between bad and the worst of all. Terms relative to the cause of the war ought to be offered by the authority of Parliament. An arrangement at home promising some security for them ought to be made. By doing this, without the least impairing of our strength, we add to the credit of our moderation, which, in itself, is always strength more or less. I know many have been taught to think that moderation in a case like this is a sort of treason ; and that all arguments for it are sufficiently answered by railing at rebels and rebellion, and by charging all the present or future miseries which we may suffer on the resistance of our brethren. But I would wish them, in this grave matter, and if peace is not wholly removed from their hearts, to consider seriously, first, that to criminate and recriminate never yet was the road to reconciliation, in any difference amongst men. In the next place, it would be right to reflect that the American English (whom they may abu>e, it' they think it honourable to revile the absent) can, as tilings no\v stand, neither be provoked at our railing or Lettered by our in- struction. All communication is cut oil between us. But this we know with certainty, that, though we cannot reclaim them, we may reform ourselves. If measures of peace are necessary, they must begin somewhere; and a conciliatory temper must precede and prepare every plan of reconciliation. Nor do I conceive that we suffer any tiling by thus regulating our own minds. AVe are not disarmed by being disencumbered of our passions. Declaiming on rebellion never added a bayonet or a charge of powder to your military force ; but I am afraid that it has been the means of taking up many muskets against you. This outrageous language, which lias been encouraged and kept alive by every art, lias already done incredible mischief. For a long time, even amidst the desolations of war, and the in- sults of hostile laws daily accumulated on one another, the American leaders seem to have had the greatest difficulty in bringing up their people to a declaration of total independence. But the Court Gazette accomplished what the abettors of inde- pendence had attempted in vain. When that disingenuous compilation and strange medley of railing and llattery was ad- duced as a proof of the united sentiments of the people of (Jivat Britain, there was a great change throughout all America. The tide of popular affection, v.hich had still set towards the parent country, began immediately to turn, and to How with great rapidity in a contrary course. Far from concealing these wild declarations of enmity, the author of the celebrated pam- phlet which prepared the minds of the people for independence LETTER TO THE SHERIFFS OF BRISTOL. 25 insists largely on the multidude and the spirit of these addresses ; and lie draws an argument from them, which, if the fact were as he supposes, must be irresistible. For I never knew a writer on the theory of government so partial to author- ity as not to allow that the hostile mind of the rulers to their people did fully justify a change of government; nor can any reason whatever be given why one people should voluntarily yield any degree of preeminence to another but on a supposition of great affection and benevolence towards them. Unfortu- nately, your rulers, trusting to other things, took no notice of this great principle of connection. From the beginning of this affair, they have done all they could to alienate your minds from your own kindred; and if they could excite hatred enough in one of the parties towards the other, they seemed to be of opin- ion that they had gone halt' the way towards reconciling the quarrel. I know it is said, that your kindness is only alienated on ac- count of their resistance, and therefore, if the colonies surren- der at discretion, all sort of regard, and even much indulgence, is meant towards them in future. IJut can those who are partisans for continuing ;i war to enforces such a surrender be responsible (after all thai has passed) for such a future use of a power that is bound by no comparts and restrained by no terror? Will they tell us what they rail indulgences? Do they not at this instant rail the present war and all its horrors a lenient -and merciful prom-ding V No conqueror that I ever heard of has professed to make a cruel, harsh, and insolent ut ? The very tendency of such projects to produce rebellion is one of the chief reasons against them. Shall that reason net be given? Is it, then, a rule, that no man in this nation shall open his mouth in favour of the colonies, shall defend their rights, or complain of their sufferings, or, when war IJnally breaks out, no man shall express his desires of peace ' J . Has thi- the law of our past, or is it to be the terms of our future con- LETTER TO THE SHERIFFS OF BRISTOL. 29 nection? Even looking no further than ourselves, can it be true loyalty to any government, or true patriotism towards any country, to degrade their solemn councils into servile draAving- rooms, to flat tin* their pride, and passions rather than to en- lighten their reason, and to prevent them from being cautioned against violence, lest others should be encouraged to resistance? By such acquiescence great kings and mighty nations have been undone ; and ii' any are at this day in a perilous situation from rejecting truth and listening to (lattery, it would rather become them to reform the errors under which they suffer than to reproach those who forewarned them of their danger. But the rebels looked for assistance from this country? They did so, in the beginning of this controversy, most cer- tainly ; and they sought it by earnest supplications to govern- ment, which dignity rejected, and by a suspension of commerce, which the wealth of this nation enabled you to despise. "When they found that neither prayers nor menaces had any sort of weight, but that a lirm resolution was taken to reduce them to unconditional obedience by a military force, they came to the .tremity. Despairing of us, they trusted in themselves. Not >trong enough themselves, they sought succour in France. In proportion a* all encouragement here lessened, their distance from this country increased. The encouragement is over ; the alienation is complete. In order to produce this favourite unanimity in delusion, and to prevent nil possibility of a return to our ancient happy con- cord, arguments for t go through with it, and that the cause of the dispute- was lost in the consequences. The people of England were then, as they are now, called upon to make government strong. They thought it a great deal better to make it wise and honest. When I was amongst my constituents at the last summer as- sizes, I remember that men of all descriptions did then express a very strong desire for peace, and no slight hopes of attaining it from the commission sent out by my Lord Howe. And it is not a little remarkable that, in proportion as every person showed a zeal for the Court measures, he was then earnest in circulating an opinion of the extent of the supposed powers of that com- mission. AY hen I told them that Lord Howe had no powers to treat, or to promise satisfaction on any point whatsoever of the controversy, J was hardly credited, so strong and general was the desire of terminating this war by the method of accommoda- tion. As far as I could discover, this was the temper then prev- alent through the kingdom. The King's forces, it must be ob- served, had at that time been obliged to evacuate Boston. The superiority of the former campaign rested wholly with the colo- nists. If such powers of treaty were to be wished whilst suc- cess was very doubtful, how came they to be less so, since his Majesty's arms have been crowned with many considerable ad- vantages? Have these successes induced us to alter our mind, as thinking the season of victory not the time for treating with honour or advantage? Whatever changes have happened in the national character, it can scarcely be our wish that terms of 4 Amboyna is one of the East India Islands. A trading company of Eng- lislimcn, with their families, were settled there, and in possrs.-ion of the I.-laml; mid in 1G23 or IG'24, a Dutch company, wishing to engross the spice trade, claimed possession, seized the English, and put them all to death, with circumstances of great atrocity. In 1(7'2, Charles the Second, who was then a pensioner of Louis the Fourteenth, formed a League with him, and forced the English into making common cause with him against the Dutch, their old friends and allies. As the English people were altogether opposed to this suicidal war, some of the King's creatures got up a theatrical representation of the ma.- .-acre at Amboy- ua, in order to inflame the public mind against the Dutch. LETTER TO THE SHERIFFS OF BRISTOL. 31 accommodation never should be proposed to our enemy, except when they must be attributed solely to our fears. It has hap- pened, let mo say unfortunately, that we read of his Majesty's commission fbr making peace, and his troops evacuating his last town in the Thirteen Colonies, at the same hour and in the same gazette. It was still more unfortunate that no commission went to America to settle the troubles there, until several months after an Act had been passed to put the colonies out of the pro- tection of this government, and to divide their trading property, without a possibility of restitution, as spoil among the seamen of the navy. The most abject submission on the part of the colonies could not redeem them. There was no man on that whole continent, or within three thousand miles of it, qualified by law to follow allegiance with protection or submission with pardon. A proceeding of this kind has no example in history. Independency, and independency with an enmity, (which, put- ting ourselves out of the question, would be called natural and much provoked, 1 ) was the inevitable consequence. I low this came to pass the nation may be one day in an humour to inquire. All the attempts made this session to give fuller powers of peace to the commanders in America were stilled 1>\ the fatal confidence of victory and the wild hopes of unconditional sub- mission. There was a moment favourable to the King's arms, when, if any powers of concession had existed on the other side of t he Atlantic, even after all our errors, peace in all proba- bility might have been restored. But calamity is unhappily the usual season of rellection ; and the pride of men will not often suffer reason to have any scope, until it can be no longer of ice. I have always wished that, as the dispute had its apparent origin from things done in Parliament, and as the Acts passed there had provoked the war. the foundations of peace should be laid in Parliament also. J have been astonished to find that those whose xcal for the dignity of our body was so hot as to light up the Ilames ( ,f civil war should even publicly declare that these delicate points ought to be wholly left to the Crown. Poorly as I may be thought siffected to the authority of Parlia- ment, I shall never admit t hat our const itional rights can ever ;;< a matter of ministerial negotiation. I am charged with being an American. If warm affection towards tho>e over whom I claim any share of authority be a crime, I am guilty of this charge. But I do assure you (and they who know me publicly and privately will bear witness to me ithat, if ever one man lived more zealous than another i'or the supremacy of Parliament and the rights of this imperial Crown, it was myself. Many others indeed might be more 32 BURKE. knowing in the extent of the foundation of these rights. I do not pretend to be an antiquary, a lawyer, or qualified for the chair of professor in metaphysics. T never ventured to put your solid interests upon speculative grounds. My having constantly declined to do so has been attributed to my incapacity for such disquisitions ; and I am inclined to believe it is partly the cause. I never shall be ashamed to confess that, where I am ignorant. I am diffident. I am indeed not very solicitous to clear my>elf of this imputed incapacity; because men even less conversant than I am in this kind of subtilties, and placed in stations to which I ought not to aspire, have, by the mere force of civil discretion, often conducted the affairs of great nations with distinguished felicity and glory. When I first came into a public trust^ I found your Parlia- ment in possession of an unlimited legislative power over the colonies. I could not open the statute-book without seeing the actual exercise of it, more or less, in all cases whatsoever. This possession passed with me for a title. It does so in all human affairs. No man examines into the defects f his title to his paternal estate or to his established government. In- deed, common sense taught me that a legislative authority not actually limited by the express terms of its foundation, or by its own subsequent Acts, cannot have its powers parcelled out by argumentative distinctions, so as to enable us to say that here they can and there they cannot bind. Nobody wa< so obliging as to produce to me any record of such distinctions, by compact or otherwise, either at the successive formation of the several colonies or during the existence of any of them. If any gentlemen were able to se'e how one power could be given up (merely on abstract reasoning) without giving up the rest, I can only say that they saw further than I could. Xor did I ever presume to condemn any one for being clear-sighted when I was blind. I praise their penetration and learning, and hope that their practice has been correspondent to their theory. I had indeed very earnest wishes to keep the whole body of this authority perfect and entire as I found it, and to ke< p it so, not for our advantage solely, but principally for the sake of those on whose account all just authority exists : I mean, the people to be governed. For I thought I saw that mum might well happen in which the exercise of every power com- prehended in the broadest idea of legislature might become, in its time and circumstances, not a little expedient for the peace and union of the colonies amongst themselves, as well as for their perfect harmony with Great Britain. 5 Thinking so, ( per- 5 The wiedoin of Burke's doctrine of " au unlimited legislative power over LETTER TO THE SHERIFFS OF BRISTOL. 33 haps erroneously, but being honestly of that opinion?) I was at the same time very sure that the authority of which I was so jealous could not, under the actual circumstances of our plan- tations, be at all preserved in any of its members, but by the greatest reserve in its application, particularly in those delicate points in which the feelings of mankind are the most irritable. They who thought otherwise have found a few more difficulties in their work than ( I hope ) they were thoroughly aware of, when they undertook the present business. I must beg leave to observe, that it is not only the invidious branch of taxation that will be resisted, but that no other given part of legislative rights ran be exercised, without regard to the general opinion of those who are to be governed. That general opinion is the vehicle and organ of legislative omnipotence. Without this, it may be a theory to entertain the mind, but it is nothing in the direction of aiTairs. The completeness of the legislative au- thority of Parliament <'y our National Government to this day. <; The <'ourt. of High < ommi.-sion was established by Queen Elizabeth, in l.V-J, as the organ of her ecelesia.-tieal supremacy. Jt, consisted of forty-four members, twelve of whom were clergymen; and three made a quorum. The 1 1 was armed with full inquisitorial powers over all sorts of persons, and in all matters of action and opinion, and was above all legal cheek and control. And UK.; proceedings of tins terrible engine were so well in keeping with its nature, that it became utterly intolerable, and was abolished by the Long IVr- liament in Kill. The Star-Chamber Court, a much older establishment, having jurisdiction m chil cases, and clothed with like discretionary powers, was a uo lebd hateful engine of tyranny, and fell at the same time. 34 BURKE. even in that case. But we may very safely affirm that, not- withstanding this apparent omnipotence, it would be now found as impossible for King and Parliament to alter the established religion of this country as it was to King James alone, when he attempted to make such an alteration without a Parliament. In effect, to follow, not to force, the public inclination, to give a direction, a form, a technical dress, and a specific sane- tion, to the general sense of the community, is the true end of legislature. It is so with regard to the exercise of all the powers which our Constitution knows in any of its parts, and indeed to the sub- stantial existence of any of the parts themselves. The King's negative to bills is one of the most undisputed of the royal pre- rogatives ; and it extends to all cases whatsoever. I nm far from certain that, if several laws, which I know, had fallen under the stroke of that sceptre, the public would have had a- very heavy loss. But it is not the propriety of the exercise which is in question. The exercise it>ell' is wisely 1'orhorpe. Its repose may be the preservation of its existence ; and its ex- istence maybe the means of saving the Constitution itself, on an occasion worthy of bringing it forth. As the disputants whose accurate and logical reasonings have brought us into our present condition think it absurd that powers or members of any constitution should exist, rarely, if ever, to be exercised, I hope I shall be excused in mentioning another instance that is material. We know that the Coin oca- tion of the Clergy had formerly been called, and sat with nearly as much regularity to business as Parliament itself. 7 It is now called for form only. It sits for the purpose of making some polite ecclesiastical compliments to the King, and, when that grace is said, retires and is heard of no more. It is, however, a part of the Constitution, and may be called out into act and en- ergy, whenever there is occasion, and whenever those who con- jure up that spirit will choose to abide the consequences. It is wise to permit its legal existence: it is much wiser to continue it a legal existence only. 80 truly has prudence (constituted as the god of this lower world) the entire dominion over every exercise of power committed into its hands! And yet I have lived to see prudence and conformity to circumstances wholly 7 The Convocation of the Clergy, with its Upper and Lower Houses, is the ancient Church Legislature of England. For nearly two hundred years all its law-making functions have been practically exercised by Parliament ; though its formal existence is still kept up, : been .mii-ed, in order to divert our minds from the 8 Cutch in tlio liana: of a province, and also of a gulf, on the western coast of Hindustan, near the mouths of the river Indus. 36 BURKE. common sense of our American policy. There are people \vlio have split and anatomized the doctrine of free government, as if it were an abstract question concerning metaphysical liberty and necessity, and not a matter of moral prudence and natural feeling. They have disputed whether liberty be a positive or a negative idea ; whether it does not consist in being governed by laws, without considering what are the laws, or who an- the makers ; whether man lias any rights by Nature ; and whether all the property he enjoys be not the alms of his government, and his life itself their favour and indulgence. Others, cor- rupting religion as these have perverted philosophy, contend that Christians are redeemed into captivity, and the blood of the Saviour of mankind has been shed to make them the slaves of a few proud and insolent sinners. These shocking extremes provoking to extremes of another kind, speculations are let loose as destructive to all authority as the former are to all free- dom; and every government is called tyranny and usurpation which is not formed on their fancies. In this manner the stir- rers-up of this contention, not satisfied with distracting our de- pendencies and tilling them with blood and slaughter, are cor- rupting our understandings : they an- endeavouring to tear up, along with practical liberty, all the foundations of human society, all equity and justice, religion and order. Civil freedom, Gentlemen, is not, as many have endeavoured to persuade you, a thing that lies hid in the depth of abstruse science. It is a blessing and a benefit, not an abstract specula- tion; and all the just reasoning that can be upon it is of so coarse a texture as perfectly to suit the ordinary capacities of those who are to enjoy, and of those who are to defend it. Far from any resemblance to those propositions in geometry and metaphysics which admit no medium, but must be true or false in all their latitude, social and civil freedom, like all other things in common life, are variously mixed and modified, en- joyed in very different degrees, and shaped into an infinite di- versity of forms, according to the temper and circumstan every community. The extreme of liberty (which is its ub>trart perfection, but its real fault ) obtains nowhere, nor ought to ob- tain anywhere ; because extremes, as we all know, in . point which relates either to our duties or satisfactions in life, are destructive both to virtue and enjoyment. Liberty, too, must be limited in order to be possessed. The degree of re- straint it is impossible in any case to settle precisely. But it ought to be the constant aim of every wise public counsel to find out by cautious experiments, and rational, cool endeavours, with how little, not how much, of this restraint the community can subsist : for liberty is a good to be improved, and not an LETTER TO THE SHERIFFS OF BRISTOL. 37 evil to be lessened. It is not only a private blessing of the first order, but the vital spring and energy of the State itself, which has just so much life and vigour as there is liberty in it. But, whether liberty be advantageous or not, (for I know it is a fash- ion to decry the principle,) none will dispute that peace is a blessing; and peace must, in the course of human affairs, be frequently bought by some indulgence and toleration at least to liberty: for, as the Sabbath (though of Divine institution) was made for man, not man for the Sabbath, government, which can claim no higher origin or authority, in its exercise at least ought to conform to the exigencies of the time, and the temper and character of the people with whom it is concerned, and not always to attempt violently to bend the people to their theories of subjection. The bulk of mankind, on their part, are not ex- ly curious concerning any theories whilst they are really happy; and one sure symptom of an ill-conducted Stato is the propensity of the people to resort to them. 13 ut when subjects, by a long course of such ill conduct, are once thoroughly inflamed, and the State itself violently dis- tempered, the people must have some satisfaction to their feelings more solid than a sophistical speculation on law and government. Such was our situation: and such a satisfaction was necessary t:> prevent recourse to arms; it, was necessary towards la\ing them down ; it will be necessar\ to prevent the taking them up again and again. Of what nature this satisfac- tion ought to be, I wish it had horn the disposition of Parlia-. nieiit seriously to consider. It was certainly a deliberation that called for the exertion of all their wisdom. lam, and ever have boon, deeply sensible of the difficulty of reconciling t ho strong presiding power, that is so useful towards the conservation of a vast, disconnected, infinitely diversified empire, with that liberty and safety of the provinces which they mu.-t enjoy, (in opinion and practice at least,) or they will not b< provinces at all. I know, and have long felt, the difficulty of reconciling the unwieldy haughtiness of a great ruling nation, habituated to command, pampered by enormous wealth, and confident from a long course of prosperity and victory, to the .liiit of free dependencies, animated with the first glow and activity of juvenile boat, and assuming to themselves, as their birthright, some purl, of that very pride which oppresses them. They who perceive no difficulty in reconciling these tem- which, however, to make peace, must, some way or other nciled are much above my capacity, or much below the magnitude of I he business. Of one thing I am perfectly clear, that it is nol by deciding the suit, but by compromising the dif- ference, that peace can be restored or kept. They who would 38 BURKE. put an end to such quarrels by declaring roundly in favour of the whole demands of either party have mistaken, in my hum- ble opinion, the office of a mediator. The war is now of full two years' standing ; the controversy of many more. In different periods of the dispute, different methods of reconciliation were to be pursued. I mean to trouble you with a short state of things at the most important of these periods, in order to give you a more distinct idea of our policy with regard to this most delicate of all objects. The col- onies were from the beginning subject to the legislature of Great Britain on principles which they never examined ; and we permitted to them many local privileges, without asking how they agreed with that legislative authority. Modes of admin- istration were formed in an insensible and very unsystematic manner. But they gradually adapted themselves to the varying condition of things. What was first a single kingdom stretched into an empire ; and an imperial snperintendency, of some kind or other, became necessary. Parliament, from a mere represen- tative of the people, and a guardian of popular privileges lor its own immediate constituents, grew into a mighty sovereign. In- stead of being a control on the Crown on its own behalf, it com- municated a sort of strength to the royal authority, which was wanted for the conservation of a new object, but which could not be safely trusted to the Crown alone. On the other hand, the colonies, advancing by equal steps, and governed by the same necessity, had formed within themselves, either by royal instruction or royal charter, assemblies so exceedingly i bling a parliament, in all their forms, functions, and po\\ers, that it was impossible they should not imbibe some opinion of a similar authority. At the first designation of these assemblies, they were proba- bly not intended for any thing more ( nor perhaps did they think themselves much higher) than the municipal corporations within this island, to which some at present love to compare them. But nothing in progression can rest on its original plan. We may as well think of rocking a grown man in the cradle of an infant. Therefore, as the colonies prospered and increased to a numerous and mighty people, spreading over a ver\ tract of the globe, it was natural that they should attribute to assemblies so respectable in their formal constitution some part of the dignity of the great nations which they represented. Xo longer tied to by-laws, these assemblies made Acts of all sorts and in all cases whatsoever. They levied money, not for paro- chial purposes, but upon regular grants to the Crown, following all the rules and principles of a parliament, to which they ap- proached every day more and more nearly. Those who think LETTER TO THE SHERIFFS OF BRISTOL. 39 themselves wiser than Providence and stronger than the course of Xature may complain of all this variation, on the one side or the other, as their several humours and prejudices may lead them. But things could not be otherwise ; and English colo- nies must be had on these terms, or not had at all. In the mean time neither party felt any inconvenience from this double leg- islature, to which they had been formed by imperceptible habits, and old custom, the great support of all the governments in the world. Though these two legislatures were sometimes found perhaps performing the very same functions, they did not very grossly or systematically clash. In all likelihood this arose from inert- neglect, possibly from the natural operation of things, which, left to themselves, generally fall into their proper order. But, whatever was the cause, it is certain that a regular reve- nue, by the authority of Parliament, for the support of civil and military establishments, seems not to have been thought of until the colonies were too proud to submit, too strong to be forced, too enlightened not to see all the consequences which must arise from such a system. Jt ever this scheme of taxation was to be pushed against the inclinations of the people, it was evident that discussions must; arise, which would let loose nil the elements that composed this double constitution, would show how much each of their mem- bers had .departed from its original principles, and would dis- cover contradictions in each legislature, as well to its own first principles as to its relation to the other, very difficult, if not absolutely impossible, in be reconciled. Therefore, ;it the first fatal opening of this contest, the wisest course seemed to be to put an end as soon as possible, to the immediate causes of the dispute, and to quiet a discussion, not easily settled upon clenr principles, and arising from claims which pride would permit neither party to al tan don, by resort- ing as nearly as possible to the old, successful course. A mere repeal of the obnoxious tax, with a declaration of the legisla- tive authority of this kingdom, was then fully sufficient to pro- cure peace to Imtli .Wr.s. Man is a creature of habit, and, the fu->t breach being of very short continuance, the colonies fell bark exactly into their ancient state. The Congress has used --ion with regard to this pacification which appears to me truly significant. After the repeal of the Stamp Act, "the colonies fell," says this assembly, "into their ancient state of '''/'/ n>,,fni< /irc in the mother country." This unsuspecting confidence is the true centre of gravity amongst mankind, about which all the pails are at rest. It is this unsu*jtcrtin.~>, and again in 178-2, lie was called to the post of Trime Minister. William Dowdeswcll was Chancellor of the Exchequer in the first llockingham administration. A man of no pretension or show, but of great ability and worth, who stood bhoulder to shoulder with Burke nil through those years of struggle, till hid death in 177<>. \ ('arentlish was, ns it still is, the family name of the Duke of Devonshire. Lord John Cavendish, brother of the Duke, was one of the leading Whigs in tho I' Commons. Ife was Chancellor of the Exchequer in the second llock- ingliam administration, nnd was one of Burkc'ri warmest anil staunchest per- Bonal friends. 44 BUHKE. world, because of the' mixture of evil that will always be in it? The smallness of the quantity in currency only heightens the value. They who raise suspicions on the good on account of the behaviour of ill men are of the party of the latter. The com- mon cant is no justification for taking this party. I have been deceived, they say, by Tttius and 3Iccrius; I have been the dupe of this pretender or of that mountebank ; and I can trust ap- pearances no longer. But my credulity and want of discern- ment cannot, as I conceive, amount to a fair presumption against any man's integrity. A conscientious person would rather doubt his own judgment than condemn his species. He would say, "I have observed without attention, or judged upon erroneous maxims ; I trusted to profession, when I ought to have attended to conduct." Such a man will grow wise, not malignant, by his acquaintance with the world. But he that accuses all mankind of corruption ought to remember that he is sure to convict only one. In truth, I should much rather admit those whom at any time I have disrelished the most to be patterns of perfection than seek a consolation to my own unworthiness in a general communion of depravity with all about me. That this ill-natured doctrine should be preached by the mis- sionaries of a Court I. do not wonder. It answers their purpose. But that it should be heard among those who pretend to be strong asserters of liberty is not only surprising, but hardly natural. This moral levelling is a servile principle. It leads to practical passive obedience far better than all the doctrines which the pliant accommodation of theology to power has ever produced. It cuts up by the roots, not only all idea of forcible resistance, but even of civil opposition. It disposes men to an abject submission, not by opinion, which may be shaken by argu- ment or altered by passion, but by the strong ties of public and private interest. For, if all men who act in a public situation are equally selfish, corrupt, and venal, what reason can be given for desiring any sort of change, which, besides the evils which must attend all changes, can be productive of no possible ad- vantage? The active men in the State are true samples of the mass. If they are universally depraved, the commonwealth itself is not sound. We may amuse ourselves with talking as much as we please of the virtue of middle or humble life ; that is, we may place our confidence in the virtue of those who have never been tried. But if the persons who are continually emerging out of that sphere be no better than those Avhom birth has placed above it, what hopes are there in the remainder of the body which is to furnish the perpetual suecession of the State ? All who have ever written on government are unani- LETTER TO THE SHERIFFS OF BRISTOL. 45 mous, that among a people generally corrupt liberty cannot long exist. And indeed how is it possible, when those who are to make the laws, to guard, to enforce, or to obey them, are, by a tacit confederacy of manners, indisposed to the spirit of all generous and noble institutions? I am aware that the age is not what we all wish. But I am sure that the only means of checking its precipitate degeneracy .is heartily to concur with whatever is the best in our time, and to have some more correct standard of judging what that best is than the transient and uncertain favour of a Court. If once we are able to find, and can prevail on ourselves to strengthen an union of such men, whatever accidentally becomes indisposed to ill-exorcised power, even by the ordinary operation of human passions must join with that society, and cannot long be joined without in some degree assimilating to it. Virtue will catch as well as vice by contact; and the public stock of honest, manly principle will daily accumulate. We are not too nicely to scru- tinize motives as long as action is irreproachable. It is enough (and for a worthy man perhaps too much) to deal out its infa- my to convicted guilt and declared apostasy. This, Gentlemen, has been from the beginning the rule of my conduct ; and I mean to continue it, as long as such a body as I have described c:in by any possibility be kept together: for I should think it the most dreadful of all offences, not only towards the present generation, but to all the future, if I were to do any thing which could make the minutest breach in this -n- -it conservatory of free principles. Those who perhaps have me intentions, but are separated by some little political animosities, will, I hope, discern at last how little conducive it is to any rational purpose to lower its reputation. For my part, Gentlemen, from much experience, from no little thinking, and from Comparing a great variety of tilings, I am thoroughly per- suaded that the last hope of preserving the spirit of the Eng- lish Constitution, or of reuniting the dissipated members of the -h race upon a common plan of tranquillity and liberty, :itirely depend on their firm and lasting union, and above all on their keeping themselves from that despair which is so \ery ;ipt to iall on those whom a violence of character and a mixture of ambitious views do not support through a long, painful, and unsuccessful struggle. There never, Gentlemen, was a period in which the steadfast- ie ni"n has been put to so sore a trial. It is not very diliicult for well-formed minds to abandon their interest; but parution of i'ame, and virtue is a harsh divorce. Liberty is in danger of being made unpopular to Englishmen. Con- tending for an imaginary power, we begin to acquire the spirit 46 BURKE. of domination, and to lose the relish of honest equality. The principles of our forefathers become suspected to us, because we see them animating the present opposition of our children. The faults which grow out of the luxuriance of freedom appear much more shocking to us than the base vices which are gener- ated from the rankness of servitude. Accordingly the least re- sistance to power appears more inexcusable in our eyes than the greatest abuses of authority. All dread of a standing military force is looked upon as a superstitious panic. All shame of call- ing in foreigners and savages in a civil contest is worn off. AVe grow indifferent to the consequences inevitable to ourselves from the plan of ruling half the empire by a mercenary sword. "We are taught to believe that a desire of domineering over our countrymen is love to our country, that those who hate civil war abet rebellion, and that the amiable and conciliatory virtues of lenity, moderation, and tenderness to the privileges of those who depend on this kingdom are a sort of treason to the State. It is impossible that we should remain long in a situation which breeds such notions and dispositions without some great alteration in the national character. Those ingenuous and ieel- ing minds who are so fortified against all other things, and so unarmed to whatever approaches in the shape of disgrace, find- ing these principles, which they considered a< sure means of honour, to be grown into disrepute, will retire disheartened and disgusted. Those of a more robust make, the bold, able, ambi- tious men, who pay some of their court to power through the people, and substitute the voice of transient opinion in the place of true glory, will give-in to the general mode ; and those supe- rior understandings which ought to correct vulgar prejudice will confirm and aggravate its errors. Many things have been long operating towards a gradual change in our principles ; but this American war has done more in a very few years than all the other causes could have effected in a century. It is there- fore not on its own separate account, but because of its attend- ant circumstances, that I consider its continuance, or its ending in any way but that of an honourable and liberal accommoda- tion, as the greatest evil which can befall us. For that reason I have troubled you with this long letter. For that reason I en- treat you, again and again, neither to be persuaded, shamed, or frighted out of the principles that have hitherto led so many of you to abhor the war, its cause, and its consequences. Let us not be amongst the lirst who renounce the maxims of our fore- fathers. I have the honour to be, Gentlemen, Your most obedient and faithful humble servant, EDMUND BURKE. J5EACOXSFIELD, April 3, 1777. HOW TO RETAIN" THE COLONIES. 4? HOW TO RETAIN THE COLONIES. 2 MY hold of the colonies is in the close affection which grows from common names, from kindred blood, from similar privi- leges, and equal protection. These are ties which, though light as air, are as stnmg as links of iron. Let the colonies always keep the idea of their civil rights associated with your government, they will cling and grapple to you, and ho force under heaven will be of power to tear them from their allegiance. But let it be once understood that your government may be one thing and their privileges another, that these two things may exist without any mutual relation, the cement is gone, the cohesion is loosened, and every thing hastens to decay and dissolution. As long as you have the wisdom to keep the sovereign authority of this country as the sanctuary of liberty, the sacred temple consecrated to our common faith, wherever the chosen race and sons of England worship freedom, they will turn their j;u i > towards you. The more they multiply, the more friends you will have ; the more ardently they love liberty, the more perfect will be their obedience. Slavery they can have any- where. It is a weed that grows in every soil. They may have it from Spain ; they may have it from Prussia. But, until you become lost to all feeling of your true interest and your natural dignity, freedom they can have from none but you. This is the commodity of price, of which you have the monopoly. This is the true Act of Navigation, which binds to you the commerce of the colonies, and through them secures to you the wealth of the world. Deny them this participation of freedom, and you break that sole bond which originally made, and must still pre- sei ve, the unity of the empire. Do not entertain so weak an imagination as that your registers and your bonds, your affida- vit s and your sufferances, your cockets and your clearances, 8 are what form the great securities of your commerce. Do not dream that your letters of office, and your instructions, and your sus- pending clauses, are the things that hold together the great con- texture of this mysterious whole. These things do not make your government. Dead instruments, passive tools as they are, 2 This piece and the next arc from Burke's Speech on Conciliation with Amer- ii-'i. '\ hey arc ?-<> frond in themselves, that they ought to have a place in this select ion; and their close afiinity with the preceding' paper is reason enough :-iing them here. The speech from which they are taken was delivered in the House of Commons, March ->2, [~">. 3 A clearance is an official paper certifying that a ship has cleared at the cus- tom-house, that is, done all that is required of it, and so is authorized to sail. A a custom-house certificate, granted to merchants, showing that goods have been duly entered, and that the duties on them have been paid. 48 BURKE. it is the spirit of the English communion that gives all their life and efficacy to them. It is the spirit of the English Constitu- tion, which, infused through the mighty mass, pervades, feeds, unites, invigorates, vivifies every part of the empire, even down to the minutest member. Is it not the same virtue which does every thing for us here in England? Do you imagine, then, that it is the Land-Tax Act which raises your revenue? that it is the annual vote in the Committee of Supply which gives you your army? or that it is the Mutiny Bill which inspires it with bravery and discipline? No ! surely, no 1 It is the love of the people ; it is their attach- ment to their government, from the sense of tho deep stake they have in such a glorious institution, which gives you your army and your navy, and infuses into both that liberal obedi- ence without which your army would be u base rabble and your navy nothing but rotten timber. All this, I know well enough, will sound wild and chimerical to the profane herd of those vulgar and mechanical politicians who have no place among us ; a sort of people who think that nothing exists but what is gross and material; and who there- fore, far from being qualified to be directors of the great move- ment of empire, are not fit to turn a wheel in the machine. But to men truly initiated and rightly taught, these ruling and master principles, which in the opinion of such men as I have mentioned have no substantial existence, are in truth every thing, and all in all. Magnanimity in politics is not seldom the truest wisdom ; and a great empire and little minds go ill together. If we are conscious of our situation, and glow with zeal to fill our place as becomes our station and our.-ehes, we ought to auspicate all our public proceedings on America with the old warning of the Church, Sursum cordd'.* AVe ought to elevate our minds to the greatness of that trust to which the order of Providence has called us. By adverting to the dignity of this high calling our ancestors have turned a savage wilder- ness into a glorious empire, and have made the most extensive and the only honourable conquests, not by destroying, but by promoting the wealth, the number, the happiness of the human race. Let us get an American revenue as we have got an Amer- ican empire. English privileges have made it all that it is ; English privileges alone will make it all it can be. 4 These words are from tho old Latin Commuaion-Oflir.e of the Church. The English of them is, "Lift up your hearts." THE PEOPLE OF NEW EXGLAND. 49 THE PEOPLE OF NEW ENGLAND. I PASS to the colonies in another point of view, their agri- culture. This they have prosecuted with such. a spirit, that, besides feeding plentifully their own growing; multitude, their annual export of grain, comprehending rice, lias some years ago exceeded a million in value. Of their last harvest I am per- suaded they will export much more. At the beginning of the century some of these colonies imported corn from the mother country. For some time past the Old World has been fed from the New. The scarcity which you have felt would have been a desolating famine, if this child of your old age, with a true filial piety, with a Roman charity, had not put the full breast of its youthful exuberance to the mouth of its exhausted parent. As to the wealth which the colonies have drawn from the sea by their fisheries, you had all that matter fully opened at your bar. You surely thought those acquisitions of value, for they seemed even to excite your envy ; and yet the spirit by which that enterprising employment has been exercised ought rather, in my opinion, to have raided your esteem and admiration. And pray, Sir, what in the world is equal to it? Pass by the other parts, and look at the manner in which the people, of New England have of late carried on the whalc-lishery. Whilst we follow them among the tumbling mountains of ice, and behold them penetrating into the deepest frozen recesses of Hudson's Bay and Davis's Straits, whilst we are looking for them beneath the arctic circle, we hear that they have pierced into the opposite region of polar cold, that they are at the antipodes, and engaged under the frozen serpent of the South. Falkland Island, which seemed too remote and romantic an object for the grasp of national ambition, is but a Mage, and resting-place in the prog- :' their victorious industry. Nor is the equinoctial heat more discouraging to them than the accumulated winter of both the poles. We know that, whilst some of them draw the line and Mrike the harpoon on the coast of Africa, others run the longitude, and pursue their gigantic game along the coast of lirazil. No sea but what is vexed by their fisheries. No cli- mate that is not witness to their toils. Neither the persever- ance of Holland, nor the activity of France, nor the dexterous and firm sagacity of English enterprise, ever carried this most perilous mode of hardy industry to the extent to which it has been pushed by this recent people, a people who are still, as, it were, but in the gristle, and not yet hardened into the bone of manhood. When I contemplate these things, when I know that the colonies in general owe little or nothing to any care of 50 BURKE. ours, and that they are not squeezed into this happy form by the constraints of watchful and suspicious government, but that, through a wise and salutary neglect, a generous nature has been suffered to take her own way to perfection, when I reflect upon these effects, when I see how profitable they have been to us, I feel all the pride of power sink, and all presump- tion in the wisdom of human contrivances melt and die away within me, my rigour relents, I pardon something to the spirit of liberty. SPEECH OX ECONOMICAL REFORM. 5 Mu. SPEAKER: I rise, in acquittal of my engagement to the House, in obedience to the strong and just requisition of my constituents, and, lam persuaded, in conformity to the unani- mous wishes of the whole nation, to submit to the wisdom of Parliament "A Plan of Reform in the Constitution of Several Parts of the Public Economy." I have endeavoured that this plan should include, in its exe- cution, a considerable reduction of improper expense ; that it should effect a conversion of unprofitable titles into a produc- tive estate ; that it should lead to, and indeed almost compel, a provident administration of such sums of public money as must remain under discretionary trusts ; that it should render the incurring of debts on the civil establishment (which must ulti- mately affect national strength and national credit) so very dif- ficult as to become next to impracticable. 13ut what, I confess, was uppermost with me, what I bent the whole force of my mind to, was the reduction. of that corrupt influence which is itself the perennial spring of all prodigality and of all disorder, which loads us more than millions of debt, which takes away vigour from our arms, wisdom from our councils, and every shadow of authority and credit from the most venerable parts of our Constitution. Sir, I assure you very solemnly, and with a very clear con- science, that nothing in the world has led me to such an under- taking but my zeal for the honour of this House, and the settled, habitual, systematic affection I bear to the cause and to the principles of government. 5 The original title, in lull, of this speech is, "Speech on presenting to the House of Commons (on the llth of February, 1780) a Plan fur the better Security of the Independence of Parliament, and the economical Hefornuuion of the civil and other Establishments." Perhaps I should note that JJurke uses the word economy in its original sense of order or arrangement. SPEECH OX ECOXOMICAL REFORM. 51 I enter perfectly into the nature and consequences of my at- tempt, and I advance to it with a tremor that shakes me to the inmost fibre of my frame. I feel that I engage in a business, in itself most ungracious, totally wide of the course of prudent conduct, and, I really think, the most completely adverse that can bo imagined to the natural turn and temper of my own mind. I know that all parsimony is of a quality approaching to unkindness, and that (on some person or other) every reform must operate as a sort of punishment. Indeed, the whole class of the r-evoro and restrictive virtues is at a market almost too high for humanity. What is worse, there are very few of those virtues which are not capable of being imitated, and even out- done in many of their most striking effects, by the worst of vices. Malignity and envy will carve much more deeply, and finish much more sharply, in the work of retrenchment, than frugality and providence. I do not, therefore, wonder that gen- tlemen have kept a\vay from such a task, as well from good- nature as from prudence. Private fooling might, indeed, be overborne by legislative reason; and a man of a long-sighted and a strong-nerved humanity might bring himself not so much to consider from whom he takes a superfluous enjoyment as for whom in the end he may preserve the absolute necessaries of life. But it is much more easy to reconcile this measure to human- ity than to bring it to any agreement with prudence. I do not mean that little, selfish, pitiful, bastard thing which sometimes goes by the name of a family in which it is not legitimate and to which it is a disgrace ; I mean even that public and enlarged prudence which, apprehensive of being disabled from rendering acceptable services to the world, withholds itself from those that are invidious, (ieiitlemen who are, with me, verging towards the decline of life, and are apt to form their ideas of kings from kings of former times, might dread the anger of a reigning prince ; they who are more provident of the future, <, Sir, the private enemies to be made in all at- tempts of this kind are innumerable; and their enmity will be the more bitter, and the more dangerous too, because a sense of dignity will oblige them to conceal t he cause of their resent- ment. Very few men of great families arid extensive connec- tions but will feel the smart of a cutting reform, in some close relation, some bosom friend, some pleasant acquaintance, some 52 BURKE. dear, protected dependant. Emolument is taken from some ; patronage from others ; objects of pursuit from all. Men forced into an involuntary independence will abhor the authors of a blessing which in their eyes has so very near a resemblance to a curse. When officers are removed, and the offices remain, you may set the gratitude of some against the anger of others, you may oppose the friends you oblige against the enemies you provoke. But services of the present sort create no attach- ments. The individual good felt in a public benefit is compara- tively so small, comes round through such an involved labyrinth of intricate and tedious revolutions, whilst a present personal detriment is so heavy, where it falls, and so instant in its oper- ation, that the cold commendation of a public advantage never was and never will be a match for the quick sensibility of a private loss ; and you may depend upon it. Sir, that, when many people have an interest in railing, sooner or later they will bring a considerable degree of unpopularity upon any measure. So that, for the present at least, the reformation will operate against the reformers ; and revenge (as against them at the least) will produce all the effects of corruption. This, Sir, is almost always the ease, where the plan has com- plete success. But how stands the matter in the mere at- tempt? Nothing, you know, is more common than for men to wish and call loudly too, for a reformation, who, when it ar- rives, do by no means like the severity of its aspect. Jlr forma- tion is one of those pieces which must be put at some distance in order to please. Its greatest favourers love it I tetter in the abstract than in the substance. AVhen any old pivjud: their own, or any interest that they value, is touched, they be- come scrupulous, they become captious ; and every man has his separate exception. Some pluck out the black hairs, some the gray ; one point must be given up to one, another point must be yielded to another: nothing is suffered to prevail upon its own principle; the whole is so frittered down and disjointed, that scarcely a trace of the original scheme remains. Thus, between the resistance of power and the unsysteinatical process of pop- ularity, the undertaker and the undertaking are both expose. 1, and the poor reformer is hissed off the stage both by friends and foes. Observe, Sir, that the apology for my undertaking (an apol- ogy which, though long, is no longer than necessary) is not grounded on my want of the fullest sense of the difficult and invidious nature of the task I undertake. I risk odium, if I succeed, and contempt, if I fail. My excuse must rest in mine and your conviction of the absolute, urgent necessity there is that something of the kind should be done. If there is any sacrifice SPEECH ON" ECONOMICAL REFORM. 53 to be made, either of estimation or of fortune, the smallest is the best. Commanders-in-chief are not to be put upon the for- lorn hope. But, indeed, it is necessary that the attempt should be made. It is necessary from our own political circumstances ; it is necessary from t he operations of the enemy ; it is necessary from the demands of the people, whose desires, when they do not militate with the stable and eternal rules of justice and reason, (rules which are above us and above them,) ought to be as a law to a House of Commons. As to our circumstances, I do not mean to aggravate the diliiculties of them by the strength of any colouring whatso- ever. On the contrary, I observe, and observe with pleasure, that our affairs rather wear a more promising aspect than they did on the opening of this session. We have had some leading successes. But those who rate them at the highest (higher a great deal, indeed, than I dare to do) are of opinion that, upon the ground of such advantages, we cannot at this time hope to make any treaty of peace which would not be ruinous and com- pletely disgraceful. In such an anxious state of things, if dawnings of success serve to animate our diligence, they are good ; if they tend to increase our presumption, they are worse than defeats. The state of our affairs shall, then, be as promis- ing as any one may choose to conceive it : it is, however, but promising. We must recollect that, with but half of our natu- ral .strength, we are at M'ar against confederated powers who have singly threatened us with ruin; we must recollect that, whilst we are left naked on one side, our other Hank is un- covered by any alliance; that, whilst we are weighing and balancing our successes against our losses, we are accumulating debt to the amount of at least fourteen millions in the year. That loss is certain. 1 have no wish to deny that our successes are as brilliant as any one chooses to make them ; our resources, too, may, for me, be as unfathomable as they are represented. Indeed, they iust whatever the people possess and will submit to pay. Taxing is an easy business. Any projector can contrive new impositions ; any bungler can add to the old. But is it alto- M -i her wise to have no other bounds to your impositions than the patience of those who are to bear them V All I claim upon the subject of your resources is this, that they arc not likely to be increased by wasting them. I think I shall be permitted to assume that a system of frugality will not The " successes " here referred to were those gained, in 177!), by the JJritish troop-, under < Jcncriil l'rr\o-t, in < icoi-.^ia and South Carolina ; which were so lei-able, that the cause of independence seemed well-nigh lost in those States. 54 BURKE. lessen your riches, whatever they may be. I believe it will not be hotly disputed, that those resources which lie heavy on the subject ought not to be objects of preference, that they ought not to be the very first choice, to an honest representative of the people. This is all, Sir, that I shall say upon our circumstances and our resources : I mean to say a little more on the operations of the enemy, because this matter seems to me very natural in our present deliberation. When I look to the other side of the water, I cannot help recollecting what Pyrrhus said, on recon- noitring the Roman camp: "These barbarians have nothing barbarous in their discipline." "When I look, as I have pretty carefully looked, into the proceedings of the Trench King, I am sorry to say it, I see nothing of the character and genius of arbitrary finance, none of the bold frauds of bankrupt power, none of the wild struggles and plunges of despotism in di- no lopping off from the capital of debt, no suspension of interest, no robbery under the name of loan, no raising tho value, no debasing the substance, of the coin. I see neither Louis the Fourteenth nor Louis the Fifteenth. On the con- trary, I behold, with astonishment, rising before me, by the very hands of arbitrary power, and in the very midst of war and confusion, a regular, methodical system of public credit ; I behold a fabric laid on the natural and solid foundations of trust and confidence among men, and rising, by fair gradations, order over order, according to the just rules of symmetry and art. What a reverse of things ! Principle, method, regularity, economy, frugality, justice to individuals, and care of the peo- ple are the resources with which France makes war upon Great Britain. God avert the omen ! I3ut if we should see any genius in war and politics arise in France to second what is done in the bureau! 1 turn my eyes from the consequences. The noble lord in the blue riband, 7 last year, treated all this with contempt. He never could conceive it possible that the French Minister of Finance could go through that year with a loan of but seventeen hundred thousand pounds, and that he should be able to fund that loan without any tax. 8 The second 7 So Burke commonly designates Lord North, who was then Prime Minister, and who seems to have Avorn " the bine riband " as a bad ire of some high honour he had received; so that to designate him thus was merely an act of honest courtesy. . Lord North, though his long administration was a sad failure, was himself an able, pleasant, amiable man; and Burke and he were personally on good terms. 8 To fund a loan or a debt, is to provide and set apart means, by special tax or otherwise, for regular payment of the interest on it. M. Necker, at that time Minister of Finance to Louis the Sixteenth, was carrying forward various deep and comprehensive changes in his department, which seemingly promised a, SPEECH OX ECONOMICAL REFORM. 55 year, however, opens the very same scene. A small loan, a loan of no more than two millions five hundred thousand pounds, is to carry our enemies through the service of this year also. No tax is raised to fund that debt ; no tax is raised for the current services. I am credibly informed that there is no anticipation whatsoever. Compensations are correctly made. 9 Old debts continue to be sunk as in the time of profound peace. Even payments which their treasury had been authorized to suspend during the time of war are not suspended. A general reform, executed through every department of the revenue, creates an annual income of more than half a million, whilst it facilitates and simplifies all the functions of adminis- tration. 1 The King's household at the remotest avenues to which all reformation has been hitherto stopped, that house- hold which has been the stronghold of prodigality, the virgin fortress which was never before attacked has been not only not defended, but it has, even in the forms, been surrendered by the King to the economy of his Minister. No capitulation ; no reserve. Economy has entered in triumph into the public splendour of the monarch, into his private amusements, into the appointments of his nearest and highest relations. Econ- omy and public spirit have made a beneficent and an honest spoil: they liave plundered from extravagance and luxury, for the use of substantial service, a revenue of near four hundred thousand pounds. The reform of the finances, joined to this reform of the Court, gives to the public nine hundred thousand pounds a-year. and upwards. The minister who does these things is a great man ; but the new era of credit to the I'nnHi go\ crnment; and ho had made such headway, that lie could borrow, in the midst, of war, on easier trnns than previous Minis- ter- had obtained in time of peace. IlurUe's glowing tribute to his spirit and hi.- measures wa.-> no lest Hiicere than eloquent. But Ncckcr's bold and benefi- cent M-heme soon broke down, though chiefly by reason of the corrupt interests and .-clll.-h prejudices with which it collided. ! / H.i. as the word is here used, are equivalents made to persons \vho-c ollicc- are abolished, or who in any May suffer by new arrangements. 1 One of Net ki'i '.- leading measures was to concentrate the responsibility of revenue oflieials, MI as to come at an annual account of receipts and cxpcndi- wliich had long been impossible, because the responsibility was so widely red. And lie had a general li.-t of the, pensions made out; which, by iling the abuses and duplications of all kinds hidden in the financial eonfu- induceii the' King to authorize a reform, lie also reduced the number of receiver--vener;d from forty-eight to twelve, and of treasurers of war from twcnty-.-evcn to two, and made them all immediately dependent on the Minister Bailee. Tlie.-c are some particulars of the simplification he introduced. Therewithal more than five hundred sinecure offices, involving special privileges with respect to taxation, were cut away in the King's household, the King him- self cheerfully consenting to the measure. 56 BURKE. king who desires that they should be done is a far greater. "We must do justice to our enemies: these are the acts of a patriot king. I am not in dread of the vast armies of France ; I am not in dread of the gallant spirit of its brave and numerous nobil- ity ; I am not alarmed even at the great navy which has been so miraculously created. All these things Louis the Fourteenth had before. With all these things, the French monarchy lias more 'than once fallen prostrate at the feet of the public faith of Great Britain. It was the want of public credit which dis- abled France from recovering after her defeats, or recovering even from her victories and triumphs. It was a prodigal Court, it was an ill-ordered revenue, that sapped the foundations of all her greatness. Credit cannot exist under the arm of necessity. Necessity strikes at credit, I allow, with a heavier and quicker blow under an arbitrary monarchy than under a limited and balanced government; but still necessity and credit are natural enemies, and cannot be long reconciled in any sii nation. From necessity and corruption, a free State may lose the spirit of that complex constitution which is the foundation of confidence. On the other hand, I am far from being sure that a monarchy, when once it is properly regulated, may not for a long time fur- nish a foundation for credit upon the solidity of its maxims, though it afford no ground of trust in its institutions. I am afraid I see in England, and in France, something like a begin- ning of both these things. I wish I may be found in a mistake. This very short and very imperfect state 2 of what is now go- ing on in France (the last circumstances of which I received in about eight days after the registry of the edict ) I do n. lay before you for any invidious purpose. It is in order to ex- cite in us the spirit of a noble emulation. Let the nations make war upon each other, (since we must make war,) not with a low and vulgar malignity, but by a competition of virtues. This is the only way by which both parties can gain by war. The French have imitated us : let us, through them, imitate our- selves, ourselves in our better and happier days. If public frugality, under whatever men, or in whatever mode of govern- ment, is national strength, it is a strength which our enemies are in possession of before us. Sir, I am well aware that the state and the result of the French economy which I have laid before you are even now 2 State for statement; a frequent usage with Burke. 3 This " edict" was a decree of the Council, recorded us such January 0, 17SO The most important reform made thereby was a change from the old sy steal of farming out the customs to a direct administration of them by the government. Martin says that by this change " the State gained on the spot 14,000,000 francs .1 year." SPEECH OX ECONOMICAL REFOftM. 57 lightly treated by some who ought never to speak but from in- formation. Pains have not been spared to represent them as impositions on the public. Let me tell you, Sir, that the crea- tion of a navy, and a two years' war without taxing, are a very singular species of imposture. But be it so. For what end \orker carry on this delusion? Is it to lower the estima- tion of the Crown he serves, and to render his own administra- tion contemptible ? No 1 No ! He is conscious that the sense of mankind is so clear and decided in favour of economy, and of the weight and value of its resources, that he turns himself to every species of fraud and artifice to obtain the mere reputation of it. Men do not affect a conduct that tends to their discredit. Let us, then, get the better of Monsieur Necker in his own way ; let us do in reality what he does only in pretence ; let us turn his French tinsel into English gold. Is, then, the mere opinion and appearance of frugality and good management of such use to France, and is the substance to be so mischievous to England? Is the very constitution of Nature so altered by a sea, of twenty miles, that economy should give power on the Continent, and that profusion should give it here? For God's sake, let not this be the only fashion of France which we refuse to copy ! To the last kind of necessity, the desires of the people, I have but a vrylVw words to say. The Minister, seem to contest this point, and afi'ect to doubt whether the people do really de- plan of economy in the civil government. Sir, this is too ridiculous. It is impossible that they should not desire it. It is impossible that a prodigality which draws its resources from their indigence should be pleasing to them. Little factions of pensioners, and their dependants, may talk another language. ]Jut the voice of Nature is auainst them, and it will be heard. The people of England will not, they cannot, take it kindly, that representatives should refuse to their constituents what an absolute \v!vign voluntarily offers to his subjects. The cx- >n of the petitions is, 4 that, "before any new burdens are /"/'/ i-ftftn thin country, effectual measures be taken bi/ this House to I'n'/in'rc into and correct the gross abuses in the expenditure of public This has been treated by the noble lord in the blue riband as a wild, factious language. It happens, however, that the people, in their address to us, use, almost word for word, the same terms as the King of France uses in addressing himself to his 4 Not long before the delivery of this speed), the House of Commons hart been literally Hooded \\iih petitions iVoiu all parts of the kingdom, calling for aomo such reform as Burke is here urging. 58 BURKE. people ; and it differs only as it falls short of the French King's idea of what is due to his subjects. "To convince," says he, "our faithful subjects of the desire we entertain not to recur to new impositions, until we have first exhausted all the resources which order and economy can possibly supply," &c., &c. These desires of the people of England, which come far short of the voluntary concessions of the King of France, are mod- erate indeed. They only contend that we should interweave some economy with the taxes with which we have chosen to begin the war. They request, not that you should rely upon economy exclusively, but that you should give it rank and prece- dence, in the order of the ways and means of this single session. But, if it were possible that the desires of our constituents, desires which are at once so natural and so very much tempered and subdued, should have no weight with an House of Com- mons which has its eye elsewhere, 1 would turn my eyes to the very quarter to which theirs are directed. I would reason this matter with the House on the mere policy of the question ; and I would undertake to prove that an early dereliction of abuse is the direct interest of government, of government taken ab- stractedly from its duties, and considered merely as a system intending its own conservation. If there is any one eminent criterion which above all the rest distinguishes a wise government from an administration weak and improvident, it is this, "well to know the best time and manner of yielding what it is impossible to keep." There have been, Sir, and there are, many who choose to chicane with their situation rather than be instructed by it. Those gentlemen ar- gue against every desire of reformation upon the principles of a criminal prosecution. It is enough for them to justify their ad- herence to a pernicious system, that it is not of their contriv- ance, that it is an inheritance of absurdity, derived to them from their ancestors, that they can make out a long and un- broken pedigree of mismanagers that have gone before them. They are proud of the antiquity of their House ; and they de- fend their errors as if they were defending their inheritance, afraid of derogating from their nobility, and carefully avoiding a sort of blot in their scutcheon, which they think would de- grade them for ever. It was thus that the unfortunate Charles the First defended himself on the practice of the Stuart who went before him, and of all the Tudors. His partisans might have gone to the Plan- tagenets. They might have found bad examples enough, both abroad and at home, that could have shown an ancient and illustrious descent. But there is a time when men will not suffer bad things because their ancestors have suffered worse. SPEECH OX ECONOMICAL REFORM. 59 There is a time when the hoary head of inveterate abuse will neither draw reverence nor obtain protection. If the noble lord in the blue riband pleads, Not guilty, to the charges brought against the present system of public economy, it is not possible to give a fair verdict by which he will not stand acquitted. But pleading is not our present business. His plea or his traverse may bo allowed as an answer to a charge, when a charge is made. But if he puts himself in the way to obstruct reformation, then the faults of his office instantly become his own. Instead of a public officer in an abusive department, whose province is an object to be regulated, he becomes a criminal who is to be punished. I do most seriously put it to administration to con- sider the wisdom of a timely reform. Early reformations are amicable arrangements with a friend in power ; late reforma- tions are terms imposed upon a conquered enemy : early refor- mations are made in cool blood ; late reformations are made under a state of inflammation. In that state of things the peo- ple behold in government nothing that is respectable. They see the abuse, and they will see nothing else. They fall into the temper of a furious populace provoked at the disorder of a house of ill-fame; they never attempt to corrector regulate; they go to work by the shortest way : they abate the nuisance, they pull down the house. This is my opinion with regard to the true interest of govern- ment. 15ut as it is the interest of government that reformation should be parly, it is the interest of the people that it should bo temperate. It is their interest, because a temperate reform is permanent, and because it has a principle of growth. When- ever wo improve, it is right to leave room for a further im- provement. It is right to consider, to look about us, to examine the effect of what we have done. Then we can proceed with confidence, because we can proceed with intelligence. Whereas in hot reformations, in what men more zealous than considerate call making clear work, t he whole is generally so crude, so harsh, so indi'-^'sted, mixed with so much imprudence and so much injustice, so contrary to the whole course of human nature and h'iman institutions, that the very people who are most eager for it are among the first to grow disgusted at what they have done. Then some part of the abdicated grievance is recalled fmni its exile in order to become a corrective of the correction. Then the abuse assumes all the credit and popularity of a reform. Tin- very idea of purity and disinterestedness in politics falls into disrepute, and is considered as a vision of hot and inexperienced men ; and thus disorders become incurable, the virulence of their own quality, but by the unapt and violent nature of the remedies. A great part, therefore, of my 60 BURKE. idea of reform is meant to operate gradually : some benefits will come at a nearer, some at a more remote period. We must no more make haste to be rich by parsimony than by intemper- ate acquisition. In my opinion, it is our duty, when we have the desires of the people before us, to pursue them, not in the spirit of literal obedience, which may militate with their very principle, much less to treat them with a peevish and contentious litigation, as if we were adverse parties in a suit. It would, Sir, be most dishonourable for a faithful representative of the Commons to take advantage of any inartificial expression of the people's wishes, in order to frustrate their attainment of what they have an undoubted right to expect. We are under infinite obligations to our constituents, who have raised us to so dis- tinguished a trust, and have imparted such a degree of sanctity to common characters. We ought to walk before them with purity, plainness, and integrity of heart, with filial love, and not with slavish fear, which is always a low and tricking thing. For my own part, in what I have meditated upon that subject, I cannot, indeed, take upon me to say I have the honour to follow the sense of the people. The truth is, I met it on the way, while I was pursuing their interest according to my own ideas. lam happy beyond expression to find that my intentions have so far coincided with theirs, that I have not had cause to be in the least scrupulous to sign their petition, conceiving it to express my own opinions, as nearly as general terms can ex- press the object of particular arrangements. I am therefore satisfied to act as a fair mediator between government and the people, endeavouring to form a plan which should have both an early and a temperate operation. I mean, that it should be systematic, that it should rather strike at the first cause of prodigality and corrupt influence than attempt to follow them in all their effects. It was to fulfil the first of these objects (the proposal of some- thing substantial) that I found myself obliged, at the outset, to reject a plan proposed by an honourable and attentive member of Parliament, with very good intentions on his part, about a year or two ago. Sir, the plan I speak of was the tax of twenty- five per cent moved upon places and pensions during the con- tinuance of the American war. Nothing, Sir, could have met my ideas more than such a tax, if it was considered as a practi- cal satire on that war, and as a penalty upon those who led us into it ; but in any other view it appeared to me very liable to objections. I considered the scheme as neither substantial, nor permanent, nor systematical, nor likely to be a correct of evil influence. I have always thought employments a very SPEECH ON ECONOMICAL REFORM. 61 proper subject of regulation, but a very ill-chosen subject for a tax. An equal tax upon property is reasonable ; because the object is of the same quality throughout. The species is tho same ; it differs only in its quantity. But a tax upon salaries is totally of a different nature; there can be no equality, and consequently no justice, in taxing them by the hundred in the We have, Sir, on our establishment several offices which perform real service : wo have also places that provide large rewards for no service at all. We have stations which are made for the public decorum, made for preserving the grace and majesty of a great people : we have likewise expensive formalities, which tend rather to the disgrace than the orna- ment of the State and the Court. This, Sir, is the real condi- tion of our establishments. To fall with the same severity on objects so perfectly dissimilar is the very reverse of a reforma- tion, 1 mean a reformation framed, as all serious things ought ti> be, in number, weight, and measure. Suppose, for instance, that two men receive a salary of 800 a-year each. In the office of one there is nothing at all to be done; in the other, the occupier is oppn->sed by its duties. Strike off twenty-live per cent from these two offices, you take from one man i'l'OO which in justice he ought to have, and you give in effect to the other GOO which he ought not to receive. The public robs the for- mer, and the latter robs the public; and this mode of mutual robbery is the only way in which the ollice and the public can make up their accounts. lUit the balance, in settling the account of this double injus- tice, is nr.ich against the State. The result is short. You pur- chase a saving of two hundred pounds by a profusion of six. Beside*, Sir, whilst you leave a supply of unsecured money behind, wholly at the discretion of Ministers, they make up the tax to Midi places as they wish to favour, or in such new places they may choose to create. Thus the civil list becomes oppressed with debt; and the public is obliged to repay, and to repay with an heavy interest, what it ha* taken by an injudi- cious tax. Such has been < he effect of the taxes hitherto laid on pensions and employments, and it is no encouragement to r-cur again to 1 he same expedient. In i -fleet, such a scheme is not calculated to produce, but -event reformation. It holds out a shadow of present gain to u greedy and necessitous public, to divert their attention from those ubu.-es which in reality are the great causes of their wants. It is a composition to stay inquiry; it is a fmo paid by mismanagement for the renewal of its lease; what is worse, it is a fine paid by industry and merit for an in- 62 BUttKE. demnity to the idle and the worthless. But I shall say no more upon this topic, because (whatever may be given out to the contrary) I know that the noble lord in the blue riband perfectly agrees with me in these sentiments. After all that I have said on this subject, I am so sensible that it is our duty to try every thing which may contribute to the relief of the nation, that I do not attempt wholly to repro- bate the idea even of a tax. Whenever, Sir, the incumbrance of useless office (which lies no less a dead weight upon the service of the State than upon its revenues) shall be removed, when the remaining offices shall be classed according to the just proportion of their rewards and services, so as to admit the application of an equal rule to their taxation, when the discretionary power over the civil-list cash shall be so regulated that a minister shall no longer have the means of repaying with a private what is taken by a public hand, if, after all those preliminary regulations, it should be thought that a tax on places is an object worthy of the public attention, I shall be very ready to lend my hand to a reduction of their emoluments. Having thus, Sir, not so much absolutely rejected as post- poned the plan of a taxation of office, my next business was to find something which might be really substantial and effectual. I am quite clear that, if we do not go to the very origin and first ruling cause of grievances, we do nothing. What does it signify to turn abuses out of one door, if we are to let them in at an- other? What does it signify to promote economy upon a meas- ure, and to suffer it to be subverted in the principle? Our Ministers are far from being wholly to blame for the present ill order which prevails. Whilst institutions directly repugnant to good management are suffered to remain, no effectual or lasting reform can be introduced. I therefore thought it necessary, as goon as I conceived thoughts of submitting to you some plan of reform, to take a comprehensive view of the state of this country, to make a sort of survey of its jurisdictions, its estates, and its establish- ments. Something in every one of them seemed to me to stand in the way of all economy in their administration, and prevent- ed every possibility of methodizing the system. But bcin.u, as I ought to be, doubtful of myself, I was resolved not to pr in an arbitrary manner in any particular which tended to change the settled state of things, or in any degree to affect the fortune or situation, the interest or the importance, of any individual. .By an arbitrary proceeding I mean one conducted by the pri- vate opinions, tastes, or feelings of the man who attempts to regulate. These private measures are not standards of the ex- chequer, nor balances of the sanctuary. General principles SPEECH 0^ ECONOMICAL REFORM. 63 cannot be debauched or corrupted by interest or caprice ; and by those principles I was resolved to work. Sir, before I proceed further, I will lay these principles fairly before you, that afterwards you may be in a condition to judge whether every object of regulation, as I propose it, conies fairly under its rule. This will exceedingly shorten all discussion be- tween us, if we are perfectly in earnest in establishing a system of good management. I therefore lay down to myself seven fundamental rules: they might, indeed, be reduced to two or three simple maxims ; but they would be too general, and their application to the several heads of the business before us would not be so distinct and visible. I conceive, then, First, That all jurisdictions which. furnish more matter of ex- pense, more temptation to oppression, or more means and instruments of corrupt influence, than advantage to 'justice or political administration, ought to be abolished. Secondly, That all public estates which are more subservient to the purposes of vexing, overawing, and influencing those who hold under them, and to the expense of perception 5 and management, than of benefit to the revenue, ought, upon every principle both of revenue and of freedom, to 'be dis- posed of. 7V///V////, That all offices which bring more charge than pro- portional advantage to the State, that all offices which may be engrafted on others, uniting and simplifying their duties, ought, in the first case, to be taken away, and, in the second, to be consolidated. Fimrthlii, That all such offices ought to be abolished as ob- struct the prospect of the general superintendent of finance, which destroy his superintendency, which disable him from foreseeing and providing for charges as they may occur, from preventing expense in its origin, checking it in its progress, or s, curing its application to its proper purposes. A minister un- der whom expenses can be made without his knowledge, can never .say what it is that he can spend, or what it is that he can Fifthly, That it is proper tp establish an invariable order in all payments, which will prevent partiality which will give pref- eivii' v to son ices, not according to the importunity of the de- mandant, but the rank and order of their utility or their justice. ,>/.///(///, That it is right to reduce every establishment and every part of an establishment (as nearly as possible) to cer- tainty, tho lilo of all order and good management. Seventhly, That all subordinate treasuries, as the nurseries of 5 Perception is here used in its Latin sense of gathering or collecting. 64 BURKE. mismanagement, and as naturally drawing to themselves as much money as they can, keeping it as long as they can, and accounting for it as late as they can, ought to be dissolved. They have a tendency to perplex and distract the public ac- counts, and to excite a suspicion of government even beyond the extent of their abuse. Under the authority and with the guidance of these princi- ples I proceed, wishing that nothing in any establishment may be changed, where I am not able to make a strong, direct, and solid application of these principles, or of some one of them. An economical constitution is a necessary basis for an economical administration. First, with regard to the sovereign jurisdictions, I must ob- serve, Sir, that whoever ta,kes a view of this kingdom in a cur- sory manner will imagine that he beholds a solid, compacted, uniform system of monarchy, in which all inferior jurisdictions arc but as rays diverging from one centre. 13ut, on examining it more nearly, you ihul much eccentricity and confusion. It is not a monarch)/ in strictness. But, as in the Saxon tim country was an heptarchy, it is now a strange sort of )n ///'//;" and therefore they appoint Mr. Probert, with a -ion of three hundred pounds a-year from the .said princi-* pa lit y, to try whether he can make any thing more of that very liltk which is stated to be so greatly diminished. "A beggarly ,f/ tcillt Duke Ilumphroj was long a common phrase, used of one so naked of cash, that lie had to make his dinner on air. Nares accounts for it as follow*: " Humphrey, Dtiki: of Gloucester, though re-ally buried at St. Albau's, was supposed to have a monument in old St. Paul's, from which one part of the Church was termed Ilukc llitmi>hrnf* ]]',dk. In this, as the church was then a place, of the mo.-,t public resort, they who had no means of procuring a dinner fiequently loitered ahout, probably in hopes of meeting with an invitation, but iiiidcr pretence <>f looking at the monuments." 1 One of the King's little pleasures. 2 Henry the Fourth, known in history as Bolingbroke, so called from the place of his birth, held the crown, not by succession, but by usurpation, he hav- ing violently seized it from his cousin, Richard the Second. His father, John, Duke of Lancaster, was the third son of Edward the Third; and, on the failure; or exclusion of Richard, the crown, according to the strict rule of succession, should have, devolved to the heirs of Lionel, Duke; of Clarence, the second son of Edward the Third. These heirs were then mere children, and their family name wa> Mortimer, the only child left by Lionel being a daughter. As Henry knew his tenure of the crown to be a usurpation, he was naturally distrustful of his title, and so was the more tenacious of the dukedom of Lancaster, which was his by inheritance. 3 That is, equal or equivalent to many kingdoms. A8 Burke did not know the reason of Lord Coke's language, I do not blush to own the same ignorance. 70 BURKE. a kingdom to keep any thing else. However, it is evident that he thought so. When Henry the Fifth united, by Act of Parliament, the estates of his mother to the duchy, he had the same predilection with his father to the root of his family honours, and the same policy in enlarging the sphere of a possi- ble retreat from the slippery royalty of the two great crowns he held. 4 All this was changed by Edward the Fourth. He had no such family partialities, and his policy was the reverse of that of Henry the Fourth and Henry the Fifth. He accord- ingly again united the Duchy of Lancaster to the crown. But when Henry the Seventh, who chose to consider himself as of the House of Lancaster, came to the throne, he brought with him the old pretensions and the old politics of that House. 5 A new Act of Parliament, a second time, dissevered the Duchy of Lancaster from the crown ; and in that line things continued until the subversion of the monarchy, when principalities and powers fell along with the throne. The Duchy of Lancaster must have been extinguished, if Cromwell, who began to form ideas of aggrandizing his House and raising the several branches of it, had not caused the duchy to be again separated from the commonwealth, by an Act of the Parliament of those, times. What partiality, what objects of the politics of the House of Lancaster, or of Cromwell, has his present Majesty, or his Majesty's family? What power have they within any of these principalities, which they have not within their kingdom ? In what manner is the dignity of the nobility concerned in these principalities? What rights have the subject there, which they have not at least equally in every other part of the nation? These distinctions exist for no good end to the King, to the no- bility, or to the people. They ought not to exist at all. If the Crown (contrary to its nature, but most conformably to the whole tenour of the advice that has been lately given) should so far forget its dignity as to contend that these jurisdictions and revenues are estates of private property, I am rather for 4 The two great crowns held by Henry the Fifth were those of England and France, he having won the latter by conquest. Edward the Fourth was de- scended from Edmund, Duke of York, the fourth son of Edward the Third. But his grandfather had married the heir of Lionel, and so his father claimed the crown in right of his mother. 5 John, the Duke of Lancaster mentioned in note 2 above, had two families of children, one by his lawful wife, the other by Catharine Swynforcl. The lat- ter took the name of Beaufort, from the place of their birth, which was Beaufort Castle, in France. After the death of his first wife, John married the mother of these children, nnd the children AVCI-C legitimated by Act of Parliament. A daughter of tljc Beaufort branch was married to Owen Tudor, and hence be- came the mother of Henry the Seventh. SPEECH ON ECONOMICAL REFORM. 71 acting as if that groundless claim were of some weight than for giving up that essential part of the reform. I would value the clear income, and give a clear annuity to the Crown, taken on the medium produce for twenty years. If the Crown has any favourite name or title, if the subject has any matter of local accommodation within any of these jurisdictions, it is meant to preserve them, and to improve them, if any improvement can be suggested. As to the Crown reversions or titles upon the property of the people there, it is proposed to convert them from a snare to their independence into a relief from their burdens. I propose, therefore, to unite all the five principalities to the Crown, and to its ordinary ju- risdiction, to abolish all those offices that produce an useless and chargeable separation from the body of the people, to compensate those who do not hold their oflices (if any such there are) at the pleasure of the Crown, to extinguish vexa- tious titles by an Act of short limitation, to sell those unprof- itable estates which support useless jurisdictions, and to turn the tenant-right into a fee, 7 on such moderate terms as will be better for the Slate than its present right, and which it is im- possible for any rational tenant to refuse. As to the duchies, their judicial economy may be provided for without charge. They have only to fall of course into the common county administration. A commission more or less, made or omitted, settles the matter fully. As to Wales, it has been proposed to add a judge to the several courts of Westmin- ster Hall ; and it has been considered as an improvement in itself. For my part, I cannot pretend to speak upon it with clearness or with decision ; but certainly this arrangement would be more than sullicient for Wales. My original thought was, to suppress five of the eight judges; and to leave the chief-justice of Chester, with the two senior judges; and, to facilitate the business, to throw the twelve counties into six districts, holding the sessions alternately in the counties of which each district shall be composed. But on this I shall be more clear when I come to the particular bill. Sir, the House will now see, whether, in praying for judgment "ust the minor principalities, I do not act in conformity to the laws that I had laid to myself ; of getting rid of every juris- C An Act of limitation is a statute limiting a given claim or tenure to a cer- tain s)iccilicd time; so that it shall cease, say, at the end of twenty years, or on the death of the present, occupant. 7 Tenure in fee, or tenure in fee-simple, is the strongest tenure known to Eng- ii.-h law : it involves an entire ami exclusive right to the thing held. A tenant- right differs from this in being a sort of lease-hold, as a tenure for life or for u given term of years. 72 BUBKE. diction more subservient to oppression and expense than to any end of justice or honest policy ; of abolishing offices more ex- pensive than useful ; of combining duties improperly separated ; of changing revenues more vexatious than productive into ready money ; of suppressing offices which stand in the way of economy ; and of cutting off lurking subordinate treasuries. Dispute the rules, controvert the application, or give your hands to this salutary measure. Most of the same rules will be found applicable to my second object, the landed estate of the Crown. A landed estate is cer- tainly the very worst which the Crown can possess. All minute and dispersed possessions, possessions that are often of indeter- minate value, and which require a continued personal attend- ance, are of a nature more proper for private management than public administration. They are fitter for the care of a frugal land-steward than of an office in the State. Whatever they may possibly have been in other times or in other countries, they are not of magnitude enough with us to occupy a public department, nor to provide for a public object. They are already given up to Parliament, and the gift is not of great value. Common prudence dictates, even in the management of private affairs, that all dispersed and chargeable estates should be sacrificed to the relief of estates more compact and better circumstanced. If it be objected that these lands at present would sell at a low market, this is answered by showing that money is at a high price. The one balances the other. Lands sell at the current rate ; and nothing can sell for more. But, be the price what it may, a great object is always answered, whenever any property is transferred from hands that are not fit for that property to those that are. The buyer and seller must mutu- ally profit by such a bargain ; and, what rarely happens in mat- ters of revenue, the relief of the subject will go hand in hand with the profit of the Exchequer. As to the forest lands, in which the Crown has (where they are not granted or prescriptively held) the dominion of the soil, and .the vert* find' venison, that is to say, the timber and the game, and in which the people have a variety of rights in common, of herbage, and other commons, according to the usage of the several forests, I propose to have those rights of the Crown valued as manorial rights 9 are valued on an inclosure, and a 8 reriisfrom the Latin virere, to be green. In English Fortvt Law, it in- eludes every thing that grows and bears a given leaf within the foiv.-t. 9 Manorial rlyhis are rights vested in a lord or lady of a manor; that is, the right which such lord or lady has to a certain specified share of the produce, or to certain stipulated services, from the occupant of an CtUUe, whose tenure SPEECH OX ECONOMICAL REFORM. 73 defined portion of land to be given for them, which land is to be sold for the public benefit. As to the timber, I propose a survey of the whole. What is useless for the naval purposes of the kingdom I would condemn and dispose of for the security of what may be useful, and inclose such other parts as may be most fit to furnish a perpet- ual supply, wholly extinguishing, for a very obvious reason, all right of venison in those parts. The forest rit/hts which extend over the lands and possessions of others, being of no profit to the Crown, and a grievance, as far as it goes, to the subject, these I propose to extinguish without charge to the proprietors. The several commons 1 are to be allotted and compensated for, upon ideas which I shall hereafter explain. They are nearly the same with the princi- ples upon which you have acted in private inclosures. I shall never quit precedents, where I find them applicable. For those regulations and compensations, and for every other part of the detail, you will be so indulgent as to give me credit for the ;it. The revenue to be obtained from the sale of the forest lands and rights will not be so considerable, I believe, as many people have imagined; and I conceive it would be unwise to screw it up to the utmost, or even to suffer bidders to enhance, accord- ing to their eagerness, the purchase of objects wherein the expense of that purchase may weaken the capital to be cm- ployed in their cultivation. This,! am well aware, might give room for partiality in the disposal. In my opinion it would be the lesser evil of the two. J>ut 1 really conceive that a rule of fair preference might be established, which would take away all sort of unjust and corrupt partiality. The principal revenue which I propose to draw from these uncultivated wastes is to spring from the improvement and population of the kingdom, which never can happen without producing an improvement ud\ untageous to the revenues of the Crown than the rents of the be-t landed estate which it can hold. I believe, Sir, it will hardly be necessary for me to add that in this sale I natu- r:illy "xe-.-pt all the houses, gardens, and parks belonging to the n, and such one forest as shall be chosen by his Majesty unmodated to his pleasures. By means of this part of the reform will fall the expensive .< nvise entire' and absolute. So in cases of lands held in fee-simple by Mit s but subject to perpetual rent. 1 ' the word is lien: used, are pieces of land enjoyed in common by tin: people of n -hen neighbourhood; and the meaning is, that the rights of such people shall be bought out, and the land* allotted to individuals in exclu- sive possession. 74 BURKE. office of surveyor-general, with all the influence that attends it. By this will fall two chief-justices in Eyre,- with all their train of dependants. You need be under no apprehension, Sir, that your office is to be touched in its emoluments. They are yours bylaw; and they are but a moderate part of the compensation which is given to you for the ability with which you execute an office of quite another sort of importance: it is far from over- paying your diligence, or more than sufficient for sustaining the high rank you stand in as the first gentleman of England. 3 As to the duties of your chief-justiceship, they are very different from those for which you have received the office. Your dignity is too high for a jurisdiction over wild beasts, and your learning and talents too valuable to he wa>te/c.$. In the feudal times it was not uncommon, even among subjects, for, the lowest oiiices to lie held by considerable persons, persons as unfit by their incapacity as improper from their rank to occupy such employment-. They wen- held by patent, sometimes for life, and sometimes by inheritance. If my memory does not deceive me, a person of no slight consideration held the office of patent, hereditary cook to an Karl <>!' Warwick : the Karl of Warwick's soups, I fear, were not the better for the dignity of his kitchen. I think it was ;m Kurl of Gloucester who officiated as steward of the household to the Archbishops of Canterbury. Instances of the same kind may in some degree be found in the Northum- 4 The phrase f Parliament at that lime was not to make specific appropri- ations for llir -e\er;d part* and persons of this service, strictly limiting the ex- penses to the sums appropriated, but to vote a sum in the gross, leaving it to bo payment of salaries, pensions, (., at the discretion of Ministers or of the The result \va-, that the MUDS thus voted were constantly exceeded, the .icemnulated, ami every few years large extra sums were required for payment <>f \\ hat were called the King's debts. Of course the officers and ser- vants of the King's household were included in the civil list; but this part of the service was then a huge, multitudinous sinccurism, the cost of which was nei- ! nor !<-> than a \ ast fund of corruption under the name of influence. As members of Parliament get no pay from government on that score, there I small local constituencies who were glad to have their members paid from whatever source. And so a large number of men, or things, nomi- iiutli/ holding places in the royal hou.-ehold, and drawing fat salaries as such, various arts, and through what were called pocket boroughs, put into the House of Commons, where they were always to vote just as the King or his favourites wished. 76 berland house-book, and other family records. There was some reason in ancient necessities for these ancient customs. Protection was wanted ; and the domestic tie, though not the highest, was the closest. The King's household has not only several strong traces of this./V mlality, but it is formed also upon the principles of a body corporate : it has its own magistrates, courts, and by-laws. This might be necessary in the ancient times, in order to have a government within itself, capable of regulating the vast and often unruly multitude which composed and attended it. This was the origin of the ancient court calh-d the Green Cloth, composed of the marshal, treasurer, and other great officers of the household, with certain clerks. The rich subjects of the kingdom, who had formerly the same establishments, (only on a reduced scale,) have since altered their economy, and turned the course of their expense from the maintenance of vast establishments within their walls to the employment of a great variety of independent trades abroad. Their r.iilueiice is less- ened; but a. mode of accommodation and a style of splendour suited to the manners of the times has been increased. Roy- alty itself has insensibly followed, and the royal household has been carried away by the resistless tide of manners, but with this very material difference, private men have got rid of the establishments along with the reasons of them; whereas the royal household has lost all that was .--lately and venerable in the antique manners, without retrenching any thing of the cumbrous charge of a Gothic establishment. It is shrunk into the polished littleness of modern elegance and personal accom- modation ; it has evaporated from the gross concrete into an essence and rectified spirit of expense, where you have tuns of ancient pomp in a vial of modern luxury. But when the reason of old establishments is gone, it is ab- surd to preserve nothing but the burden of them. This is superstitiously to embalm a carcass not worth an ounce of the gums that are used to preserve it. It is to burn precious oils in the tomb ; it is to offer meat and drink to the dead, not so much an honour to the deceased as a disgrace to the survivors. Our palaces are vast inhospitable halls. There the bleak winds, there "Boreas, and Eurus, and Caurus, and Argestes loud," howling through the vacant lobbies, and clattering the doors of deserted guard-rooms, appal the imagination, and conjure up the grim spectres of -departed tyrants, the Saxon, the Gorman, and the Dane, the stern Edwards and fierce Henrys, who stalk from desolation to desolation, through the dreary vacuity and melancholy succession of chill and comfortless chambers. "When this tumult subsides, a dead and still more frightful SPEECH OX ECONOMICAL REFORM. 77 silence would reign in this desert, if every now and then the tacking of hammers did not announce that those constant at- tendants upon all Courts in all ages, jobs, were still alive, for whose sake alone it is that any trace of ancient grandeur is suf- fered to remain. Those palaces are a true emblem of some gov- ernments: the inhabitants are decayed, but the governors and magistrates still flourish. They put me in mind of Old Sarum, 5 where the representatives, more in number than the constitu- ents, only serve to inform us that this was once a place of trade, and sounding with "the busy hum of men," though now you can only trace the streets by the colour of the corn, and its sole manufacture is in members of 1'arliament. These old establishments were formed also on a third princi- ple, still more adverse to the living economy of the age. They were formed, Sir, on the principle of purveyance and receipt in kind. In former days, whon the household was vast, and the supply scanty and precarious, the royal purveyors, sallying forth from under tho Gothic portcullis to purchase provision with power and prerogative instead of money, brought homo the plunder of an hundred markets, and all that could be seized Irom a Hying and hiding country, and deposited their spoil in an hundred caverns, with each its keeper. There, every com- modity, received in its rawest condition, went through all the processes which fitted it for use. This inconvenient receipt pro- duced an economy suited only to itself. It multiplied ollices beyond all measure, buttery, pantry, and all that rabble of pla// i/itm-i; after its regulation had been the subject of a long line of statutes, (not fewer, I think, than twenty-six,} U:1S wholly taken away by tho 12th of Charles the Second; yet in the next year of the same reign it was found ;ry to revive it by a special Act of Parliament, for the sake of the King's journeys. This, Sir, is curious, and what would hardly be expected in so reduced a Court as that of < harles the Second, and in so improved a country as England might then bo thought. But so it was. In our time, one well- iilled and well-covered stage-coach requires more accommoda- tion than a royal progress, and every district, at an hour's svarning, can supply an army. I do not .'-ay, Sir, that all these establishments, whose princi- ple is gone, have been systematically kept up for iniluence solely: neglect had its share. But this I am sure of, that a 6 Sarum is an ancient contraction, or corruption, of Salisbury. 78 BURKE. consideration of influence has hindered any one from attempt- ing to pull them down. For the purposes of influence, and for those purposes only, are retained half at least of the household establishments. Xo revenue, no, not a royal revenue, can exist under the accumulated charge of ancient establishment, mod- ern luxury, and Parliamentary political corruption. If, therefore, we aim at regulating this household, the ques- tion will be, whether we ought to economize by detail or by principle. The example we have had of the success of an at- tempt to economize by detail, and uiulor establishments adverse to the attempt, may loud to decide this question. At the beginning of his Majesty's ivign, Lord Talbot came to the administration of a great department in the household. I be- lieve no man ever entered into his Majesty's service, or into the service of any prince, with a more clear integrity, or with more zeal and affection for the interest of his master, and, I must add, with abilities for a still higher service. Economy was then announced as a maxim of the reign. This noble lord, therefore, made several attempts towards a reform. In the year 1777, when the King's civil-list debts came last to be paid, he explained very fully the success of his undertaking. lie told the House of Lords that he had attempted to reduce the charges of the King's tables and his kitchen. The thing. Sir, was not below him. He knew that there is nothing interesting in the concerns of men whom we love and honour, that is be- neath our attention. "Love," says one of our old pit n-e, and another ollice of an equal expense to control that ollice, and tin; whole upon a matter that is not worth nty shillin To avoid, therefore, this minute care, which produces the consequences of the most extensive neglect, and to oblige members of Parliament, to attend to public cares, and not to the !e cliices of doinotic management, I propose, Sir, to ccono- propose to put affairs into that train (' Formerly, in roasting a turkey or a piece of meat, the way was, to thrust through it a >tccl or iron rod, sharpened to a point, at one end, and called a spit, and then sling it up before the lire, where it was kept turning till done. In this way I have myself whirled many a turkey and sparerib for thanksgiving dinner. Thi.n explains what a turnspit is. 7 Uurke i quoting from a speech made by Lord Tulbot in the House of Lordd. 80 BURKE. which experience points out as the most effectual, from the nature of things, and from the constitution of the human mind. In all dealings, where it is possible, the principles of radical economy prescribe three things : first, undertaking by the great; secondly, engaging with persons of skill in the sub- ject-matter ; thirdly, engaging with those who shall have an immediate and direct interest in the proper execution of the business. To avoid frittering and crumbling down the attention by a blind, unsystematic observance of every trifle, it has ever been found the best way to do all things which are great in the total amount and minute in the component parts, ly a (imcral con- tract. The principles of trade have so pervaded every spec -ies of dealing, from the highest to the lowest objects, all transac- tions are got so much into syMi-m, that we may, at a moment's warning, and to a farthing's value, be informed at what rate any service may be supplied. No dealing is exempt from the possibility of fraud. Uut by a contract on a matter certain you have this advantage, you are sure to know the utmost of the fraud to which you are subject. By a contract with a person in his own trade yon are Mire you shall not suffer 1 . of skill. By a short contract you arc sure of making it the interest of the contractor to exert that skill for the satisl'a< -tioii of his employers. I mean to derogate nothing from the diligence or integrity of the present, or of any former board of Green Cloth. But what skill can members of Parliament obtain in that low kind of province? What pleasure can they have i:i tin 4 execution of that kind of duty? And if they should neglect it, how d affect their interest, when we know that it is their vote in Par- liament, and not their diligence in cookery or catering, that recommends them to their oilice, or keeps them in it y I therefore propose that the King's tables (to whatever number of tables, or covers to each, he shall think proper to command) should be classed by the steward of the household, and should be contracted for, according to their rank, by the head or that the estimate and circumstance of the contract should be carried to the Treasury to be approved; and that its faithful and satisfactory performance should be reported t'.ieiv ]>: to any payment; that there, and there only, should th mcnt be made. I propose that men should be contracted with only in their proper trade ; and that no member of Parliament should be capable of such contract. By this plan, aim: the infinite offices under the lord steward may l>e spared, to the extreme simplification, and to the far better execution, of every one of his functions. The King of Prussia is so served. SPEECH OX ECONOMICAL REFORM. 81 ITc is a great and eminent (though, indeed, a very rare) instance of the possibility of uniting, in a mind of vigour and compass, an attention to minute objects with the largest views and the most complicated plans. His tables are served by contract, and by the head. Let me say, that no prince can be ashamed to imitate the King of Prussia, and particularly to learn in his school, when the problem is, "The best manner of reconciling the state of a Court with the support of war." Other Courts, I understand, have followed him with effect, and to their sati:- fact ion. The same clew of principle leads us through the labyrinth of the other departments. What, Sir, is there in the oflice of the h-i'br (which has the care of the King's furniture) that may not be executed by the lord chamberlain himself? Ho has an honourable appointment; he has time sufficient to at- i to the duty; and he has the vice-chamberlain to assist him. AVhy should not he deal also by contract for all things belonging to this office, and carry his estimates first, and his report (if the execution in its proper lime, for payment, directly to the ISoard of Treasury itself? By a simple operation, (con- taining in it a treble control,) the expenses of a department which for naked walls, or walls hung with cobwebs, has in a the ( 'pwn '' 150, 000, may at length hope for regu- lation. J-ut, Sir, the office and its business area* variance. As , not to furnish the palace with its hangings, but the Parliament with its dependent members. To what end, Sir, does the otliee of mum-ing wardrobe serve at all? Why should a ./' // / <:///'< exist for the sole purpose of tax- ing the King's k r ifts of plate? Its object falls naturally within the chamberlain'.^ province, and ought to be under his care and inspection without any fee. Why should an office of the robes '. when t hat of nm of the stole is a sinecure, and when this oper object of his department? All the>e incumbrances, which are themselves nuisances, uce other incuinl-rances and other nuisances. For the useless establishments there are no less than ///,-,. !,-<(i*nr< /-.s; two to hold a purse, and one to play with a stick. 8 The. treasurer of the household is a mere name, cofferer and the treasurer of the chamber receive and pay great sums, which it is not at all necessary they should cither ,e or pay. All the proper officers, servants, and trades- men may be enrolled in their several departments, and paid in proper classes and times with great simplicity and order, at the Exchequer, and by direction from the Treasury. 8 That is, to carry a wooden rod, which was his badge of office. 82 BURKE. The Board of Works, which in the seven years preceding 1777 has cost towards 400,000, and (if I recollect rightly) has not cost less in proportion from the beginning of the reign, is under the very same description of all the other ill-contrived establish- ments, and calls for the very same reform. We are to seek for the visible signs of all this expense. For all this expense, we do not see a building of the size and importance of a pigeon- house. Buckingham House was reprised by a bargain with the public for one hundred thousand pounds ; and the small house at Windsor has boon, if I mistake not, undertaken since that account was brought before us. The good works of that Board Of Works arc as can-fully concealed as other good works ought to be: they are perfectly invisible. But though it is ti; feet ion of charity to be concealed, it is. Sir, the property and glory of magnificence to appear and stand forward totl. That board, which ought to be a concern of builders and such- like, and of none else, is turned into a junto of members of Parliament. That ollice, too, has a treasury and a paymaster of its own; and, lest the arduous allairs of that important exchequer should be too fatiguing, that payma>ter lias a deputy to partake his profits and relieve his care-. I do net believe that, either now or in former times, the chief managers of that board have made any profit of its abuse. It is, however, no good reason that an abusive establishment should subsist, because it is of as little private as of public advantage. But this establishment has the grand radical fault, the original sin, that pervades and perverts all our establishments, the appara- tus is not fitted to the object, nor the workmen TO the work. Expenses are incurred on the private opinion of an inferior establishment, without consulting the principal, who can alone determine the proportion which it ought to boar to the other establishments of the State, in the order of their relative importance. I propose, therefore, along with the rest, to pull down this whole ill-contrived scaffolding, which obstructs, rather than forwards, our public works ; to take away its treasury ; to put the whole into the hands of a real builder, who shall not be a member of Parliament ; and to oblige him, by a previous esti- mate and final payment, to appear twice at the Treasury before the public can be loaded. The King's gardens are to come under a similar regulation. The Mint, though not a department of the household, has the same vices. .It is a great expense to the nation, chielly for the sake of members of Parliament. It has its officers of parade and dignity. It has its treasury, too. It is a sort of corporate body, and formerly was a body of great importance, as much SPEECH OX ECONOMICAL REFORM. 83 so, on the then scale of things, and the thon order of business, as the Bank is at this clay. It was the great centre of money transactions and remittances for our own and for other nations, until King Charles the First, among other arbitrary projects dictated by despotic necessity, made it withhold the money that lay there for remittance. That blow (and happily, too) the Mint never recovered. Now it is no bank, no remittance-shop. The Mint. Sir. is a intinnfiictnrr, and it is nothing else ; and it ought to be undertaken upon the principles of a manufacture, that is, for the best and cheapest execution, by a contract upon proper securities and under proper regulations. The art/lit r;i is a far greater object : it is a military concern ; but having an allinity and kindred in its defects with the estab- lishments J am now speaking of, I think it best to speak of it along with them. It is, I conceive, an establishment not well sniteil to its martial, though exceedingly well calculated for its Parliamentary, purposes. Here there is a treasury, as in all the other inferior departments of government. Here the military is subordinate to the civil, and the naval confounded with the land service. The object, indeed, is much the same in both. . when the detail is examined, it will be found that they had -eparated. For a reform of t his office, I propose to restore things to what (all considerations taken together) is their natural order; to restore them to their just proportion, and to their just distribution. I propose, in this military con- :. to render tin- civil subordinate to the military; and this will annihilate 1 the greatr-t part of the expense, and all the influence belonging to the office. I propose to send the military branch to the army, and the naval to the Admiralty; and I intend to perfect and accomplish the whole detail (where it be- "> minute and complicated for legislature, and requires exact, official, military, and mechanical knowledge) by a corn- ion of competent officers in both departments. I propose cute by contract what by contract can be executed, and to bring, as much as jos^iblc, all estimates to be previously ap- d and finally to be paid by the Treasury. Thus, by following the cotir>e of .Nature, and not the pur- Bof politic^, or the accumulated patchwork of occasional ."dation, this vast, expensive department may be meth- odized, its service proportioned to its necessities, and its pay- ments subjected to the inspection of the superior minister of judge of it on the result of the total collective 'ncics of tin This last is a reigning principle ugh my whole plan ; and it is a principle which I hope may alter be applied to oilier pi;. Jjy these regulations taken together, besides the three subor- 84 BURKE. dinate treasuries in the lesser principalities, five other subordi- nate treasuries are suppressed. There is taken away the whole establishment c-f detail in the household: the fnusurer; the comp- troller, (for a comptroller is hardly necessary where there is no treasurer;) the crffcrcr (fthc household,' the treasurer of lite- cham- ber; the master ef the household ; the whole board ome way or other for so perilous a situation? We know that, if the paymaster should deny himself the advantages of his bank, the public, as things stand, is not the richer for it by a single shilling. This I thought it necessary to say as to the offeiiMve magnitude of the profits of this office, that we may proceed in reformation on the principles of reason, and not on the feelings of envy. The treasurer of the navy is, mutatis mutandis, in the same circumstances. Indeed, all accountants are. Instead of the present mode, which is troublesome to the officer and unprofit- able to the public, I propose to substitute something m< fectual than rigour, which is the worst exactor in the world. I mean to remove the very temptations to delay ; to facilitate the account ; and to transfer this bank, now of private emolument, to the public. The Crown will suffer no wrong at least from the pay offices ; and its terrors will no longer reign over the fami- lies of those who hold or have held them. I propose that these 9 Alluding to the old proverbial saying, Summinnjus summa itijuria. SPEECH (W ECONOMICAL REFORM. 87 offices should be no longer banks or treasuries, but mere offices of administration. I proposo, first, that the present paymaster and the treasurer of the navy should carry into the Exchequer the whole body of the vouchers for what they have paid over to deputy-paymasters, to regimental agents, or to any of those to whom they have and ought to have paid money. I propose that those vouchers shall be admitted as actual payments in their accounts, and that the persons to whom the money has been paid shall then stand charged in the Exchequer in their place. After this process, they shall be debited or charged for nothing but the money-balance that remains in their hands. I am conscious, Sir, that, if this balance (which they could not expect to le so suddenly demanded by any usual process of the Exchequer) should now be exacted all at once, not only their ruin, but a ruin of others to an extent which I do not like to think of, but which I can well conceive, and which you may well conceive, might be the consequence. I told you, Sir, when I promised In-fore the holidays to bring in this plan, that I would suffer any man or description of men to suffer from errors that naturally have grown out of the abusive constitu- tion of ihose otlices whi'-h I propose to regulate. If I cannot reform with equity, I will not reform at all. For tin- regulation of paM accounts I shall therefore propose such a mode as men, tempi-rate and prudent, make use of in the management of their private affairs, when their accounts ion-, perplexed, and of long standing. I would there- Ji'iv. itfter their example, divide (lie public debts into three sorts good, bad, and doubtful. In looking over the public accounts, I should never dream of the blind mode of the Ex- chequer, which regards things in the abstract, and knows no difference in the quality of it> debts or the circumstances of its debtors. JJy this means it fatigues itself, it vexes others, it rushes the poor, it lets escape the rich, or, in a fit of mercy or carelessness, declines all means of recovering its just demands. Content with the eternity of its claims, it enjoys its Epicurean divinity with Epicurean languor. Uut it is proper I sorts of accounts should be closed some time or other, . iiient, by composition, or by oblivion. Expedit reipublicce Irtis annul. 1 Constantly taking along with me, that an ex- treme rigour is sure to arm every thing against it, and at length x into a supine neglect, I propose, Sir, that even the best, soundest, ;md most recent debts should be put into instalments, 16 mutual benefit of the accountant and the public. in proportion, however, as I am tender oi' the past, I would 1 It is the interest of the State that lawsuits should come to an end. 88 BURKE. be provident of the future. All money that was formerly im- prested to the two great pay offices I would have imprested 2 in future to the Bank of England. These offices should in future receive no more than cash sufficient for small payments. Their other payments ought to be made by drafts on the Bank, expressing the service. A check account from both offices, of drafts and receipts, should be annually made up in the Exchequer, charging the Bank in account with the cash bal- ance, but not demanding the payment until there is an order from the Treasury, in consequence of a vote of Parliament. As I did not, Sir, deny to the paymaster the natural profits of the bank that was in his hands, so neither would I to the Bank of England. A share of that profit might be derived to the public in various ways. My favourite mode is this, that, in compensation for the use of this money, the Bank may take upon themselves, first, tJie charge of the Mint, to which they are already, by their charter, obliged to bring in a great deal of bullion annually to be coined. In the next place, I mean that they should take upon themselves the charge of rcniiUunnx /<> our troops abroad. This is a species of dealing from which, by the same charter, they arc not debarred. One and a quarter per cent will be saved instantly thereby to the public on very large sums of money. This will be at once a matter of economy and a considerable reduction of influence, by taking away a private contract of an expensive nature. If the Bank, which is a great corporation, and of course receives the least profits from the money in their custody, should of itself refuse or be per- suaded to refuse this offer upon those terms, I can speak with some confidence that one at least, if not both parts of the condi- tion would be received, and gratefully received, by several bankers of eminence. There is no banker who will not be at least as good security as any paymaster of the forces, or any treasurer of the navy, that have ever been bankers to the pub- lic : as rich at least as my Lord Chatham, or my Lord Holland, 3 or either of the honourable gentlemen who now hold the ofiio-s, were at the time that they entered into them ; or as ever the whole establishment of the Mint has been at any period. 2 Imprested (a very rare word) is advanced on loan. So, in the case here supposed, the government would advance money to the bank for payment of the army, and take a certain rate of interest on the money while it remained in the hands of the bank. 3 William Pitt the elder was for some time paymaster of the forces in the Telham ministry; as Henry Fox, afterwards Earl of Holland, also was, under the Duke of ^Newcastle. It may be easily understood that, though the pa\ muster was not greatly enriched by his salary, yet, as he had the use of the money while it lay in his hands, his office was one of the most lucrative in the State; sometimes no less than 40,000 a-year. SPEECH OX ECONOMICAL REFORM. 89 These, Sir, are the outlines of the plan I mean to follow in suppressing these two large subordinate treasuries. I now come to another subordinate treasury, I mean that of the pai/- master of the pensions; for which purpose I reenter the limits of the civil establishment : I departed from those limits in pursuit of a principle ; and, following the same game in its doubles, I am brought into those limits again. That treasury and that office I mean to take away, and to transfer the payment of every name, mode, and denomination of pensions to the Exchequer. The present course of diversifying the same object can answer no good purpose, whatever its use may be to purposes of another kind. There are also other lists of pensions ; and I mean that they should all be hereafter paid at one and the same place. The whole of the new consolidated list I mean to reduce to 00,000 a-year, which sum I intend it shall never exceed. I think that sum will fully answer as a reward to all real merit and a provision for all real public charity that is ever like to be placed upon the list. If any merit of an extraor- dinary nature should emerge before that reduction is com- pleted, I have left it open for an address of either House of Parliament to provide for the case. To all other demands it must l>e answered, with regret, but firmness, "The public is poor." I do not propose, as I told you before Christmas, to take away any pension. I know that the public seem to call for a reduction !' such of them as shall appear unmerited. As a censorial act, and punishment of an abuse, it might answer seme purpose. ]>ut this can make no part of ?)/// plan. T mean to proceed by bill; and I cannot stop for such an inquiry. I know some gentlemen may blame me. It is with great sub- ion to better judgments that I recommend it to considera- tion, that a critical retrospective examination of the pension INt, upon the principle of merit, can never serve for my basis. Jt cannot answer, according to my plan, any effectual purpose of economy, or of future permanent reformation. The process in any way will be entangled and difficult, and it will be in- ly slow : there is a danger, that, if we turn our line of li, now directed towards the grand object, into this more laborious than useful detail of operations, we shall never arrive at our end. The King, Sir, has been by the Constitution appointed solo jud'^e of the merit for which a pension is to be given. We have a, right, undoubtedly, to canvass this, as we have to canvass y act of government. But there is a material difference between an office to be reformed and a pension taken away for demerit. In the former case, no charge is implied against the 90 BURKE. holder; in the latter, his character is slurred, as well as his lawful emolument affected. The former process is against the thing ; the second, against the person. The pensioner cer- tainly, if he pleases, has a right to stand on his own defence, to plead his possession, and to bottom his title on the compe- tency of the Crown to give him what he holds. Possessed and on the defensive as he is, he will not be obliged to prove his special merit, in order to justify the act of legal discretion, now turned into his property, according to his tenure. The very act, he will contend, is a legal presumption, and an implication of his merit. If this be so, from the natural force of all legal presumption, he would put us to the difficult proof that, he has no merit at all. But other questions would arise in the course of such an inquiry, that is, questions of the merit when weighed against the proportion of the reward ; then the diffi- culty will be much great i-r. The difficulty will not, Sir, I am afraid, be much less, if we pass to the person really guilty in the question of an unmerited pension : the Minister himself. 1 admit that, when called to account for the execution of a trust, he might fairly lie obliged to prove the affirmative, and to state the merit for which the pension is given, though on the pensioner himself such a pro- cess would be hard. If in this examination we proceed me- thodically, and so as to avoid all suspicion of partiality and prejudice, we must take the pensions in order of tin merely alphabetically. The very lirst pension to which we come, in either of these ways, may appear the most grossly unmerited of any. But the Minister may very possibly show that he knows nothing of the putting-on this pension; that it was prior in time to his administration ; that the Minister who laid it on is dead : and then we are thrown back upon the pen- sioner himself, and plunged into all our former difficulties. Abuses, and gross ones, 1 doubt not, would appear, and to the correction of which I would readily give my hand : but when I consider that pensions have not generally been affected by the revolutions of Ministry ; as I know not where such inquiries would stop ; and as an absence of merit is a negative and loose thing; one might be led to derange the order of families founded on the probable continuance of this kind of income ; I might hurt children; I might injure creditors; I really think it the more prudent course not to follow the letter of the petitions. If we fix this mode of inquiry as a basis, we shall, I fear, end as Parliament has often ended under similar circum- stances, There will be great delay, much confusion, much inequality in our proceedings, But what presses me most of all is this, that, though we should strike off all the unmerited SPEECH OX ECONOMICAL REFORM. 91 pensions, while the power of the Crown remains unlimited, the very same undeserving persons might afterwards return to the very same list ; or, if they did not, other persons, meriting as little as they do, might be put upon it to an undefmable amount. This, I think, is the pinch of the grievance. For these reasons, Sir, I am obliged to waive this mode of proceeding as any part of my plan. In a plan of reformation, it would be one of my maxims, that, when I know of an establish- ment which may be subservient to useful purposes, and which at the same time, from its discretionary nature, is liable to a very great perversion from those purposes, I would limit the quantity of the power that might be so abused. For I am sure that in all such cases the rewards of merit will have very narrow bounds, and that partial or corrupt favour will be infinite. This principle is not arbitrary, but the limitation of the specific quantity must be so in some measure. 1 therefore state 00,000, leaving it opm to the House to enlarge or contract the sum as they shall see, on examination, that the discretion I use is scanty or liberal. The whole account of the pensions of all de- nominations which have been laid before us amounts, fora pe- riod of seven years, to considerably more than 100,000 a-y ear. To what the other lists amount I know not. That will be seen hen-alter. But, from those that do appear, a saving will accrue to the public, at one time or other, of 40,000 a-year ; and we had better, in my opinion, to let it fall in naturally than to tear it crude and unripe from the stalk. There is a great deal of uneasiness among the people upon an article which 1 must class under the head of pensions: I mean the ijnnt jxittnl n///\v.s in t/te Exchequer. They are in reality and substance no other than pensions, anil in no other light shall I consider them. They arc sinecures; they are always executed ii.'puty; the duty of the principal is as nothing. They dif- fer, however, from the pensions on the list in some particulars. They are held for life. I think, with the public, that the profits places are grown enormous; the magnitude of tho3e profits, and the nature of them, both call for reformation. The ire of those profits, which grow out of the public distress, is itself invidious and grievous. But I fear that reform cannot be immediate. 1 find myself under a restriction. These places, and others of the same kind, which are held for life, have been coMMilered as property. They have been given as a provision lor children ; they have been the subject of family settlements; they have been the security of creditors. What the law re- red to me. If the barriers of the law should roken down, upon ideas of convenience, even of public con- venience, we .shall have no longer any thing certain among us. 92 BURKE. If the discretion of power is once let loose upon property, we can be at no loss to determine whose power and what discretion it is that will prevail at last. It would be wise to attend upon the order of things, and not to attempt to outrun the slow, but smooth and even course of Nature. There are occasions, I ad- mit, of public necessity, so vast, so clear, so evident, that they supersede all laws. Law, being only made for the benefit of the community, cannot in any one of its parts resist a demand which may comprehend the total of the public interest. To be sure, no law can set itself up against the cause and reason of all law ; but such a case very rarely happens, and this most cer- tainly is not such a case. The mere time of the reform is by no means worth the sacrifice of a principle of law. Individuals pass like shadows; but the commonwealth is fixed and stable. The difference, therefore, of to-day and to-morrow, which to private people is immense, to the State is nothing. At any rate, it is better, if possible, to reconcile our economy with our laws than to set them at variance, a quarrel which in the end must be destructive to both. My idea, therefore, is, to reduce those offices to fixed salaries, as the present lives and reversions shall successively fall. I mean, that the office of the great auditor (the auditor of the receipt) shall be reduced to 3000 a-year ; and the auditors of the imprest, and the rest of the principal officers, to fixed aj>- pointments of 1500 a-year each. It will not be difficult to cal- culate the value of this fall of lives to the public, when we shall have obtained a just account of the present income of those places ; and we shall obtain that account with great facility, if the present possessors are not alarmed with any apprehension of danger to their freehold office. I know, too, that it will be demanded of me, how it comes that, since I admit these offices to be no better than pensions, I chose, after the principle of law had been satisfied, to retain them at all. To this, Sir, I answer that, conceiving it to be a fundamental part of the Constitution of this country, and of the reason of State in every country, that there must be means of rewarding public service, those means will be incomplete, and indeed wholly insufficient for that purpose, if there should be no further reward for that service than the daily wages it receives during the pleasure of the Crown. "Whoever seriously considers the excellent argument of Lord Somers, in the Bankers' Case, will see he bottoms himself upon the very same maxim which I do ; and one of his principal grounds of doctrine for the alienability of the domain 4 in Eng- 4 Before the statute of Queen Anne, which limited the alienation of land. SPEECH OX ECONOMICAL REFORM. 93 land, contrary to the maxim of the law in France, lie lays in the constitutional policy of furnishing a permanent reward to public service, of making that reward the origin of families, and the foundation of wealth as well as of honours. It is indeed the only genuine, unadulterated origin of nobility. It is a great principle in government, a principle at the very founda- tion of the whole structure. The other judges who held tlio same doctrine went beyond Lord Somers with regard to the remedy which they thought was given by law against the Crown upon the grant of pensions. Indeed, no man knows, when he cuts off the incitements to a virtuous ambition, and the just rewards of public service, what infinite mischief he may do his country through all generations. Such saving to the public may prove the worst mode of robbing it. The Crown, which has in its hands the trust of the daily pay for national service, ought to have in its hands also the means for the repose of pub- lic labour and the fixed settlement of acknowledged merit. There is a time when the weather-beaten vessels of the State ought to come into harbour. They must at length have a re- treat from the malice of rivals, from the perfidy of political friends, and the inconstancy of the people. Many of the per- sons who in all times have Tilled the great offices of State have been younger brothers, who bad originally little, if any fortune. Tin >e ntlices do not furnish the means of amassing wealth. There ought to be some power in the Crown of granting pen- sions out of the reach of its own caprices. An entail of depend- ence is a bad reward of merit. I would therefore leave to the Crown the possibility of confer- ring some favours which, whilst they are received as a reward, do not operate as corruption. When men receive obligations from the Crown, through the pious hands of fathers or of con- nections as venerable as the paternal, the dependences which arise from thence are the obligations of gratitude, and not the letters of servility. Such ties originate in virtue, and they pro- mote it. They continue men in those habitudes of friendship, those political connections, and those political principles, in which they began life. They are antidotes against a corrupt levity, instead of causes of it. What an unseemly spectacle would it afford, what a disgrace would it be to the common- wealth that suffered such things, to see the hopeful son of a meritorious Minister begging his bread at the door of that Tn-aMiry from whence his father dispensed the economy of an empire, and promoted the happiness and glory of his country ! Why should he be obliged to prostrate his honour and to sub- mit his principles at the levee of some proud favourite, shoul- dered and thrust aside by every impudent pretender on tho 94 BURKE. very spot where a few days before he saw himself adored, obliged to cringe to the author of the calamities of his House, and to kiss the hands that are red with his father's blood ? !N"o, Sir, these things are unfit, they are intolerable. Sir, I shall be asked, why I do not choose to destroy those offices which are pensions, and appoint pensions under the direct title in their stead. I allow that in some cases it leads to abuse, to have things appointed for one purpose and applied to another. I have no great objection to such a change ; but I do not think it quite prudent for me to propose it. If I should take away the present establishment, the burden of proof rests upon me, that so many pensions, and no more, and to such an amount each, and no more, are necessary for the public service. This is what I can never prove; for it is a thing incapable of definition. I do not like to take away an object that I think answers my purpose, in hopes of getting it back again in a bet- ter shape. People will bear an old establishment, when its excess is corrected, who will revolt at a new one. I do not think these office-pensions to be more in number than sufficient: but on that point the House will exercise its discretion. As to abuse, I am convinced that very few trusts in the ordinary course of administration have admitted less abuse than this. Efficient Ministers have been their own paymasters, it is true ; but their very partiality has operated as a kind of justice, and still it was service that was paid. When we look over this Exchequer list, we find it Tilled with the descendants of the AValpoles, of the Pelhams, of the Townsheiuls, names to whom this country owes its liberties, and to whom his Majesty owes his crown. It was in one of these lines that the immense and envied employment he now holds came to a certain duke, 5 who is now probably sitting quietly at a very good dinner directly under us, and acting hiyh life below stairs, whilst we, his masters, are filling our mouths with unsubstantial sounds, and talking of hungry economy over his head. But he is the elder branch of an ancient and decayed House, joined to and repaired by the reward of services done by another. I respect the original title, and the first purchase of merited wealth and honour through all its descents, through all its transfers, and all its assignments. May such fountains never be dried up ! May they ever How with their original purity, and refresh and fructify the commonwealth for ages! Sir, I think myself bound to give you my reasons as clearly and as fully for stopping in the course of reformation as for 5 The Duke of Newcastle, who then had a dining-room underneath the House of Commons. SPEECH OX ECONOMICAL KEFORM. 95 proceeding in it. My limits are the rules of law, the rules of policy, and the service of the State. This is the reason why I am not able to intermeddle with another article, which seems to be a specific object in several of the petitions : I mean the reduction of exorbitant emoluments to efficient offices. If I knew of any real efficient office which did possess exorbitant emoluments, I should be extremely desirous of reducing them. Others may know of them ; I do not. I am not possessed of an exact common measure between real service and its reward. I am very sure that States do sometimes receive services which it is hardly in their power to reward according to their worth. If I were to give my judgment with regard to this country, I do not think the great efficient offices of the State to be overpaid. The service of the public is a thing which cannot be put to auction, and struck down to those who will agree to execute it the cheapest. When the proportion between reward and service is our object, we must always consider of what nature the service is, and what sort of men they are that must perform it. AYhat is just payment for one kind of labour, and full encouragement for one kind of talents, is fraud and dis- couragement to others. Many of the great offices have much duty to do, and much expense of representation to maintain. ivtary of State, for instance, must not appear sordid in the eyes of the ministers of other nations; neither ought our ministers abroad to appear contemptible in the Courts where they reside. In all offices of duty, there is almost necessarily a great neglect of all domestic, affairs. A person in high office can rarely take a view of his family-house. If he sees that the btate takes no detriment, the State must see that his affairs should take as little. I will even go so far as to affirm that, if men were willing to serve in such situations without salary, they ought not to be permitted to do it. Ordinary service must be secured by the motives to ordinary integrity. I do not hesitate to say that tate which lays its foundation in rare and heroic virtues will bo sure to have it- superstructure in the basest profligacy and corruption. An honourable and fair profit is the best secu- .:ainst avarice and rapacity ; as, in all things else, a lawful and regulated enjoyment is the best security against debauch- cry and excess. For as wealth is power, so all power will infal- libly draw wealth to itself by some means or other; and when men are left no way of ascertaining their profits but by their means of obtaining them, those means will be increased to infinity. This is true in all the parts of administration, as well as in the whole. If any individual were to decline his appoint- ments, it might give an unfair advantage to ostentatious ambi- 96 BURKE. tion over unpretending service ; it might breed invidious com- parisons; it might tend to destroy whatever little unity and agreement may be found among Ministers. And, after all, when an ambitious man had run down his competitors by a fal- lacious show of disinterestedness, and fixed himself in power by that means, what security is there that he would not change his course, and claim as an indemnity ten times more than he has given up? 6 This rule, like every other, may admit its exceptions. When a great man has some one great object in view to be achieved in a given time, it may be absolutely necessary for him to walk out of all the common roads, and, if his fortune permits it, to hold himself out as a splendid example. I am told that some- thing of this kind is now doing in a country near us. But this is for a short race, the training for a heat or two, and not the proper preparation for the regular stages of a methodical jour- ney. I am speaking of establishments, and not of men. It may be expected, Sir, that, when I am giving my reasons why I limit myself in the reduction of employments, or of their profits, I should say something of those which seem of eminent inutility in the State: I mean the number of officers who, by their places, are attendant on the person of the King. Consid- ering the commonwealth merely as such, and considering those officers only as relative to the direct purposes of the State, I admit that they are of no use at all. But there are many things in the constitution of establishments, which appear of little value on the first view, which in a secondary and oblique man- ner produce very material advantages. It was on full consid- eration that I determined not to lessen any of the offices of honour about the Crown, in their number or their emoluments. These emoluments, except in one or two cases, do not much more than answer the charge of attendance. Men of condition naturally love to be about a Court ; and women of condition love it much more. But there is in all regular attendance so much of constraint, that, if it were a mere charge, without any compensation, you would soon have the Court deserted by all the nobility of the kingdom. Sir, the most serious mischiefs would follow from such a de- sertion. Kings are naturally lovers of low company. They are so elevated above all the rest of mankind, that they must look upon all their subjects as on a level. They are rather apt to hate than to love their nobility, on account of the occasional resistance to their will which will be made by their virtue, their C So J have read somewhere, in Montaigne, I think, that supercelcstial pro. fessions are apt to be attended or followed by subterranean practices. SPEECH ON ECONOMICAL REFORM. 97 petulance, or their pride. It must indeed be admitted that many of the nobility are as perfectly willing to act the part of flatterers, tale-bearers, parasites, pimps, and buffoons, as any of the lowest and vilest of mankind can possibly be. But they are not properly qualified for this object of their ambition. The want of a regular education, and early habits, and some lurking remains of their dignity, will never permit them to become a match for an Italian eunuch, a mountebank, a fiddler, a player, or any regular practitioner of that tribe. The Roman emperors, almost from the beginning, threw themselves into such hands ; and the mischief increased every day till the decline and final ruin of the empire. It is therefore of very great importance (provided the thing is not overdone) to contrive such an estab- lishment as must, almost whether a prince will or not, bring into daily and hourly offices about his person a great number of his first nobility ; and it is rather an useful prejudice that gives them a pride in such a servitude. Though they are not much the better for a Court, a Court .will be much the better for them. I have therefore not attempted to reform any of the offices of honour about the King's person. There are indeed two offices in his stables which are sine- cures : by the change of manners, and indeed by the nature of the thing, they must be so: I mean the several keepers of buck- hounds, stag-hounds, fox-hounds, and harriers. They answer no purpose of utility or of splendour. These I propose to abolish. It is not proper that great noblemen should be keep- ers of dogs, though they were the King's dogs. In every part of the scheme, I have endeavoured that no pri- mary, and that even no secondary, service of the State should suffer by its frugality. I mean to touch no offices but such as I am perfectly sure arc either of no use at all, or not of any use in the least' assignable proportion to the burden with which they load the revenues of the kingdom, and to the influence with which they oppress the freedom of Parliamentary deliberation ; for which reason there are but two offices, which are properly State offices, that I have a desire to reform. The first of them is the new office of Third Secretary of State, which is commonly called Secretary of State for the Colonies. AVe know that all the correspondence of the colonies had ))( n, until within a few years, carried on by the Southern Sec- retary of State, and that this department has not been shunned upon account of the weight of its duties, but, on the contrary, much sought on account of its patronage. Indeed, he must be poorly acquainted with the history of office who does not know how very lightly the American functions have always leaned on the shoulders of the ministerial Atlas who has upheld that 98 BURKE. side of the sphere. Undoubtedly, great temper and judgment was requisite in the management of the colony politics ; but the official detail was a trifle. Since the new appointment, a train of unfortunate accidents has brought before us almost the whole correspondence of this favourite secretary's office since the first day of its establishment. I will say nothing of its au- spicious foundation, of the quality of its correspondence, or of the effects that have ensued from it. I speak merely of its quan- titi/, which we know would have been little or no addition to the trouble of whatever office had its hands the fullest. But what has been the real condition of the old office of Secretary of State ? Have their velvet bags and their red boxes been so full that nothing more could possibly be crammed into them? A correspondence of a curious nature has been lately pub- lished. In that correspondence, Sir, we find the opinion of a noble person who is thought to be the grand manufacturer of administrations, and therefore the best judge of the quality of his work. He was of opinion, that there was but one man of diligence and industry in the whole administration: it was the late Earl of Suffolk. The noble lord lamented, very justly, that this statesman, of so much mental vigour, was almost wholly disabled from the exertion of it by his bodily infirmities. Lord Suffolk, dead to the .State long before he was dead to Nature, at last paid his tribute to the common treasury to which we must all be taxed. But so little want was found even of his inten- tional industry, that the office, vacant in regard to its duties long before, continued vacant even in nomination and appoint- ment for a year after his death. The whole of the laborious and arduous correspondence of this empire rested solely upon the activity and energy of Lord AVeymouth. It is therefore demonstrable, since one diligent man was fully equal to the duties of the two offices, that two diligent- men will be equal to the duty of three. The business of the new office, which I shall propose to you to suppress, is by no means too much to be returned to either of the secretaries which remain. If this dust in the balance should be thought too heavy, it may be divided between them both, North America (whether free or reduced) to the Northern Secretary, the West Indies to the Southern. It is not necessary that I should say more upon the inutility of this office. It is burning daylight. 7 But before I have done, I shall just remark that the history of this office is too rece;it to suffer us to forget that it was made for the mere convenience of the arrangements of political intrigue, and not 7 "Burning daylight," that is, burning candles when the Sun shines, is an old phrase for wasting time. So in Romeo and Juliet, i. 4 : li Come, we burn daylight, hoi" SPEECH ON" ECONOMICAL REFORM. 00 for the service of the State, that it was made in order to give a colour to an exorbitant increase of the civil list, and in the same act to bring a new accession to the loaded compost-heap of corrupt influence. There is, sir, another office which was not long since closely connected with this of the American Secretary, but has been lately separated from it for the very same purpose for which it had been conjoined: I mean the sole purpose of all the separa- tions and all the conjunctions that have been lately made, a iob. I speak, Sir, of the Hoard of Trade and Plantations. This Board is a sort of temperate bed of influence, a sort of gently ripening hothouse, where eight members of Parliament receive salaries of a thousand a-year for a certain given time, in order to mature, at a proper season, a claim to two thousand, granted for doing less, and on the credit of having toiled so long in that inferior, laborious department, I have known that Board, off and on, for a great number of years. Both of its pretended objects have been much the ob- jects of my study, if I have a right to call any pursuit of mine by so respectable a name. I can assure the House (and I hope they will not think that I risk my little credit lightly) that, without moaning to convey the least reflection upon any one of it-^ members, past or present, it is a board which, if not mis- chievous, is of no use at all. You will be convinced, Sir, that I am not mistaken, if you reflect how generally it is true, that commerce, the principal object of that oflice, flourishes most when left to itself. Inter- est, the great guide of commerce, is not a blind one. It is very well able to lind its own way; and its necessities are its best laws. But if it were possible, in the nature of things, that the young should direct the old, and the inexperienced instruct the knowing, if a board in the State was the best tutor for the counting-house, if the desk ought to read lectures to the an- vii, and the pen to usurp the place of the shuttle, yet in any matter of regulation we know that Board must act with as little authority as skill. The prerogative of the Crown is utterly inadequate to the object; because all regulations are, in their rature, restrictive of some liberty. In the reign, indeed, of Charles the First, the Council, or Committees of Council, were a moment unoccupied with affairs of trade. But even whore they had no ill intention, (which was sometimes the case,) trade and manufacture .suffered infinitely from their inju- dicious tampering. But, since that period, whenever regulation is wanting, (for I do not deny that sometimes it may be want- ing,) Parliament constantly sits ; and Parliament alone is com- petent to such regulation. We want no instruction from boards 100 BURKE. of trade, or from any other board ; and God forbid we should give the least attention to their reports! Parliamentary inquiry is the only mode of obtaining Parliamentary information/ There is more real knowledge to be obtained by attending the detail of business in the committees above stairs than ever did come, or ever will come, from any board in this kingdom, or from all of them together. An assiduous member of Parlia- ment will not be the worse instructed there for not being paid a thousand a-year for learning his lesson. And now that 1 speak of the committees above stairs, I must say that, having till lately attended them a good deal, I have observed that no description of members give so little attendance, either to com- municate or to obtain instruction upon matters of commerce, as the honourable members of the grave Board of Trade. I really do not recollect that I have ever seen one of them in that sort of business. Possibly some members may have bet- ter memories, and may call to mind some job that may have ac- cidentally brought one or other of them, at one time or other, to attend a matter of commerce. This Board, Sir, has had both its original formation and its regeneration in a job. In a job it was conceived, and in a job its mother brought it forth. It made one among those showy and specious impositions which one of the experiment-making administrations of Charles the Second held out to delude the people, and to be substituted in the place of the real service which they might expect from a Parliament annually sitting. It was intended, also, to corrupt that body, whenever it should be permitted to sit. It was projected in the year K5G8, and it contin- ued in a tottering and rickety childhood for about three or four years : for it died in the year KJ73, a babe of as little hopes as ever swelled the bills of mortality in the article of convulsed or overlaid children who have hardly stepped over the threshold of life. It was buried with little ceremony, and never more thought of until the reign of King William, when, in the strange vici.oi- tude of neglect and vigour, of good and ill success that attended his wars, in the year 1095, the trade was distressed beyond all example of former sufferings by the piracies of the French cruisers. This suffering incensed, and, as it should seem, very justly incensed, the House of Commons. In this ferment, they struck, not only at the administration, but at the very constitu- tion of the executive government. They attempted to form in Parliament a board for the protection of trade, which, as they planned it, was to draw to itself a great part, if not the whole, of the functions and powers both of the Admiralty and of the Treasury; and thus, by a Parliamentary delegation of office and SPEECH ON ECONOMICAL REFORM. 101 officers, they threatened absolutely to separate these depart- ments from the whole system of the executive government, and of course to vest the most leading and essential of its attributes in this Board. As the executive government was in a manner convicted of a dereliction of its functions, it was with infinite difficulty that this blow was warded off in that session. There was a threat to renew the same attempt in the next. To pre- vent the effect of this manoeuvre, the Court opposed another manoeuvre to it, and, in the year 1(590, called into life this Board of Trade, which had slept since 1673. This, in a few words, is the history of the regeneration of the Board of Trade. It has perfectly answered its purposes. It was intended to quiet the minds of the people, and to compose the ferment that was then strongly working in Parliament. The courtiers were too happy to be able to substitute a board which they knew would be useless in the place of one that they feared would be dangerous. Thus the Board of Trade was reproduced in a job ; and perhaps it is the only instance of a public body which has never degenerated, but to this hour pre- serves all the health and vigour of its primitive institution. This Board of Trade and Plantations has not been of any use to the colonies, as colonies : so little of use, that the flourishing settlements of New England, of Virginia, and of Maryland, and all our wealthy colonies in the West Indies, were of a date prior to the first board of Charles the Second. Pennsylvania and Carolina were settled during its dark quarter, in the interval !><( \\ven the extinction of the first and the formation of the (.iid board. Two colonies alone owe their origin to that Board. Georgia, which, till lately, has made a very slow prog- ress, and never did make any progress at all, until it had wholly got rid of all the regulations which the Board of Trade had moulded into its original constitution. That colony has cost the nation very great sums of money ; whereas the colo- nies which have had the fortune of not being godfathered by the Board of Trade never cost the nation a shilling, except what has been so properly spent in losing them. But the colo- ny of Georgia, weak as it was, carried with it to the last hour, ami carries, even in its present dead, pallid visage, the perfect resemblance of its parents. It always had, and it now has, an rxfoltUshment, paid by the public of England, for the sake of the influence of the Crown; that colony having never been able or willing to take upon itself the expense of its proper government or its own appropriated jobs. The province of Nova Scotia was the youngest and the fa- vourite child of the Board. Good God! what sums the nursing of that ill-thriven, hard-visaged, and ill-favoured brat has cost 102 BURKE. to this wittol 8 nation ! Sir, this colony has stood us in a sum of not less than seven hundred thousand pounds. To this day it has made no repayment, it does not even support, those offices of expense which are miscalled its government : the whole of that job still lies upon the patient, callous shoulders of the people of England. Sir, I am going to state a fact to you that will serve to set in full sunshine the real value of formality and official superin- tendence. There was in the province of Kova Scotia one little neglected corner, the country of the neutral French;* which, having the good-fortune to escape the fostering care of both France and England, and to have been shut out from the pro- tection and regulation of councils of commerce and of boards of trade, did, in silence, without notice, and without assistance, increase to a considerable degree. But it seems our nation had more skill and ability in destroying than in settling a colony. In the last war, we did, in my opinion, most inhumanly, and upon pretences that in the eye of an honest man are not worth a farthing, root out this poor, innocent, deserving people, whom our utter inability to govern, or to reconcile, gave us no sort of right to extirpate. Whatever the merits of that extirpation might have been, it was on the footsteps of a neglected people, it was on the fund of unconstrained poverty, it was on the ac- quisitions of unregulated industry, that any thing which de- serves the name of a colony in that province has been formed. It has been formed by overflowings from the exuberant popula- tion of Xew England, and by emigration from other part> of ^ova Scotia of fugitives from the protection of the Board of Trade. But if all these things were not more than sufficient to prove to you the inutility of that expensive establishment, I would desire you to recollect, Sir, that those who may be very ready to defend it are very cautious how they employ it, cautious how they employ it even in appearance and pretence. They arc 1 afraid they should lose the benefit of its influence in Parlia- ment, if they seemed to keep it up for any other purpose, ii ever there were commercial points of great weight, and most closely connected with our dependencies, they are those which have been agitated and decided in Parliament since I came into it. Which of the innumerable regulations since made had their origin or their improvement in the Board of Trade ? Did any 8 A wittol is, proper!}', a husbaml dishonoured in his home, and knowing himself to be eo, yet tamely putting up with it. 9 Acadiul-,,1 suppose, the province referred to; well known to readers of poetry as the seene of Longfellow's Evangelitie. Acadia, however, or Acadie, is merely the old Freueh name of Xova Scotia. SPEECH ON ECONOMICAL REFORM". 103 of the several East India bills which have been successively produced since 1707 originate there ? Did any one dream of re-' ferring them, or any part of them, thither ? Was anybody so ridiculous as even to think of it ? If ever there was an occasion on which the Board was fit to be consulted, it was with regard to the Acts that were preludes to the American war, or attend- ant on its commencement. Those Acts were full of commercial regulations, such as they were: the Intercourse Bill; the Pro- hibitory Bill ; the Fishery Bill. If the Board was not concerned in such things, in what particular was it thought fit that it should be concerned? In the course of all these bills through the House, I observed the members of that Board to be remark- ably cautious of intermeddling. They understood decorum better ; they know that matters of trade and plantations are no business of theirs. There were two very recent occasions, which, if the idea of any use for the Board had not been extinguished by prescrip- tion, appeared loudly to call for their interference. When commissioners were sent to pay his Majesty's and our dutiful respects to the Congress of the United States, a part of their powers under the commission were, it seems, of a com- mercial nature. They were authorized, in the most ample and undefined manner, to form a commercial treaty with America on the spot. This was no trivial object. As the formation of such a treaty would necessarily have been no less than the breaking up of our whole commercial system, and the giving it an cut ire new form, one would imagine that the Board of Trade' would have sat day and night to model propositions, which, on our side, might serve JW a basis to that treaty. No such thing. Their learned leisure was not in the least interrupted, though one of the members of the Board was a commissioner, and might, in mere compliment to his oiliee. have been supposed to make a show of deliberation on the subject. But lie knew that his colleagues would have thought, lie laughed in their faces, had he attempted to bring any thing the most distantly relating to commerce or colonies, before Unm. A noble person, engaged in the same commission, and sent to learn his commercial rudiments in New York, (then under t lie operation of an Act for the universal prohibition of trade, ) was soon after put at the head of that Board. This contempt from the present Mini-M"-- df all the pretended functions of that Board, and their manner of breathing into it its very soul, of inspiring it with it* animating and presiding principle, puts an end to all dispute concerning their opinion of the clay it was made of. But 1 will give them heaped measure. It was but the other day, that the noble lord in the blue 104 BURKE. riband carried up to the House of Peers two Acts, altering, I think much for the better, but altering in a great degree, our whole commercial system : those Acts, I mean, for giving a free trade to Ireland in woollens, and in all things else, with independent nations, and giving them an equal trade to our own colonies. Here, too, the novelty of this great, but arduous and critical improvement of system, would make you conceive that the anxious solicitude of the noble lord in the blue riband would have wholly destroyed the plan of summer recreation of that Board, by references to examine, compare, and digest matters for Parliament. You would imagine that Irish com- missioners of customs, and English commissioners of customs, and commissioners of excise, that merchants and manufacturers of every denomination, had daily crowded their outer rooms. Nil lioruin. The perpetual virtual adjournment, and the un- broken sitting vacation of that Board, was no more disturbed by the Irish than by the plantation commerce, or any other com- merce. The same matter made a large part of the business which occupied the House for two sessions before ; and as our Ministers were not then mellowed by the mild, emollient, and engaging blandishments of our dear sister 1 into all the tender- ness of unqualified surrender, the bounds and limits of a re- strained benefit naturally required much detailed management and positive regulation. But neither the qualified propositions which were received, nor those other qualified propositions which were rejected by Ministers, were the least concern of theirs, nor were they ever thought of in the business. It is therefore, Sir, on the opinion of Parliament, on the opin- ion of the Ministers, and even on their own opinion of their in utility, that I shall propose to you to suppress the Board < f Trade and Plantations, and to recommit all its business to the Council, from whence it was very improvidently taken ; where that business (whatever it might be) was much better done, and without any expense ; and indeed where in effect it may all come at last. Almost all that deserves the name of business there is the reference of the plantation Acts to the opinion of gentlemen of the law. But all this may be done, as the Irish business of the same nature has always been done, by the Council, and with a reference to the Attorney and Solicitor General. There are some regulations in the household, relative to the officers of the yeomen of the guards, and the oliicers and band 1 Ireland is the " dear sister" meant, and the "blandishments " she had used were open revolt, a Avhirhvind of public commotion, the people demanding re. lief with arms in their hands. The matter is lully discussed in Durke's Speech to the Electors of Bristol. SPEECH ON ECONOMICAL REFORM. 105 of gentlemen pensioners, which I shall likewise submit to your consideration, for the purpose of regulating establishments which at present are much abused. I have now finished all that for the present I shall trouble you with on the plan of reduction. I mean next to propose to you the plan of arranyement, by which I mean to appropriate and fix the civil-list money to its several services according to their nature : for I am thoroughly sensible that, if a discretion wholly arbitrary can be exercised over the civil-list revenue, although the most effectual methods may be taken to prevent the inferior departments from exceeding their bounds, the plan of reformation will still be left very imperfect. It will not, in my opinion, be safe to admit an entirely arbitrary discretion even in the First Lord of the Treasury himself ; it will not be safe to leave with him a power of diverting the public money from its proper objects, of paying it in an irregular course, or of inverting perhaps the order of time, dictated by the proportion of value, which ought to regulate his application of payment to service. I am sensible, too, that the very operation of a plan of econo- my which tends to exonerate the civil list of expensive estab- lishments may in some sort defeat the capital end we have in view, the independence of Parliament ; and that, in removing the public and ostensible means of intluence, we may increase the fund of private corruption. I have thought of some meth- ods to prevent an abuse of surplus cash under discretionary application, I mean the heads of secret service, special service, various payments, and the like, which I hope will answer, and which in due time I shall lay before you. Where I am unable to limit the quantity of the sums to be applied, by reason of the uncertain quantity of the service, I endeavour to confine it to its line, to secure an indefinite application to the definite service to which it belongs, not to stop the progress of expense in its line, but to confine it to that line in which it professes to move. Dut that part of my plan, Sir, upon which I principally rest, that on which I rely for the purpose of binding up and securing the whole, is to establish a fixed and invariable order in all its p:iyinonts, which it shall not be permitted to the First Lord of the Treasury, upon any pretence whatsoever, to depart from. I therefore divide the civil-list payments into nine classes, put- ting cadi class forward according to the importance or justice of th<- demand, and to the inability of the persons entitled to enforce, their pretensions: that is, to put those first who have tho most efficient offices, or claim the justest debts, and at the same time, from the character of that description of men, from the retiredness or the remoteness of their situation, or from 106 BURKE. their want of weight and power to enforce their pretensions, or from their being entirely subject to the power of a Minister, without any reciprocal power of awing, ought to be the most considered, and arc the most likely to be neglected, all these I place in the highest classes : I place in the lowest those whose functions are of the least importance, but whose persons or rank are often of the greatest power and influence. In the first class I place the j"t entrance into the antechamber, after an, insolvent, ( 'hristmas quarter ! a tumult which could not be appeased by all the harmony of the new year's ode. Rebellion it is certain i r"H;ir- of esses arc said to be so called, from the links of the chain-work be- in- shaped like the letter S. 108 BUKKE. there would be ; and rebellion may not now indeed be so criti- cal an event to those who engage in it, since its price is so cor- rectly ascertained at just a thousand pounds. Sir, this classing, in my opinion, is a serious and solid security for the performance of a Minister's duty. Lord Coke says that the staff was put into the Treasurer's hand to enable him to support himself when there was no money in the Exchequer, and to beat away importunate solicitors. The method which I propose would hinder him from the necessity of such a broken staff to lean on, or such a miserable weapon for repulsing the demands of worthless suitors, who, the noble lord in the blue riband knows, will bear many hard blows on the head, and many other indignities, before they are driven from the Treasury. In this plan, he is furnished with an answer to all their importu- nity, an answer far more conclusive than if he had knocked them down with his staff : "Sir, (or my Lord,) you are calling for my own salary, Sir, you are calling for the appointments of my colleagues who sit about me in ofiice, Sir, you are going to excite a mutiny at Court against me, you are going to estrange his Majesty's confidence from me, through the cham- berlain, or the master of the horse, or the groom of the stole." . As things now stand, every man, in proportion to his conse- quence at Court, tends to add to the expenses of the civil list, by all manner of jobs, if not for himself, yet for his dependents. When the new plan is established, those who are now suitors for jobs will become the most strenuous opposers of them. They will have a common interest with the Minister in public economy. Every class, as it stands low, will become security for the payment of the preceding class ; and thus the persons whose insignificant services defraud those that are useful would then become interested in the4r payment. Then the powerful, instead of oppressing, would be obliged to support the weak ; and idleness would become concerned in the reward of industry. The whole fabric of the civil economy would become compact and connected in all its parts ; it would be formed into a well-organized body, where every member con- tributes to the support of the whole, and where even the la/y stomach secures the vigour of the active arm. This plan, I really flatter myself, is laid not in official for- mality, nor in airy speculation, but in real life, and in human nature, in what "comes home" (as Bacon says) "to the busi- ness and bosoms of men." You have now, Sir, before you, the whole of my scheme, as far as I have digested it into a form that might be in any respect worthy of your consideration. I intend to lay it before you in five bills. The plan consists, indeed, of many parts ; but they stand upon a few plain princi- SPEECH OX ECONOMICAL REFORM. 109 pies. It is a plan which takes nothing from the civil list with- out discharging it of a burden equal to the sum carried to the public service. It weakens no one function necessary to gov- ernment ; but, on the contrary, by appropriating supply to service, it gives it greater vigour. It provides the means of order and foresight to a minister of finance, which may always keep all the objects of his office, and their state, condition, and relations, distinctly before him. It brings forward accounts without harrying and distressing the accountants : whilst it provides for public convenience, it regards private rights. It extinguishes secret corruption almost to the possibility of its existence. It destroys direct and visible influence equal to the ofiicvs of at least fifty members of Parliament. Lastly, it prevents the provision for his Majesty's children from being diverted to the political purposes of his Minister. Those are the points on which I rely for the merit of the plan. I pursue economy in a secondary view, and only as it is connected with these great objects. I am persuaded, that even for supply this scheme will be far from unfruitful, if it be exe- cuted to the extent I propose it. I think it will give to the public, at its periods, two or three hundred thousand pounds a year ; if not, it will give them a system of economy, which is itself a great revenue. It gives me no little pride and satisfac-- tion to lind that the principles of my proceedings are in many resprris the very same with those which arc now pursued in the plans of the French minister of finance. I am sure that I lay before you a scheme easy and practicable in all its parts. I know it is common at once to applaud and to reject all attempts of this nature. I know it is common for men to say that such and such things are perfectly right, very desirable, but that, unfortunately, they are not practicable. O, no, Sir, 1 no 1 Those things which are riot practicable are not desirable. There is nothing in the world really beneficial that does not ]:< within the reach of an informed understanding and a we!l- diivi lei pursuit. There is nothing that God has judged good for us that lie has not given us means to accomplish, both in the natural and the moral world. If we cry, like children, for the Moon, like children we must cry on. We must follow the nature of our affairs, and conform our- to our situation. If we do, our objects are plain and f impassable. Why should we resolve to do nothing, because what I propose to you may not be the exact demand of tho petition, when we are far from resolved to comply even with what evidently is so? Does this sort of chicanery become us? The people are the masters. They have only to express their wants at large and in gross. We are the expert artists, we are 110 BUKKE. the skillful workmen, to shape their desires into perfect form, and to fit the utensil to the use. They are the sufferers, they tell the symptoms of the complaint ; but we know the exact seat of the disease, and how to apply the remedy according to the rules of art. How shocking would it be to see us pervert our skill into a sinister and servile dexterity, for the purpose of evading our duty, and defrauding our employers, who are our natural lords, of the object of their just expectations ! I think the whole not only practicable, but practicable in a very short time. If we are in earnest about it, and if we exert that industry and those talents in forwarding the work which, I am afraid, may be exerted in impeding it, I engage that the whole may be put in complete execution within a year. For my own part, I have very little to recommend me for this or for any task, but a kind of earnest and anxious perseverance of mind, which, with all its good and all its evil effects, is moulded into my constitution. I faithfully engage to the House, if they choose to appoint me to any part in the execution of this work, (which, when they have made it theirs by the improvements of their wisdom, will be worthy of the able assistance they may give me,) that by night and by day, in town or in country, at the desk or in the forest, I will, without regard to convenience, ease, or pleasure, devote myself to their service, not expecting or admitting any reward whatsoever. I owe to this country my labour, which is my all ; and I owe to it ten times more indus- try, if ten times more I could exert. After all, I shall be an unprofitable servant. At the same time, if I am able, and if I shall be permitted, I will lend an humble helping hand to any other good work which is going on. I have not, Sir, the frantic presumption to suppose that this plan contains in it the whole of what the public has a right to expect in the great work of reformation they call for. Indeed, it falls infinitely short of it. It falls short even of my own ideas. I have some thoughts, not yet fully ripened, relative to a reform in the customs and excise, as well as in some other branches of financial administration. There are other things, too, which form essential parts in u great plan for the purpose of restoring the independence of Parliament. The contractors' bill of last year it is tit to revive ; and I rejoice that it is in better hands than mine. The bill for suspending the votes of custom-house officers, brought into Parliament several years ago by one of our worthiest and wisest members, 3 would to God we could along with the plan revive the person who designed it I but a man of very real 3 This was William Dowdestvell, Chancellor of the Exchequer in 1765. See page 43, note 9. SPEECH O.X ECONOMICAL REFORM. Ill integrity, honour, and ability will be found to take his place, and to carry his idea into full execution. You all see how necessary it is to review our military expenses for some years past, and, if possible, to bind up and close that bleeding artery of profusion ; but that business also, I have reason to hope, will be undertaken by abilities that are fully adequate to it. Something must be devised (if possible) to check the ruinous expense of elections. Sir, all or most of these things must be done. Every one must take his part. If we should be able, by dexterity, or power, or intrigue, to disappoint the expectations, of our con- stituents, what will it avail us? AVe shall never be strong or artful enough to parry, or to put by, the irresistible demands of our situation. That situation calls upon us, and upon our con- stituents too, with a voice which will be heard. I am sure no man is more zealously attached than I am to the privileges of this House, particularly in regard to the exclusive management of money. The Lords have no right to the disposition, in any sense, of the public purse ; but they have gone further in self- denial than our utmost jealousy could have required. A power of examining account-, to eensure. correct, and punish, we never, that 1 know of, have thought of denying to the House of Lords. It is something more than a century since we voted that body useless: lliev have now voted thelU^'lveS SO. The whole hope of reformation is at length ca^t upon i; and let us not deceive the nation, vhieh does us the honour to hope every thing from our virtue. If nil the nation art- not equally forward to press this duty upon us yet lie assured that they all equally expect we should perform it. The respectful silence of those; who wait upon your pleasure ought to be as powerful with you as the call of those who require your service as their right. Some, without doors, affect to feel hurt for your dignity, be- they suppose, that menaces are held out to you. Justify ;<>oe it so. Those who are least anxious about your conduct are not tlne that love you most. Moderate affection and satiated enjoyment are cold and respectful; but an ardent and injured paion is tempered up with wrath, and grief, and shame, and conscious worth, and the maddening sense of violated right. A jealous love lights his torch from 112 BtTRKE. the firebrands of the furies. They who call upon you to belong wholly to the people are those who wish you to return to your proper home, to the sphere of your duty, to the post of your honour, to the mansion-house of all genuine, serene, and solid satisfaction. We have furnished to the people of England (in- deed we have) some real cause of jealousy. Let us leave that sort of company which, if it does not destroy our innocence, pollutes our honour ; let us free ourselves at once from every thing that can increase their suspicions and inflame their just resentment ; let us cast away from us, with a generous scorn, all the love-tokens and symbols that we have been vain and light enough to accept, all the bracelets, and snuff-boxes, and miniature pictures, and hair-devices, and all the other adulterous trinkets that are the pledges of our alienation and the monu- ments of our shame. Let us return to our legitimate home, and all jars and all quarrels will be lost in embraces. Let the Com- mons in Parliament assembled be one and the same thing with the commons at large. The distinctions that are made to sep- arate us are unnatural and wicked contrivances. Let us iden- tify, let us incorporate ourselves with the people. Let us cut all the cables and snap the chains which tie us to an unfaithful shore, and enter the friendly harbour that shoots far out into the main its moles and jetties to receive us. "War with the world, and peace with our constituents." Be this our motto, and our principle. Then indeed we shall be truly great. Re- specting ourselves, we shall be respected by the world. At present all is troubled, and cloudy, and distracted, and full of anger and turbulence, both abroad and at home ; but the air may be cleared by this storm, and light and fertility may follow it. Let us give a faithful pledge to the people, that we honour indeed the Crown, but that we belong to them ; that we are their auxiliaries, and not their task-masters, the fell<>\v- labourers in the same vineyard, not lording over their rights, but helpers of their joy ; that to tax them is a grievance to our- selves, but to cut off from our enjoyments to forward theirs is the highest gratification we are capable of receiving. I feel, with comfort, that we are all warmed with these sentiments, and while we are thus warm, I wish we may go directly and with a cheerful heart to this salutary work. Sir, I move for leave to bring in a bill, "For the better regu- lation of his Majesty's civil establishments, and of certain pub- lic offices ; for the limitation of pensions, and the suppression of sundry useless, expensive, and inconvenient places, and for applying the moneys saved thereby to the public service." * 4 This motion being seconded by Fox, Lord North thereupon rose and said : OBEDIENCE TO INSTRUCTIONS. 113 OBEDIENCE TO INSTKUCTIOKS. CERTAINLY, Gentlemen, it ought to be the happiness and glory of a representative to live in the strictest union, the closest correspondence, and the most unreserved communica- tion with his constituents. Their wishes ought to have great weight with him ; their opinions high respect ; their business unremitted attention. It is his duty to sacrifice his repose, his pleasure, his satisfactions to theirs, and, above all, ever, and in all cases, to prefer their interest to his own. But his unbiased opinion, his mature judgment, his enlight- ened conscience, he ought not to sacrifice to you, to any man, or to any set of men living. These he does not derive from your pleasure, no, nor from the law and the Constitution. They are a trust from Providence, for the abuse of which he is deeply answerable. Your representative owes you, not his industry only, but his judgment; and he betrays, instead of serving you, if he sacrifices it to your opinion. My worthy colleague says, his will ought to be subservient to yours. If that be all, the thing is innocent. If government were a matter of will upon any side, yours, without question, ought to be superior. But government and legislation are matters of reason and judgment, and not of inclination ; and what sort of reason is that in which the determination precedes the discus- sion, in which one set of men deliberate and another decide, "The speech is one of the ablest I have ever heard, and it is one which, though 1 have had the happiness of knowing many men of very brilliant talents, I be- lieve the honourable gentleman only could have made." (Jibbon also, the well- kn-uvn historian, then :i member of rarliament, and a staunch Tory, afterwards \vn>te as follow.- : " Never can I forget the delight with which that diffusive and ingenious orator, Mr. I'.urke, \\as heard, and even by tho>e whose existence he pro.-eribed." I mu-t al-o quote a passage from Macknight's Life and Times of Eitrke: "For three hours IK; held his audience under his irresistible spell. Ministerialists, courtiers, sycophants, sinecurists, all gave the most complete testimony to the orator's success. Tumultuous cheers and roars of laughter ^tended him throughout the course of bis speech. At the close of his perora- tion, when he called on the ("ominous in Parliament to be one and the same with nions at large, and entreated them to throw aside the temptations of the government and return to their natural home, it almost seemed, from the simul- taii'-ous burst of enthusiasm from all quarters, that there were not nearly a hun- dred ministerial retainers, whose political aspirations extended only to the receipt of their next quarter's salaries." On the whole, this mighty speech may ;y pronounced the llnest piece of parliamentary eloquence in the lan- guage, or perhaps in the world. Nevertheless the stolid strength of the King's phalanx in the House proved too much for Burke. The measure was not car- ried till more than two years later, wheu Burku himself was iu oflice uuder Lord Uockingham. 114 BURKE. and where those who form the conclusion are perhaps three hundred miles distant from those who hear the arguments? To deliver an opinion is the right of all men ; that of constitu- ents is a weighty and respectable opinion, which a representa- tive ought always to rejoice to hear, and which he ought always most seriously to consider. But authoritative instructions, man- dates issued, which the member is bound blindly and implicitly to obey, to vote, and to argue for, though contrary to the clear- est conviction of his judgment and conscience, these are things utterly unknown to the laws of this land, and which arise from a fundamental mistake of the whole order and tenour of our Constitution. Parliament is not a congress of ambassadors from different and hostile interests, which interests each must maintain, as an agent and advocate, against other agents and advocates; but Parliament is a < rutin assembly of one nation, with one in- terest, that of the whole, where not local purposes, not local prejudices, ought to guide, but the general good, resulting from the general reason of the whole. You choose a member, in- deed ; buj; when you have chosen him, he is not a member of Bristol, but he is a member of Parli>i,,i< nt. If the local constit- uent should have an interest or should form an hasty opinion evidently opposite to the real good of the rest of the commu- nity, the member from that place ought to be as far as any other from any endeavour to give it effect. I beg pardon for saying so much on this subject ; I have been unwillingly drawn into it; but I- shall ever use a respectful frankness of communi- cation with you. Your faithful friend, your devoted servant, I shall be to the end of my life : a flatterer you do not wish for. On this point of instructions, however, I think it scarcely p>M- ble we ever can have any sort of diiYerence. Perhaps 1 may give you too much, rather than too little trouble. From the first hour 1 was encouraged to court your favour, to this happy day of obtaining it, I have never promised you any thing but humble and persevering endeavours to do my duty. The weight of that duty, I confess, makes me tremble ; and whoever well considers what it is, of all things in the world, will .fly from what has the least likeness to a positive and pre- cipitate engagement. To be a good member of Parliament is. let me tell you, no easy task, especially at this time, when there is so strong a disposition to run into the perilous extremes of servile compliance or wild popularity. To unite circumspec- tion with vigour is absolutely necessary, but it is extremely diilicult. We are now members for a rich commercial city; this city, however, is but a part of a rich commercial nation, the in- terests of which are various, multiform, and intricate. AVu are SPEECH TO THE ELECTORS OF BRISTOL. 115 members for that great nation, which, however, is itself but part of a great empire, extended by our virtue and our fortune to the farthest limits of the East and of the West. All these wide-spread interests must be considered, must be compared, must be reconciled, if possible. We are members for a, free country ; and surely we all know that the machine of a free constitution is no simple thing, but as intricate and as delicate as it is valuable. We are members in a great and ancient mon- archy; and we must preserve religiously the true, legal rights of the sovereign, which form the keystone that binds together the noble and well-constructed arch of our empire and our Con- stitution. A constitution made up of balanced powers must ever be a critical thing. As such I mean to touch that part of it which comes within my reach. I know my inability, and I wisli for support from every quarter. In particular I shall aim at the friendship, and shall cultivate the best correspondence, of the worthy colleague you have given me. Speech after tJie election at Bristol, 1774. SPEECH TO THE ELECTORS OF BRISTOL. 5 MR. MAYOR, AND GENTLEMEN: I am extremely pleased at the appearance of this large and respectable meeting. The sti-ps I may be obliged to take will want the sanction of a con- siderable authority ; and in explaining any thing which may appear doubtful in my public conduct, I must naturally desire a very full audience. I have IMMMI l.:u-k ward to begin my canvass. The dissolution of the Parliament was uncertain ; and it did not become me, by an unseasonable importunity, to appear diffident of the effect of my six years' endeavours to please you. I had served the city of 1 Bristol honourably, and the city of Bristol had no reason to think that the means of honourable service to the public were me indifferent to me. I found, on my arrival here, that three gentlemen had been long in eager pursuit of an object which but two of us can ob- tain. I found that they had all met with encouragement. A contested election in such a city as this is no light thing. I paused on the brink of the precipice. These three gentlemen/ 5 This speech was delivered September 0, 1780. Its full title as given in the printed <,opy is," Speerh :it the (iuildhall in Bristol, previous to the late Election in that City, upon certain Points relative to his Parliamentary Conduct. 1780." Why it was made will appear sufficiently from the body of the speech itself. 116 BUKKE. by various merits, and on various titles, I made no doubt were worthy of your favour. I shall never attempt to raise myself by depreciating the merits of my competitors. In the complex- ity and confusion of these cross pursuits, I wished to take the authentic public sense of my friends upon a business of so much delicacy. I wished to take your opinion along with me, that, if I should give up the contest at the very beginning, my surren- der of my post may not seem the effect of inconstancy, or tim- idity, or anger, or dis-gust, or indolence, or any other temper unbecoming a man who has engaged in the public service. If, on the contrary, I should undertake the election, and fail of success, I was full as anxious that it should be manifest to the whole world that the peace of the city had not been broken by my rashness, presumption, or fond conceit of my own merit. I am not come, by a false and counterfeit show of deference to your judgment, to seduce it in my favour. I ask it seriously and unaffectedly. If you wish that I should retire, I shall not consider that advice as a censure upon my conduct, or an alter- ation in your sentiments, but as a rational submission to the circumstances of affairs. If, on the contrary, you should think it proper for me to proceed in my canvass, if you will risk the trouble on your part, I will risk it on mine. My pretensions are such as you cannot be ashamed of, whether they succeed or fail. If you call upon me, I shall solicit the favour of the city upon manly ground. I come before you with the plain confidence of an honest servant in the equity of a candid and discerning mas- ter. I come to claim your approbation, not to amuse you with vain apologies, or with professions still more vain and senseless. I have lived too long to be served by apologies, or to stand in need of them. The part I have acted has been in open day; and to hold out to a conduct which stands in that clear and steady light for all its good and all its evil, to hold out to that conduct the paltry, winking tapers of excuses and promises, I never will do it. They may obscure it with their smoke, but thev never can illumine sunshine by such a flame as theirs. I am sensible that no endeavours have been left untried to injure me in your opinion. But the use of character is to be a shield against calumny. I could wish, undoubtedly, (if idle wishes were not the most idle of all things,) to make every part of my conduct agreeable to every one of my constituents ; but in so great a city, and so greatly divided as this, it is weak to expect it. 6 6 Burkc's course in Parliament, especially on the American question, liad been so offensive to the bigoted and the interested partisans of government, that they had left no stone unturned, to defeat his reelection at Bristol. This he SPEECH TO THE ELECTORS OF BRISTOL. 117 In such a discordancy of sentiments it is better to look to the nature of things than to the humours of men. The very at- tempt towards pleasing everybody discovers a temper always flashy, and often, false and insincere. Therefore, as I have proceeded straight onward in my conduct, so I will proceed in my account of those parts of it which have been most excepted to. But I must first beg leave just to hint to you that we may suffer very great detriment by being open to every talker. It is not to be imagined how much of sen-ice is lost from spirits full of activity and full of energy, who are pressing, who are rushing forward, to great and capital objects, when you oblige them to be continually looking back. "Whilst they are defend- ing one service, they defraud you of an hundred. Applaud us when we run, console us when we fall, cheer us when we recover ; but let us pass on, for God's sake, let us pass on I Do you think, Gentlemen, that every public act in the six years s.ince 1 stood in this place before you, that all the arduous things which have been done in this eventful period which has crowded into a few years' space the revolutions of an age, can be opened to you on their fair grounds in half an hour's con- versation ? But it is no reason, because there is a bad mode of inquiry, that then- should be no examination at all. Most certainly it is our duty to examine ; it is our interest too : but it must be with discretion, with an attention to all the circumstances and to all the motives; like sound judges, and not like cavilling petti- ers and quibbling pleaders, prying into flaws and hunting for exceptions. Look, Gentlemen, to the whole tenour of your member's conduct. Try whether his ambition or his avarice have jostled him out of the straight line of duty, or whether that grand foe of the offices of active life, that master vice in nen of business, a degenerate and inglorious sloth, has made him flag and languish in his course. This is the object of our inquiry. It' our member's conduct can. bear this touch, mark it for sterling. JIo may have fallen into errors, he must have faults ; but our error is greater, and our fault is radically ruin- was himself aware of; but he was built too high in manly honour and self- i-t to practice any sort of jugglery with the people, or use any demagogic craft for the sake of gaining or keeping their favour. Therewithal he regarded tin-. Issue with the raininess ..fa philosopher. A short time before the making of this speech, hi- \\r<>te t > a prominent citizen of Hristol as follows: "It re- mains lo lie .-ecu whether there lie enough of independence among us to support a repn-M-nt -iti\ who throws himself on his own good behaviour, and the good di.-po.-itions of his constituent-, without playing any little game either to bribe or to delude them. I shall put this to the proof within a few days. Jt must have a good effect, one way or the other; for it is always of use to know the true temper of the time and country one lives in." 118 BURKE. ons to ourselves, if \ve do not bear, if we do not even applaud, the whole compound and mixed mass of such a character. Xot to act thus is folly; I had almost said it is impiety. He cen- sures God who quarrels with the imperfections of man. Gentlemen, we must not be peevish with those who serve the people ; for none will serve us, whilst there is a Court to serve, but those who are of a nice and jealous honour. They who think every thing, in comparison of that honour, to be dust and ashes, will not bear to have it soiled and impaired by those for whose sake they make a thousand sacrifices to preserve it immaculate and whole. We shall either drive such men from the public stage, or we shall send them to the Court for pro- tection, where, if they must sacrifice their reputation, they will at least secure their interest. Depend upon it, that the lovers of freedom will be fret*. Xone will violate their conscience to please us, in order afterwards to discharge that conscience which they have violated, by doing us faithful and affectionate service. If we degrade and deprave their minds by servility, it will be absurd to expect that they who are creeping and abject towards us will ever be bold and incorruptible assert ors of our freedom against the most seducing and the most formid- able of all powers. No ! human nature is not so formed : nor shall we improve the faculties or better the morals of public men by our possession of the most infallible receipt in the world for making cheats and hypocrites. Let me say, with plainness, I who am no longer in a public character, that if, by a fair, by an indulgent, by a gentlemanly behaviour to our representatives, we do not give confidence to their minds and a liberal scope to their understandings, if we do not permit our members to act upon a very enlarged view of things, we shall at length infallibly degrade our national representation into a confused and scuffling bustle of local agency. When the popular member is narrowed in his ideas and rendered timid in his proceedings, the service of the Crown will be the sole nursery of statesmen. Among the frolics of the Court, it may at length take that of attending to its busi- ness. Then the monopoly of mental power will be added to the power of all other kinds it possesses. On the side of the people there will be nothing but impotence : for ignorance is impo- tence ; narrowness of mind is impotence ; timidity is itself impotence, and makes all other qualities that go along with it impotent and useless. At present it is the plan of the Court to make its sen-ants insignificant. If the people should fall into the same humour, and should choose their servants on the same principles of mere obsequiousness and flexibility and total vacancy or iudif- SPEECH TO THE ELECTORS OF BRISTOL. 119 ference of opinion in all public matters, then no part of the State will be sound, and it will be in vain to think of saving it. I thought it very expedient at this time to give you this can- did counsel ; and with this counsel I would willingly close, if the matters which at various times have been objected to me in this city concerned only myself and my own election. These charges, I think, are four in number : my neglect of a due attention to my constituents, the not paying more frequent visits here ; my conduct on the affairs of the first Irish Trade Acts ; my opinion and mode of proceeding on Lord Beau- champ's Debtors' Bills ; and my votes on the late affairs of the Eoman Catholics. All of these (except perhaps the first) relate to matters of very considerable public concern ; and it is not lest you should censure me improperly, but lest you should form improper opinions on matters of some moment to you, that I trouble you at all upon the subject. My conduct is of small importance. With regard to the first charge, my friends have spoken to mo of it in the style of amicable expostulation, not so much blaming the thing as lamenting the effects. Others, less partial to me, were less kind in assigning the motives. I admit, there is a decorum and propriety in a member of Parliament's paying a ivspectful court to his constituents. If I were conscious to myself that pleasure, or dissipation, or- low, unworthy occupa- tions had detained me from personal attendance on you, I would readily admit my fault, and quietly submit to the pen- alty. But, Gentlemen, I live at an hundred miles' distance from Bristol; and at the end of a session I come to my own house, fatigued in body and in mind, to a little repose, and to a very little attention to my family and my private concerns. A visit to Bristol is always a sort of canvass, else it will do more harm than good. To pass from the toils of a session to the toils of a canvass is the farthest thing in the world from repose. I could hardly serve you as I have done, and court you too. Most of you have heard that I do not very remarkably spare myself in public business ; and in the private business of my constituents I have done very near as much as those who have nothing else to do. My canvass of you was not on the 'change, nor in the county meetings, nor in the clubs of this city : it was in the House of Commons ; it was at the Cus- tom-IIouse ; it was at the Council; it was at the Treasury; it was at the Admiralty. I canvassed you through your affairs, and not your persons. I was not only your representative as a- body; I was the agent, the solicitor of individuals; I ran about wherever your affairs could call me; and in acting for you I often appeared rather as a ship-broker than as a member 120 BURKE. of Parliament. There was nothing too laborious or too low for me to undertake. The meanness of the business was raised by the dignity of the object. If some lesser matters have slipped through my fingers, it was because I filled ray hands too full, and, in my eagerness to serve you, took in more than any hands could grasp. Several gentlemen stand round me who are my willing witnesses ; and there are others who, if they were here, would, be still better, because they would be unwilling wit- nesses to the same truth. It was in the middle of a summer residence in London, and in the middle of a negotiation at the Admiralty for your trade, that I was called to Bristol ; and this late visit, at this late day, has been possibly in prejudice to your affairs. Since I have touched upon this matter, let me say, Gentle- men, that, if I had a disposition or a right to complain, I have some cause of complaint on my side. With a petition of this city in my hand, passed through the corporation without a dis- senting voice, a petition in unison with almost the whole voice of the kingdom, (with whose formal thanks I was covered over,) whilst I laboured on no less than five bills for a public reform, and fought, against the opposition of great abilities and of the greatest power, every clause and every word of the largest of those bills, almost to the very last day of a very long session, 7 all this time a canvass in Bristol was as calmly carried on as if I were dead. I was considered as a man wholly out of the ques- tion. Whilst I watched and fasted and sweated in the House of Commons, by the most easy and ordinary arts of election, by dinners and visits, by "How do you do's," and, "My worthy friends," I was to be quietly moved out of my seat ; and prom- ises were made, and engagements entered into, without any ex- ception or reserve, as if my laborious zeal in my duty had been a regular abdication of my trust. To open my whole heart to you on this subject, I do COT however, that there were other times, besides the two years in which I did visit you, when I was not wholly without leisure for repeating that mark of my respect. But I could not bring my mind to see you. You remember that in the beginning of this American war (that era of calamity, disgrace, and downfall, an era which no feeling mind will ever mention without a tear for England) you were greatly divided ; and a very strong body, if not the strongest, opposed itself to the madness which every art and every power were employed to render popular, in order that the errors of the rulers might be lost in the general biind- 7 The reference here is to the speaker's labours in behalf of economical ro- form. What these were, is partly shown in the preceding speech. SPEECH TO THE ELECTORS OF BRISTOL. 121 ness of the nation. This opposition continued until after our great, but most unfortunate victory at Long Island. Then all the mounds and banks of our constancy were borne down at once, and the frenzy of the American war broke in upon us like a deluge. This victory, which seemed to put an immediate end to all difficulties, perfected us in that spirit of domination which our unparalleled prosperity had but too long nurtured. We had been so very powerful, and so very prosperous, that even the humblest of us were degraded into the vices and follies of kings. We lost all measure between means and ends ; and our headlong desires became our politics and our morals. All men who wished for peace, or retained any sentiments of modera- tion, were overborne or silenced ; and this city was led by every artifice (and probably with the more management because I was one of your members) to distinguish itself by its zeal for that fatal cause. In this temper of yours and of my mind, I should sooner have fled to the extremities of the Earth than have shown myself here. I, who saw in every American victory (for you have had a long series of these misfortunes) the germ and seed of the naval power of France and Spain, which all our heat and warmth against America was only hatching into life, I should not have been a welcome visitant, with the brow and the language of such feelings. When, afterwards, the other face of your calamity was turned upon you, and showed itself in defeat and distress, I shunned you full as much. I felt sorely this variety in our wretchedness ; and I did not wish to have the least appearance of insulting you with that show of superiority which, though it may not be assumed, is generally suspected, in a time of calamity, from those whose previous warnings have been despised. I could not bear to show you a representative whose face did not reflect that of his constitu- >, a face that could not joy in your joys, and sorrow in your sorrows. But time at length has made us all of one opin- ion, and \ve have all opened our eyes on the true nature of the American war, to the true nature of all its successes and all it> failures. In that public storm, too, I had my private feelings. I had : blown down and prostrate on the ground several of those houses to whom I was chiefly indebted for the honour this city lias done, ine. s I confess that, whilst the wounds of those I I were yet green, I could not bear to show myself in pride and triumph in that place into which their partiality had brought me, and to appear at feasts and rejoicings in the midst 8 Bristol was then the centre of :i larrm good wishes for the place of my birth. But the sphere of my duties is my true country. It was as a man attached to your interests, and zealous for the con- servation of your power and dignity, that I acted on that occa- sion, and on all occasions. You were involved in the American war. A new world of policy was opened, to which it was neces- sary we should conform, whether we would or not ; and my only thought was how to conform to our situation in such a manner as to unite to this kingdom, in prosperity and in affec- tion, whatever remained of the empire. I was true to my old, standing, invariable principle, that all things which came from Great Britain should issue as a gift of her bounty and benefi- cence, rather than as claims recovered against a struggling litigant; or, at least, that if your beneficence obtained no credit in your concessions, yet that they should appear the salutary provisions of your wisdom and foresight, not as things wrung from you with your blood by the cruel gripe of a rigid necessity. The first concessions, by being (much against my will) mangled and stripped of the parts which were necessary to make out their just correspondence and connection in trade, were of no use. The next year a feeble attempt was made to bring the thing into better shape. This attempt, (countenanced by the Minister,) on the very iir^t appearance of some popular uneasiness, was, after a considerable progress through the House, thrown out by him. What was the consequence? The whole kingdom of Ireland was instantly in a flame. Threatened by foreigners, and, as they thought, insulted by England, they resolved at once to resist the power of France and to cast oil yours. As for us, we were able neither to protect nor to restrain them. Forty SPEECH TO THE ELECTORS OF BRISTOL. 123 thousand men were raised and disciplined without commission from the Crown. Two illegal armies were seen with banners displayed at the same time and in the same country. No exec- utive magistrate, no judicature, in Ireland, would acknowledge the legality of the army which bore the King's commission ; and no law, or appearance of law, authorized the army commis- sioned by itself. In this unexampled state of things, which the least error, the least trespass on the right or left, would have hurried down the precipice into an abyss of blood and confu- sion, the people of Ireland demand a freedom of trade with arms in their hands.' 1 They interdict all commerce between the two nations. They deny all new supply in the House of Com- mons, although in time of war. They stint the trust of the old revenue, given for two years to all the King's predecessors, to six months. The British Parliament, in a former session, frightened into a limited concession by the menaces of Ireland, frightened out of it by the menaces of England, was now fright- ened back again, and made an universal surrender of all that had been thought the peculiar, reserved, uncommunicable rights e no crime, why is it punished with arbitrary imprisonment? If it be a crime, why is it deliv- ered into private hands to pardon without discretion, or to pun- ish without mercy and without measure? To these faults, gross and cruel faults in our law, the excel- lent principle of Lord Bcauchamp's bill applied some sort of remedy. I know that credit must be preserved: but equity ... pn-ervc-d too; and it is impossible that any thing should be necessary to commerce which is inconsistent witli justice. The principle of credit was not weakened by that bill. <;od forbid ! The enforcement of that credit was only put into MIC public judicial hands on which we depend for our lives and all that makes life dear to us. But indeed this business t ken up too warmly, both here and elsewhere. The bill '2 This "private individual" is, to be sure, the creditor himself, whose will dominates the \vholu question : BO that he is, to all intents and purposes, the judge in his own case, while the public judge is merely his minister or agent. 128 BURKE. was extremely mistaken. It was supposed to enact what it never enacted ; and complaints were made of clauses in it, as novelties, which existed before the noble lord that brought in the bill was born. There was a fallacy that ran through the whole of the objections. The gentlemen who opposed the bill always argued as if the option lay between that bill and the an- cient law. But this is a grand mistake. For, practically, the option is between not that bill and the old law, but between that bill and those occasional laws called Acts of Grace. For the operation of the old law is so savage, and so inconvenient to society, that for a long time past, once in every Parliament, and lately twice, the legislature has been obliged to make a general arbitrary jail-delivery, and at once to set open, by its sovereign authority, all the prisons in England. Gentlemen, I never relished Acts of grace, nor ever submit- ted to them but from despair of better. They are a dishonour- able invention, by which, not from humanity, not from policy, but merely because we have not room enough to hold these vic- tims of the absurdity of our laws, we turn loose upon the public three or four thousand naked wretches, corrupted by the hab- its, debased by the ignominy of a prison. If the creditor had a right to those carcasses as a natural security for his property, I am sure we have no right to deprive him of that security. J3ut if the few pounds of ilesh were not necessary to his security, we had not a right to detain the unfortunate debtor, without any benefit at all to the person who confined him. Take it as you will, we commit injustice. Now Lord lieauchamp's bill in- tended to do deliberately, and with great caution and circum- spection, upon each several case, and with all attention to the just claimant, what Acts of grace do in a much greater meas- ure, and with very little care, caution, or deliberation. I suspect that here, too, if we contrive to oppose this bill, we shall be found in a struggle against the nature of things. For, as we grow enlightened, the public will not bear, for any length of time, to pay for the maintenance of whole armies of prison- ers, nor, at their own expense, submit to keep jails as a sort of garrisons, merely to fortify the absurd principle of making men judges in their own cause. For credit has little or no concern in this cruelty. I speak in a commercial assembly. You know that credit is given because capital must be employed; that men calculate the chances of insolvency; and they either withhold the credit, or make the debtor pay the risk in the price. The counting-house has no alliance with the jail. Holland under- stands trade as well as we, and she has done much more than this obnoxious bill intended to do. There was not, when Mr. Howard visited Holland, more than one prisoner for debt in the SPEECH TO THE ELECTORS OF BRISTOL. 129 great city of Rotterdam. Although Lord Beauchamp's Act (which was previous to this bill, and intended to feel the way for it) has already preserved liberty to thousands, and though it is not three years since the last Act of grace passed, yet, by Mr. Howard's last account, there were near three thousand again in jail. I cannot name this gentlemen without remarking that his labours and writings have done much to open the eyes and hearts of mankind. He has visited all Europe, not to sur- vey the sumptuousness of palaces or the stateliness of temples, not to make accurate measurements of the remains of ancient grandeur nor to form a scale of the curiosity of modern art, not to collect medals or collate manuscripts, but to dive into the depths of dungeons, to plunge into the infections of hospitals, to survey the mansions of sorrow and pain, to take the gauge and dimensions of misery, depression, and contempt, to remem- ber the forgotten, to attend to the neglected, to visit the for- saken, and to compare and collate the distresses of all men in all countries. His plan is original ; and it is as full of genius as it is of humanity. It was a voyage of discovery, a circum- navigation of charity. Already the benefit of his labour is felt more or less in every country ; 1 hope he will anticipate his final reward by seeing all its effects fully realized in his own. He will receive, not by retail, but in gross, the reward of those who visit the prisoner ; and he lias so forestalled and monopo- lized this branch of charity, that there will be, I trust, little room to merit by such acts of benevolence hereafter. Nothing now remains to trouble you with but the fourth charge against me, the business of the Roman Catholics. It is a business closely connected with the rest. They are all on one and the same principle. My little scheme of conduct, such as it is, is all arranged. I could do nothing but what I have done many unnatural and unexpected consequences. A -tat ute was fabricated in the year ir> ( .)!>, by which the saying a church service in the Latin tongue, not exactly the same as our liturgy, but very near it, and containing no offence whatsoever against the laws, or against good morals) was forged into a crime, punishable with perpetual imprisonment. The teaching school, an useful and virtuous occupation, even the teaching in a private family, was in every Catholic subjected to the .~;ime miproport ioned punishment. Your industry, and the, bread of your children, was taxed for a pecuniary reward to stimulate avarice to do what Nature refused, to inform and ute on this law. Every Roman Catholic was, under the same Act, to forfeit his estate to his nearest Protestant relation, until, through a profession of what he did not believe, he rc- p- SPEECH TO THE ELECTORS OF BRISTOL. 1H5 far better qualified than mine. The mover of the bill was Sir George Savile. When an act of great and signal humanity was to be done, and done with all the weight and authority that belonged to it, the world could cast its eyes upon none but him. I hope that few tilings which have a tendency to bless or to adorn life have wholly escaped my observation in my passage through it. I have sought the acquaintance of lhat gentleman, and have seen him in all situations. lie is a true genius ; with an understand- ing vigorous, and acute, ;md ivlined, and distinguishing even to excess; ami illuminated with a most unbounded, peculiar, and original cast of imagination. AVith these lie possesses many external and instrumental advantage?. : and he makes use of them all. His fortune is among the largest, a fortune which, wholly unincinnbered as it is with one single charge from luxury, vanity, or oxce-s, sinks under the- benevolence .of its dispenser. This private benevolence, expanding itself into patriotism, renders his whole being the estate of the public, in which he has not reserved a IK '//////,// for himself of profit, diversion, or relaxation. During the session the lirst in and the last out of the House of ('ominous, he passes from the senate to the camp; and. seldom seeing the seat of his an tors, he is always in Parliament 1o serve his country, or in the field to defend it. Hut in all well-wrought compositions some particulars stand out mop- eminently than the rest; and the things which will carry his name to posterity are his two bills : I mean that for a limitation of the claims of the Crown upon landed estates, and this for the relief of the Uoman Catholics. My the former he has emancipated property; by the latter he has quieted conscience ; and by both he has taught that grand On to government and subject, no longer to regard each other as adverse part ies. Such was the mover of the Act that is complained of by men who are not quite so irood as he is, an Act most assuredly not brought in by him from any partiality to that sect which is the object of it. For *nQOHg his faults I really e;innot help reckon- ing ;i greater degree of prejndic" :ig:iinst that people than be- comes so wise a man. I know that lie inclines to a sort of dis- . mixed with a considerable degree of asperity, to the in; and he has few, or rather no habits with any of its U'hat he has done was on quite other motives. The motives were these, which h" dec-hired in his excellent ^peech on his motion for the bill,--- namely, \\\^ extreme zeal to the Protestant religion, which he thought utterly disgraced by tin- \ctof lO'.K) ; and his rooted hat red to all kind of oppression, under any colour, or upon any pretence whatsoever. 136 BURKE. The seconder was worthy of the mover and the motion. I was not the seconder; it was Mr. Dunning, recorder of this city. 3 I shall say the less of him, because his near relation to you makes you more particularly acquainted with his merits. But I should appear little acquainted with them, or little sensi- ble of them, if I could utter his name on this occasion without expressing my esteem for his character. I am not afraid of offending a most learned body, and most jealous of its reputa- tion for that learning, when I say he is the first of his profes- sion. It is a point settled by those who settle every thing else : and I must add (what I am enabled to say from my own long and close observation) that there is not a man of any profes- sion, or in any situation, of a more erect and independent spirit, of a more proud honour, a more manly mind, a more firm and determined integrity. Assure yourselves, that the names of two such men will bear a gpeat load of prejudice in the other scale before they can be entirely outweighed. With this mover and this seconder agreed the whole House of Commons, the wJwle House of Lords, the whole Bench of Bishops, the King, the Ministry, the opposition, all the dis- tinguished clergy of the Establishment, all the eminent lights (for they were consulted) of the dissenting churches. This according voice of national wisdom ought to be listened to with reverence. To say that all these descriptions of Eng- lishmen unanimously concurred in a scheme for introducing the Catholic religion, or that none of them understood the nature and effects of what they were doing so well as a few obscure clubs of people whose names you never heard of, is shamelessly absurd. Surely it is paying a miserable compliment to the religion we profess, to suggest that every thing eminent in the kingdom is indifferent or even adverse to that religion, and that its security is wholly abandoned to the zeal of those who have nothing but their zeal to distinguish them. In weighing this unanimous concurrence of whatever the nation has to boast of, I hope you will recollect that all these concurring parties do by no means love one another enough to agree in any point which was not both evidently and importantly right. To prove this, to prove that the measure was both clearly and materially proper, I will next lay before you (as I promised) the 3 This Mr. Dunning, though Recorder of Bristol, was not a member of Par. liamcut lor th:it city. He it was who, some time be love the delivery of this s-pL'i'ch, moved the famous resolution declaring "That the influence of the Crown has increased, is increasing, and ought to be diminished"; which made the first practicable breach in the policy of the Court, lie was a lawyer of cmi. nent ability, an ungraceful but powerful debater, and was afterwards mado Lord Ashburton. SPEECH TO THE ELECTORS OF BRISTOL. 137 political grounds and reasons for the repeal of that penal statute, and the motives to its repeal at that particular time. Gentlemen, America. When the English nation seemed to be dangerously, if not irrecoverably divided, when one, and that the most growing branch, was torn from the parent stock, and ingrafted on the power of France, a great terror fell upon this kingdom. On a sudden we awakened from our dreams of conquest, and saw ourselves threatened with an immediate invasion, which we were at that time very ill prepared to resist. You remember the cloud that gloomed over us all. In that hour of our dismay, from the bottom of the hiding-places into which the indiscriminate rigour of our statutes had driven them, came out the body of the Roman Catholics. They appeared before the steps of a tottering throne, with one of the most sober, measured, steady, and dutiful addresses that was ever presented to the Crown. It was no holiday ceremony, no anniversary compliment of parade and show. It was signed by almost every gentleman of that persuasion, of note or property, in England. At such a crisis, nothing but a decided resolution to stand or fall with their country could have dictated such an address, the direct tendency of which was to cut off all retreat, and to render them peculiarly obnoxious to an invader of their own communion. The address showed what I long languished to see, that all the subjects of England had cast off all foreign views and connections, and that every man looked for his relief from every grievance at the hands only of his own natu- ral government. It was necessary, on our part, that the natural government should show itself worthy of that name. It was necessary, at the crisis I speak of, that the supreme power of the State should meet the conciliatory dispositions of the subject. *To delay protection would be to reject allegiance. And why should it bo rejected, or even coldly and suspiciously received? If any pendent Catholic State should choose to take part with this kingdom in a war with France and Spain, that bigot (if such a bigot could be found) would be heard with little respect, who 'ou Id dream of objecting his religion to an ally whom the nation would not only receive with its freest thanks, but purchase with the last remains of its exhausted tn-asurc. To such an ally we should not dare to whisper a single syllable of those and invidious topics upon which some unhappy men would persuade the State to reject the duty and allegiance of \vn members. Is it, then, because foreigners are in a con- dition to set our malice at defiance, that with tltcmw are will- iii'i to contract mgagirmoiits of 1'rieiidship, and to keep them with fidelity and honour, but that, because we conceive some 138 BURKE. descriptions of our countrymen are not powerful enough to pun- ish our malignity, we will not, permit them to support our com- mon interest? Is it on that ground that our anger is to be kindled by their offered kindness? Is it on that ground that they are to be subjected to penalties, because they are willing by actual merit to purge themselves from imputed crimes? Lest by an adherence to the cause of their country they should acquire a title to fair and equitable treatment, are we resolved to furnish them with causes of eternal enmity, and rather sup- ply them with just and founded motives to disaffection than not to have that, disaffection in existence, to justify an oppres- sion which, not from policy, but disposition, we have predeter- mined to exercise? AVhat shadow of reason could bo assigned, why, at a time when the most Protestant part of this Protestant empire found it for its advantage to unite with the two principal Popish Stales, to unite itself in the closest bonds with France and Spain, for our destruction, that we should refuse to unite with our own Catholic countrymen for our own preservation? Ought- wo, like madmen, to tear off the plasters that the lenient hand of prudence had spread over the wounds and gashes which in our delirium of ambition we had given to our own body? No person ever reprobated the American war more than I did, and do, and even* shall. ]>ut I never will consent that we should lay additional, voluntary penalties on ourselves, for a fault which carries but too much of its own punishment in its own nature. For one, I was delighted with the proposal of internal peace. 1 accepted the blessing with thankfulness and transport. I was truly happy to find <>nr good effect of our civil distractions, that they had put an end to all religious strife and heart-burning in our own bowels. What must be the senti- ments of a man who would wish to perpetuate domestic hostil- ity when the causes of dispute are at, an end, and who, crying out for peace with one part of the nation on the most humiliat- ing terms, should deny it to those who offer friendship without any terms at all? l>ut if I was unable to reconcile such a denial to the contracted principles of local duty, what answer could I give to the broad claims of general humanity? I confess to you freely, that the sufferings and distresses of the people of America in this cruel war have at times affected me more deeply than I can express. I felt every gazette of triumph as a blow upon my heart, which has an hundred times sunk and fainted within me at all the mis- chiefs brought upon those who bear the whole brunt of war in the heart of their country. Yet the Americans are utter .stran- gers to me ; a nation among whom I am not sure that I have a SPEECH TO THE ELECTORS OF BRISTOL. 139 single .acquaintance. "Was I to suffer my mind to be so unac- countably warped, was I to keep such iniquitous weights and measures of temper and of reason, as to sympathize with those who are in open rebellion against an authority which I respect, at war with a country which by every title ought to be, and is, iear to me, and yet to have no feeling at all for the hard- ships and indignities suffered by men who by their very vicinity are bound up in a nearer relation to us, who contribute their share, and more than their share, to the common prosperity, who perform the common offices of social life, and who obey the laws, to the full as well as I do? Gentlemen, the danger to the State being out of the question, (of which, let me tell you, statesmen themselves are apt to have but too exquisite a I could assign no one reason of justice, policy, or feeling, for not concurring most cordially, as most cordially I did con- cur, in softening some part of that shameful servitude under which several of my worthy fellow-eiti/ens were groaning. Important effects followed this act of wisdom. They ap- peared at home and abroad, to the great benefit of this king- dom, and, let me hope, to the advantage of mankind at large. It betokened union among ourselves. It showed soundness, even on the part of the persecuted, which generally is the weak side of every community. But its m In tlii.s part of the speech, Burke is referring to what are known as the Lord George Gordon riots, which took place in the June preceding. Lord H4 BUEKE. All the time that this horrid scene was acting, or avenging, as well as for some time before, and ever since, the wicked instiga- tors of this unhappy multitude, guilty, with every aggravation, of all their crimes, and screened in a cowardly darkness from their punishment, continued, without interruption, pity, or re- morse, to blow up the blind rage of the populace with a contin- ued blast of pestilential libels, which infected and poisoned the very air we breathed in. The main drift of all the libels and all the riots was, to force Parliament (to persuade us was hopeless) into an act of national perfidy which has no example. For, Gentlemen, it is proper you should all know what infamy we escaped by refusing that repeal, for a refusal of which, it seems, I, among others, stand somewhere or other accused. When we took uway, on the mo- tives which I had the honour of stating to you, a few of the in- numerable penalties upon an oppressed and injured people, the relief was not absolute, but given on a stipulation and compact between them and us: for we bound down the Roman Catholics with the most solemn oaths to bear true allegiance to this gov- ernment, to abjure all sort of temporal power in any other, and to renounce, under the same obligations, the doctrines of sys- tematic perfidy with which they stood (I conceive very unjustly) charged. Now our modest petitioners came up to us, most humbly praying nothing more than that we should break our faith, without any one cause whatsoever of forfeiture assigned ; and when the subjects of this kingdom had, on their part, fully performed their engagement, we should refuse, on our part, the benefit we had stipulated on the performance of those very conditions that were prescribed by our own authority, and taken on the sanction of our public faith: that is to say. when we hud inveigled them with fair promises within our door, wo were to shut it on them, and, adding mockery to outrage, to tell them, "Xow we have got you fast : your consciences are bound to a power resolved on your destruction. We have made you swear that your religion obliges you to keep your faith: fools as you are ! we will now let you see that our religion enjoins us to keep no faith with you." They who would advis- edly call upon us to do such things must certainly have thought George was a member of the House of Commons from Scotland, and was a crazy fanatic; and, in that dreadful time of havoc and conflagration and mur- der, he led a huge rabble to the doors of Parliament, to browbeat and frighten the Houses into a repeal of the Act in question. Burke was among the foremost of the members in resisting these mad and brutal proceedings: there \v a- no quailing in him; he faced the mob right up, and probably saved his life partly by his fearless bearing, which struck admiration and awe into the rioters. But the story is too long for the compass of a note. The horrid scenes are depicted at full length in Diekens's Barnaby Rudge. SPEECH TO THE ELECTORS OF BRISTOL. 145 us not only a convention of treacherous tyrants, but a gang of the lowest and dirtiest wretches that ever disgraced humanity. Had we done this we should have indeed proved that there were some in the world whom no faith could bind ; and we should have convicted ourselves of that odious principle of which Papists stood accused by those very savages who wished us, on that accusation, to deliver them over to their fury. In this audacious tumult, when our very name and character as gentlemen was to be cancelled for ever, along with the faith and honour of the nation, I, who had exerted myself very little on the quiet passing of the bill, thought it necessary then to come forward. I was not alone ; but, though some distin- guished members on all sides, and particularly on ours, added much to their high reputation by the part they took on that day, '.a part which will be remembered as long as honour, spirit, and eloquence have estimation in the world,) I may and will value myself so far, that, yielding in abilities to many, I yielded in zeal to none. "With warmth and with vigour, and animated with a just and natural indignation, I called forth every faculty that I possessed, and I directed it in everyway in which I could possibly employ it. I laboured night and day. I laboured in Parliament; I laboured out of Parliament. If, therefore, the resolution of the House of Commons, refusing to commit this act of unmatched turpitude, be a crime, lam guilty among the foremost. But indeed, whatever the faults of that House may have been, no one member was found hardy enough to propose *o infamous a thing ; and on full debate we passed the resolu- tion against the petitions with as much unanimity as we had formerly passed the law of which these petitions demanded the repeal There was a circumstance (justice will not suffer me to pass it over) which, if any thing could enforce the reasons I have given, would fully justify the Act of relief, and render a repeal, or any thing like a repeal, unnatural, impossible. It was the behaviour of the persecuted Roman Catholics under the acts of violence and brutal insolence which they suffered. I sup- bere are not in London less than four or five thousand of that persuasion from my country, who do a great deal of the mt laborious works in the metropolis; and they chiefly in- habit those quarters which were the principal theatre of the fury of the bigoted multitude. They are known to be men of strong arms and quick feelings, and more remarkable for a determined resolution than clear ideas or much foresight. But, though provoked by every thing that can stir the blood of men, their houses and chapels in flames, and with the mostatrocious profa- nations of every tiling which they hold sacred before their eyes, 140 BURKE. not a hand was moved to retaliate, or even to defend. Had a conflict once begun, the rage of their persecutors would have redoubled. Thus fury increasing by the reverberation of out- rages, house being fired for house, and church for chapel, I am convinced that no power under heaven could have prevented a general conflagration, and at this day London would have been a tale. But I am well informed, and the thing speaks it, that their clergy exerted their whole influence to keep their people in such a state of forbearance and quiet, as, when I look bark, fills me with astonishment, but not with astonishment only. Their merits on that occasion ought not to be forgotten ; nor will they, when Englishmen come to recollect themselves. [ am sure it were far more proper to have called them forth, and given them the thanks of both Houses of Parliament, than to have suffered those worthy clergymen and excellent citizens to be hunted into holes and corners, whilst we are making Imv- minded inquisitions into the number of their people: as if a tolerating principle was never to prevail, unless we were very sure that only a few could possibly take advantage of it. But indeed we are not yet well recovered of our fright. Our reason, I trust, will return with our security, and this unfortunate tem- per will pass over like a cloud. Gentlemen, I have now laid before you a few of the reasons for taking away the penalties of the Act of 1609, and for refus- ing to establish them on the riotous requisition of 1780. Be- cause I would not suffer any thing which may be for your satis- faction to escape, permit me just to touch on the objections urged against our Act and our resolves, and intended as a justi- fication of the violence offered to both Houses. "Parliament," they assert, "was too hasty, and they ought, in so essential and alarming a change, to have proceeded with a far greater degree of deliberation." The direct contrary. Parliament was too slow. They took fourscore years to deliberate on the repeal of an Act which ought not to have survived a second session. AVhen at length, after a procrastination of near a century, the business was taken up, it proceeded in the most public manner, by the ordinary stages, and as slowly as a law so evidently right as to be resisted by none would naturally advance. Had it been read three times in one day, we should have shown only a be- coming readiness to recognize, by protection, the undoubted dutiful behaviour of those whom we had but too long punished for offences of presumption or conjecture. But for what end was that bill to linger beyond the usual period of an unopposed measure ? AVas it to be delayed until a rabble in Edinburgh should dictate to the Church of England what measure of per- secution was fitting for her safety? Was it to be adjourned SPEECH TO THE ELECTORS OF BRISTOL. 147 until a fanatical force could be collected in London, sufficient to frighten us out of all our ideas of policy and justice ? AYcre we to wait for the profound lectures on the reason of State, eccle- siastical and political, which the Protestant Association have since condescended to read to us ? Or were we, seven hundred poors and commoners, the only persons ignorant of the ribald invectives which occupy the place of argument in those remon- strances, which every man of common observation had hoard a, thousand times over, and a thousand times over had despised '? All men had before, hoard what they have to say, and all men at this day know what they dare to do ; and I trust all honest men are equally influenced by the one and by the other. But they tell us that those our fellow-citizens whose chains we have a little relaxed are enemies to liberty and our free Constitution. \<>t enemies, I presume, to their own liberty. And as to the Constitution, until we give them some share in it, 1 do not know on what pretence we can examine into their opin- ions aliout a business in which they have no interest or concern. JJnt, after all, are wo equally sure that they are adverse to our Constitution as that our statutes are hostile and destructive to them? For my part, I have reason to believe their opinions and inclinations in that respect are various, exactly like those of other men; and, it' they lean more to the Crown than I and than many of you think wr ought, wo must remember that IK; who aims at another's life is not to be surprised, if he flies into any sanctuary that will receive him. The tenderness of the ex- ecutive power is the natural asylum of those upon whom the laws have declared war ; and to complain that men are inclined to favour the moans of their own safety is so absurd, that one forgets the injustice in the ridicule. I must, fairly tell you that, so far as my principles are con- cerned, (principles that 1 hope will only depart with my last breatn,) 1 have no idea of a liberty unconnected with hou- nd justice. Xor do I believe that any good constitutions of government, or of freedom, can find it necessary for their security to doom any part of the people to a permanent slavery. Such a constitution of freedom, if such can be, is in effect no more than another name for the tyranny of the strongest fac- tion ; and factions in republics have been, and are, full as capa- nionarehs of the most cruel oppression and injustice. It is but too true, that the love, and even the very idea, of genuine liberty is extremely rare. It is but too true that there are many whoso whole scheme of freedom is made up of pride, per- ;md insolence. They feel themselves in a state of thraldom, they imagine that their souls are cooped and cabined in, unless they have some man or some body of men dependent. 148 BURKE. on their mercy. This desire of having some one below them descends to those who are the very lowest of all ; and a Protest- ant cobbler, debased by his poverty, but exalted by his share of the ruling Church, feels a pride in knowing it is by his gener- osity alone that the peer whose footman's instep he measures is able to keep his chaplain from a jail. This disposition is the true source of the passion which many men in very humble life have taken to the American war. Our subjects in America ; our colonies ; our dependents. This lust of party power is the lib- erty they hunger and thirst for ; and this Siren song of ambition has charmed ears that one would have thought were never organized to that sort of music. This way of. proscribing the citizens by denominations and general descriptions, dignified by the name of reason of State, and secu- rity for constitutions and commonwealths, is nothing better at bottom than the miserable invention of an ungenerous ambition which would fain hold the sacred trust of power, without any of the virtues or any of the energies that give a title to it, a receipt of policy, made up of a detestable compound of malice, cowardice, and sloth. They would govern men against their will ; but in that government they would be discharged from the exercise of vigilance, providence, and fortitude ; and there- fore, that they may sleep on their watch, they consent to take some one division of the society into partnership of the tyranny over the rest. But let government, in what form it may be, comprehend the whole in its justice, and restrain the suspicious by its vigilance, let it keep watch and ward, let it discover by its sagacity, and punish by its firmness, all delinquency against its power, whenever delinquency exists in the overt- acts, and then it will be as safe as ever God and Nature in- tended it should be. Crimes are the acts of individuals, and not of denominations: and therefore arbitrarily to class men under general descriptions, in order to proscribe and punish them in the lump for a presumed delinquency, of which perhaps but a part, perhaps none at all, are guilty, is indeed a compendi- ous method, and saves a world of trouble about proof; but such a method, instead of being law, is an act of unnatural rebellion against the legal dominion of reason and justice ; and this vice, in any constitution that entertains it, at one time or other will certainly bring on its ruin. We are told that this is not a religious persecution ; and its abettors are loud in disclaiming all severities on account of con- science. Very fine indeed! Then let it be so: they are not per- secutors ; they are only tyrants. With all my heart, I am perfectly indifferent concerning the pretexts upon which we torment one another, or whether it be for the Constitution of SPEECH TO THE ELECTORS OF BRISTOL. 140 the Church of England, or for the Constitution of the State of England, that people choose to make their fellow-creatures wretched. When we were sent into a place of authority, you that sent us had yourselves but one commission to give. You could give us none to wrong or oppress, or even to suffer any kind of oppression or wrong, on any grounds whatsoever: not on political, as in the affairs of America ; not on commercial, as in those of Ireland ; not in civil, as in the laws for debt ; not in religious, as in the statutes against Protestant or Catholic dis- senters. The diversified but connected fabric of universal jus- tice is well cramped and bolted together in all its parts ; and, depend upon it, I never have employed, and I never shall em- ploy, any engine of power which may come into my hands to wrench it asunder. All shall stand, if I can help it, and all shall stand connected. After all, to complete this work, much remains to be done; much in the East, much in the West. But, great as the work is, if our will be ready, our powers are not deficient, Since you have suffered me to trouble you so much on this subject, permit me, Gentlemen, to detain you a little longer. I am indeed most solicitous to give you perfect satisfaction. I find there are some of a better and softer nature than the per- sons with whom I have supposed myself in debate, who neither think ill of the Act of relief, nor by any means desire the repeal; yet who, not accusing, but lamenting, what was done, on account of the consequences, huve frequently expressed their wish that the late Act had never been made. Some of this description, and persons of worth, I have met with in this city. They conceive that the prejudices, whatever they might lie, of a large part of the people, ought not to have been shocked ; that their opinions ought to have been previously taken, and much attended to ; and that thereby the late horrid scenes might have been prevented. I confess, my notions are widely different ; and I never was less sorry for any action of my life. I like the bill the better on unt of the events of all kinds that followed it. It relieved tho real sufferers; it strengthened the State; and, by the disorders that ensued, we had clear evidence that there lurked a temper somewhere which ought not to be fostered by the laws. No ill consequences whatever could be attributed to the Act itself. We know beforehand, or we were poorly instructed, that toleration is odious to the intolerant, freedom to oppivs- , property to robbers, and all kinds and degrees of prosper- ity to the envious. We knew that all these kinds of men would gladly gratify their evil dispositions under the sanction of law and religion, if they could: if they could not, yet, to make way 150 BURKE. to their objects, they would do their utmost to subvert all re- ligion and all law. This we certainly knew. But, knowing this, is there any reason, because thieves break in and steal, and thus bring detriment to you, and draw ruin on themseh vs, that I am to be sorry that you are in possession of shops, and of warehouses, and of 'wholesome laws to protect them? Are you to build no houses, because desperate men may pull them clown upon their own heads? Or, if a malignant wretch will cut his own throat, because he sees you give alms to the neces- sitous and deserving, shall his destruction be attributed to your charity, and not to his own deplorable madness? If we repent of our good actions, what, I pray you, is left for our faults and follies ? It is not the beneficence of the laws, it is the unnatu- ral temper which benelicence can l'ivt and sour, that is to be lamented. It is this temper which, by all rational means, ought to be sweetened and corrected. If f reward men should re this cure, can they vitiate any thing but themselves? Does evil so react upon good, as not only to retard its motion, but to change its nature? If it can so operate, then good men will always be in the power of the bad ; and virtue, by a dreadful reverse of order, must lie under perpetual subjection and bond- age to vice. As to the opinion of the people, which some think, in such cases, is to be implicitly obeyed, near two years' tranquillity, which followed the Act, and its instant imitation in Ireland, proved abundantly that the late horrible spirit was in a gr measure the effect of insidious art, and perverse industry, and fc-ros.s misrepresentation. But suppose that the dislike had been much more deliberate and much more general than I am persuaded it was, when we know that the opinions of even the greatest multitudes are the standard of rectitude, I shall think myself obliged to make those opinions the masters of my conscience. But if it may be doubted whether Omnipotence it- self is competent to alter the essential constitution of right and wrong, sure I am that such things as they and I are possessed of no such power. No man carries further than I do the policy of making government pleasing to the people. But the widest ran^e of this politic complaisance is confined within the limits of justice. I would not only consult the interest of the peoj but I would cheerfully gratify their humours. We are all a sort of children that must be soothed and managed. I think I am not austere or formal in my nature. I would bear, I would even myself play my part in, any innocent buffooneries, to di- vert them. But I never will act the tyrant for their amuse- ment. If they will mix malice in their sports, I shall never con- SPEECH TO THE ELECTORS OF BRISTOL. 151 sent to* throw them any living, sentient creature whatsoever, no, not so much as a kitling, to torment. But, if I profess all this impolitic stubbornness, I may chance never to be elected into Parliament? It is certainly not pleasing to be put out of the public service. But I wish to be a member of Parliament to have my share of doing good and resisting evil. It would therefore be absurd to renounce my objects in order to obtain my seat. I deceive myself indeed most grossly, if I had not much rather pass the remainder of my life hidden in the recesses of the deepest obscurity, feeding my mind even with the visions and imaginations of such things, than to be placed on the -most splendid throne of the universe, tantalized with a denial of the practice of all which can make the greatest situation any other than the greatest curse. Gen- tlemen, I have had my day. I can never sutiicicntly express my gratitude to you for having set me in a place wherein I could lend the slightest help to great and laudable designs. If I have had my share in any measure giving quiet to private property and private conscience ; if by my vote I have aided in securing to families the best possession, peace ; if I have joined in reconciling kings to their subjects, and subjects to their prince ; if I have assisted to loosen the foreign holdings of the citi/en, and taught him to look for his protection to the laws of his country, and for his comfort to the good-will of his countrymen ; if I have thus taken my part with the best of men in the best of their actions, I can shut the book: I might wish to read a page or two more, but this is enough for my measure. I have not lived in vain. And now, (ieutleinen, on this serious day, when I come, as it were, to make up my account with you, let me take to myself some decree of hom->t pride on the nature of the charges that are against me. I do not here stand before you accused of venality, or of neglect of duty. It is not said that, in the long id of my service, 1 have, in a single instance, sacrificed the slightest of your interests to my ambition or to my fortune. It is not alleged that, to gratify any anger or revenge of my own, <>r of my party, I have had u share in wronging or oppressing any description of men, or any one man in any description. No! the, charges against me are all of one kind; that I have pushed the principles of general justice and benevolence too far, further than a cautious policy would warrant, and further than the opinions of many would go along with me. In every accident which may happen through life, in pain, in sorrow, in depression, and distress, I will call to mind this accusation, and be comforted. 152 BURKE. Gentlemen, I submit the whole to your judgment. Mr. May- or, I thank you for the trouble you have taken on this occasion : in your state of health it is particularly obliging. If this com- pany should think it advisable for me to withdraw, I shall re- spectfully retire ; if you think otherwise, I shall go directly to the Council-House and to the 'Change, and without a moment's delay begin my canvass. GROWTH OF THE AMERICAN TRADE. THE trade with America alone is now within less than 500,000 of being equal to what this great commercial nation, England, carried on at the beginning of this century with the whole world! But, it will be said, is not this American trade an unnatural protuberance, that has drawn the juices from the rest of the body? The reverse. It is the very food that has nourished every other part into its present magnitude. Our general trade has been greatly augmented, and augmented more or less in almost every part to which it ever extended, but with this material difference, that, of the six millions which in the beginning of the century constituted the whole mass of our ex- port commerce, the colony trade was but one twelfth part ; it is now (as a part of sixteen millions) considerably more than a third of the whole. This is the relative proportion of the im- portance of the colonies at these two periods; and all reasoning concerning our mode of treating them must have this proportion as its basis, or it is a reasoning weak, rotten, and sophistical. Mr. Speaker, I cannot prevail on myself to hurry over this great consideration. It is good for us to be here. We stand G Immediately after the close of this speech, a large meeting of Eurko's friends was held in the Guildhall, with the Mayor in the chair, and resolutions were passed, declaring that he had done " all possible honour to himself as a sen- ator and a man," heartily approving his parliamentary course in all its parts, and earnestly requesting him to offer himself again as a candidate, with assur- ances of thefr cordial and full support. Thereupon he proceeded with the can- vass for three days; and on the Oth, being satisfied that lie should not win, ho made another brief speech, calmly declining the election, and withdrawing from the poll. One of the candidates, a Mr. Coombe, having suddenly died, lie ppokc of the circumstance as follows: "Gentlemen, the melancholy event of yesterday reads to us an awful lesson against being too much troubled about any of the objects of ordinary ambition. The worthy gentleman who has been snatched from us at the moment of the election, and in the middle of the contest, whilst his desires were as warm and his hopes as eager as ours, has feelingly told us v/hat shadows we are and what shadows we pursue." GROWTH OF THE AMERICAN-' TRADE. 153 where we have an immense view of what is, and what is past. Clouds, indeed, and darkness, rest upon the future. Let us, however, before we descend from this noble eminence,, reflect that this growth of our national prosperity has happened within the short period of the life of man. It has happened within sixty-eight years. There are those alive whose memory might touch the two extremities. For instance, my Lord Bathurst might remember all the stages of the progress. He was in 1704 of an age at least to be made to comprehend such things. He was then old enough acta parcntum jam lcgcrc, et quce sit potcrit cognosccrc virtus. Suppose, Sir, that the angel of this auspicious youth, foreseeing the many virtues which made him one of the most amiable, as Jie is one of the most fortunate men of his age, had opened to him in vision that, when, in the fourth genera- tion, the third prince of the House of Brunswick had sat twelve years on the throne of that nation which (by the happy issue of moderate and healing councils) was to be made Great Britain, 7 he should see his son, Lord Chancellor of England, turn back the current of hereditary dignity to its fountain, and raise him to an higher rank of peerage, whilst he enriched the family with a new one ; if, amidst these bright and happy scenes of domes- tic honour and prosperity, that angel should have drawn up the curtain, and, unfolding the rising glories of his country, and whilst he was gazing with admiration on the then commercial grandeur of England, the genius should point out to him a little spe-k, scarce visible in the mass of the national interest, a small seminal principle rather than a formed body, and should tell him, "Young man, there is America, which at this day serves for little more than to amuse you with stories of savage men and uncouth manners ; yet shall, before you taste of death, show itself equal to the whole of that commerce which now at- tracts the envy of the world. Whatever England has been Blowing to by a progressive increase of improvement, brought in by varieties of people, by succession of civilizing conquests and civilizing settlements in a series of seventeen hundred you shall see as much added to her by America in the course of a single life!" If this state of his country had been foretold to him, would it not require all the sanguine credulity nth, and all the fervid glow of enthusiasm, to make him b -lit ve it? Fortunate man, he has lived to see it! Fortunate indeed, if he lives to see nothing that shall vary the prospect, and cloud the setting of his day! Speech on Conciliation with America, 1775. 7 The parliamentary union of England and Scotland took place within the period in question. 154 BURKE. CHARACTER OF GEORGE GRENVILLE. 8 !N"o man can believe that, at this time of day, I mean to lean on the venerable memory of a great man, whose loss we deplore in common. Our little party differences have been long ago composed ; and I have acted more with him, and certainly with more pleasure with him, than ever I acted against him. Un- doubtedly Mr. Grenville was a first-rate figure in this country. With a masculine understanding and a stout and resolute heart, he had an application undissipated and unwearied. He took public business, not as a duty which he was to fulfil, but as u pleasure he was to enjoy ; and he seemed to have no delight out of this House, except in such things as some way related to the business that was to be done within it. If he was ambi- tious, I will say this for him, his ambition was of a noble and generous strain. It was to raise himself, not by the low, pimp- ing politics of a Court, but to win his way to power through the laborious gradations of public service, and to secure himself a well-earned rank in Parliament by a thorough knowledge of its constitution and a perfect practice in all its business. Sir, if such a man fell into errors, it must be from defects not intrinsical ; they mu>t be rather sought in the particular habits of his life, which, though they do not alter the groundwork of character, yet tinge it with their own hue. He was bred in a profession. He was bred to the law, which is, in my opinion, one of the first and noblest of human sciences, a science which does more to quicken and invigorate the understanding than all the other kinds of learning put together ; but it is not apt, ex- cept in persons very happily born, to open and to liberalize the mind exactly in the same proportion. Passing from that study, he did not go very largely into the world, but plunged into busi- ness, I mean into the business of office, and the limited and fixed methods and forms established there. Much knowledge is to be had, undoubtedly, in that line ; and there is no knowl- edge which is not valuable. But it may be truly said, that men 8 Grenville became a member of the Bute Ministry in 17G1, and bore a lead- ing. perhaps I should say the leading, part in framing and carrying through the scheme of American policy which issued in the revolt, and finally in the inde- pendence of the colonies. As the cap-stone of this policy, in February, 17G.">, he moved upwards of fifty resolutions in the House of Commons, the fatal Stamp Act being among them. Burke, though not then a member of Parliament, was from tho outset utterly opposed to that policy in all its parts; and, under the first Rockingham administration, in 1703, he did his part in procuring a repeal of the Acts passed in pursuance of it. Grenville was a brother of Earl Temple, and died in November, 1770. CHATHAM AXD TOWXSHEXD. 155 too much conversant in office are rarely minds of remarkable enlargement. Their habits of office are apt to give them a turn to think the substance of business not to be much more import- ant than the forms in which it is conducted. These forms are adapted to ordinary occasions; and therefore persons who are nurtured in office do admirably well as long as things go on in their common order; but when the high-roads are broken up, and the waters out, when a new and troubled scene is opened, and the file affords no precedent, then it is that a greater knowledge of mankind, and a far more extensive comprehension of things is requisite, than ever office gave, or than office can ever give. Mr. (livnville thought better of the wisdom and power of hu- man legislation than in truth it deserves. He conceived, and many conceived along with him, that the flourishing trade of this country was greatly owing to law and institution, and not quite so much to liberty; for but too many are apt to believe regulation to be commerce, and taxes to be revenue. Speech cm American Taxation, 1774. LORD CHATHAM AOT> CHARLES TOWNSHEND. I HAVE done with the third period of your policy, that of your repeal, and the return of your ancient system, and your ancient tranquillity and concord. Sir, this period was not as long as it was happy. Another scene was opened, and other actors appeared on the stage. The State, in the condition I have described it, was delivered into the hands of Lord Chat- ham, a great and celebrated name, a name that keeps the name of this country respectable in every other on the globe. It may be truly called Clarum ct vcnerabilc nomen Gentibus, ct multum nostrie quod proderat urbi. Sir, the venerable age of this great man, his merited rank, his M.licrior eloquence, his splendid qualities, his eminent services, the vast space he fills in the eye of mankind, and, more than all 9 The Knrl.in;rl:am Ministry continued in office something less than thirteen months, when I'itt was again ''ailed to the helm, and, lor his Ministry, got up the rickety piece of patchwork which IJurke here, M> vividly describes, Townshend bancellor of the Exchequer, in May, 1707, the Ill-starred legislation so pealed was in substance revived, Townshend acting as chief engineer in the revival. That Ministry camo to an end the Summer following, ami Townshend died soon after. 156 BURKE. the rest, his fall from power, which, like death, canonizes and sanctifies a great character, will not suffer me to censure any part of his conduct. I am afraid to flatter him ; I am sure I am not disposed to blame him. Let those who have betrayed him by their adulation insult him with their malevolence. But what I do not presume to censure I may have leave to lament. For a wise man, he seemed to me at that time to be governed too much by general maxims. I speak with the freedom of history, and I hope without offence. One or two of these maxims, flowing from an opinion not the most indulgent to our unhappy species, and surely a little too general, led him into measures that were greatly mischievous to himself, and for that reason, among others, perhaps fatal to his country, measures, the effects of which, I am afraid, are for ever incurable, lie made an administration so checkered and speckled, he put to- gether a piece of joinery so crossly indented and whimsically dovetailed, a cabinet so variously inlaid, such a piece of diversi- fied mosaic, such a tessellated pavement without cement, here a bit of black stone, and there a bit of white, patriots and cour- tiers, King's friends and republicans, Whigs and Tories, treach- erous friends and open enemies, that it was, indeed, a very curious show, but utterly unsafe to touch and unsure to stand on. The colleagues whom he had assorted at the same boards stared at each other, and were obliged to ask, "Sir, your name?" "Sir, you have the advantage of me." "Mr. Such- a-one." "I beg a thousand pardons." I venture to say, it did so happen that persons had a single office divided between them, who had never spoken to each other in their lives, until they found themselves, they knew not how, pigging together, heads and points, in the same truckle-bed. Sir, in consequence of this arrangement, having put so much the larger part of his enemies and opposers into power, the confusion was such that his own principles could not possibly have any effect or influence in the conduct of affairs. It' ever he fell into a fit of the gout, or if any other cause withdrew him from public cares, principles directly the contrary were sure to predominate. When he had executed his plan, he had not ;ri inch of ground to stand upon. When he had accomplished his scheme of administration, he was no longer Minister. When his face was hid but for a moment, his whole system was on a wide sea without chart or compass. The gentlemen, hi-* particular friends, who, with the names of various departments of Ministry, were admitted to seem as if they acted a part under him, with a modesty that becomes all men, and with a confi- dence in him which was justified even in its extravagance by his superior abilities, had never in any instance presumed upon CHATHAM AND TOWNSHEXD. 157 any opinion of their own. Deprived of his guiding influence, they were whirled about, the sport of every gust, and easily driven into any port ; and as those who joined with them in manning the vessel were the most directly opposite to his opinions, measures, and character, and far the most artful and most powerful of the set, they easily prevailed, so as to seize upon the vacant, unoccupied, and derelict minds of his friends, and instantly they turned the vessel wholly out cf the course of his policy. As if it were to insult as well as to betray him, even long before the close of the first session of his administration, when every thing was publicly transacted, and with great parade, in his name, they made an Act declaring it highly just and expedient to raise a revenue in America. For even then, Sir, even before this splendid orb was entirely set, and while tin; western horizon was in a blaze with his descending glory, on the opposite quarter of the heavens arose another luminary, and for his hour became lord of the ascendant. This light, too, is parsed and set Tor ever. You understand, to 1)0 sure, that I speak of Charles Townshend, officially the reproducer of this fatal scheme, whom I cannot even now remember without some degree of sensibility. In truth, Sir, he was the delight and ornament of this House, and the charm of every private society which he honoured with his presence. Perhaps there never arose in this country, nor in any country, a man of a more pointed and finished wit, and (where his pas- sions were not concerned) of a more refined, exquisite, and penetrating judgment. IT he had not so great a stock as some have had, who ilourished formerly, of knowledge- long treasured up, he knew, better by far than any man I ever was acquainted with, how to bring together within a short time all that was necessary to establish, to illustrate, and to decorate that side of the question he supported. . He stated his matter skilfully and powerfully. He particularly excelled in a most luminous lanation and display of his subject. His style of argument was neither trite and vulgar nor subtile and abstruse. He hit the House just between wind and water. And, not being troubled with too anxious a zeal for any matter in question, he never more tedious or more earnest than the preconceived opinions and present temper of his hearers required, to whom he was always in perfect unison. He conformed exactly to the iper of the House ; and he seemed to guide, because he was always sure to follow it. I lie 1 ;; pardon, Sir, if, when I speak of this and of ether great ni"ii, I appear to digress in saying something of their characters. In this eventful history of the revolutions of America, the char- acters of such men are of much importance. Great men are the- 158 BURKE. guideposts and landmarks in the State. The credit of such men at Court or in the nation is the sole cause of all the public measures. It would be an invidious thing (most foreign, I trust, to what you think my disposition) to remark the errors into which the authority of great names has brought the nation, without doing justice at the same time to the great qualities whence that authority arose. The subject is instructive to those who wish to form themselves on whatever of excellence has gone before them. There arc many young members in the House (such of late has been the rapid succession of public men) who never saw that prodigy, Charles Townshond, nor of course know what a ferment he was able to excite in every thing by the violent ebullition of his mixed virtues and failings. For failings he had undoubtedly, many of us remember them: we are this day considering the effect of them. But he had no failings which were not owing to a noble cause, to an ardent, generous, perhaps an immoderate passion for fame ; a passion which is the instinct of all great souls. He worshipped that god- dess, wheresoever she appeared ; but he paid his particular de- votions to her in her favourite habitation, in her chosen temple, the House of Commons. Besides the characters of the individ- uals who compose our body, it is impossible, Mr. Speaker, not to observe that this House has a collective character of its own. That character, too, however imperfect, is not unamiable. Like all great public collections of men, you possess a marked love of virtue and an abhorrence of vice. But among vices there is none which the House abhors in the same degree with ob* Obstinacy, Sir, is certainly a great vice ; and in the changeful state of political affairs it is frequently the cause of great mis- chief. It- happens, however, very unfortunately, that almost the whole line of the great and masculine virtues, constancy, gravity, magnanimity, fortitude, fidelity, and firmness, are closely allied to this disagreeable quality, of which you ha\ < so just an abhorrence ; and, in their excess, all these virtues very easily fall into it. He who paid such a punctilious attention to all your feelings certainly took care not to shock them by that vice which is the most disgustful to you. Speech on American Taxation. STATE OF THINGS Itf FRANCE. 159 STATE OF THINGS IN FRANCE. SINCE the House had been prorogued in the Summer, much work was clone in France. The French had shown themselves the ablest, architects of ruin that had hitherto existed in the world. In that very short space of time they had completely pulled down to the ground their monarchy, their Church, their nobility, their law, their revenue, their army, their navy, their commerce, their arts, and their manufactures. They had done their business for us as rivals, in a way in which twenty Ka- millies or Blenheims could never have done it. Were we abso- lute conquerors, and France to lie prostrate at our feet, wo should be ashamed to send a commission to settle their affairs, which could impose so hard a law upon the French, and so de- structive of all their consequence as a nation, as that they had imposed on themselves. In the last age we were in danger of being entangled by the example of France in the net of a relentless despotism. It is not necessary to say any thing upon that example. It exists no longer. Our present danger 'from the example of a people, whose character knows no medium, is, with regard to govern- ment, a danger from anarchy; a danger of being led, through an admiration of successful fraud and violence, to an imitation of the excesses of an irrational, unprincipled, proscribing, confiscating, plundering, ferocious, bloody, and tyrannical de- mocracy. On the side of religion, the danger of their example is no longer from intolerance, but from atheism ; a foul, unnat- ural vice, foe to all the dignity and consolation of mankind; which seems in France, for a long time, to have been embodied into a faction, accredited, and almost avowed. He was so strongly opposed to any the least tendency towards the niffinx of introducing a democracy like theirs, as well as to 7 it -elf, that he would abandon his best friends, and join with ln^ worst, enemies, to oppose either the means or the end ; and to resist all violent exertions of the spirit of innovation, so ' Tho following paragraphs arc a portion of what is entitled, in full, "Sub- ptancf of the Speech, in the Debate on the Army Estimates, in the House of Commons, on Tuesday, the 9th day of February, 1790; comprehending a Discus- f-i'.n of the present. Condition of Affairs in Franco. 1790." Up to that time, the current of avowed feeling in Parliament seemed to be setting rather in favour of the doingH in France. Fox. especially, had spoken enthusiastically in praise of them. Burke's speech was the Ibvt, note of derided opposition to the new opin- ions : it took tho. House quite by surprise, and produced a very great impression. At- lirst be wa heard with nmUt a>toni*hment; but as he \vcnton the applause became loud and frequent; ani when he got through, it was pretty evident that ol'l England'* mighty heart, was with him See the next note. 1GO BURKE. distant from all principles of true and safe reformation, a spirit well calculated to overturn States, but perfectly unfit to amend them. He was no enemy to reformation. Almost every business in which he was much concerned, from the first day ho sat in that House to that hour, was a business of reformation ; and when he had not been employed in correcting, he had been employed in resisting, abuses. Some traces of this spirit in him now stand on their statute-book. In his opinion, any thing which unnecessarily tore to pieces the contexture of the State not only prevented all real reformation, but introduced evils which would call, but perhaps call in vain, for new reformation. The French have made their way, through the destruction of their country, to a bad constitution, when they were absolutely in possession of a good one. They were in possession of it the day the states met in separate orders. Their business, had they been either virtuous or wise, or had they been left to their own judgment, was to secure the stability and independence of the states, according to those orders, under the monarch on the throne. It was then their duty to redress grievances. Instead of redressing grievances, and improving the fabric of their State, to which they were called by their monarch, and sent by their country, they were made to take a very different course. They first destroyed all the balances and counterpoises which serve to fix the State, and to give it a steady direction ; and which furnish sure correctives to any violent spirit which may prevail in any of the orders. These balances exi.sted in their oldest Constitution ; and in the Constitution of this coun- try ; and in the Constitutions of all the countries of Europe. These they rashly destroyed, and then they melted down the whole into one incongruous, ill-connected mass. When they had done this, they instantly, and with the most atrocious perfidy and breach of all faith among men, laid the axe to the root of all property, and consequently of all national prosperity, by the principles they established, and the example they set, in confiscating all the possessions of the Church. They made and recorded a sort of institute and digest of anarchy, called the rights of man, in such a pedantic abuse of elementary principles as would have disgraced boys at school: but this declaration of rights was worse than trifling and pedantic in them ; as by their name and authority they systematically destroyed every hold of authority by opinion, religious or civil, on the minds of the people. By this mad declaration they sub- verted the State ; and brought on such calamities as no country, without a long war, has ever been known to suffer ; and which may in the end produce such a war, and perhaps many such. With them the question was not between despotism and lib. STATE OF THINGS- IN FRANCE. 161 erty. The sacrifice they made of the peace and power of their country was not made on the altar of freedom. Freedom, and n, better security for freedom than that they have taken, they might have had without any sacrifice at all. They brought themselves into all the calamities they suffer, not that through them they might obtain a British Constitution ; they plunged themselves headlong into those calamities, to prevent them- selves from settling into that Constitution, or into any thing resembling it. The worst effect of all their proceeding was on their military, which was rendered an army for every purpose but that of de- fence. It was not an army in corps and with discipline, und embodied under the respectable patriot citizens of the State in resisting tyranny. Nothing like it. It was the case of common soldiers deserting from their officers, to join a furious, licen- tious populace. It was a desertion to a cause, the real object of which was to level all those institutions, and to break all those connections, natural and civil, that regulate and hold to- gether the community by a chain of subordination ; to raise soldiers against their oilicers ; servants against their masters ; tradesmen against their customers ; artificers against their em- ployers; tenants against their landlords ; curates against their bishops ; and children against their parents. That this cause of theirs was not an enemy to servitude, but to society. He knew too well, and he felt as much as any man, how diffi- cult it was to accommodate a standing army to a free constitu- tion, or to any constitution. An armed disciplined body is, in. its essence, dangerous to liberty ; undisciplined, it is ruinous to society. Its component parts are, in the latter case, neither good citizens nor good soldiers. What have they thought of in France, under such a difficulty as almost puts the human facul- ties to a stand ? They have put their army under such a variety of principles of duty, that it is more likely to breed litigants, pettifoggers, and mutineers, than soldiers. They have set up, to balance their Crown army, another army, deriving under an- other authority, called a municipal army, a balance of armies not of orders. These latter they have destroyed with every mark of insult and oppression. States may, and they will best, vith a partition of civil powers. Armies cannot exist i;n, Dr. Uichard Price, an eminent dissent- ing minister, an amiable and benevolent man, and justly distinguished for his scientillc attainments, preached a sermon at the mceting-housc of Old Jewry, in furtherance of the cause; the worthy man being put so far beside himself by the prevailing delirium and frenzy, as to commit the extravagance here commented on so severely. Burke watched the progress of things in France with the in- intercst, his mind all the while growing bigger and bigger with tho theme, till at last it broke forth in this overwhelming torrent of eloquence and wisdom, which soon swept away whatever chances there may have boeu. of getting up a French Revolution in England. 1G4 BURKE. the first presentation of our Saviour in the Temple, and apply- ing it, with an inhuman and unnatural rapture, to the most horrid, atrocious, and afflicting spectacle that perhaps ever was exhibited to the pity and indignation of mankind. This leading in triumph, a thing in its best form unmanly and irreligious, which fills our preacher with such unhallowed transports, must shock, I believe, the moral taste of every well-born mind. Several English were the stupefied and indignant spectators of that triumph. It was (unless we have been strangely deceived) a spectacle more resembling a procession of American savages. entering into Onondaga, after some of their murders, called vic- tories, and leading into hovels hung round with scalps their cap- tives, overpowered with the scoffs and buffets of women as ferocious as themselves, much more than it resembled the tri- umphal pomp of a civilized, martial nation; if a civilized na- tion, or any men who had a sense of generosity, were capable of a personal triumph over the fallen and atllieted. This, my dear Sir, was not the triumph of France. I must believe that, as a nation, it overwhelmed you with shame and horror. I must believe that the National Assembly find them- selves in a state of the greatest humiliation in not being able to punish the authors of this triumph, or the actors in it ; and that they are in a situation in which any inquiry they may make upon the subject must be destitute even of the appearance of liberty or impartiality. The apology of that Assembly is found in their situation ; but when we approve what they must bear, it is in us the degenerate choice of a vitiated mind. With a compelled appearance of deliberation, they vote under the dominion of a stern necessity. They sit in the heart, as it were, of a foreign republic: they have their residence in a city whose constitution has emanated neither from the charter of their King nor from their legislative power. There they are surrounded by an army not raised either by the authority of their Crown or by their command ; and which, if they should order it to dissolve itself, would instantly dissolve them. There they sit, after a gang of assassins had driven away some hun- dreds of the members ; whilst those who held the same moder- ate principles, with more patience or better hope, continued every day exposed to outrageous insults and murderous threats. There a majority, sometimes real, sometimes pretended, captive itself, compels a captive King to issue as royal edicts, at third hand, the polluted nonsense of their most licentious and giddy coffee-houses. It is notorious that all their measures are de- cided before they are debated. It is beyond doubt> that, under the terror of the bayonet, and the lamp-post, and the torch to their houses, they are obliged to adopt all the crude and desper- THE REVOLUTION IN FRANCE. 1G5 ate measures suggested by clubs composed of a monstrous medley of all conditions, tongues, and nations. Among these are found persons, in comparison of whom Catiline would bo thought scrupulous, and Cethegus a man of sobriety and mod- eration. Nor is it in these clubs alone that the public measures are deformed into monsters. They undergo a previous distor- tion in academies, intended as so many seminaries for these clubs, which are set up in all the places of public resort. In these meetings of all sorts, every counsel, in proportion as it is daring and violent and perfidious, is taken for the mark of supe- rior genius. Humanity and compassion are ridiculed as the fruits of superstition and ignorance. Tenderness to individuals is considered as treason to the public. Liberty is always to bo estimated perfect as property is rendered insecure. Amidst as- sassination, massacre, and confiscation, perpetrated or medi- tated, they are forming plans for the good order of future soci- ety. Embracing in their arms the carcasses of base criminals, and promoting their relations on the title of their offences, they drive hundreds of virtuous persons to the same end, by forcing them to subsist by beggary or by crime. The Assembly, their organ, acts before them the farce of deliberation with as little decency as liberty. They act like the comedians of a fair before a riotous audience ; they act amidst the tumultuous cries of a mixed mob of ferocious men, and of women lost to shame, who, according to their insolent fancies, direct, control, applaud, explode them ; and sometimes mix and take their seats amongst them ; domineering over them with a strange mixture of servile petulance and proud, pre- sumptuous authority. As they have inverted order in all things, the gallery is in the place of the House. This Assembly, which overthrows kings and kingdoms, has not even the physi- ognomy and aspect of a grave legislative body, ncc color rtf, n- fr'nitt ulla scnatus. 1 They have a power given to them, like that of the evil principle, to subvert and destroy ; but none to construct, except such machines as may be fitted for further subversion and further destruction. Who is there that admires, and from the heart is attached to, national representative assemblies, but must turn with horror and disgust from such a profane burlesque and abominable perversion of that sacred institute? Lovers of monarchy, lovers of republics, must alike abhor it. The members of your Assembly must themselves groan under the tyranny of which they have all the shame, none of the direction, and little of the 1 Neither any character of command uor the slightest aspect or countenance of a senate. 1G6 BUIIKE. profit. I am sure many of the members who compose even the majority of that body must feel as I do, notwithstanding the applauses of the Revolution Society. Miserable King ! misera- ble Assembly ! How must that Assembly be silently scandal- ized with those of their members who could call a day, which seemed to blot the Sun out of heaven, un beau jour! 2 How must they be inwardly indignant at hearing others, who thought fit to declare tD them, "that the vessel of the State would fly forward in her course towards regeneration with more speed than ever," from the stiff gale of treason and murder which preceded our preacher's triumph ! What must they have felt, whilst, with outward patience and inward indignation, they heard of the slaughter of innocent gentlemen in their houses, that "the blood spilt was not the most pure ! " What must they have felt, when they were besieged by com- plaints of disorders which shook their country to its founda- tions, at being compelled coolly to tell the complainants that they were under the protection of the law, and that they would address the King (the captive King) to cause the laws to be enforced for their protection ; when the enslaved Ministers of that captive King had formally notified to them, that there was neither law, nor authority, nor power left to protect I What must t^icy have felt at being obliged, as a felicitation on the present new year, to request their captive King to .forget the stormy period of the last, on account of the great good which he was likely to produce to his people ; to the complete attain- ment of which good they adjourned the practical demonstra- tions of their loyalty, assuring him of their obedience, when he should no longer possess any authority to command ! This address was made with much good-nature and affection, to be sure. But among the revolutions in France must be reckoned a considerable revolution in their ideas of politeness. In England we arc said to learn manners at second-hand from your side of the water, and that we dress our behaviour in the frippery of France. If so, we are still in the old cut ; and have not so far conformed to the new Parisian mode of good breed- ing, as to think it quite in the most refined strain of delicate compliment (whether in condolence or congratulation) to say, to the most humiliated creature that crawls upon the earth, that great public benefits arc derived from the murder of his servants, the attempted assassination of himself and of his wife, and the mortification, disgrace, and degradation, that he has.personally suffered. It is a topic of consolation which our 2 This " auspicious day " was the 6th of October, 1789, when the " leailing in triumph " took place, which is described iu full a little further on. THE REVOLUTION IN FRANCE. 1G7 ordinary of Newgate would be too humane to use to a criminal at the foot of the gallows. I should have thought that the hangman of Paris, now that he is liberalized by the vote of the National Assembly, and is allowed his rank and arms in the herald's college of the rights of men, would be too generous, too gallant a man, too full of the sense of his new dignity, to employ that cutting consolation to any of the persons whom the leze nation* might bring under the administration of his executive power. A man is fallen indeed, when he is thus flattered. The anodyne draught of oblivion, 'thus drugged, is well calculated to preserve a galling wakcf ulness, and to feed the living ulcer of a corroding memory. Thus to administer the opiate potion of amnesty, powdered with all the ingredients of scorn and contempt, is to hold to his lips, instead of "the balm of hurt minds," the cup of human misery full to the brim, and to force him to drink it to the dregs. Yielding to reasons, at least as forcible as those which were so delicately urged in the compliment on the new year, the King of France will probably endeavour to forget these events and that compliment. But history, who keeps a durable record of all our acts, and exercises her awful censure over the pro- ceedings of all sorts of sovereigns, will not forget either those events, or the era of this liberal refinement in the intercourse of mankind. History will record that, on the morning of the Cth of ( )ctol)i.r, ITS-), the, King and Queen of France, after a day of confusion, alarm, dismay, and slaughter, lay down, under the pledged security of public faith, to indulge nature in a feu- hours of respite, and troubled, melancholy repose. From this .sleep the Queen was lirst startled by the voice of the sentinel at her door, who cried out to her to save herself by flight ; that this was the last proof of fidelity he could give ; that they were upon him, and he was dead. Instantly he was cut down. A band of cruel ruflians and assassins, reeking with his blood, rushed into the chamber of the Queen, and pierced with a hundred ^trokes of bayonets and poniards the bed, from v* hence this persecuted woman had but just time to fly almost naked, and, through ways unknown to the murderers, had pod t .1 >cek refuge at the feet of a King and husband, not ro of his own life for a moment. This King, to say no more of him, and this Queen, and their infant children, (who once would have been the pride and hope of a great and generous people,) were then forced to abandon the sanctuary of the most splendid palace in the world, which 3 Leze nation is treason against the nation. 1 G8 BUKKE. they left swimming in blood, polluted by massacre, and strewed with scattered limbs and mutilated carcasses. Thence they were conducted into the capital of their kingdom. Two had been selected from the unprovoked, unrcsisted, promiscuous slaughter, which was made of the gentlemen of birth and family who composed the King's body guard. These two gentlemen, with all the parade of an execution of justice, were cruelly and publicly dragged to the block, and beheaded in the great court of the palace. Their heads were stuck upon spears, and led the procession ; whilst the royal captives who followed in the train were slowly moved a'long, amidst the horrid yells, and shrilling screams, and frantic dances, and infamous con- tumelies, and all the unutterable abominations of the furies of Hell, in the abused shape of the vilest of women. After they had been made to taste, drop by drop, more than the bitterness of death, in the slow torture of a journey of twelve miles, protracted to six hours, they were, under a guard composed of those very soldiers who had thus conducted them through this famous triumph, lodged in one of the old palaces of Paris, now converted into a bastile for kings. Is this a triumph to be consecrated at altars? to be commem- orated with grateful thanksgiving? to be offered to the Divine Humanity with fervent prayer and enthusiastic ejaculation? These Theban and Thracian orgies, acted in France, and ap- plauded only in the Old Jewry, I assure you, kindle prophetic enthusiasm in the minds but of very few people in this king- dom : although a saint and apostle, who may have revelations of his own, and who has completely vanquished all the mean superstitions of the heart, may incline to think it piou.s and decorous to compare it with the entrance into the world of the Prince of Peace, proclaimed in a holy temple by a venerable sage, and not long before not worse announced by the voice of Angels to the quiet innocence of shepherds. At first I was at a loss to account for this fit of unguarded transport. 1 knew indeed that the sufferings of monarchs make a delicious repast to some sort of palates. There were rellec- tions which might serve to keep this appetite within some bounds of temperance. But, when I took one circumstance into my consideration, I was obliged to confess that much al- lowance ought to be made for the Society, and that the tempta- tion was too strong for common discretion: I mean, the cir- cumstance of the lo Pa?an of the triumph, the animating cry which called "for all the BISHOPS to be hanged on the lamp- posts," might well have brought forth a burst of enthusiasm on the foreseen consequences of this happy day. I allow to so much enthusiasm some little deviation from prudence. I allow THE REVOLUTION IN FRANCE. 169 this prophet to break forth into hymns of joy and thanksgiving on an event which appears like the precursor of the Millennium, and the projected Fifth Monarchy, in the destruction of all Church establishments. There was, however, (as in all human affairs there is,) in the midst of this joy, something to exercise the patience of these worthy gentlemen, and to try the long- suffering of their faith. The actual murder of the King and Queen, and their child, was wanting to the other auspicious cir- cumstances of this " beautiful day." The actual murder of the Bishops, though called for by so many holy ejaculations, was also wanting. A group of regicide and sacrilegious slaughter was indeed boldly sketched, but it was only sketched. It un- happily was left unfinished, in this great history-piece of the Massacre of Innocents. What hardy pencil of a great master, from the school of the rights of men, will finish it, is to be seen hereafter. The age has not yet the complete benefit of that diffusion of knowledge that has undermined superstition and error ; and the King of France wants another object or two to consign to oblivion, in consideration of all the good which is to arise from his own sufferings, and the patriotic crimes of an enlightened age. Although this work of our new light and knowledge did not go to the length that in all probability it was intended to be carried, yet I must think that such treatment of any human creatures must be shocking to any but those who are made for accomplishing revolutions. But I cannot stop here. Influenced by the inborn feelings of my nature, and not being illuminated by a single ray of this new-sprung modern light, I confess to you, Sir, that the exalted rank of the persons suffering, and particularly the sex, the beauty, and the amiable qualities of the descendant of so many kings and emperors, with the ten- der age of royal infants, insensible only through infancy and innocence of the cruel outrages to which their parents were exposed, instead of being a subject of exultation, adds not a litile to my sensibility on that most melancholy occasion. I hear that the august person, who was the principal object of our preacher's triumph, though he supported himself, felt much on that shameful occasion. As a man, it became him to feel for hi* \vifo and his children, and the faithful guards of his person, that were massacred in cold blood about him; as a prince, it became him to feel for the strange and frightful trans- formation of his civilized subjects, and to be more grieved for them than solicitous for himself. It derogates little from his fortitude, while it adds infinitely to the honour of his human- ity. I am very sorry to say it, very sorry indeed, that such per- 170 BURKE. sonages are in a situation in which it is not becoming in us to praise the virtues of the great. I hear, and I rejoice to hear, that the great lady, the other ob- ject of the triumph, has borne that day, (one is interested that beings made for suffering should suffer well,) and that she boars all the succeeding days, that she bears the imprisonment of her husband, and her own captivity, and the exile of her friends, and the insulting adulation of addresses, and the whole weight of her accumulated wrongs, with a serene patience, in a manner suited to her rank and race, and becoming the offspring of a sovereign distinguished for her piety and her courage: 4 that, like her, she has lofty sentiments ; that she feels with the dig- nity of a Roman matron ; that in the last extremity she will save herself from the last disgrace ; and that, if she must fall, she will fall by no ignoble hand. It is now sixteen or seventeen years since I saw the Queen of France, then the Dauphiness, at Versailles ; and surely never lighted on this orb, which she hardly seemed to touch, a more delightful vision. I saw her just above the horizon, decorating and cheering the elevated sphere she just began to move in, glittering like the morning-star, full of life, and splendour, and joy. O, what a revolution! and what a heart must I have to contemplate without emotion that elevation and that fall! Lit- tle did I dream, when she added titles of veneration to those of enthusiastic, distant, respectful love, that she would ever bo obliged to carry the sharp antidote against disgrace concealed in that bosom: little did I dream that I should have lived to see such disasters fallen upon her in a nation of gallant men, in a nation of men of honour, and of cavaliers. I thought ten thou- sand swords must have leaped from their scabbards to avenue even a look that threatened her with insult. 5 But the age of chivalry is gone. That of sophisters, economists, and calcula- tors, has succeeded ; and the glory of Europe is extinguished for ever. Never, never more shall we behold that generous loyalty to rank and sex, that proud submission, that dignified obedience, that subordination of the heart, which kept alive, even in servitude itself, the spirit of an exalted freedom. The 4 Marie Antoinette, the Queen of Louis the Sixteenth, was the daughter of Maria Theresa, the heroic Empress of Austria. 5 Some persons, and among them Sir Philip Francis, one of Burke's warmest friends, censured this famous passage, not only as containing bad doctrine, but as written in bad taste. Robert Hall, the distinguished Baptist minister, a man of great eloquence and power, but utterly opposed to Burke's opinions, gave it as his judgment, that " those who could read without rapture what Burke had written of the unhappy Queen of France, might have merits as rcasoners, but ought at once to resign all pretensions to be considered men of taste." THE REVOLUTION IN FRANCE. 171 unbought grace of life, the cheap defence of nations, the nurse of manly sentiment and heroic enterprise, is gonel It is gone, that sensibility of principle, that chastity of honour, which felt a stain like a wound, which inspired courage whilst it mitigated ferocity, which ennobled whatever it touched, and under which vice itself lost half its evil, by losing all its grossness. This mixed system of opinion and sentiment had its origin in the ancient chivalry ; and the principle, though varied in its ap- pearance by the varying state of human affairs, subsisted and influenced through a long succession of generations, even to the time we live in. If it should ever be totally extinguished, the loss I fear will be great. It is this which has given its character to modern Europe. It is this which has distinguished it under all its forms of government, and distinguished it to its advan- tage, from the States of Asia, and possibly from those States which nourished in the most brilliant periods of the antique world. It was this which, without confounding ranks, had pro- duced a noble equality, and handed it down through all the gra- dations of social life. Jt was this opinion which mitigated kings into companions, and raised private men to be fellows with kings. Without force or opposition, it subdued the fierceness of pride and power; it obliged sovereigns to submit to the soft collar of social esteem, compelled stern authority to submit to elegance, and gave a dominating vanquisher of laws to be sub- dued by manners. But no\v all is to be changed. All the; pleasing illusions which made power gentle and obedience liberal, which harmo- nized the different shades of life, and which, by a bland assimi- lation, incorporated into politics the sentiments which beautify and soften private society, are to be dissolved by this new con- quering empire of light and reason. All the decent drapery of life is to be rudely torn off. All the superadded ideas, fur- ni>hed from the wardrobe of a moral imagination, which the heart owns and the understanding ratines, as necessary to cover the defects of our naked, shivering nature, and to raise it to dignit y in our own est imat ion, are to be exploded as a ridiculous, absurd, and antiquated fashion. On this scheme of things, a king is but a man, a queen is but a woman ; a woman is but an animal, and an animal not of the highest order. All homage paid to the sex in general as such, and without distinct views, is to be regarded as romance and folly, llegicide and parricide and sacrilege are but fictions of superstition, corrupting jurisprudence by destroying its simplic- ity. The murder of a king, or a queen, or a bishop, or a father, is only common homicide ; and if the people are by any chance, or in any way, gainers by it, a sort of homicide much the most 173 BURKE. pardonable, and into which we ought not to make too severe a scrutiny. On the scheme of this barbarous philosophy, which is the off- spring of cold hearts and muddy understandings, and which is as void of solid wisdom as it is destitute of all tuste and elegance, laws are to be supported only by their own terrors, and by the concern which each individual may find in them from his own private speculations, or can spare to them from his own private interests. In the groves of their academy, at the end of every vista, you see nothing but the gallows. Nothing is left which engages the affections on the part of the commonwealth. On the principles of this mechanic philosophy, our institutions can never be embodied, if I may use the expression, in persons ; so as to create in us love, veneration, admiration, or attachment. But that sort of reason which banishes the affections is incapa- ble of filling their place. These public affections, combined with manners, are required sometimes as supplements, some- times as correctives, always as aids to law. The precept given by a wise man, as well as a great critic, for the construction of poems, is equally true as to States: Non satis cst pulchra csse poemata, dulcia sunto* There ought to be a system of manners in every nation, which a well-formed mind would be disposed to relish. To make us love our country, our country ought to be lovely. But power, of some kind or other, will survive the shock in which manners and opinions perish ; and it will lind other and worse means for its support. The usurpation which, in order to subvert ancient institutions, has destroyed ancient principles, will hold power by arts similar to those by which it has acquired it. When the old feudal and chivalrous spirit of fcalti/, which, by freeing kings from fear, freed both kings and subjects from the precautions of tyranny, shall be extinct in the minds of men, plots and assassinations will be anticipated by preventive murder and preventive confiscation, and that long roll of grim and bloody maxims which form the political code of all power, not standing on its own honour, and the honour of those who are to obey it. Kings will be tyrants from policy, when subjects are rebels from principle. When ancient opinions and rules of life are taken away, the loss cannot possibly be estimated. From that moment we have no compass to govern us ; nor can we know distinctly to what port we steer. Europe, undoubtedly, taken in a mass, was in a flourishing condition the day on which your revolution was completed. How much of that prosperous state was owing to C It is not enough that poems be beautiful; they must be sweet also. THE REVOLUTION IN FRANCE. 1 ?'3 the spirit of our old manners and opinions, is not easy to say ; but as such causes cannot be indifferent in their operation, we must presume that, on the whole, their operation was beneficial. We are but too apt to consider things in the state in which we find them, without sufficiently adverting to the cause by which they have been produced, and possibly may be upheld. Noth- ing is more certain than that our manners, our civilization, and all the good things which are connected with manners and with civilization, have, in this European world of ours, depended for ages upon two principles ; and were indeed the result of both combined ; I mean the spirit of a gentleman, and the spirit of religion. The nobility and the clergy, the one by profession, the other by patronage, kept learning in existence, even in the midst of arms and confusions, and whilst governments were rather in their causes than formed. Learning paid back what it received to nobility and to priesthood; and paid it with usury, by enlarging their ideas, and by furnishing their minds. Happy if they had all continued to know their indissoluble union, and their proper place ! Happy if learning, not debauched by ambi- tion, had been satisfied to continue the instructor, and not aspired to be master ! Along with its natural protectors and guardians, learning will be cast into the mire, and trodden down under the hoofs of a swinish multitude. 7 If, as I suspect, modern letters owe more than they are al- ways willing to own to ancient manners, so do other interests which we value full as much as they are worth. Even com- merce and trade and manufacture, the gods of our economical politicians, are themselves perhaps but creatures ; are them- selves but effects, which, as first causes, we choose to worship. They certainly grew under the same shade in which learning flourished. They too may decay with their natural protecting principles. With you, for the present at least, they all threaten to disappear together. Where trade and manufactures are wanting 'to a people, and the spirit of nobility and religion re- mains, sentiment supplies, and not always ill supplies, their place ; but if commerce and the arts should be lost in an experi- 7 Of course the author here had in mind the passage of Scripture, "Neither cast ye y<-ur jx-arls before swine, lest they trample them under their feet, and turn again and rend you." An outcry was raised against Burke for the phrase ori/u'.s/t multitude, as if he meant to spit scorn at the common people generally. He meant n<> such thing. And the words proved prophetic, being afterwards fulfilled to the letter, especially in the person of M. Bailly, a man highly dis. tingui.shod for culture and liberal attainments, who took a leading part in the revolutionary movement, for which he was made Mayor of Paris, and who was among the first to be rent in pieces by the multitude before whom he had cast Lid intellectual pearld. This was in the Fall of 1793. 174 BUKKE. merit to try how well a State may stand without these old fun- damental principles, what sort of a thing must be a nation of gross, stupid, ferocious, and, at the same time, poor and sordid barbarians, destitute of religion, honour, or manly pride, pos- sessing nothing at present, and hoping for nothing hereafter? I wish you may not be going fast, and by the shortest cut, to that horrible and disgustful situation. Already there appears a poverty of conception, a coarseness and vulgarity, in all the proceedings of the Assembly and of all their instructors. Their liberty is not liberal. Their science is presumptuous ignorance. Their humanity is savage and brutal. It is not clear whether in England we learned those grand and decorous principles and manners, of which considerable traces yet remain, from you, or whether you took them from us. But to you, I think, we trace them best. You seem to me to be gentis incunabula nostrw, 9 France has always more or less influ- enced manners in England ; and when your fountain is choked up and polluted, the stream will not run long, or not run clear, with us, or perhaps with any nation. This gives all Europe, in my opinion, but too close and connected a concern in what is done in France. Excuse me, therefore, if I have dwelt too long on the atrocious spectacle of the Gth of October, 1789, or have given too much scope to the reflections which have arisen in my mind on occasion of the most important of all revolutions, which may be dated from that day, I mean a revolution in sen- timents, manners, and moral opinions. As things now stand, with every thing respectable destroyed without us, and an at- tempt to destroy within us every principle of respect, one is almost forced to apologize lor harbouring the common feelings of men. Why do I feel so differently from the Reverend Dr. Price, and those of his lay flock who will choose to adopt the senti- ments of his discourse? For this plain reason, because it is natural I should ; because we are so made, as to be affected at such spectacles with melancholy sentiments upon the unstable condition of mortal prosperity, and the tremendous uncertainty of human greatness ; because in those natural feelings we learn great lessons ; because in events like these our passions instruct our reason ; because when kings are hurled from their thrones by the Supreme Director of this great drama, and become the objects of insult to the base, and of pity to the good, we behold such disasters in the moral, as we should behold a miracle in the physical order of things. AVe are alarmed into reflection ; our minds (as it has long since been 8 The nursery or cradle of our nation. THE REVOLUTION IN FRANCE. 175 observed) are purified by terror and pity ; our weak, unthinking pride is humbled under the dispensations of a mysterious wisdom. Some tears might be drawn from me, if such a spectacle were exhibited on the stage. I should be truly ashamed of finding in myself that superficial, theatric sense of painted distress, whilst I could exult over it in real life. With such a perverted mind, I could never venture to show my face at a tragedy. People would think the tears that Garrick for- merly, or that Siddons not long since, extorted from me, were the tears of hypocrisy ; I should know them to be the tears of folly. Indeed the theatre is a better school of moral sentiments than churches, where the feelings of humanity are thus out- raged. Poets who have to deal with an audience not yet graduated in the school of the rights of men, and who must apply themselves to the moral constitution of the heart, would not dare to produce such a triumph as a matter of exultation. There, whore men follow their natural impulses, they would not bear the odious maxims of a Machiavelian policy, whether applied to the attainment of monarchical or democratic tyranny. They would reject them on the modern, as they once did on the ancient stage, whore they could not bear even the hypo- thetical proposition of such wickedness in the mouth of a personated tyrant, though suitable to the character he sus- tained. No theatric audience in Athens would boar what has been borne, in the midst of the real tragedy of this triumphal duy, a principal actor weighing, as it were in scales hung in a shop of horrors, so much actual crime against so much contin- gent advantage, smd, after putting in and out weights, declaring that the balance was on the side of the advantages. They would not bear to >ee the crimes of new democracy posted as in a ledger against the crimes of old despotism, and the book- keepers of politics finding democracy still in debt, but by no m.-ans unable or unwilling to pay the balance. In the theatre, the first intuitive glance, without any elaborate procoss of '.iiing, will .show that this method of political computation would justify every extent of crime. They would see that on those principles, even where the very worst acts were not perpetrated, it was owing rather to the fortune of the conspira- tors than to their parsimony in the expenditure of treachery and blood. They would soon see that criminal means once tolerated are soon preferred. They present a shorter cut to the, object than through the highway of the moral virtues. Justifying perfidy and murder for public benefit, public benefit would soon become the. pretext, and perfidy and murder the end ; until rapacity, malice, revenge, and fear more dreadful 176 BURKE. than revenge, could satiate their insatiable appetites. Such must be the consequences of losing, in the splendour of these triumphs of the rights of men, all natural sense of wrong and right. To tell you the truth, my dear Sir, I think the honour of our nation to be somewhat concerned in the disclaimer of the proceedings of this Society of the Old Jewry and the London Tavern. 9 I have no man's proxy. I speak only for myself, when I disclaim, as I do with all possible earnestness, all com- munion with the actors in that triumph, or with the admirers of it. When I assert any thing else, as concerning the people of England, I speak from observation, not from authority ; but I speak from the experience I have had in a pretty extensive and mixed communication with the inhabitants of this king- dom, of all descriptions and ranks, and after a course of atten- tive observation, began early in life, and continued for nearly forty years. I have often been astonished, considering that we are divided from you but by a slender dyke of about twenty- four miles, and that the mutual intercourse between the two countries has lately been very great, to find how little you seem to know of us. I suspect that this is owing to your forming a judgment of this nation from certain publications, which do, very erroneously, if they do at all, represent the opinions and dispositions generally prevalent in England. The vanity, restlessness, petularice, and spirit of intrigue, of several petty cabals, who attempt to hide their total want of consequence in bustle and noise, and pufling, and mutual quotation of each other, make you imagine that our contemptuous neglect of their abilities is a mark of general acquiescence in their opin- ions. No such thing, I assure you. Because half a dozen grasshoppers under a fern make the field ring with their impor- tunate chink, whilst thousands of great cattle, reposing beneath the shadow of the British oak, chew the cud and are silent, pray do not imagine that those who make the noise are the only inhabitants of the field; that of course they are many in number ; or that^ after all, they are other than the little, shrivelled, meagre, hopping, though loud and troublesome, insects of the hour. I almost venture to affirm that not one in a hundred amongst us participates in the "triumph" of the Revolution Society. If the King and Queen of Erance, and their children, were to fall into our hands by the chance of war, in the most acrimonious 9 After listening to Dr. Price's sermon, the club adjourned to the London Tavern, \vhere they celebrated the millennial dawn with a more natural and in- nocent sort offcast. THE REVOLUTION IN FRANCE. 177 of all hostilities, (I deprecate such an event, I deprecate such hostility,) they would be treated with another sort of tri- umphal entry into London. We formerly have had a King of France in that situation : 10 you have read how he was treated by the victor in the field ; and in what manner he was after- wards received in England. Four hundred years have gone over us ; but I believe we are not materially changed since that period. Thanks to our sullen resistance to innovation, thanks to the cold sluggishness of our national character, we still bear the stamp of our forefathers. We have not (as I conceive) lost the generosity and dignity of thinking of the fourteenth century; nor as yet have we subtilized ourselves into savages. We are not the converts of Rousseau ; we are not the disciples of Voltaire ; Helvetius has made no progress amongst us. Atheists are not our preachers ; madmen are not our lawgivers. We know that we have made no discoveries, and we think that no discoveries are to be made, in morality; nor many in the great principles of government, nor in the ideas of liberty, which were understood long before we were born, altogether as well as they will be after the grave has heaped its mould upon our presumption, and the silent tomb shall have imposed its law on our pert loquacity. In England we have not yet been completely embowelled of our natural entrails ; we still feel within us, and we cherish and cultivate, those inbred sentiments which are the faithful guardians, the active monitors of our duty, the true supporters of all liberal and manly morals. We have not been drawn and trussed, in order that we may be filled, like stuffed birds in a museum, with chaff and rags and paltry blurred shreds of paper about the rights of man. We preserve the whole of our feelings still native and entire, unsophisticated by pedantry and infidelity. We have real hearts of flesh and blood beating in our bosoms. Wt- iVar God ; we look up with awe to kings ; with affection to parliaments; with duty to magistrates; with reverence to priests ; and with respect to nobility. Why ? Because, when 10 The allusion is to King John of Franco, who fell a captive into the hands of lid \\ard Die Black Prince at the battle of Poitiers, in September, 1356. The next Spring, Edward landed, with his royal captive, at Sandwich, and proceed- ed thence, by easy journeys, to London. I quote from Hume: "The prisoner was clad in royal apparel, and mounted on a white steed, distinguished by its ize and beauty, and by the. rich ness of its furniture. The conqueror rode by his side in meaner attire, and carried by a black palfrey. In this situation, more glorious than all the insolent parade of a Roman triumph, he passed through the streets of London, and presented the King of France to his father, who advanced to meet him, and received him with the same courtesy as if ho had been a neighbouring potentate that had voluntarily come to pay him a friendly visit." 178 BURKE. such ideas are brought before our minds, it is natural to be so affected ; because all other feelings are false and spurious, and tend to corrupt our minds, to vitiate our primary morals, to render us unfit for rational liberty ; and, by teaching us a ser- vile, licentious, and abandoned insolence, to be our low sport for a few holidays, to make us perfectly fit for, and justly deserving of, slavery through the whole course of our lives. You see, Sir, that in this enlightened age I am bold enough to confess that we are generally men of untaught feelings ; that, instead of casting away all our old prejudices, we cherish them to a very considerable degree, and, to take more shame to our- selves, we cherish them because they are prejudices ; and the longer they have lasted, and the more generally they have pre- vailed, the more we cherish them. "NVe are afraid to put men to live and trade each on his own private stock of reason ; be- cause we suspect that this stock in each man is small, and that the individuals would do better to avail themselves of the gen- eral bank and capital of nations and of ages. Many of our men of speculation, instead of exploding general prejudices, employ their sagacity to discover the latent wisdom which prevails in them. If they find what they seek, and they seldom fail, they think it more wise to continue the prejudice, with the reason involved, than to cast away the coat of prejudice, and to l,>ave nothing but the naked reason ; because prejudice, with its iva- son, has a motive to give action to that reason, and an affection which will give it permanence. Prejudice is of ready applica- tion in the emergency ; it previously engages the mind in a steady course of wisdom and virtue, and does not leave the. man hesitating in the moment of decision, sceptical, puzzled, and unresolved. Prejudice renders a man's virtue his habit ; and not a series of unconnected acts. Through just prejudices his duty becomes a part of his nature. Your literary men, and your politicians, and so do the whole clan of the enlightened among us, essentially differ in these points. They have no respect for the wisdom of others ; but they pay it off by a very full measure of confidence in their own. With them it is a sufficient motive to destroy an old scheme of things, because it is an old one. As to the new, they are in no sort of fear with regard to the duration of a building run up in haste ; because duration is no object to those who think little or nothing has been done before their time, and who place all their hopes in discovery. They conceive, very systematically, that all things which give perpetuity are mischievous, and therefore they are at inexpiable war with all establishments. They think that government may vary like modes of dress, and with as little ill effect ; that there needs no principle of attach- THE REVOLUTION IN FRANCE. 179 ment, except a sense of present conveniency, to any constitution of the State. They always speak as if they were of opinion that there is a singular species of compact between them and their magistrates, which binds the magistrate, but which has nothing reciprocal in it ; but that the majesty of the people has a right to dissolve it without any reason, but its will. Their attach- ment to their country itself is only so far as it agrees with some of their fleeting projects ; it begins and ends with that scheme of polity which falls in with their momentary opinion. These doctrines, or rather sentiments, seem prevalent with your new statesmen. But they are wholly different from those on which we have always acted in this country. I hear it is sometimes given out in France, that what is doing among you is after the example of England. I beg leave to aflirm that scarcely any thing done with you has originated from the practice or the prevalent opinions of this people, either in the act or in the spirit of the proceeding. Let me add, that we are as unwilling to learn these lessons from France, as we arc sure that we never taught them to that nation. The cabals here, who take a sort of share in your transactions, as yet con- sist of but a handful of people. If unfortunately by their intrigues, their sermons, their publications, and by a confidence derived from an expec of ages, that ninety-nine in a hundred of the people of England would not prefer to impiety. We shall never be such fools as to call in an enemy to the substance of any system to remove its corruptions, to supply its defects, or to perfect its construc- tion. If our religious tenets should ever want a further elucida- tion, we shall not call on atheism to explain them. We shall not light up our temple from that unhallowed fire. It will be illuminated with other lights. It will be perfumed with other incense than the infectious stuff which is imported by the THE REVOLUTION IX FRANCE. .181 smugglers of adulterated metaphysics. If our ecclesiastical es- tablishment should want a revision, it is not avarice or rapacity, public or private, that we shall employ for the audit, or receipt, or application of its consecrated revenue. Violently condem- ning neither the Greek nor the Armenian, nor, since heats are subsided, the Roman system of religion, we prefer the Protes- tant ; not because we think it has less of the Christian religion in it, but because, in our judgment, it has more. We are Prot- estants, not from indifference, but from zeal. We know, and it is our pride to know, that man is by his con- stitution a religious animal ; that atheism is against, not only our reason, but our instincts ; and that it cannot prevail long. But if, in the moment of riot, and in a drunken delirium from the hot spirit drawn out of the alembic of Hell, which in France is now so furiously boiling, we should uncover our nakedness, by throwing off that Christian religion which has hitherto been our boast and comfort, and one great source of civilization amongst us, and amongst many other nations, we are apprehen- sive (being well aware that the mind will not endure a void) that some uncouth, pernicious, and degrading superstition might take the; place of it. F<>r that reason, before we take from our establishment the natural, human means of estimation, and give it up to con- tempt, as you have done, and in doing it have incurred the pen- alties you well deserve to suftVr, we desire that some other may be presented to us in the place of it. We shall then form our judgment. On these ideas, instead of quarrelling with establishments, as some do, who have made a philosophy and a religion of their hostility to such institutions, we cleave closely to them. Our Church establishment is the first of our prejudices, not a preju- dice destitute of reason, but involving in it profound and exten- sive wisdom. It is first, and last, and midst in our minds. For, taking ground on that religious system of which we are now in -ion, we continue to act on the early-received and uniformly-continued sense of mankind. That sense not only, like- a wise architect, hath built up the august fabric of States, but like a provident proprietor, to preserve the structure from profanation and ruin, as a sacred temple purged from all the impurities of fraud and violence and injustice and tyranny, huth solemnly and for ever consecrated the commonwealth, and all that olliciate in it. This consecration is made, that all who administer in the government of men, in which they stand in the person of (iod himself, should have high and worthy no- tion-, of their function and destination ; that their hope should be full of immortality ; that they should not look to the paltry 182 15URKE. pelf of the moment, nor to the temporary and transient praise of the vulgar, but to a solid, permanent existence, in the perma- nent part of their nature, and to a permanent fame and glory, in the example they leave as a rich inheritance to the world. Such sublime principles ought to be infused into persons of exalted situations ; and religious establishments provided, that may continually revive and enforce them. Every sort of moral, every sort of civil, every sort of politic institution, aiding the rational and natural ties that connect the human understanding and affections to the Divine, are not more than is necessary, in order to build up that wonderful structure, Man; whose prerog- ative it is, to be in a great degree a creature of his own mak- ing ; and who, when made as he ought to be made, is destined to hold no trivial place in the creation. But whenever man is put over men, as the better nature ought ever to preside, in that case more particularly he should as nearly as possible be ap- proximated to his perfection. The consecration of the State, by a state religious establish- ment, is necessary also to operate with a wholesome awe upon free citizens ; because, in order to secure their freedom, they must enjoy some determinate portion of power. To them therefore a religion connected with the State, and with their duty towards it, becomes even more necessary than in such so- cieties where the people, by the terms of their subjection, arc confined to private sentiments, and the management of their own family concerns. All persons possessing any portion of power ought to be strongly and awfully impressed with an idea that they act in trust; and that they are to account for their conduct in that trust to the one great Master, Author, and Founder of society. This principle ought even to be more strongly impressed upon the minds of those who compose the collective sover- eignty than upon those of single princes. Without instruments, these princes can do nothing. Whoever uses instruments, in finding helps, finds also impediments. Their power is therefore by no means complete ; nor are they safe in extreme abuse. Such persons, however elevated by flattery, arrogance, and self- opinion, must be sensible that, whether covered or not by p,i- tive law, in some way or other they are accountable even here for the abuse of their trust. If they are not cut off by a rebel- lion of their people, they may be strangled by the very janissa- ries kept for their security against all other rebellion. Thus we have seen the King of France sold by his soldiers for an in- crease of pay. But where popular authority is absolute and unrestrained, the people have an infinitely greater, because a far better-founded, confidence in their own power. They are THE REVOLUTION" IX FRANCE. 183 themselves, in a great measure, their own instruments. They are nearer to their objects. Besides, they are less under re- sponsibility to one of the greatest controlling powers on Earth, the sense of fame and estimation. The share of infamy that is likely to fall to the lot of each individual in public acts is small indeed ; the operation of opinion being in the inverse ratio to the number of those who abuse power. Their own approbation of their own acts has to them the appearance of a public judg- ment in their favour. A perfect democracy is therefore the most shameless thing in the world. As it is the most shainc- lc>>, it is also the most fearless. No man^tppreliends in his person that he can be made subject to punishment. Certainly the people at large never ought ; for, as all punishments are for example towards the conservation of the people at large, the people at large can never become the subject of punishment by any human hand. It is therefore of infinite importance that they should not be suffered to imagine that their will, any more than that of kings, is the standard of right and wrong. They ought to bo persuaded that they are full as little entitled, and far less qualified, with safety to themselves, to use any arbitrary power whatsoever ; that therefore they are not, under a false show of liberty, but, in truth, by exercising an unnatural, in- verted domination, tyrannically to exact from those who offici- ate in the State, not an entire devotion to their interest, which is their right, but an abject submission to their occasional Avill ; extinguishing thereby, in all those who serve them, all moral principle, all sense of dignity, all use of judgment, and all con- sistency of character ; whilst by the very same process they give themselves up a proper, a suitable, but a most contempti- ble prey to the servile ambition of popular sycophants or courtly flatterers. When the people have emptied themselves of all the lust of selfish will, which without religion it is utterly impossible they hould; when they are conscious that they exercise, and exercise perhaps in a higher link of the order of delegation, the power, which to be legitimate must be according to that eternal, immutable law, in which will and reason are the same, they M ill be more careful how they place power in base and incapa- ble hands. In their nomination to office, they will not appoint to the exercise of authority, as to a pitiful job, but as to a holy function ; not according to their sordid, selfish interest, nor to their wanton caprice, nor to their arbitrary will ; but they will confer that power (which any man may well tremble to give <-r t.) receive) on those only in whom they may discern that predominant proportion of active virtue and wisdom, taken together and fitted to the charge, such as, in the great and in- 184 BURKE. evitable mixed mass of human imperfections and infirmities, is to be found. When they are habitually convinced that no evil can be ac- ceptable, either in the act or the permission, to Him whose es- sence is good, they will be better able to extirpate out of the minds of all magistrates, civil, ecclesiastical, or military, any thing that bears the least resemblance to a proud and lawless domination. But one of the first and most leading principles on which the commonwealth and the laws are consecrated is, lest the tempo- rary possessors ai^d life-renters in it, unmindful of what they have received from their ancestors, or of what is due to their posterity, should act as if they won: the entire masters; that they should not think it among their rights to cut off the entail, or commit waste on the inheritance, by destroying at their pleas- ure the whole original fabric of their society; hazarding to leave to those who come after them a ruin instead of an habita- tion ; and teaching these successors as little to respeet their contrivances, as they had themselves respected the institutions of their forefathers. By this unprincipled facility of changing the State-as often, and as much, and in as many ways, as there are floating fancies or fashions, the whole chain and continuity of the commonwealth would be broken. No one generation could link with another. Men would become little better than the Hies of a Summer. And, first of all, the science of jurisprudence, the pride of the human intellect, which, with all its defects, redundancies, and errors, is the collected reason of ages, combining the principles of original justice with the infinite variety of human concerns, as a heap of old exploded errors, would be no longer studied. Personal self-sufficiency and arrogance (the certain attendants upon all those who have never experienced a wis- dom greater than their own) would usurp the tribunal. Of course no certain laws, establishing invariable grounds of hope" and fear, would keep the actions of men in a certain course, in- direct them to a certain end. Nothing stable in the modes of holding property, or exercising function, could form a solid ground on which any parent could speculate in the education of his offspring, or in a choice for their future establishment in the world. No principles would be early worked into the habits. As soon as the most able instructor had completed his laborious course of institution, instead of sending forth his pupil accomplished in a virtuous discipline, fitted to procure him attention and respect in his place in society, he would find every thing altered ; and that he had turned out a poor crea- ture to the contempt and derision of the world, ignorant of the THE REVOLUTION" IX FRANCE. 185 true grounds of estimation. Who would insure a tender and delicate sense of honour to beat almost with the first pulses of ihe heart, when no man could know what would be the test of honour in a nation, continually varying the standard of its coin? No part of life would retain its acquisitions. Barbarism with regard to science and literature, unskilfulness with regard to arts and manufactures, would infallibly succeed to the want of a steady education and settled principle ; and thus the commonwealth itself would, in a few generations, crumble away, be disconnected into the dust and powder of individu- ality, and at length dispersed to all the winds of heaven. To avoid, therefore, the evils of inconstancy and versatility, ten thousand times worse than those of obstinacy and the blind- est prejudice, we have consecrated the State, that no man should approach to look into its defects or corruptions but with due caution; that he should never dream of beginning its reforma- tion by its subversion ; that he should approach to the faults of the State as to the wounds of a father, with pious awe and tivmbling solicitude. I5y this wise prejudice we are taught to look with horror on the children of their country, who are prompt rashly to hack that aged parent in pieces, and put him into the kettle of magicians, in hopes that by their poisonous weeds and wild incantations they may regenerate the paternal constitution, and renovate t heir father's life-. Society is indeed a contract. Subordinate contracts for objects of mere occasional interest may be dissolved at pleas- ure ; but. the State ought not to be considered as nothing better than a partnership agreement in a trade of pepper and coffee, calico or tobacco, or some other such low concern, to be taken up for a little temporary interest, and to be dissolved by the fancy of the parties. It is to be looked on with other rever- ence ; because it is not a partnership in things subservient only to the gross animal existence of a temporary and perishable nature. It is a partnership in all science ; a partnership in all art ; a partnership in every virtue, and in all perfection. As the ends of such a partnership cannot be obtained in many generations, it becomes a partnership not only between those who are living, but between those who are living, those who are dead, and those who are to be born. Each contract of each M-nlar State is but a clause in the great primeval contract of ;ial society, linking the lower with the higher natures, connecting tin- visible and invisible, world, according to a fixed compact sanctioned by the inviolable oath which holds all physical and all moral natures each in their appointed place. This law is not subject to the will of those, who by an obliga- tion above them, and infinitely superior, are bound to submit 186 BURKE. their will to that law. The municipal corporations of that universal kingdom are not morally at liberty at their pleasure, and on their speculations of a contingent improvement, wholly to separate and tear asunder the bands of their subordinate community, and to dissolve it into an unsocial, uncivil, uncon- nected chaos of elementary principles. It is the first and supreme necessity only, a necessity that is not chosen, but chooses, a necessity paramount to deliberation, that admits no discussion, and demands no evidence, which alone can justify a resort to anarchy. This necessity itself is no exception to the rule ; because this necessity itself is a part too of that moral and physical disposition of things to which man must be obedient by consent or force : but if that which is only submis- sion to necessity should be made the object of choice, the law is broken, Nature is disobeyed, and the rebellious are outlawed, cast forth, and exiled, from this world of reason and order, and peace and virtue, ami fruitful penitence, into the antagonist world of madness, discord, vice, confusion, and unavailing sorrow. These, my dear Sir, arc, were, and, I think, long will be, the sentiments of not the least learned and reflecting part of this kingdom. They who are included in this description form their opinions on such grounds as such persons ought to form them. The less inquiring receive them from an authority, which those whom Providence dooms to live on trust need not be ashamed to rely on. These two sorts of men move in the same direction, though in a different place. They both move with the order of the universe. They all know or feel this great ancient truth: " Quod illi principi et prsepotenti Deo qui omncm hunc mundum regit, nihil eorum qure quidem fiant in terris acceptius quam concilia et cactus hominum jure sociati qua3 civitates appellan- tur." 11 They take this tenet of the head and heart, not from the great name which it immediately bears, nor from the greater from whence it is derived ; but from that which alone can give true weight and sanction to any learned opinion, the common nature and common relation of men. They think themselves bound, not only as individuals in the sanctuary of the heart, or as congregated in that personal capacity, to renew the memory of their high origin and cast ; but also in their corporate charac- ter to perform their national homage to the Institutor, and Author, and Protector of civil society ; without which civil so- ciety man could not by any possibility arrive at the perfection 11 "To the sovereign nnd nil-powerful Deity who governs the Universe, nothing that happens on the Earth is more acceptable than those unions and combinations of men held together by law and justice which are called States." The passage is quoted from Cicero, who, I think, derived it from Tlato. THE REVOLUTION IN" FRANCE. 187 of which his nature is capable, nor even make a remote and faint approach to it. They conceive that He who gave our na- ture to be perfected by our virtue, willed also the necessary means of its perfection. He willed therefore the State ; He willed its connection with the Source and original Archetype of all perfection. They who are convinced of this His will, which is the law of laws, and the sovereign of sovereigns, cannot think it reprehensible that this our corporate fealty and homage, that this our recognition of a signiory paramount, I had almost said this oblation of the State itself, as a worthy offering on the high altar of universal praise, should be performed, as all public sol- emn acts are performed, in buildings, in music, in decoration, in speech, in the dignity of persons, according to the customs of mankind, taught by their nature ; that is, with modest splen- dour and unassuming state, with mild majesty and sober pomp. For those purposes they think some part of the wealth of the country is as usefully employed as it can be in fomenting the luxury of individuals. It is the public ornament. It is the public consolation. It nourishes the public hope. The poorest man finds his own importance and dignity in it, whilst the wealth and pride of individuals at every moment makes the man of humble rank and fortune sensible of his inferiority, and degrades and viliiies his condition. It is for the man in humble life, and to raise his nature, and to put him in mind of a state in which the privileges of opulence will cease, when he will be equal by nature, and may be more than equal by virtue, that this portion of the general wealth of his country is employed and sanctified. So tenacious are we of the old ecclesiastical modes and fash- ions of institution, that very little alteration has been made in them since the fourteenth or fifteenth century; adhering in this particular, as in all things else, to our old settled maxim, never <'ntiivly nor at once to depart from antiquity. We found these old institutions, on the whole, favourable to morality and discipline ; and we thought they were susceptible of amend- ment, without altering the ground. We thought that they wrn capable of receiving and meliorating, and above all of preserving, the accessions of science and literature, as the order of Providence should successively produce them. And, after all, with this Gothic and monkish education (for .such it is in the groundwork) we may put in our claim to as ample and as early a share in all the improvements in science, in arts, and in litera- ture, which have illuminated and adorned the modern world, as any other nation in Europe: we think one main cause of this improvement was our not despising the patrimony of knowledge which was left us by our forefathers. 188 BURKE. The men of England, the men, I mean, of light and leading in England, whose wisdom (if they have any) is open and direct, would be ashamed, as of a silly, deceitful trick, to profess any religion in name, which, by their proceedings, they appear to conteYnn. If by their conduct (the only language that rarely lies) they seemed to regard the great ruling principle of the moral and the natural world as a mere invention to keep the vulgar in obedience, they apprehend that by such a conduct they would defeat the politic purpose they have in view. They would find it difficult to make others believe in a system to which they manifestly give no credit themselves. The Christian statesmen of this land would indeed first provide for the multi- tude; because it is the multitude; and is therefore, as such, the first object in the ecclesiastical institution, and in all institu- tions. They have been taught that the circumstance of the Gospel's being preached to the poor was one of the great tests of its true mission. They think, therefore, that those do not believe it who do not take care it should be preached to the poor. But, as they know that charity is not confined to any one description, but ought to apply itself to all men who have wants, they are not deprived of a due and anxious sensation of pity to the distresses of the miserable great. They are not repelled through a fastidious delicacy, at the stench of their arrogance and presumption, from a medicinal attention to their mental blotches and running sores. They are sensible that religious instruction is of more consequence to them than to any others ; from the greatness of the temptations to which they are ex- posed ; from the important consequences that attend their faults ; from the contagion of their ill example ; from the necessity of bowing down the stubborn neck of their pride and ambition to the yoke of moderation and virtue ; from a consid- eration of the fat stupidity and gross ignorance concerning what imports men most to know, which prevail at Courts, and at the head of armies, and in senates, as much as at the loom and in the field. The English people are satisfied that to the great the conso- lations of religion are as necessary as its instructions. They too are among the unhappy. They feel personal pain and domestic sorrow. In these they have no privilege, but are subject to pay their full contingent to the contributions levied on mortality. They want this sovereign balm under their gnawing cares and anxieties, which, being less conversant about the limited wants of animal life, range without limit, and are diversified by infi- nite combinations, in the wild and unbounded regions of imagi- nation. Some charitable dole is wanting to these, our often very unhappy brethren, to fill the gloomy void that reigns in THE REVOLUTION IN FRANCE. 189 minds which have nothing on Earth to hope or fear ; something to relieve in the killing languor and over-laboured lassitude of those who have nothing to do ; something to excite an appetite to existence in the palled satiety which attends on all pleasures which may be bought, where nature is not left to her own pro- cess, where even desire is anticipated, and therefore fruition defeated, by meditated schemes and contrivances of delight ; and no interval, no obstacle, is interposed between the wish and the accomplishment. The people of England know how little influence the teachers of religion are likely to have with the wealthy and powerful of long standing, and how much less with the newly fortunate, if they appear in a manner no way assorted to those with whom they must associate, and over whom they must even exercise, in some cases, something like an authority. What must they think of that body of teachers, if they see it in no part above the establishment of their domestic servants? If the poverty were voluntary, there might be some difference. Strong in- stances of self-denial operate powerfully on our minds ; and a man who has no wants lias obtained great freedom, and firm- ness, and even dignity. But as the mass of any description of men are but men, and their poverty cannot be voluntary, that disrespect which attends upon all lay poverty will not depart from the ecclesiastical. Our provident Constitution has there- fore taken care that those who are to instruct presumptuous ignorance, those who are to be censors over insolent vice, should neither incur their contempt, nor live upon their alms ; nor will it tempt the rich to a neglect of the true medicine of their minds. For these ivasons, whilst we provide first for the poor, and with a parental solicitude, we have not relegated religion (like something we were ashamed to show) to obscure munici- palities or rustic villages. No! we will have her to exalt her mitred front in Courts and Parliaments. We will have her mixed throughout the whole mass of life, and blended with all the classes of society. The people of England will show, to the haughty potentates of the world, and to their talking sophisters, that a free, a generous, an informed nation honours the high magistrates of its Church ; that it will not suffer the insolence of wealth and titles, or any other species of proud pretension, to look down with scorn upon what they look up to with rever- ence ; nor presume to trample on that acquired personal nobil- ity which they intend always to be, and which often is, the fruit, not the reward, (for what can be the reward?) of learning, piety, and virtue. Jn England most of us conceive that it is envy and malignity towards those who are often the beginners of their own fortune, ] 90 BURKE. and not a love of the self-denial and mortification of the ancient Church, that makes some look askance at the distinctions and honours and revenues which, taken from no person, are set apart for virtue. The ears of the people of England are dis- tinguishing. They hear these men speak broad. Their tongue betrays them. Their language is in the patois of fraud ; in the cant and the gibberish of hypocrisy. The people of England must think so, when these praters affect to carry back the Clergy to that primitive, evangelic poverty which, in the spirit^ ought always to exist in them, (and in us too, however we may like it,) but in the thing must be varied, when the relation of that body to the State is altered ; when manners, when modes of life, when indeed the whole order of human affairs has un- dergone a total revolution. We shall believe those reformers then to be honest enthusiasts, not, as now we think them, cheats and deceivers, when we see them throwing their goods into common, and submitting their own persons to the austere dis- cipline of the early Church. 1 LIBERTY IN THE ABSTRACT. I FLATTER myself that I love a manly, moral, regulated lib- erty as well as any gentleman of that Society, be he who he will ; and perhaps I have given as good proofs of my attachment to that cause, in the whole course of my public conduct. I think I envy liberty as little as they do to any other nation. But I cannot stand forward, and give praise or blame to any thing which relates to human actions and human concerns, on a simple view of the object, as it stands stripped of every relation, in all the nakedness and solitude of metaphysical abstraction. Circumstances (which with some gentlemen pass for nothing) give in reality to every political principle its distinguishing colour and discriminating effect. The circumstances are what render every civil and political scheme beneficial or noxious to 1 The great paper from which the foregoing piece is taken, besides not be- ing, as a whole, very well suited to the purposes of this volume, is much too long for reproduction here. I have here given that portion of it which I have long been in the habit of reading the oftenest, and which is regarded by many as the most eloquent and interesting; though there are several others abun- dantly worthy of its fellowship. But, if pupils once get ensouled with a real taste for Burke, they will naturally be carried on to study, not only the whole of this paper, but also many other of his works not contained in this volume. LIBERTY IK THE ABSTRACT. 191 mankind. Abstractedly speaking, government, as well as lib- erty, is good ; yet could I, in common sense, ten years ago, have felicitated France on her* enjoyment of a government, (for she then had a government,) without inquiry what the nature of that government was, or how it was administered? Can I now congratulate the same nation upon its freedom? Is it because liberty in the abstract may be classed amongst the blessings of mankind, that I am seriously to felicitate a madman who has escaped from the protecting restraint and wholesome darkness of his cell, on his restoration to the enjoyment of light and lib- erty? Am I to congratulate a highwayman and murderer who has broke prison, upon the recovery of his natural rights? This would be to act over again the scene of the criminals con- demned to the galleys, and their heroic deliverer, the meta- physic Knight of the Sorrowful Countenance. When I see the spirit of liberty in action, I see a strong prin- ciple at work ; and this, for a while, is. all I can possibly know of it. The wild gas, the fixed air, is plainly broke loose: but we ought to suspend our judgment until the first effervescence is a little subsided, till the liquor is cleared, and until we see something deeper than the agitation of a troubled and frothy surface. I must be tolerably sure, before I venture publicly to congratulate men upon a blessing, that they have really re- ceived one. Flattery corrupts both the receiver and the giver ; and adulation is not of more service to the people than to kings. I should therefore suspend my congratulations on the new lib- erty of France, until I was informed how it had been combined with government ; with public force ; with the discipline and obedience of armies; with the collection of an effective and well-distributed revenue ; with morality and religion ; with the security of property; with peace and order ; with civil and social manners. All these (in their way) are good things too; and, without them, liberty is not a benefit whilst it lasts, and is not ikely to continue long. The effect of liberty to individuals is, that they may do what they please: we ought to see what it will please them to do, before we risk congratulations, which may be soon turned into complaints. Prudence would dictate this in the case of separate, insulated, private men. But liberty, when men act in bodies, is power. Considerate people, before they declare themselves, will observe the use which is made of . and particularly of so trying a thing as new power in new persons, of whose principles, tempers, and dispositions they have little or no experience, and in situations, where those who appear the most stirring in the scene may possibly not be the real movers. Reflections, &c. 192 BURKE. FREEDOM AS AN INHERITANCE. You will observe that, from Magna CJiarta to the Declaration of Right, it has been the uniform policy of our Constitution to claim and assert our liberties, as an entailed inheritance derived to us from our forefathers, and to be transmitted to our pos- terity ; as an estate specially belonging to the people of this kingdom, without any reference whatever to any other more general or prior right. By this means our Constitution pre- serves a unity in so great a diversity of its parts. "\Ve have an inheritable Crown ; an inheritable Peerage ; and a House of Commons and a people inheriting privileges, franchises, and liberties, from a long line of ancestors. This policy appears to me to be the result of profound reflec- tion ; or rather the happy effect of following Nature, which is wisdom without reflection, and above it. A spirit of innovation is generally the result of a selfish temper, and confined views. People will not look forward to posterity, who never look back- ward to their ancestors. Besides, the people of England well know that the idea of inheritance furnishes a sure principle of conservation and a sure principle of transmission, without at all excluding a principle of improvement. It leaves acquisition free ; but it secures what it acquires. Whatever advantages are obtained by a State proceeding on these maxims, are locked fast as in a sort of family settlement ; grasped as in a kind of mortmain for ever. By a constitutional policy, working after the pattern of Nature, we receive, we hold, we transmit our government and our privileges, in the same manner in which we enjoy and transmit our property and our lives. The institu- tions of policy, the goods of fortune, the gifts of Providence, are handed down to us, and from us, in the same course and order. Our political system is placed in a just correspondence and symmetry with the order of the world, and with the mode of existence decreed to a permanent body composed of transitory parts; wherein, by the disposition of a stupendous wisdom, moulding together the great mysterious incorporation of the human race, the whole, at one time, is never old, or middle- aged, or young, but, in a condition of unchangeable constancy, moves on through the varied tenour of perpetual decay, fall, re-novation, and progression. Thus, by preserving the method of Nature in the conduct of the State, in what we improve we are never wholly new ; in \vhat we retain we are never wholly obsolete. By adhering in this manner and on these principles to our forefathers, we are guided, not by the superstition of antiquarians, but by the spirit of philosophic analogy. In this FREEDOM AS AN INHERITANCE. 193 choice of inheritance we have given to our frame of polity the image of a relation in blood; binding up the Constitution of our country with our dearest domestic ties ; adopting our funda- mental laws into the bosom of our family affections ; keeping inseparable, and cherishing with the warmth of all their com- bined and mutually reflected charities, our State, our hearths, our sepulchres, and our altars. Through the same plan of a conformity to Nature in our arti- ficial institutions, and by calling in the aid of her unerring and powerful instincts to fortify the fallible and feeble contrivances of our reason, we have derived several other, and those no small, benefits, from considering our liberties in the light of an inheritance. Always acting as if in the presence of canonized forefathers, the spirit of freedom, leading in itself to misrule and excess, is tempered with an awful gravity. This idea of a liberal descent inspires us with a sense of habitual native dig- nity, which prevents that upstart insolence almost inevitably adhering to and disgracing those who are the first acquirers of any distinction. ]5y this means our liberty becomes a noble freedom, it carries an imposing and majestic aspect. It has a pedigree and illustrating ancestors. It has its bearings and its ensigns armorial. It has its gallery of portraits ; its monu- mental inscriptions ; its records, evidences, and titles. We pro- cure reverence to our civil institutions on the principle upon which Nature teaches us to revere individual men, on account of their age, and on account of those from whom they are de- scended. All your sophisters cannot produce any thing better adapted to preserve a rational and manly freedom than the (our.-e that we have pursued, who have chosen our nature rather than our speculations, our breasts rather than our in- ventions, for the great conservatories and magazines of our rights and privileges. You might, if you pleased, have profited of our example, and have given to your recovered freedom a correspondent dignity. Your privileges, though discontinued, were not lost to memory. Your ( 'onstitiition, it is true, whilst you were out of possession, suffered waste and dilapidation; but you possessed in some parts tin- walls, and, in all, the foundations, of a noble and M-Mi-ralile castle. You might have repaired those walls; you might have built on those old foundations. Your Constitution was su-pended before it was perfected; but you had the ele- ments of a constitution very nearly as good as could be wished. Jn your old states 2 you possessed that variety of parts corre- 2 Slates, as (lie word is here used, arc orders, or ranks, the several bodies or flagon of men hh.'iriug in the powers of government or of the State. Thus, in 194 BURKE. spending with the various descriptions of which your community was happily composed ; you had all that combination and all that opposition of interests, you had that action and counterac- tion, which, in the natural and in the political world, from the reciprocal struggle of discordant powers, draws out the har- mony of the universe. These opposed and conflicting interests, which you considered as so great a blemish in your old and in our present Constitution, interpose a salutary check to all precipitate resolutions. They render deliberation a matter not of choice, but of necessity ; they make all change a subject of compromise, which naturally begets moderation; they produce temperaments, preventing the sore evil of harsh, crude, unquali- fied reformations ; and rendering all the headlong exertions of arbitrary power, in the few or in the many, for ever impractica- ble. Through that diversity of members and interests, general liberty had as many securities as there were separate views in the several orders ; whilst, by pressing down the whole by the weight of a real monarchy, the separate parts would have been prevented from warping, and starting from their allotted places. You had all these advantages in your ancient states ; but you chose to act as if you had never been moulded into civil society, and had every thing to begin anew. You began ill, because you began by despising everything that belonged to you. You set up your trade without a capital. If the last generations of your country appeared without much lustre in your eves, you might have passed them by, and derived your claims from a more early race of ancestors. Under a pious predilection for those ancestors, your imaginations would have realized in them a standard of virtue and wisdom beyond the vulgar practice of the hour ; and you would have risen with the example to whose imitation you aspired. Respecting your forefathers, you would have been taught to respect yourselves. You would not have chosen to consider the French as a people of yesterday, as a nation of low-born, servile wretches until the emancipating year of 1780. In order to furnish, at the expense of your honour, an excuse to your apologists here for several enormities of yours, you would not have been content to be represented as a gang of Maroon slaves, suddenly broke loose from the house of bondage, and therefore to be pardoned for your abuse of the liberty to which you were not accustomed, and ill fitted. Would it not, my worthy friend, have been wiser to have you England, King, Lords, Commons, and Clergy arc states or estates of the realm; though the latter, the Clergy, have no direct or formal organ, as such, except the Bench of Bishops in the House of Peers. FREEDOM AS AN INHERITANCE. 195 thought, what I, for one, always thought you, a generous and gallant nation, long misled to your disadvantage by your high and romantic sentiments of fidelity, honour, and loyalty ; that events had been unfavourable to you, but that you were not enslaved through any illiberal or servile disposition ; that in your most devoted submission you were actuated by a principle of public spirit, and that it was your country you worshipped in the person of your King? Had you made it to be under- stood, that in the delusion of this amiable error you had gone further than your wise ancestors ; that you were resolved to resume your ancient privileges, whilst you preserved the spirit of your ancient and your recent loyalty and honour ; or if, diffident of yourselves, and not clearly discerning the almost obliterated Constitution of your ancestors, you had looked to your neighbours in this land, who had kept alive the ancient principles and models of the old common law of Europe meliorated and adapted to its present state, by following wise examples you would have given new examples of wisdom to the world. You would have rendered the cause of liberty venera- ble in the eyes of every worthy mind in every nation. You would have shamed despotism from the Earth, by showing that freedom was not only reconcilable, but, as when well disciplined it is, auxiliary to law. You would have had an unoppressive but a productive revenue. You would have had a flourishing commerce to feed it. You would have had a free constitution ; a potent monarchy ; a disciplined army ; a reformed and venerated clergy; a mitigated but spirited no- bility, to load your virtue, not to overlay it; you would have had a liberal order of commons, to emulate and to recruit that nobility ; you would have had a protected, satisfied, laborious, and obedient people, taught to seek and to recognize the hap- piness that is to be found by virtue in all conditions ; in which consists the true moral equality of mankind, and not in that monstrous fiction which, by inspiring false ideas and vain expectations into men destined to travel in the obscure walk of laborious life, serves only to aggravate and embitter that real inequality which it never can remove ; and which the order of civil life establishes as much for the benefit of those whom it must leave in an humble state, as those whom it is able to exalt to a condition more splendid, but not more happy. You had a smooth and easy career of felicity and glory laid open to you, beyond any thing recorded in the history of the world ; but you have shown that difficulty is good for man. Compute your gains: see what is got by those extravagant and presumptuous speculations which have taught your leaders to despise all their predecessors, and all their contemporaries, 196 BURKE. and even to despise themselves, until the moment in which they became truly despicable. By following those false lights, France has bought undisguised calamities at a higher price than any nation has purchased the most unequivocal blessings 1 France has bought poverty by crime 1 France has not sacri- ficed her virtue to her interest, but she has abandoned her interest, that she might prostitute her virtue. All other na- tions have begun the fabric of a new government, or the re- formation of an old, by establishing originally, or by enforcing with greater exactness, some rites or other of religion. All other people have laid the foundations of civil freedom in se- verer manners, and a system of a more austere and masculine morality. France, when she let loose the reins of regal author- ity, doubled the license of a ferocious dissoluteness in manners. and of an insolent irreligion in opinions and practices ; and has extended through all ranks of life, as if she were communicat- ing some privilege, or laying open some secluded benefit, all the unhappy corruptions that usually were the disease of wealth and power. This is one of the new principles of equal- ity in France. France, by the perfidy of her leaders, has utterly disgraced the tone of lenient counsel in the cabinets of princes, and dis- armed it of its most potent topics. She has sanctified the dark, suspicious maxims of tyrannous distrust ; and taught kings to tremble at (what will hereafter be called) the delusive plausi- bilities of moral politicians. Sovereigns will consider those who advise them to place an unlimited confidence in their peo- ple, as subverters of their thrones ; as traitors who aim at their destruction, by leading their easy good-nature, under specious pretences, to admit combinations of bold and faithless men into a participation of their power. This alone (if there were noth- ing else) is an irreparable calamity to you and mankind. Re- member that your Parliament of Paris told your King that, in calling the states together, he had nothing to fear but the prod- igal excess of their zeal in providing for the support of the throne. It is right that these men should hide their heads. It is right that they should bear their part in the ruin which their counsel has brought on their sovereign and their country. Such sanguine declarations tend to lull authority asleep ; to encourage it rashly to engage in perilous adventures of untried policy ; to neglect those provisions, preparations, and precau- tions, which distinguish benevolence from imbecility ; and without which no man can answer for the salutary effect of an y abstract plan of government or of freedom. For want of these, they have seen the medicine of the State corrupted into its poi- son. They have seen the French rebel against a mild and law- FREEDOM AS AN INHERITANCE. 197 ful monarch, with more fury, outrage, and insult, than ever any people has been known to rise against the most illegal usurper, or the most sanguinary tyrant. Their resistance was made to concession ; their revolt was from protection ; their blow was aimed at a hand holding out graces, favours, and immunities. This was unnatural. The rest is in order. They have found their punishment in their success. Laws overturned ; tribu- nals subverted ; industry without vigour ; commerce expiring ; the revenue unpaid, yet the people impoverished ; a Church pillaged, and a State not relieved ; civil and military anarchy made the constitution of the kingdom ; every thing human and divine sacrificed to the idol of public credit, and national bank- ruptcy the consequence ; and, to crown all, the paper securities of new, precarious, tottering power, the discredited paper secu- rities of impoverished fraud and beggared rapine, held out as a currency for the support of an empire, in lieu of the two great recognized species that represent the lasting, conventional credit of mankind, which disappeared and hid themselves in the earth from whence they came, when the principle of prop- erty, whose creatures and representatives they are, was sys- tematically subverted. Were all these dreadful things necessary? Were they the inevitable results of the desperate struggle of determined patri- mpelled to wade through blood and tumult, to the quiet shore of a tranquil and prosperous liberty ? No ! nothing like it. The fresli ruins of France, which shock our feelings wher- ever we can turn our eyes, are not the devastation of civil war ; they are the sad but instructive monuments of rash and igno- rant counsel in time of profound peace. They are the display of inconsiderate and presumptuous, because unresisted and irresistible, authority. The persons who have thus squandered a-.vay the precious treasure of their crimes, the persons who have made this prodigal and wild waste of public evils, (the .ike reserved for the ultimate ransom of the State,) have their progress with little, or rather with no opposition at all. Their whole march was more like a triumphal procession than the progress of a war. Their pioneers have gone before them, and demolished and laid everything level at their feet. Not one drop of their blond have they shed in the cause of the country they have ruined. They have made no sacrifices to their projects of greater consequence than their shoe-buckles, whilst they were imprisoning their King, murdering their fellow- eiti/ens, and bathing in tears, and plunging in poverty and dis- tress, thousands of worthy men and worthy families. Their 198 BURKE. . cruelty has not even been the base result of fear. It has been the effect of their sense of perfect safety, in authorizing trea- sons, robberies, rapes, assassinations, slaughters, and burnings, throughout their harassed land. Reflections, &c. THE REVOLUTIONARY THIRD ESTATE. Ix the calling of the States-General of France, the first thing that struck me was a great departure from the ancient course. I found the representation for the Third Estate composed of six hundred persons. They were equal in number to the rep- resentatives of both the other orders. If the orders were to act separately, the number would not, beyond the consideration of the expense, be of much moment But when it became apparent that the three orders were to be melted down into one, the policy and necessary effect of this numerous represen- tation became obvious. A very small desertion from either of the other two orders must throw the power of both into the hands of the third. In fact, the whole power of the State was soon resolved into that body. Its due composition became therefore of infinitely the greater importance. Judge, Sir, of my surprise, when I found that a very great proportion of the Assembly (a majority, I believe, of the mem- bers who attended) was composed of practitioners in the law. It was composed, not of distinguished magistrates, who had givi-n pledges to their country of their science, prudence, and integrity ; not of leading advocates, the glory of the bar ; not of renowned professors in universities ; but, for the far greater part, as it must in such a number, of the inferior, unlearned, mechanical, merely instrumental members of the profession. There were distinguished exceptions ; but the general compo- sition was of obscure provincial advocates, of stewards of petty local jurisdictions, country attorneys, notaries, and the whole train of the ministers of municipal litigation, the fomenters and conductors of the petty war of village vexation. From the moment I read the list, I saw distinctly, and very nearly as it has happened, all that was to follow. The degree of estimation in which any profession is held becomes the standard of the estimation in which the professors hold themselves. Whatever the personal merits of many individual lawyers might have been, (and in many it was undoubtedly very considerable,) in that military kingdom no part of the profession had been much regarded, except the THE REYOLUTIOXARY THIRD ESTATE. 199 highest of all, who often united to their professional offices great family splendour, and were invested with great power and authority. These certainly were highly respected, and even with no small degree of awe. The next rank was not much esteemed ; the mechanical part was in a very low degree of repute. Whenever the supreme authority is vested in a body so composed, it must evidently produce the consequences of supreme authority placed in the' hands of men not taught habitually to respect themselves ; who had no previous fortune in character at stake ; who could not be expected to bear with moderation, or to conduct with discretion, a power which they themselves, more than any others, must be surprised to find in their hands. Who could flatter himself that these men, sud- denly, and, as it were, by enchantment, snatched from the humblest rank of subordination, would not be intoxicated with their unprepared greatness? Who could conceive that mon, who are habitually meddling, daring, subtle, active, of litigious dispositions and unquiet minds, would easily fall back into their old condition of obscure contention, and laborious, low, and unprofitable chicane? Who could doubt but that, at any expense to the State, of which they understood nothing, they must pursue their private interests, which they under- stood but too well ? It was not an event depending on chance or contingency. It was inevitable ; it was necessary ; it was planted in the nature of things. They must join (if their capacity did not permit them to lead) in any project which could procure to them a litiyintis roflntituUwi; which could lay open to them those innumerable lucrative jobs which follow in the train of all groat convulsions and revolutions in the State, and particularly in all groat and violent permutations of prop- erty. Was it to be expected that they would attend to the stability of property, whose existence had always depended upon whatever rendered property questionable, ambiguous, and insecure? Their objects would be enlarged with their cleva- 'ion, but their disposition, and habits, and mode of accomplish- ing their designs, must remain the same. We know that the British House of Commons, without shut- ting its doors to any merit in any class, is, by the sure opera- tion of adequate causes, filled with every thing illustrious in rank, in descent, in hereditary and in acquired opulence, in cul- tivated talents, in military, civil, naval, and politic distinction, that the country can afford. But supposing, what hardly can be supposed as a case, that the House of Commons should be composed in the same manner with the Tiers Etat in France, would this dominion of chicane be borne with patience, or even 200 BURKE. conceived without horror? God forbid I should insinuate any thing derogatory to that profession which is another priesthood, administrating the rights of sacred justice. But whilst I revere men in the functions which belong to them, and would do as much as one man can do to prevent their exclusion from any, I cannot, to flatter them, give the lie to Mature. They are good and useful in the composition ; they must be mischievous if they preponderate so as virtually to become the whole. Their very excellence in their peculiar functions may be far from a qualification for others. It cannot escape observation that, when men are too much confined to professional and faculty habits, and as it were inveterate in the recurrent employment of that narrow circle, they are rather disabled than qualified for whatever depends on the knowledge of mankind, on experience in mixed alfairs, on a comprehensive, connected view of the va- rious, complicated, external and internal interests which go to the formation of that multifarious thing called a State. After all, if the House of Commons were to have a wholly professional and faculty composition, what is the power of the House of Commons, circumscribed and shut in by the immove- able barriers of laws, usages, positive rules of doctrine and prac- tice, counterpoised by the House of Lords, and every moment of its existence at the discretion of the Crown to continue, pro- rogue, or dissolve us ? The power of the House of Commons, direct or indirect, is indeed great ; and long may it be able to preserve its greatness, and the spirit belonging to true great- ness, at the full ! and it will do so, as long as it can keep the breakers of law in India from becoming the makers of law for England. The power, however, of the House of Commons, when least diminished, is as a drop of water in the ocean, com- pared to that residing in a settled majority of your National Assembly. That Assembly, since the destruction of the orders, has no fundamental law, no strict convention, no respected usage, to restrain it. Instead of finding themselves obliged to conform to a fixed constitution, they have a power to make a constitution which shall conform to their designs. Nothing in Heaven or upon Earth can serve as a control on them. What ought to be the heads, the hearts, the dispositions, that are qualified, or that dare, not only to make laws under a fixed con- stitution, but at one heat to strike out a totally new constitution for a great kingdom, and in every part of it, from the monarch on the throne to the vestry of a parish? But "fools rush in where angels fear to tread." In such a state of unbounded power for undefined and undefinable purposes, the evil of a moral and almost physical inaptitude of the man to the f unc- THE REVOLUTIONARY THIRD ESTATE. 201 tion must be the greatest we can conceive to happen in the management of human affairs. Having considered the composition of the Third Estate as it stood in its original frame, I took a view of the representatives of the clergy. There too it appeared that full as little regard was had to the general security of property, or to the aptitude of the deputies for their public purposes, in the principles of their election. That election was so contrived, as to send a very large proportion of mere country curates to the great and arduous work of new-modelling a State ; men who never had seen the State so much as in a picture ; men who knew nothing of the world beyond the bounds of an obscure village ; who, immersed in hopeless poverty, could regard all property, whether secular or ecclesiastical, with no other eye than that of envy ; among whom must be many who, for the smallest hope of the meanest dividend in plunder, would readily join in any attempts upon a body of wealth, in which they could hardly look to have any share, except in a general scramble. Instead of balancing the power of the active chicaners in the other As- sembly, these curates must necessarily become the active coad- jutors, or at best the passive instruments, of those by whom they had been habitually guided in their petty village concerns. They too could hardly be the most conscientious of their kind, who, presuming upon their incompetent understanding, could intrigue for a trust which led them from their natural relation to their Hocks, and their natural spheres of action, to undertake the regeneration of kingdoms. This preponderating weight, beimr added to the force of the body of chicane in the Tiers Etat, completed that momentum of ignorance, rashness, presumption, and lust of plunder, which nothing has been able to resist. To observing men it must have appeared from the beginning, that the majority of the Third Estate, in conjunction with such a deputation from the clergy as I have described, whilst it ptir- sin-d the destruction of the nobility, would inevitably become subservient to the worst designs of individuals in that class. In tht spoil and humiliation of their own order these individu- als would possess a sure fund for the pay of their new follow- ers. To squander away the objects which made the- happiness of their fellows would be to them no sacrifice at all. Turbulent, ; riited men of quality, in proportion as they are puffed up with personal pride and arrogance, generally despise their own order. One of the (ir>1 symptoms they discover of a seliish and mischievous ambition is a profligate disregard of a dignity which they partake with others. To be attached to the subdi- vision, to love the little platoon we belong to in society, is the first principle (the germ, as it were) of public affections. It is 202 BURKE. the first link in the series by which we proceed towards a love to our country, and to mankind. The interest of that portion of social arrangement is a trust in the hands of all those who compose it ; and, as none but bad men would justify it in abuse, none but traitors would barter it away for their own personal advantage. When men of rank sacrifice all ideas of dignity to an ambition without a distinct object, and work with low instruments and for low ends, the whole composition becomes low and base. Does not something like this now appear in France ? Does it not produce something ignoble and inglorious ? a kind of mean- ness in all the prevalent policy ? a tendency in all that is done to lower, along with individuals, all the dignity and importance of the State ? Other revolutions have been conducted by persons who, whilst they attempted or affected changes in the common- wealth, sanctified their ambition by advancing the dignity of the people whose peace they troubled. They had long views. They aimed at the rule, not at the destruction, of their country. They were men of great civil and great military talents, and, if the terror, the ornament of their age. The compliment made to one of the great bad men of the old stamp (Cromwell) by his kinsman, a favourite poet of that time, shows what it was he proposed, and what indeed to a great degree he accomplished, in the success of his ambition : " Still as you rise, the State, exalted too, Finds no distemper whilst 'tis changed by you; Changed like the world's great scene, when without noise The rising Sun night's vulgar lights destroys." 8 These disturbers were not so much like men usurping power as asserting their natural place in society. Their rising was to illuminate and beautify the world. Their conquest over their competitors was by outshining them. The hand that, like a destroying angel, smote the country communicated to it the force and energy under which it suffered. I do not say, (God forbid ! ) I do not say that the virtues of such men were to be taken as a balance to their crimes ; but they were some correct- ive to their effects. Such was, as I said, our Cromwell. Such 3 This quotation is from a poem by Edmund Waller, entitled " A Panegyric on my Lord Protector, of the Present Greatness and Joint Interest of his High- ness and this Nation." It is the best of Waller's poems, and that is saying a good deal for it. Waller's mother was a sister of the celebrated John Ilamp- dcn, and through her he was related to Cromwell ; I do not know in what de- gree. He was elected to Parliament twice before reaching the age of twenty- one, and was also in all the parliaments held during the reign of Charles the Second. I must add that Waller owned and occupied the same estate at Bea- consficld where Burke lived from 1768 till his death. THE REVOLUTIONARY THIRD ESTATE. 203 were your whole race of Guises, Conors, and Colignis. Such the Eichelieus, who in more quiet times acted in the spirit of a civil war. Such, as better men, and in a less dubious cause, were your Henry the Fourth and your Sully, though nursed in civil confusions, and not wholly without some of their taint. It is a thing to be wondered at, to see how very soon France, when she had a moment to respire, recovered and emerged from the longest and most dreadful civil war that ever was known in any nation. Why? Because, among all their massacres, they had not slain the mind in their country. A conscious dignity, a no- ble pride, a generous sense of glory and emulation was not extinguished. On the contrary, it was kindled and inilamcd. The organs also of the State, however shattered, existed. All the prizes of honour and virtue, all the rewards, all the distinc- tions remained. But your present confusion, like a palsy, has attack, M! the- fountain of life itself. Every person in your coun- try, in a situation to be actuated by a principle of honour, is disgraced and degraded, and can entertain no sensation of life, except in a mortified and humiliated indignation. But this generation will quickly pass away. The next generation of the nobility will resemble the artificers and clowns, and money- jobbers, usurers, and Jews, who will be always their fellows, sometimes their masters. Believe me, Sir, those who attempt to level, never equalize. In all societies, consisting of various descriptions of citizens, some description must be uppermost. The levellers therefore only change and pervert the natural order of tilings ; they load the edifice of society, by setting up in the air what the solidity of the structure requires to be on the ground. I do not, my dear Sir, conceive you to be of that sophistical, captious spirit, or of that uncandid dulness, as to require, for every general observation or sentiment, an explicit detail of the lives and exceptions which reason will presume to be included in all the general propositions which come from rea- !o men. You do not imagine that I wish to confine power, authority, and distinction to blood and names and titles. No, Sir! There is no qualification for government but virtue and \\i>doni, actual or presumptive. Wherever they are actually found, they have, in whatever state, condition, profession, or tlie passport of Heaven to human place and honour. Woe to the country which would madly and impiously reject rvice of the talents and virtues, civil, military, or religious, that are given to grace and to serve it; and would condemn to obscurity every thing formed to diffuse lustre and glory around a State! Woe to that country, too, that, passing into the oppo- site extreme, considers a low education, a mean, contracted view 204 BURKE. of things, a sordid, mercenary occupation, as a preferable title to command! Every thing ought to be open ; but not indiffer- ently to every man. Ko rotation, no appointment by lot, no mode of election operating in the spirit of sortition or rotation can be generally good in a government conversant in extensive objects ; because they have no tendency, direct or indirect, to select the man with a view to the duty, or to accommodate the one to the other. I do not hesitate to say, that the road to emi- nence and power, from obscure condition, ought not to be mudo too easy, nor a thing too much of course. If rare merit be the rarest of all rare things, it ought to pass through some sort of probation. The temple of honour ought to be seated on an em- inence. If it be opened through virtue, let it be remembered too, that virtue is never tried but by some difficulty and some struggle. Reflections, dec. THE RIGHTS OF MEX. IT is no wonder that, with these ideas of every thing in their Constitution and government at home as illegitimate and usurped, or at best as a vain mockery, men look abroad with an eager and passionate enthusiasm. Whilst they are pos- feftsed by those notions, it is vain to talk to them of the practice of their ancestors, the fundamental laws of their country, the iixed form of a Constitution, whose merits arc continued by the solid test of long experience, and an increasing public strength and national prosperity. They despise experience as the wisdom of unlettered men ; arid, as for the rest, they have wrought under-ground a mine that will blow up, at one grand explosion, all examples of antiquity, all precedents, charters, and Acts of Parliament. They have "the rights of men." Against these there can be no prescription ; against. these no agreement is binding : these admit no temperament and no compromise: any thing withheld from their full de- mand is so much of fraud and injustice. Against these their rights of men let no government look for security in the length of its continuance, or in the justice and lenity of its administra- tion. The objections of these speculatists, if its forms do not quadrate with their theories, are as valid against such an old and beneficent government, as against the most violent i\r- anny, or the greenest usurpation. They are ahvays at issue with governments, not on a question of abuse, but a question of competency, and a question of title. I have nothing to say to the clumsy subtilty of their political metaphysics. Let fun THE EIGHTS OF MEN. 205 them bo their amusement in the schools. "Ilia sejactat in aula ^Eolus, el dauso ventorum carccre rcgnat." But let them not break prison to burst like a Levanter, to sweep the Earth with their hurricane, and to break up the fountains of the great deep to overwhelm us. Par am I from denying in theory, full as far is my heart from withholding in practice, (if I were of power to give or to with- hold,) the real rights of men. In denying their false claims of right, I do not mean to injure those which are real, and are such as their pretended rights would totally destroy. If civil society be made for the advantage of man, all the advantages for which it is made become his right. It is an institution of benelieence ; and law itself is only beneficence acting by a rule. Men have a right to live by that rule ; they have a right to do justice, as between their fellows, whether their fellows are in public function or in ordinary occupation. They have a right to the fruits of their industry, and to the means of mak- ing their industry fruit I'ul. They have a right to the acquisi- t their parents ; to the nourishment and improvement of their offspring; to instruction in life, and to consolation in death. "Whatever each man can separately do, without trespass- ing upon others, he has a right to do for himself ; and he has a right to a fair portion of all which society, with all its combina- tions of skill and force, can do in his favour. In this partnership men have equal rights ; but not t<> equal things. He that has but live, shillings in the partnership, has as good a right to it, as he that lias live hundred pounds has to his larger propor- tion. But he has not a right to an equal dividend in the prod- uct of the joint stock ; and as to the share of power, authority, and direction which each individual ought to have in the man- agement of the State, that I must deny to be amongst the direct original rights of man in civil society; for I have in my contemplation the civil social man, and no other. It is a thing to be .settled by convention. If civil society be the offspring of convention, that conven- tion must be its law. That convention must limit and modify all the descriptions of constitution which arc; formed under it. J^very sort of legislative, judicial, and executory powers are its creatures. They can have no being in any other state of things ; and how can any man claim, under the conventions of civil society, rights which do not so much as suppose its exist- rights which are absolutely repugnant to it V One of the t motives to civil society, and which becomes one of its umlumeiital rules, is, thnt no ,m<,i xht fundamental right of uncovenantcd man, that is, to judge 206 BURKE. for himself, and to assert his own cause. He abdicates all right to be his own governor. He inclusively, in a great measure, abandons the right of self-defence, the first law of Kature. Men cannot enjoy the rights of an uncivil and of a civil state together. That he may obtain justice, he gives up his right of determining what it is in points the most essential to him. That he may secure some liberty, he makes a surrender in trust of the whole of it. Government is not made in virtue of natural rights, which may and do exist in total independence of it; and exist in much greater clearness, and in a much greater degree of ab- stract perfection : but their abstract perfection is their practi- cal defect. By having a right to every thing they want every thing. Government is a contrivance of human wisdom to provide for human wants. Men have a right that these wants should be provided for by this wisdo.n. Among these wants is to be reckoned the want, out of civil society, of a sufficient re- straint upon their passions. Society requires not only that the passions of individuals should be subjected, but that even in the mass and body, as well as in the individuals, the inclina- tions of men should frequently be thwarted, their will con- trolled, and their passions brought into subjection. This can only be done by a power out of themselves; and not, in the exer- cise of its function, subject to that will and to those passions which it is its office to bridle and subdue. In this sense the restraints on men, as well as their liberties, are to be reckoned among their rights. But as the liberties and the restrictions vary with times and circumstances, and admit of infinite modi- fications, they cannot be settled upon any abstract rule ; and nothing is so foolish as to discuss them upon that principle. The moment you abate any thing from the full rights of men, each to govern himself, and suffer any artificial, positive limita- tion upon, those rights, from that moment the whole organi- zation of government becomes a consideration of convenience. This it is which makes the constitution of a State, and the due distribution of its powers, a matter of the most delicate and complicated skill. It requires a deep knowledge of human na- ture and human necessities, and of the things which facilitate or obstruct the various ends which are to be pursued by the mechanism of civil institutions. The State is to have recruits to its strength, and remedies to its distempers. What is the use of discussing a man's abstract right to food or medicine ? The question is upon the method of procuring and administering them. In that deliberation I shall always advise to call in the aid of the farmer and the physician, rather than the professor of metaphysics. liejlcctions, &c. ABUSE OF HISTORY. 207 ABUSE OF HISTORY. TV*E do not draw the moral lessons we might from history. On the contrary, without care it may be used to vitiate our minds and to destroy our happiness. In history a great volume is unrolled for our instruction, drawing the materials of future wisdom from the past errors and infirmities of mankind. It may, in the perversion, serve for a magazine, furnishing offen- sive and defensive weapons for parties in Church and State, and supplying the means of keeping alive, or reviving, dissensions and animosities, and adding fuel to civil fury. History consists, for the greater part, of the miseries brought upon the world by pride, ambition, avarice, revenge, lust, sedition, hypocrisy, un- governed zeal, and all the train of disorderly appetites, which shake the public with the same " troublous storms that toss The private state, and make the life unsweet." These vices are the causes of those storms. Eeligion, morals, laws, prerogatives, privileges, liberties, rights of men, are the pretexts. The pretexts are always found in some specious ap- pearance of a real good. You would not secure men from tyranny and sedition, by rooting out of the mind the principles to which these fraudulent pretexts apply? If you did, you would root out every thing that is valuable in the human breast. As these are the pretexts, so the ordinary actors and instru- ments in great public evils are kings, priests, magistrates, sen- ates, parliaments, national assemblies, judges, and captains. You would not cure the evil by resolving that there should be no more monarchs, nor ministers of State, nor of the Gospel ; no interpreters of law ; no general officers ; no public councils. You might change the names. The things in some shape must remain. A certain quantum of power must always exist in the community, in some hands, and under some appellation. Wise r.ien -vvill apply their remedies to vices, not to names; to the cnuses of evil which are permanent, not to the occasional organs by which they act, and the transitory modes in which they ap- pear. Otherwise you will be wise historically, a fool in practice. Seldom have two ages the same fashion in their pretexts, and t he same modes of mischief. Wickedness is a little more invent- ive. Whilst you are di.-cussing 1'ashion, the fashion is gone by. The very same vice assumes a new body. The spirit transmi- grates ; and, far from losing its principle of life by the change of its appearance, it is renovated in its new organs with the fresh vigour of a juvenile activity. It walks abroad, it continues 208 BURKE. its ravages, whilst you are gibbeting the carcass, or demolishing the tomb. You are terrifying yourselves with ghosts and ap- paritions, whilst your house is the haunt of robbers. It is thus with all those who, attending only to the shell and husk of his- tory, think they are waging war with intolerance, pride, and cruelty, whilst, under colour of abhorring the ill principles of antiquated parties, they are authorizing and feeding the same odious vices in different factions, and perhaps in worse. Your citizens of Paris formerly had lent themselves as the ready instruments to slaughter the followers of Calvin, at the infamous massacre of St Bartholomew. What should we say to those who could think of retaliating on the Parisians of this day the abominations and horrors of that time ? They are in- deed brought to abhor that massacre. Ferocious as they are, it is not difficult to make them dislike it ; because the politicians and fashionable teachers have no interest in giving their pas- sions exactly the same direction. Still, however, they find it their interest to keep the same savage dispositions alive. It was but the other day that they caused this very massacre to be acted on the stage for the diversion of the descendants of those who committed it. In this tragic farce they produced the Cardinal of Lorraine in his robes of function, ordering general slaughter. Was this spectacle intended to make the Parisians abhor persecution, and loathe the effusion of blood? Xo ; it was to teack them to persecute their own pastors ; it was to ex- cite them, by raising a disgust and horror of their clergy, to an alacrity in hunting down to destruction an order which, if it ought to exist at all, ought to exist not only in safety, but in reverence. It was to stimulate their cannibal appetites (which one would think had been gorged sufficiently) by variety and seasoning ; and to quicken them to an alertness in new murders and massacres, if it should suit the purpose of the Guises of the day. An assembly, in which sat a multitude of priests and prelates, was obliged to suffer this indignity at its door. The author was not sent to the galleys, nor the players to the house of correction. !Xot long after this exhibition, those players came forward to the Assembly to claim the rites of that very religion which they had dared to expose, and to show their prostituted faces in the senate, whilst the Archbishop of Paris, whose function was known to his people only by his prayers and benedictions, and his wealth only by his alms, is forced to abandon his house, and to fly from his Hock, (as from ravenous wolves,) because, truly, in the sixteenth century, the Cardinal of Lorraine was a rebel and a murderer. 4 4 This is said upon the supposition that the story was true which charged ENGLISH TOLERATION. 209 Such is the effect of the perversion of history, by those who, for the same nefarious purposes, have perverted every other part of learning. But those who will stand upon that elevation of reason which places centuries under our eye, and brings things to the true point of comparison, which obscures little names, and effaces the colours of little parties, and to which nothing can ascend but the spirit and moral quality of human actions, will say to the teachers of the Palais'Royal, The Car- dinal of Lorraine was the murderer of the sixteenth century, you have the glory of being the murderers in the eighteenth ; and this is the only diiYeronce between you. But history in the nineteenth century, better understood, and better employed, will, I trust, teach a civilized posterity to abhor the misdeeds of both these barbarous ages. It will teach future priests and magistrates not to retaliate, upon the speculative and inactive atheists of future times, the enormities committed by the pres- ent practical zealots and furious fanatics of that^wretched error, which, in its quiescent state, is more than punished, whenever it is embraced. It will teach posterity not to make war upon cit her religion or philosophy, for the abuse which the hypocrites of both have made of the two most valuable blessings conferred upon us by the bounty of the universal Patron, who in all things eminently favours and protects the race of man. Ecflec- ticns, &c. ENGLISH TOLERATION". THOSE of you, who have robbed the clergy, think that they shall easily reconcile their conduct to all Protestant nations ; Idealise the clergy whom they have thus plundered, degraded, and given over to mockery and scorn, are of the Roman Catho- lic ' h;it is, of their own pretended persuasion. I have no doubt that some miserable bigots will be found here, as well as else- where, who half sects and parties different from their own, more than they love the substance of religion; and who are angry with those who differ from them in their particular plans and .systems, than displeased with those who attack the foundation of our common hope. These men will write and s]).-:ik on the subject in the manner that is to be expected from (heir temper and character. Bui net says that, when he was in .France, in the year 1C83, "the method which carried over the liual of Lorraine with instigating the St. Bartholomew massacre: but in lift the Cardinal had nothing to do with that massacre, nor was he in France at tlie time. 210 BURKE. men of the finest parts to Popery was this, they brought themselves to doubt of the whole Christian religion. When that was onco done, it seemed a more indifferent thing of what side or form they continued outwardly." If this was then the ecclesiastical policy of France, it is what they have since but too much reason to repent of. They preferred atheism to a form of religion not agreeable to their ideas. They succeeded in de- stroying that form ; and atheism has succeeded in destroying^ them. I can readily give credit to Burnet's story ; because I have observed too much of a similar spirit (for a little of it is "much too much") amongst ourselves. The humour, however, is not general. The teachers who reformed our religion in England bore no sort of resemblance to your present reforming doctors in Paris. Perhaps they were (like those whom they opposed) rather more than could be wished under the influence of a party spirit ; but they were more sincere believers ; men of the most fervent and exalted piety ; ready to die (as some of them did die) like true heroes in defence of their particular ideas of Christianity ; as they would with equal fortitude, and more cheerfully, for that stock of general truth, for the branches of which they con- tended with their blood. These men would have disavowed witli horror those wretches who claimed a fellowship with them upon no other titles than those of their having pillaged the per- sons with whom they maintained controversies, and their hav- ing despised the common religion, for the purity of which they exerted themselves with a zeal, which unequivocally bespoke their highest reverence for the substance of that system which they wished to reform. Many of their descendants have re- tnined the same zeal, but (as less engaged in conflict) with more moderation. They do not forget that justice and mercy are substantial parts of religion. Impious men do not recom- mend themselves to their communion by iniquity and cruelty towards any description of their fellow-creatures. We hear these new teachers continually boasting of their spirit of toleration. That those persons should tolerate all opinions, who think none to be of estimation, is a matter of small merit. Equal neglect is not impartial kindness. The species of benevolence, which arises from contempt^ is no true charity. There are in England abundance of men who tolerate in the true spirit of toleration. They think the dogmas of relig- ion, though in different degrees, are all of moment ; and that amongst them there is, as amongst all things of value, a just ground of preference. They favour, therefore, and they toler- ate. They tolerate, not because they despise opinions, but because they respect justice. They would reverently and affec- HOW A WISE STATESMAN PROCEEDS. 21 L tionately protect all religions, because they love and venerate the great principle upon which they all agree, and the great ob- ject to which they are all directed. They begin more and more plainly to discern that we have all a common cause, as against a common enemy. They will not be so misled by the spirit of faction, as iiot to distinguish what is done in favour of their subdivision from those acts of hostility which, through some particular description, are aimed at the whole corps, in which they themselves, under another denomination, are included. It is impossible for me to say what may be the character of every description of men amongst us. But I speak for the greater part ; and for them, I must tell you, that sacrilege is no part of their doctrine of good works ; that, so far from calling you into their fellowship on such title, if your professors are admitted to their communion, they must carefully conceal their doctrine of the lawfulness of the proscription of innocent men ; and that they must make restitution of all stolen goods what- soever. Till then they are none of ours. Reflections, &c. HOW A WISE STATESMAN PROCEEDS. THERE are moments in the fortune of States, when particular men are called to make improvements by great mental exertion. In those moments, even when they seem to enjoy the confi- dence of their prince and country, and to be invested with full authority, they have not always apt instruments. A politician, to do great things, looks for a power, what our workmen call a purcfiase ; and if he finds that power, in politics as in mechan- ics, lie cannot be at a loss to apply it. In the monastic institu- ons, in my opinion, was found a great power for the mechanism political benevolence. There were revenues with a public direction; there were men wholly set apart and dedicated to public purposes, without any other than public ties and public principles ; men without the possibility of converting the estate of the community into a private fortune ; men denied to self- interests, whose avarice is for some community; men to whom personal poverty is honour, and implicit obedience stands in the place of freedom. In vain shall a man look to the possi- bility of making such things when he wants them. The winds blow as they list. These institutions are the products of enthu- siasm ; they are the instruments of wisdom. Wisdom cannot create materials ; they are the gifts of Nature or of chance ; her pride is in the use. The perennial existence of bodies cor- 212 BURKE. porate and their fortunes are things particularly suited to a man who has long views ; who meditates designs that require time in fashioning, and which propose duration when they are accomplished. He is not deserving to rank high, or even to be mentioned in the order of great statesmen, who, having ob- tained the command and direction of such a power as existed in the wealth, the discipline, and the habits of such corporations as those which you have rashly destroyed, cannot find any way of converting it to the great and lasting benefit of his country. On the view of this subject, a thousand uses suggest themselves to a contriving mind. To destroy any power, growing wild from the rank productive force of the human mind, is almost tantamount, in the moral world, to the destruction of the ap- parently active properties of bodies in the material. It would be like the attempt to destroy (if it were in our competence to destroy) the expansive force of fixed air in nitre, or the power of steam, or of electricitj", or of magnetism. These energies always existed in Nature, and they were always discernible. They seemed, some of them unserviceable, some noxious, some no better than a sport to children ; until contemplative ability, combining with practic skill, tamed their wild nature, subdued them to use, and rendered them at once the most powerful and the most tractable agents, in subservience to the great views and designs of men. Did fifty thousand persons, whose mental and whose bodily labour you might direct, and so many hun- dred thousand a year of a revenue, which was neither lazy nor superstitious, appear too big for your abilities to wield? Had you no way of using the men, but by converting monks into pen- sioners ? Had you no way of turning the revenue to account, but through the improvident resource of a spendthrift sale? If you were thus destitute of mental funds, the proceeding is in its natural course. Your politicians do not understand their trade ; and therefore they sell their tools. But the institutions savour of superstition in their very principle ; and they nourish it by a permanent and standing in- fluence? This I do not mean to dispute ; but this ought not to hinder you from deriving from superstition itself any resource* which may thence be furnished for the public advantage. You derivo benefits from many dispositions and many passions of the human mind, which arc of as doubtful a colour, in the moral eye, as superstition itself. It was your business to correct and mitigate every thing which was noxious in this passion, as in all the passions. But is superstition the greatest of all possible vices ? In its possible excess I think it becomes a very great evil. It is, however, a moral subject ; and of course admits of all degrees and all modifications. Superstition is the religion of TRUE PRINCIPLES OF REFORM. 213 feeble minds ; and they must be tolerated in an intermixture of it, in some trifling or some enthusiastic shape or other, else you will deprive weak minds of a resource found necessary to the strongest. The body of all true religion consists, to be sure, in obedience to the will of the Sovereign of the world ; in a confidence in His declarations, and an imitation of Ilis perfec- tions. The rest is our own. It may be prejudicial to the great end ; it may be auxiliary. Wise men, who as such are not fiilniirci's, (not admirers at least of the Muncra Terrce,) are not violently attached to these things, nor do they violently hate them. Wisdom is not the most severe corrector of folly. They are the rival follies, which mutually wage so unrelenting a war ; and which make so cruel a use of their advantages, as they can happen to engage the immoderate vulgar, on the one side or the other, in their quarrels. Prudence would be neuter: but if, in the contention between fond attachment and tierce antipathy concerning things in their nature not made to produce such heats, a prudent man were obliged to make a choice of what errors and excesses of enthusiasm he would condemn or bear, perhaps he would think the superstition which builds to be more tolerable than that which demolishes ; that which adorns a country, than that which deforms it; that which endows, than that which plunders ; that which disposes to mistaken be- neficence, than that which stimulates to real injustice; that which leads a man to refuse to himself lawful pleasures, than that which snatches from others the scanty subsistence of their self-denial. Such, I think, is very nearly the state of the ques- tion between the ancient founders of monkish superstition, and the superstition of the pretended philosophers of the hour. Reflections, &c. TRUE PRINCIPLES OF REFORM. I AM convinced that there are men of considerable parts among the popular leaders in the National Assembly. Some of them display eloquence in their speeches and their writings. This cannot be without powerful and cultivated talents. But eloquence may exist without a proportionable degree of wis- dom. When I speak of ability, I am obliged to distinguish. What they have done towards the support of their system be- speak.s no ordinary men. In the system itself, taken as the scheme of a republic constructed for procuring the prosperity and security of the citizen, and for promoting the strength and grandeur of the State, I confess myself unable to find out any 214 BURKE. thing which displays, in a single instance, the work of a com- prehensive and disposing mind, or even the provisions of a vulgar prudence. Their purpose everywhere seems to have been to evade and slip aside from difficulty. This it has been the glory of the great masters in all the arts to confront, and to overcome ; and, when they had overcome the first difficulty, to turn it into an instrument for new conquests over new difficul- ties ; thus to enable them to extend the empire of their science ; and even to push forward, beyond the reach of their original thoughts, the landmarks of the human understanding itself. Difficulty is a severe instructor, set over us by the supreme or- dinance of a parental Guardian and Legislator, who knows us better than we know ourselves, as He loves us better too. Pater ipsc colcndi haudfacilem csse viam voluit. He that wrestles with us strengthens our nerves, and sharpens our skill. Our antago- nist is our helper. This amicable conflict with difficulty obliges us to an intimate acquaintance with our object, and compels us to consider it in all its relations. It will not suffer us to be superficial. It is the want of nerves of understanding for such a task, it is the degenerate fondness for tricking short-cuts, and little fallacious facilities, that has in so many parts of the world created governments with arbitrary powers. They created the late arbitrary monarchy of France. They have created the ar- bitrary republic of Paris. With them defects in wisdom are to be supplied by the plenitude of force. They get nothing by it. Commencing their labours on a principle of sloth, they have the common fortune of slothful men. The difficulties, which they rather had eluded than escaped, meet them again in their course ; they multiply and thicken on them ; they arc involved, through a labyrinth of confused detail, in an industry without limit, and without direction ; and, in conclusion, the whole of their work becomes feeble, vicious, and insecure. It is this inability to wrestle with difficulty which has obliged the arbitrary Assembly of France to commence their schemes of reform with abolition and total destruction. But is it in destroying and pulling down that skill is displayed? Your mob can do this as well at least as your assemblies. The shal- lowest understanding, the rudest hand, is more than equal to that task. Rage and frenzy will pull down more in half an hour, than prudence, deliberation, and foresight can build up in a hundred years. The errors and defects of old establish- ments are visible and palpable. It calls for little ability to point them out ; and, where absolute power is given, it requires but a word wholly to abolish the vice and the establishment together. The same lazy but restless disposition, which loves sloth and hates quiet, directs the politicians, when they coine to work for TRUE PRINCIPLES OF REFORM. 215 supplying the place of what they have destroyed. To make every thing the reverse of what they have seen, is quite as easy as to destroy. Xo difficulties occur in what has never been tried. Criticism is almost baffled in discovering the defects of what has not existed ; and eager enthusiasm and cheating hope have all the wide field of imagination, in which they may expa- tiate with little or no opposition. At once to preserve and to reform is quite another thing. When the useful parts of an old establishment are kept, and what is superadded is to be fitted to what is retained, a vigor- ous mind, steady, persevering attention, various powers of comparison and combination, and the resources of an under- standing fruitful in expedients, are to be exercised ; they are to be exercised in a continued conflict with the combined force of opposite vices, with the- obstinacy that rejects all improve- ment, and the levity that is fatigued and disgusted with every thing of which it is in possession. But you may object, "A process of this kind is slow. It is not fit for an assembly, which glories in performing in a few months the work of ages. Such a mode of reforming, possibly, might take up many years." Without question it might ; and it ought. It is one of the excellences of a method in which time is amongst the as- sistants, that its operation is slow, and in some cases almost imperceptible. If circumspection and caution are a part of wisdom when we work only upon inanimate matter, surely they become a part of duty too, when the subject of our demolition and construction is not brick and timber, but sentient beings, by the sudden alteration of whose state, condition, and habits, multitudes may be rendered miserable. But it seems as if it were the prevalent opinion in Paris, that an unfeeling heart and an umloubting conlidence are the sole qualifications for a perfect legislator. Far different are my ideas of that high ollice. The true lawgiver ought to have a heart full of sensi- bility. He ought to love and respect his kind, and to fear himself. It may be allowed to his temperament to catch his ultimate object with an intuitive glance ; but his movements towards it ought to be deliberate. Political arrangement, as it is a work for social ends, is to be only wrought by social means. There mind must conspire with mind. Time is required to produce that union of minds which alone can produce all the good we aim at. Our patience will achieve more than our force. If I might venture to appeal to what is so much out of fashion in Paris, I mean to experience, I should tell you, that in my course I have known, and, according to my measure, have co-operated with great men ; and I have never yet seen any plan which has not been mended by the observations of 216 BURKE. those who were much inferior in understanding to the person who took the lead in the business. By a slow but well-sus- tained progress, the effect of each step is -watched ; the good or ill success of the first gives light to us in the second; and so, from light to light, we are conducted with safety through the whole series. We see that the parts of the system do not clash. The evils latent in the most promising contrivances are provided for as they arise. One advantage is as little as possi- ble sacrificed to another. "We compensate, we reconcile, we balance. We are enabled to unite into a consistent whole the various anomalies and contending principles that are found in the minds and affairs of men. From hence arises, not an ex- cellence in simplicity, but one far superior, an excellence in composition. Where the great interests of mankind are con- cerned through a long succession of generations, that succes- sion ought to be admitted to some share in the counsels which are so deeply to affect them. If justice requires this, the work itself requires the aid of more minds than one age can furnish. It is from this view of things that the host legislators have been often satisfied with the establishment of some sure, solid, and ruling principle in government; a power like that which some of the philosophers have called a plastic nature ; and, having fixed the principle, they have left it afterwards to its own operation. To proceed in this manner,, that is, to proceed with a presiding principle, and a prolific energy, is with me the criterion of pro- found wisdom. What your politicians think the marks of a bold, hardy genius, are only proofs of a deplorable want of abil- ity. By their violent haste and their defiance of the processes of Nature, they are delivered over blindly to every projector and adventurer, to every alchymist and empiric. They despaii of turning to account any thing that is common. Diet is not 1 - ing in their system of remedy. The worst of it is, that this their despair of curing common distempers by regular methods arises not only from defect of comprehension, but, I fear, from some malignity of disposition. Your legislators seem to have taken their opinions of all professions, ranks, and ollices, from the declamations and buffooneries of satirists, who would them- selves be astonished if they were held to the letter of their own descriptions. By listening only to these, your leaders regard all things only on the side of their vices and faults, and view those vices and faults under every colour of exaggeration. It is undoubtedly true, though it may seem paradoxical, that, in general, those who are habitually employed in finding and dis- playing faults arc unqualified for the work of reformation ; because their minds are not only unfurnished with patterns of FANATICISM OF LIBERTY. 217 the fair and good, but by habit they come to take no delight in the contemplation of those things. 13y hating vices too much, they come to love men too little. It is therefore not wonderful that they should be indisposed and unable to serve them. From hence arises the complexional disposition of some of your guides to pull every thing in pieces. At this malicious game they display the whole of their quadrimanoiis activity. As to the rest, the paradoxes of eloquent writers, brought forth purely as a sport of fancy, to try their talents, to rouse atten- tion and excite surprise, are taken up by these gentlemen, not in the spirit of the original authors, as means of cultivating their taste and improving their style. These paradoxes become with them serious grounds of action, upon which they proceed in regulating the most important concerns of the State. Cicero ludicrously describes Cato as endeavouring to act, in the com- monwealth, upon the school paradoxes which exercised the wits of the junior students in the Stoic philosophy. If this was true of Cato, these gentlemen copy after him in the manner of some persons who lived about his time, pede nmlo Catoncm. Mr. Hume told me that he had from Rousseau himself the se- cret of his principles of composition. That acute though eccen- tric observer had perceived that, to strike and interest the public, the marvellous must be produced ; that the marvellous of the heathen mythology had long since lost its effects; that giants, magiciaps, fairies, and heroes of romance which suc- ceeded, had exhausted the portion of credulity which belonged to their age that now nothing was left to the writer but that species of 'he marvellous which might still be produced, and with as L r eat an effect as ever, though in another way ; that is, lite m:r vellous in life, in manners, in characters, and in extraor- dinary situations, giving rise to new and unlooked-for strokes in politics and morals. I believe that, were Rousseau alive, and i-i cue of his lucid intervals, he would be shocked at the prac- tical fren/.y of his scholars, who in their paradoxes arc servile imitators, and even in their incredulity discover an implicit faith. Reflections, &c. FANATICISM OF LIBERTY. Tin: effects of the incapacity shown by the popular leaders in all the great members of UK; commonwealth are to be covered with tin; "all-atoning iuftne" of liberty. In some people I see great liberty indued ; in many, if not in the most, an oppressive, 218 BURKE. degrading servitude. But what is liberty without wisdom and without virtue ? It is the greatest of all possible evils ; for it is folly, vice, and madness, without tuition or restraint. Those who know what virtuous liberty is, cannot bear to see it dis- graced by incapable heads, on account of their having high- sounding words in their mouths. Grand, swelling sentiments of liberty I am sure I do not despise. They warm the heart ; they enlarge and liberalize our minds ; they animate our cour- age in a time of conflict. Old as I am, I read the line raptures of Lucan and Corneille with pleasure. Neither do I wholly condemn the little arts and devices of popularity. They facili- tate the carrying of many points of moment ; they keep the people together ; they refresh the mind in its exertions ; and they diffuse occasional gayety over the severe brow of moral freedom. Every politician ought to sacrifice to the graces, and to join compliance with reason. But in such an undertaking as that in France, all these subsidiary sentiments and artifices are of little avail. To make a government requires no great pru- dence. Settle the seat of power ; teach obedience ; and the work is done. To give freedom is still more easy. It is not necessary to guide ; it only requires to let go the rein. But to form a, free government, that is, to temper together these oppo- site elements of liberty and restraint in one consistent work, requires much thought, deep reflection, a sagacious, powerful, and combining mind. This I do not find in those who take the lead in the National Assembly. Perhaps they are not so mis- erably deficient as they appear. I rather believe it. It would put them below the common level of human understanding. But when the leaders choose to make themselves bidders at an auction of popularity, their talents, in the construction of the State, will be of no service. They will become flatterers instead of legislators ; the instruments, not the guides, of the people. If any of them should happen to propose a scheme of liberty, soberly limited, and defined with proper qualifications, he will be immediately outbid by his competitors, who will pro- duce something more splendidly popular. Suspicions will be raised of his fidelity to his cause. Moderation will be stigma- tized as the virtue of cowards ; and compromise as the pru- dence of traitors ; until, in hopes of preserving the credit which may enable him to temper and moderate, on some occa- sions, the popular leader is obliged to become active in propa- gating doctrines, and establishing powers, that will afterwards defeat any sober purpose at which he ultimately might have aimed. Jiejlcctions, &c. THE ETHICS OP VANITY. 219 THE ETHICS OF VANITY. 5 THOSE who have made the exhibition of the 14th of July are capable of every evil. They do not commit crimes for their designs ; but they form designs that they may commit crimes. It is not their necessity, but their nature, that impels them. They are modern philosophers ; which when you say of them you express every thing that is ignoble, savage, and hard- hearted. Besides the sure tokens which are given by the spirit of their particular arrangements, there are some characteristic linea- ments in the general policy of your tumultuous despotism, which, in my opinion, indicate, beyond a doubt, that no revolu- tion whatsoever in their (lixpoxition is to be expected. I mean their scheme of educating the rising generation, the principles which they intend to instil, and the sympatliTeS^wliich they wish to form in the mind, at the season in which it is the susceptible. Instead of forming their young minds to that do- cility, to that modesty, which are the grace and charm of youth, to an admiration of famous examples, and to an averseness to any thing which approaches to pride, petulance, and self- conceit, (distempers to which that time of life is of itself suffi- ciently liable,) they artificially foment these evil dispositions, and even form them into springs of action. Nothing ought to be more weighed than the nature of books recommended by public authority. So recommended, they soon form the char- acter of the age. Uncertain indeed is the efficacy, limited in- deed is the extent, of a virtuous institution. But if education takes in vice as any part of its system, there is no doubt but that it will operate with abundant energy, and to an extent indefi- nite. The magistrate, who in favour of freedom thinks himself obliged to suffer all sorts of publications, is under a stricter 5 The paper which furnishes the pages under this heading was published in February, 1701 ; its full title being, " A Letter to a Member of the National As- sembly; in Answer to some Objections to his Book on French Affairs. 1791." The " book " here referred to is Reflections, i a Spear-bearer, which became known as " the Canon," because it embodied a per- fect representation of the ideal of the human iiguro. moi THE ETHICS OF VAXITY. 221 mility, the basis of the Christian system, is the low but deep and firm foundation of all real virtue. But this, as very painful in the practice, and little imposing in the appearance, they have totally discarded. Their object is to merge all natural and all social sentiment in inordinate vanity. In a small degree, and conversant in little things, vanity is of little moment. When full grown, it is the worst of vices, and the occasional mimic of them all. It makes the whole man false. It leaves nothing sincere or trustworthy about him. His best qualities are poi- soned and perverted by it, and operate exactly as the worst. When your lords had many writers as immoral as the object of their statue, (such as Voltaire and others,) they chose Rous- seau ; because in him that peculiar vice which they wished to erect into a ruling virtue was by far the most conspicuous. We have had the great professor and founder of the philoso- pli>i f I'anltn in England. As I had good opportunities of know- ing his proceedings almost from day to day, he left no doubt on my mind that he entertained no principle, either to influence his heart or to guide his understanding, but vanity. With this A -ice he was possessed to a degree little short of madness. It is from the same deranged, eccentric vanity, that this, the insane Soc- rates of the National Assembly, was impelled to publish a mad confession of his mad faults, and to attempt a new sort of glory from bringing hardily to light the obscure and' vulgar vices, which we know may sometimes be blended with eminent tal- ents, lie has not observed on the nature of vanity who does not know that it is omnivorous; that it has no choice in its food ; that it is fond to talk even of its <>\vn faults and vices, as what will excite surprise and draw attention, and what will pass at worM for openness and candour. It was this abuse and perversion, which vanity makes even of hypocrisy, that has driven IvotiN>e;ui to record a life not so much as chequered, or spotted here and tin-re, with virtues, or even distinguished by a single good action. It is such a life he chooses to offer to the attention of mankind. It is such a life that, with a wild defiance, he flings in the face of his Creator, whom he acknowledges only to brave. Your Assembly, know- ing how much more powerful example is found than precept, ha> chosen this man (by his own account without a single virtue) for a model. To him they erect their first statue. From him they commence their series of honours and distinctions. It is that new invented virtue, which your masters canonize, that led their moral hero constantly to exhaust the stores of his powerful rhetoric in the expression of universal benevolence ; whil-i liis heart was incapable of harbouring one spark of com- i parental affection. Benevolence to the whole species, and 222 BURKE. want of feeling for every individual with whom the professors come in contact, form the character of the new philosophy. Setting up for an unsocial independence, this their hero of van- ity refuses the just price of common labour, as well as the tribute which opulence owes to genius, and which, when paid, honours the giver and the receiver ; and then he pleads his beggary as an excuse for his crimes. He melts with tenderness for those only who touch him by the remotest relation, and then, without one natural pang, casts away, as a sort of offal and excrement, the spawn of his disgustful amours, and sends his children to the hospital of foundlings. The bear loves, licks, and forms her young ; but bears are not philosophers. Vanity, however, finds its account in reversing the train of our natural feelings. Thousands admire the sentimental writer; the affec- tionate father is hardly known in his parish. Under this philosophic instructor in the ethics of vanity, they have attempted in France a regeneration of the moral constitu- tion of man. Statesmen like your present rulers exist by every thing which is spurious, fictitious, and false ; by every thing which takes the man from his house, and sets him on a stage ; which makes him up an artificial creature, with painted, theatric sentiments, fit to be seen by the glare of candle-light, and formed to be contemplated at a due distance. Vanity is too apt to pre- vail in all of us, and in all countries. To the improvement of Frenchmen it seems not absolutely necessary that it should be taught upon system. But it is plain that the present rebellion t was its legitimate offspring, and it is piously fed by that rebel-' lion with a daily dole. If the system of institution recommended by the Assembly be false and theatric, it is because their system of government is of the same character. To that, and to that alone, it is strictly conformable. To understand either, we must connect the morals with the politics of the legislators. Your practical philosophers, systematic in every thing, have wisely begun at the source. As the relation between parents and children is the first amongst the elements of vulgar, natural morality ; they erect statues to a wild, ferocious, low-minded, hard-heart id father, of fine general feelings ; a lover of his kind, but a hater of his kindred. Your masters reject the duties of this vulgar relation, as contrary to liberty; as not founded in the social compact ; and not binding according to the rights of men ; be- cause the relation is not, of course, the result of free election; never so on the side of the children, not always on the part of the parents. The next relation which they regenerate by their statues to Rousseau, is that which is next in sanctity to that of a father. THE ETHICS OF VANITY. 223 They differ from those old-fashioned thinkers wlio considered pedagogues as sober and venerable characters, and allied to the parental. The moralists of the dark times prcccptorcm sancti rolucrc parcntis cssc loco. 9 In this age of light, they teach the people that preceptors ought to be in the place of gallants. They systematically corrupt a very corruptible race, (for some time a growing nuisance amongst you,) a set of pert, petulant 1 iterators, to whom, instead of their proper, but severe, unos- tentatious duties, they assign the brilliant part of men of wit and pleasure, of gay, young military sparks, and danglers at toilets. They call on the rising generation in France to take a sympathy in the adventures and fortunes, and they endeavour to engage their sensibility on the side, of pedagogues who be- tray the most awful family trusts, and vitiate their female pupils. They teach the people that the debauchers of virgins, almost in the arms of their parents, may be safe inmates in the houses, and even fit guardians of the honour, of those husbands who succeed legally to the office which the young literators had pre-occupied, without asking leave of law or conscience. Thus they dispose of all the family relations of parents and children, husbands and wives. Through this same instructor, by whom they corrupt the morals, they corrupt the taste. Tasto and elegance, though they are reckoned only among the smaller and secondary morals, yet are of no mean importance in the reg- ulation of life. A moral taste is not of force to turn vice into virtue ; but it recommends virtue with something like the blan- dishments of pleasure; and it infinitely abates the evils of vices. Rousseau, a writer of great force and vivacity, is totally desti- tute of taste in any sense of the word. Your masters, who are liolars, conceive that all refinement has an aristocratic character. The last age had exhausted all its powers in giving grace and nobleness to our natural appetites, and in raising ier.1 into a higher class and order than seemed justly to belong them. Through Rousseau, your masters are resolved to destroy these aristocratic prejudices. The passion called love has so general and powerful an influence ; it makes so much of the entertainment, and indeed so much of the occupation, of that part of life which decides the character for ever, that the mode and the principles on which it engages the sympathy, and strikes the imagination, become of the utmost importance to the morals and manners of every society. Your rulers were well aware of this ; and, in their system of changing your man- ners to accommodate them to their politics, they found nothing 8 That is, " chose to have the teacher stand iu the place of a revered parent." 224 BURKE. so convenient as Eousseau. Through him they teach men to love after the fashion of philosophers ; that is, they teach to men, to Frenchmen, a love without gallantry ; a love without any thing of that fine flower of youthfulness and gentility which places it, if not among the virtues, among the ornaments of life. Instead of this passion, naturally allied to grace and manners, they infuse into their youth an unfashioned, indeli- cate, sour, gloomy, ferocious medley of pedantry and lewdness ; of metaphysical speculations blended with the coarsest sensual- ity. Such is the general morality of the passions to be found in their famous philosopher, in his famous work of philosophic gallantry, the NouvcUe Eloisc. When the fence from the gallantry of preceptors is broken down, and your families are no longer protected by decent pride and salutary domestic prejudice, there is but one step to a frightful corruption. The rulers in the National Assembly are in good hopes that the females of the first families in France may become an easy prey to dancing-masters, fiddlers, pattern-drawers, friseurs, and valets de chambro, and other active citizens of that description, who having the entry into your houses, and being half domesticated by their situation, may be blended with you by regular and irregular relations. By a law they have made these people your equals. By adopt- ing the sentiments of Rousseau they have made them your rivals. In this manner these great legislators complete their plan of levelling, and establish their rights of men on a sure foundation. I am certain that the writings of Eousseau lead directly to this kind of shameful evil. I have often wondered how he conies to be so much more admired and followed on the Conti- nent than he is here. Perhaps a secret charm in the language may have its share in this extraordinary difference. TV tainly perceive, and to a degree we feel, in this writer, a style glowing, animated, enthusiastic ; at the same time that we Qnd it lax, diffuse, and not in the best taste of composition ; all the members of the piece being pretty equally laboured and ex- panded, without any due selection or subordination of parts, lie is generally too much on the stretch, and his manner has little variety. We cannot rest upon any of his works, though they contain observations which occasionally discover a consid- erable insight into human nature. But his doctrines, on the whole, are so inapplicable to real life and manners, that we never dream of drawing from them any rule for laws or con- duct, or for fortifying or illustrating any thing by a reference to his opinions. They have with us the fate of older paradoxes, THE rimes or VAXITY. 225 Cum ventum ad verum cst, sensus morcsque repugnant, Atque ipsa utilitas justi prope mater ct reqni. 9 Perhaps bold speculations are more acceptable because more new to you than to us, who have been long since satiated with them. "We continue, as in the two last ages, to read, more gen- erally than I believe is now done on the Continent, the authors of sound antiquity. These occupy our minds. They give us another taste and turn ; and will not suffer us to be more than transiently amused with paradoxical morality. It is not that I consider this writer as wholly destitute of just notions. Amongst, his irregularities, it must be reckoned that he is some- times moral, and moral in a very, sublime strain. But the gen- eral ftpirit and tendency of his works is mischievous ; and the more mischievous for this mixture: for perfect depravity of sentiment is not reconcilable with eloquence ; and the mind (though corruptible, not complexionally vicious) would reject, and throw off with disgust, a lesson of pure and unmixed evil. These writers make even virtue a pander to vice. However, I less consider tin- author than the system of the Assembly in perverting morality through his means. This I confess makes me nearly despair of any attempt upon the minds of their followers, through reason, honour, or conscience. The great object of your tyrants is to destroy the gentlemen of France ; and for that purpose they destroy, to the best of their power, all the effect of those relations which may render con- siderable men powerful, or even safe. To destroy that order, they vitiate the whole community. That no means may exist of confederating against their tyranny, by the false sympathies of this Noui'cllc Eloisc they endeavour to subvert those princi- ples of domestic trust and fidelity which form the discipline of social life. They propagate principles by which every servant may think it, if not his duty, at least his privilege, to betray his master. By these principles, every considerable father of a family loses the sanctuary of his house. Dcbet sua cuique damns iffhtm tiitixxiiiium, 1 ' says the law, which your legislators have taken so much pains first to decry, then to repeal. They destroy all the tranquillity and security of domestic life ; turn- ing the asylum of the house into a gloomy prison, where the father of the family must drag out a miserable existence, en- dangered in proportion to the apparent means of his safety; v.here, he is worse than solitary in a crowd of domestics, and more apprehensive from his servants and inmates than from 9 To come to the truth of the matter, the feelings and morals fight against thorn, ;mrl even utility itsell', \\liicli i,s almost the mother of right and equity. 10 Every man's own home ought to be his securest refuge 226 BURKE. the hired, bloodthirsty mob without-doors, who are ready to pull him to the lanterne. It is thus, and for the same end, that they endeavour to destroy that tribunal of conscience which exists independently of edicts and decrees. Your despots govern by terror. They know that he who fears God fears nothing else ; and therefore they eradicate from the mind, through their Voltaire, their Ilelvctius, and the rest of that infamous gang, that only sort of fear which generates true courage. Their object is, that their fellow-citizens may be under the dominion of no awe, but that of their committee of research, and of their lanterne. 11 THE OLD AND THE NEW WHIGS. 1 I DO not wish to enter very much at large into the discussions which diverge and ramify in all ways from this productive sub- ject. But there is one topic upon which I hope I shall be excused in going a little beyond my design. The factions, now so busy amongst us, in order to divest men of all love for their country, and to remove from their minds all duty with regard to the State, endeavour to propagate an opinion that the people, in forming their commonwealth, have by no means parted with their power over it. This is an impregnable citadel, to which these gentlemen retreat whenever they are pushed by the bat- tery of laws and usages, and positive conventions. Indeed it is such and of so great force, that all they have done, in defending their outworks, is so much time and labour thrown away. Dis- cuss any of their schemes, their answer is, It is the act of the II The character here given of Rousseau, and the critical remarks on the stylo ai|l tendcneyof his writings, were at the time justly admired for their originality and depth; and were regarded as not inferior to any thing that came from the author's pen. 1 The pages which follow, under this heading, are from a book published in 1701, with the title, " An Appeal from the New to the Old Whigs, in Consequence of some late Discussions in Parliament, relative to the Reflections on the French Revolution. 1791." The work is a defence of the doctrines maintained in the Reflections, Not long after the appearance of the previous book, the radical sec- tioii of the Whigs, with Fox at their head, got so worked up against the doc- trines there taught, and against the author's course in Parliament, that they formally and publicly read him out of the party, as a deserter or renegade. They did good service to their country, to humanity, and to the cause of litera- ture, by thus provoking him to write the Appeal, which completed whatever may have been wanting to the full triumph of his former work. In these pages, as will readily be seen, the author constantly speaks of himself in the third person. THE OLD AND THE NEW WHIGS. 227 people, and that is sufficient Are we to deny to a majority of the people the right of altering e"ven the whole frame of their society, if such should be their pleasure? They may change it, say they, from a monarchy to a republic to-day, and to-morrow back again from a republic to a monarchy ; and so backward and forward as often as they like. They are masters of the commonwealth, because in substance they are themselves the commonwealth. The French Revolution, say they, was the act of the majority of the people ; and if the majority of any other people, the people of England for instance, wish to make the same change, they have the same right. Just the same undoubtedly ; that is, none at all. Neither the few nor the many have a right to act merely by their will, in any matter connected with duty, trust, engagement, or obliga- tion. The Constitution of a country being once settled upon some compact, tacit or expressed, there is no power existing of force to alter it, without the breach of the covenant, or the con- sent of all the parties. Such is the nature of a contract. And the votes of a majority of the people, whatever their infamous llatteivrs may teach in order to corrupt their minds, cannot alter the moral anymore than they can alter the physical es- sence of things. The people are not to be taught to think lightly of their engagements to their governors ; else they teach governors to think lightly of their engagements towards them. In that kind of game, in the end the people are sure to be losers. To Hatter them into a contempt of faith, truth, and justice, is to ruin them ; for in these virtues consists their whole ty. To natter any man, or any part of mankind, in any description, by assorting that in engagements he or they are free, whilst any other human creature is bound, is ultimately to vest the rule of morality in the pleasure of those who ought to be rigidly submitted to it ; to subject the sovereign reason of the world to the caprices of weak and giddy men. But as no one of us men can dispense with public or private faith, or with any other tie of moral obligation, so neither can any number of us. The number engaged in crimes, instead of turning them into laudable acts, only augments the quantity and intensity of the guilt. J am well aware that men love to hear of their power, but have an extreme disrelish to be told of their duty. This is of course; because every duty is a limita- tion of some power. Indeed, arbitrary power is so much to the depraved taste of the vulgar, of the vulgar of every description, that almost all the dissensions which lacerate the, common- wealth are not concerning the manner in which it is to be exer- d, but concerning the hands in which it is to be placed. Somewhere they are resolved to have it. Whether they desire 228 BURKE. it to bo vested in the many or the few, depends with most men upon the chance which they imagine they themselves may have of partaking in the exercise of that arbitrary sway, in the one mode or in the other. It is not necessary to teach men to thirst after power. But it is very expedient that by moral instruction they should be taught, and by their civil Constitutions they should be com- pelled, to put many restrictions upon the immoderate exercise of it, and the inordinate desire. The best method of obtaining these two great points forms the important, but at the. same. time the diflicult, problem to the true statesman. He thinks of the place in which political power is to be lodged, with no other attention than as it may render the more or the less practicable its salutary restraint, and its prudent direction. For this reason no legislator, at any period of the world, has willingly placed the seat of active power in the hands of the multitude ; because there it admits of no control, no regulation, no steady direction whatsoever. The people are the natural control on authority ; but to exercise and to control together is contradictory and impossible. As the exorbitant exercise of power cannot, under popular sway, be effectually restrained, the other great object of politi- cal arrangement, the means of abating an excessive desire of it, is in such a State still worse provided for. The democratic; commonwealth is the foodful nurse of ambition. Under the other forms it meets with many restraints. Whenever, in States which have had a democratic basis, the legislators have endeavoured to put restraints upon ambition, their methods were as violent as in the end they were ineffectual ; as violent indeed as any the most jealous despotism could invent. The ostracism could not very long save itself, and much less the State which it was meant to guard, from the attempts of aml>i- tion, one of the natural, inbred, incurable distempers of a pow- erful democracy. But to return from this short digression, which however is not wholly foreign to the question of the effect of the will of the majority upon the form or the existence of their society. I cannot too often recommend it to the serious consideration of all men, who think civil society to be within the province of moral jurisdiction, that if we owe to it any duty, it is not subject to our will. Duties are not voluntary. Duty and will are rvm contradictory terms. Xow, though civil society might be at first a voluntary act, (which in many cases it undoubtedly was, its continuance is under a permanent, standing covenant, co- existing with the society ; and it attaches upon every individual of that society, without any formal act of his own. This is E THE OLD ASTD THE NEW WHIGS. 229 warranted by the general practice, arising out of the general sense of mankind. Men without their choice derive benefits from that association ; without their choice they are subjected to duties in consequence of these benefits ; and without their choice they enter into a virtual obligation as binding as any that is actual. Look through the whole of life and the whole system of duties. Much the strongest moral obligations are such as were never the results of our option. I allow that, if no Su- preme Ruler exists, wise to form and potent to enforce the moral law, there is no sanction to any contract, virtual or even actual, against the will of prevalent power. On that hypothe- sis, k-t any set of men be strong enough to set their duties at defiance, and they cease to be duties any longer. We have but this one appeal against irresistible power: Si genus humanum ct mortalia temnitis arma, At sperate Deos memores fandi atquo nefandi. 2 Taking it for granted that I do not write to the disciples of the Parisian philosophy, I may assume that the awful Author of our being is the Author of our place in the order of exist- ence ; and that, having disposed and marshalled us )>y a divine . not according to our will, but according to His, lie has, in and l>y that disposition, virtually subjected us to act the part which belongs to tin- place assigned us. We have obliga- tions to mankind at large, which are not in consequence of any .-perial voluntary pact. They arise from the relation of man toman, and the relation of man to God, which relations are not matters of choice. On the contrary, the force of all tin- pacts which we enter into with any particular person, or num- ber of persons amongst mankind, depends upon those prior obligations. In some cases the subordinate relations arc volun- tary, in others they are necessary ; but the duties arc all com- pulsive. When we marry, the choice is voluntary, but the are not matter of choice. They are dictated by the na- ture of the situation. Dark and inscrutable are the ways by which we come into the world. The instincts which give rise, to this mysterious process of Nature are not of our making. But out of physical causes, unknown to us, perhaps unknow- able, arise moral duties which, as we are able perfectly to com- ivhend, we are bound indispensably to perform. Parents may t be consenting to their moral relation ; but, consenting or ot, they are bound to a long train of burthensome duties towards those- with whom they have never made a convention 2 If you despise the human race and mortal weapons, yet be assured that tho gods are mindful of right and wrong. 230 BURKE. of any sort. Children are not consenting to their relation, but their relation, without their actual consent, binds them to its duties ; or rather it implies their consent, because the pre- sumed consent of every rational creature is in unison with the predisposed order of things. Men come in that manner into a community with the social state of their parents, endowed with all the benefits, loaded with all the duties, of their situation. If the social ties and ligaments, spun out of those physical rela- tions which are the elements of the commonwealth, in most cases begin, and alway continue, independently of our will; so, without any stipulation on our own part, are we bound by that relation called our country, which comprehends (as it has been, well said) "all the charities of all." 3 Nor are we left without powerful instincts to make this duty as dear and grateful to us, as it is awful and coercive. Our country is not a thing of mere physical locality. It consists, in a great measure, in the an- cient order into which we are born. We may have the same geographical situation, but another country ; as we may have the same country in another soil. The place that determines our duty to our country is a social, civil relation. These are the opinions of the author whose cause I defend. I lay them down, not to enforce them upon others by disputa- tion, but as an account of his proceedings. On them he acts; and from them he is convinced that neither he nor any man, or number of men, have a right (except what necessity, which is out of and above all rule, rather imposes than bestows) to free themselves from that primary engagement into which every man born into a community as much contracts by Ijis being born into it, as he contracts an obligation to certain parents by his having been derived from their bodies. The place of every man determines his duty. If you ask, Quern te Deus esse jussit ? You will be answered when you resolve this other question, Jfumana qua partc locatus es in re ? 4 I admit, indeed, that in morals, as in all things else, difficul- ties will sometimes occur. Duties will sometimes cross one another. Then questions will arise, which of them is to be placed in subordination ; which of them may be entirely super- seded. These doubts give rise to that part of moral science :$ This quotation is from Cicero, De Officiis, i. 17; but loses much of its force when thus detached from the beautiful sentence in Which it stands: "Parents are dear, children are dear, so are kindred, so are friends; but the whole dear- IH">S of all these is embraced in the one fatherland; for which what good man will hesitate to die, if he can thereby be of service to it?" 4 That is, " What does the Deity require you to be?" and, "In what human relation are you actually placed? " The quotations are from the. Roman poet, Persius. THE OLD AND THE NEW WHIGS. 231 called casuistry; which, though necessary to be well studied by those who would become expert in that learning, who aim at becoming what, I think, Cicero somewhere calls, artifices offi- ciorum, 5 requires a very solid and discriminating judgment, great modesty and caution, and much sobriety of mind in the handling ; else there is a danger that it may totally subvert those offices which it is its object only to methodize and reconcile. Duties, at their extreme bounds, are drawn very fine, so as to become almost evanescent. In that state some shade of doubt will always rest on these questions, when Jhey are pursued with great subtilty. But the very habit of stating these extreme cases is not very laudable or safe ; because, in general, it is not right to turn our duties into doubts. They are imposed, to govern our conduct, not to exercise our inge- nuity ; and therefore our opinions about them ought not to be in a state of fluctuation, but steady, sure, and resolved. Amongst these nice and therefore dangerous points of casu- istry may be reckoned the question so much agitated in the present hour, Whether, after tho people have discharged them- selves of their original power by an habitual delegation, no occasion can possibly occur which may justify the resumption of it? This question, in this latitude, is very hard to affirm or deny : but I am satisfied that no occasion can justify such a resumption, which would not equally authorize a dispensation with any other moral duty, perhaps with all of them together. However, if in general it be not easy to determine concerning the lawfulness of such devious proceedings, which must be ever on the edge of crimes, it is far from difficult to foresee the perilous consequences of the resuscitation of such a power in the people. The practical consequences of any political tenet go a great way in deciding upon its value. Political problems do not primarily concern truth or falsehood. They relate to good or evil. What in the result is likely to pro- . il, is politically false ; that which is productive of good, politically true. I'elieving it, therefore, a question at least arduous in the theory, and in the practice very critical, it would become us rtain, as well as we can, what form it is that our incanta- tions are about to call up from darkness and the sleep of ages. When the supreme authority of the people is in question, before wo attempt to extend or to confine it, we ought to fix in our minds, with some degree of distinctness, an idea of what it is we mean when we say the PEOPLE. In a state of rude nature there is no such thing as a people. 5 Arrangers of duties, or, men skilled in the science of duty. 232 BURKE. A number of men in themselves have no collective capacity. The idea of a people is the idea of a corporation. It is wholly artificial ; and made, like all other legal fictions, by common agreement. What the particular nature of that agreement was, is collected from the form into which the particular society has been cast. Any other is not their covenant. When men, therefore, break up the original compact or agreement which gives its corporate form and capacity to a State, they are no longer a people, they have no longer a corporate exist cure : the^ have no longer a legal, coactive force to bind within, nor a claim to be recognized abroad. They are a number of vague, loose individuals, and nothing more. With them all is to begin again. Alas ! they little know how many a weary step is to be taken before they can form themselves into a mass, which has a true politic personality. We hear much from men, who have not acquired their hardi- ness of assertion from the profundity of their thinking, about the omnipotence of a majority, in such a dissolution of an an- cient society as hath taken place in France. But, amongst men so disbanded, there can be no such tiling as majority or minor- ity ; or power in any one person to bind another. The power of acting by a majority, which the gentlemen theorists seem to as- sume so readily, after they have violated the contract out of which it has arisen, (if at all it existed,) must be grounded on two assumptions: first, that of an incorporation produced by unanimity; and, secondly, an unanimous agreement that the act of a mere majority (say of one) shall pass with them and with others as the act of the whole. We are so little affected by things which are habitual, that we consider this idea of the decision of a majority as if it were a law of our original nature: but such constructive whole, re- siding in a part only, is one of the most violent fictions of posi- tive law that ever has been or can be made on the principles of artificial incorporation. Out of civil society nature knows noth- ing of it; nor are men, even when arranged according to civil order, otherwise than by very long training, brought at all to submit to it. The mind is brought far more easily to acquiesce in the proceedings of one man, or a few, who act under a gen- eral procuration for the State, than in the vote of a victorious majority in councils in which every man has his share in the deliberation. For there the beaten party are exasperated and soured by the previous contention, and mortified by the conclu- sive defeat. This mode of decision, where wills may be so nearly equal, where, according to circumstances, the smaller number may be the stronger force, and where apparent reason may be all upon one side, and on the other little else than im- THE OLD AND THE XEW WHIGS. 233 petuous appetite, all tins must be the result of a very particu- lar and special convention, confirmed afterwards by long habits of obedience, by a sort of discipline in society, and by a strong hand, vested with stationary, permanent power, to enforce this sort of constructive general will. What organ it is that shall declare the corporate mind, is so much a matter of positive ar- rangement, that several States, for the validity of several of their Acts, have required a proportion of voices much greater than, that of a mere majority. These proportions are so entirely gov- erned by convention, that in some cases the minority decides. The laws in many countries to cnnJnun require more tlfhn a mere majority; less than an equal number to acquit. In our judicial trials we require unanimity either to condemn or to ab- solve. In some incorporations one man speaks for the whole ; in others, a few. I'ntil the other day, in the Constitution of Poland, unanimity was required to give validity to any Act of their great national council or diet. This approaches much more nearly to rude nature than the institutions of any other country. Such, indeed, every commonwealth must be, without a positive law to recognise in a certain number the will of the entire body. If men dissolve their ancient incorporation in order to regen- erate their community, in that state of things each man has a right, if he pleases, t<> remain an individual. Any number of individuals, who can au r ree upon it, have an undoubted right to form themselves into a State apart, and wholly independent. It any of these is forced into the fellowship of another, this -is conquest, and not compact. On every principle, which sup- -ociety to be in virtue of a free covenant, this compulsive incorporation must be null and void. As a people can have no right to a corporate capacity without universal consent, so neither have they a right to hold exclu- sively any lands in the name and title of a corporation. On the scheme of the present rulers in our neighbouring country, rated as they are, they have no more right to the terri- tory called .France than I have. I have a right to pitch my tent in an\ unoccupied place I can iind for it; and I may apply to my own maintenance any part of their unoccupied soil. 1 may purchase the house or vineyard of any individual proprietor who refuses his consent (and most proprietors have, as far as iivd, refused it ) to the new incorporation. I stand in his independent place. "Who are these insolent men calling them- selves the French nation, that would monopolize this fair do- main of Nature:' Is it because they speak a certain jargon? Is it their mode of chattering, to me unintelligible, that forms their title to my land? Who are they who claim by pre>< -rip- 234 BURKE. tion and descent from certain gangs of banditti called Franks, and Burgundians, and Visigoths, of whom I may have never heard, and ninety-nine out of an hundred of themselves cer- tainly never have heard ; whilst at the very time they tell me that prescription and long possession form no title to property ? Who are they that presume to assert that the land which I pur- chased of the individual, a natural person, and not a fiction of State, belongs to them, who in the very capacity in which they make their claim can exist only as an imaginary being, and in virtue of the very prescription which they reject and disown? This mode of arguing might be pushed into all the detail, so as to leave no sort of doubt, that on their principles, and on the sort of footing on which they have thought proper to place themselves, the crowd of men, on the other side of the channel, who have the impudence to call themselves A people, can never be the lawful, exclusive possessors of the soil. J>y what they call reasoning without prejudice, they leave not one stone upon another in the fabric of human society. They subvert all the authority which they hold, as well as all that which they have destroyed. As, in the abstract, it is perfectly clear that, out of a state of civil society, majority and minority are relations which can have no existence; and that, in civil society, its own specific conventions in each corporation determine what it is that con- stitutes the people, so as to make their act the signification of the general will ; to come to particulars, it is equally clear, that neither in France nor in England has the original or any subse- quent compact of the State, expressed or implied, constituted a vuijirrityofmcn, told by the head, to be the acting people of their several communities. And I see as little of policy or utility as there is of right, in laying down a principle that a majority of men told by the head are to be considered as the people, and that as such their will is to be law. What policy can there be found in arrangements made in defiance of every political prin- ciple ? To enable men to act with the weight anil character of a people, and to answer the ends for which they are incorpo- rated into that capacity, we must suppose them ^by means im- mediate or consequential) to be in that state of habitual social discipline in which the wiser, the more expert, and the more opulent conduct, and by conducting enlighten and protect, the weaker, the less knowing, and the less provided with the goods of fortune. When the multitude are not under this discipline, they can scarcely be said to be in civil society. Give once a certain constitution of things, which produces a variety of con- ditions and circumstances in a State, and there is in Xature and reason a principle which, for their own benefit, postpones, not THE OLD AND THE NEW WHIGS. 235 the interest, but the judgment, of those who are numero plures, to those who are virtute ct honore majores* Numbers in a State (supposing, which is not the case in France, that a State does exist ! arc always of consideration ; but they are not the whole consideration. It is in things more serious than a play that it may be truly said, satis est equitem mihi plaudcre. 7 A true natural aristocracy is not a separate interest in the Slate, or separable from it It is an essential integrant part of any large body rightly constituted. It is formed out of a class of legitimate presumptions, which, taken as generalities, must be admitted for actual truths. To be bred in a place of estima- tion ; to see nothing low and sordid from one's infancy ; to be taught to respect one's self; to be habituated to the censorial in-pretion of the public eye ; to look early to public opinion ; to stand upon such elevated ground as to be enabled to take a large view of the wide-spread and infinitely-diversified combina- tions of men and affairs in a large society ; to have leisure to read, to ivilfrt, to converse; to be enabled to draw the court and attention of the wise and learned wherever they are to be found ; to be habituated in armies to command and to obey ; to be taught to dcspi>e danger in the pursuit of honour and duty; to be formed to the greatest degree of vigilance, fore- sight, and (irrr.iiisprrtion, in a state of things in which no fault is committed with impunity, and the slightest mistakes draw on the mo-t ruinous consequences ; to be led to a guarded and regulated conduct, from a sense that you are considered as an instructor of your fellow-citizens in their highest concerns, and that you act as a reconciler between God and man ; to be em- ployed as an administrator of law and justice, and to be there- by among-t the first benefactors to mankind ; to be a professor of high science, or of liberal and ingenuous art; to be amongst rich traders, who from their success are presumed to have sharp and \igorous understandings, and to possess the virtues of dili- . order, constancy, and regularity, and to have cultivated an habitual regard to commutative justice ; these are the cir- cumstances of men that form what I should call a natural aris- lo< -racy, without which there is no nation. The state of civil society which necessarily generates this racy is a state of nature ; and much more truly so than a savage and incoherent mode of life. For man is by nature rea- sonable ; and he is never perfectly in his natural state, but when he is placed where reason may be best cultivated, and most predominates. Art is man's nature. We are as much, at 6 That is, more in number, and superior in virtue and honour. 1 It is enough that a knight applauds me. 236 BURKE. least, in a state of nature in formed manhood as in immature and helpless infancy. Men, qualified in the manner I have just described, form in Nature, ns she operates in the common modi- fication of society, the leading:, guiding, and governing part. It is the soul to the body, without which the man does not exist. To give, therefore, no more importance, in the social order, to such descriptions of men than that of so many units, is a horri- ble usurpation. When great multitudes act together, under that discipline of Nature, I recognize the PEOPLE. I acknowledge something that perhaps equals, and ought always to guide, the sovereignty of convention. In all things the voice of this grand chorus of national harmony ought to have a mighty and decisive influ- ence. But, when you disturb this harmony ; when you break up this beautiful order, this array of truth and nature, as well as of habit and prejudice ; when you separate the common sort of men from their proper chieftains, so as to form them into an adverse army, I no longer know that venerable object called the People in such a disbanded race of deserters and vagabonds. For a while they may be terrible indeed ; but in such a manner as wild beasts are terrible. The mind owes to them no sort of submission. They are, as they have always been reputed, rebels. They may lawfully be fought with and brought under, whenever an advantage offers. Those who attempt by outrage and violence to deprive men of any advantage which they hold under the laws, and to destroy the natural order of life, proclaim. war against them, We have read in history of that furious insurrection of the common people in France called the Jacquerie: for this is not the first time that the people have been enlightened into trea- son, murder, and rapine. Its object was to extirpate the gentry. The Captal de ]>uche, a famous soldier of those days, dishon- oured the name of a gentleman and of a man by taking, for their cruelties, a cruel vengeance on those deluded wretches. It was, however, his right and his duty to make war upon them, and afterwards, in moderation, to bring them to punishment for their rebellion ; though, in the sense of the French Revolution, and of some of our clubs, they were the people; and were truly so, if you will call by that appellation any majority nf men told I) II the head. At a time not very remote from the same period (for these humours never have affected one of the nations without some inlluence on the other) happened several risings of the lower commons in England. These insurgents were certainly the majority of the inhabitants of the counties in which they re- sided ; and Cade, Ket, and Straw, at the head of their national S THE OLD AND THE NEW WHIGS. 237 guards, and fomented by certain traitors of high rank, did no more than exert, according to the doctrines of our and the Pa- risian societies, the sovereign power inherent in the majority. We call the time of those events a dark age. Indeed, we are too indulgent to our own proficiency. The Abbe John Ball un- derstood the rights of man as well as the Abbe Gregoire. 8 That reverend patriarch of sedition, and prototype of our modern preachers, was of opinion with the National Assembly, that all the evils which have fallen upon men had been caused by an ignorance of their " having been born and continued equal as to their rights." Had the populace been able to repeat that pro found maxim, all would have gone perfectly well with them. Xo tyranny, no vexation, no oppression, no care, no sorrow, could have existed in the world. This would have cured them like a charm for the toothache. But the lowest wretches, in their most ignorant state, were able at all times to talk such stuff; and yet at all times have they suffered many evils and many oppressions, both before and since the repnblication by the National Assembly of this spell of healing potency and virtue. The enlightened Dr. Ball, when he wished to rekindle the lights and fires of his audience on this point, chose for the text the following couplet: When Adam delved and Eve, span, Who was then the gentleman? Of this sapient maxim, however, I do not give him for the in- ventor. It seems to have been handed down by tradition, and had certainly become proverbial; but whet her then composed or only applied, thus much must be admitted, that in learning, sense, energy, and comprehensiveness, it is fully equal to all e modern dissertations on the equality of mankind ; and it lias one advantage over them, that it is in rhyme. There is no doubt that this great teacher of the rights of man decorated his discourse on this valuable text with lem- mas, theorems, scholia, corollaries, and all the apparatus of s< ience, which was furnished in as great plenty and perfection uut of the dogmatic and polemic magazines, the old horse- armoury of the Schoolmen, among whom the Ilev. Dr. Ball was bred, as they can be supplied from the new arsenal at Hackney. 8 The Abbt- (.n-^oin; was one of the few French priests who turned against their order, and joined the new church of Jacobinism : to keep himself in favour with the revolutionary chiefs, he proposed some of their most atrocious meas- ures. John IJall wan a seditious preacher, who stirred up the dre^s of the pop. an insurrection in the year HJsi ; here called an AblxS by way of offset to the French apostle of disorder who wore that title. 238 BURKE. It was no doubt disposed with all the adjutancy of definition and division, in which (I speak it with submission) the old mar- shals were as able as the modern martinets. Neither can we deny that the philosophic auditory, when they had once ob- tained this knowledge, could never return to their former ignorance ; or, after so instructive a lecture, be in the same state of mind as if they had never heard it. But these poor people, who were not to be envied for their knowledge, but pitied for their delusion, were not reasoned, (that was impos- sible,) but beaten out of their lights. With their teacher they were delivered over to the lawyers ; who wrote in their blood the statutes of the land as harshly, and in the same sort of ink, as they and their teachers had written the rights of man. Our doctors of the day are not so fond of quoting the opinions of this ancient sage as they are of imitating his conduct : first, because it might appear, that they are not as groat inventors as they would be thought; and next, because, unfortunately for his fame, he was not successful. It is a remark liable to as few exceptions as any generality can be, that they who applaud prosperous folly, and adore triumphant guilt, have never been known to succour or even to pity human weakness or offence when they become subject to human vicissitude, and meet with punishment instead of obtaining power. Abating for their want of sensibility to the sufferings of their associates, they are not so much in the wrong : for madness and wickedness are things foul and deformed in themselves ; and stand in need of all the coverings and trappings of fortune to recommend them to the multitude. Nothing can be more loathsome in their naked nature. Aberrations like these, whether ancient or modern, unsuc- cessful or prosperous, are things of passage. They furnish no argument for supposing a multitude told by the head to be the peo- ple. Such a multitude can have no sort of title to alter the seat of power in the society, in which it ever ought to be the obedient, and not the ruling or presiding part. What power may belong to the whole mass, in which mass the natural aristocracy, or what by convention is appointed to represent and strengthen it, acts in its proper place, with its proper weight, and without being subjected to violence, is a deeper question. But in that case, and with that concurrence, I should have much doubt whether any rash or desperate changes in tho State, such as we have seen in France, could ever be effected I have said, that in all political questions the consequences of any assumed rights are of great moment in deciding upon their validity. In this point of view let us a little scrutinize the effects of a right in the mere majority of the inhabitants of THE OLD AND THE NEW WHIGS. 239 any country of superseding and altering their government at pleasure. The sum total of every people is composed of its units. Every individual must have a right to originate vhat after- wards is to become the Act of the majority. Whatever he may lawfully originate he may lawfully endeavour to accomplish. He has a right therefore in his own particular to break the ties and engagements which bind him to the country in which he lives ; and lie has a right to make as many converts to his opin- ions, and to obtain as many associates in his designs, as he can procure : for how can you know the dispositions of the majority to destroy their government, but by tampering with some part of the body? You must begin by a secret conspiracy, that you may end with a national confederation. The mere pleasure of the beginner must be the sole guide ; since the mere pleasure of others must be the sole ultimate sanction, as well as the sole actuating principle, in every part of the progress. Thus, arbitrary will, (the last corruption of ruling power,) step by . poisons the heart of every citizen. If the undertaker fails, he has the misfortune of a rebel, but not the guilt. By such doctrines, all love to our country, all pious veneration and attachment to its laws and customs, are obliterated from our minds ; and nothing can result from this opinion, when grown into a principle, and animated by discontent, ambition, or enthusiasm, but a series of conspiracies and seditions, some- times ruinous to their authors, always noxious to the State, of duty can prevent any man from being a leader or a follower in such enterprises. Nothing restrains the tempter; nothing guards the tempted. Nor is the new State, fabricated by such arts, safer than the old. What can prevent the mere will of any person, who hopes to unite the wills of other to his own, from an attempt wholly to overturn it? It wants nothing but a disposition to trouble the established order, to give a title to the enterprise. When you combine this principle, of the right to change a t and tolerable constitution of things at pleasure, with the theory and practice of the French Assembly, the political, civil, and moral irregularity are, if possible, aggravated. The Assem- bly have found another road, and a far more commodious, to the destruction of an old government, and the legitimate forma- tion of ii new one, than t h rough the previous will of the majority of what they call the people. Get, say they, the possession of power by any means you can into your hands ; and then a sub- sequent, consent (what they call an address of adhesion) makes your authority a.^ much the Act of the people as if they had conferred upon you originally that kind and degree of power 240 . BUKKE. which, without their permission, you had seized upon. This is to give a direct sanction to fraud, hypocrisy, perjury, and the breach of the most sacred trusts that can exist between man and man. AVhat can sound with such horrid discordance in the moral ear as this position, That a delegate with limited powers may break his sworn engagements to his constituents, assume an authority, never committed to him; to alter all things at his pleasure ; and then, if he can persuade a large number of men to Hatter him in the power he has usurped, that he is absolved in his own conscience, and ought to stand acquitted in the eyes of mankind? On this scheme, the maker of the experiment inii^t begin with a determined perjury. That point is certain. He must take his chance for the expiatory addresses. This is to make the success of villainy the standard of innoeemv. Without drawing on, therefore, very shocking consequences, neither by previous consent nor by subsequent ratilieatimi of a mere reckoned nwjoritii, can any set of men attempt to dissolve the State at their pleasure. To apply this to our present sub- ject. When the several orders, in their several bailliages, had met in the year 17s:), (such of thorn, I mean, as had met peaceably and constitutionally,) to choose and to instruct their representa- tives ; so organized and so acting, (because they were organized and were acting according to the conventions which made them a people,) they were the people of France. They had a legal and a natural capacity to be considered as that people. IJnt, observe, whilst they were in this state, that is, whilst they were a people, in no one of their instructions did they charge or even hint at any one of those things which have drawn upon the usurping Assembly, and their adherents, the detestation of the rational and thinking part of mankind. I will venture to atlirm, without the least apprehension of being contradicted by any person who knows the then state of France, that, if any one of the changes had been proposed which form the fundamental parts of their Revolution, and compose its most distinguishing acts, it would not have had one vote in twenty thousand in any order. Their instructions purported the direct contrary to all those famous proceedings which are defended as the Acts of the people. Had such proceedings been expected, the great proba- bility is, that the people would then have risen, as to a man, to prevent them. The whole organization of the Assembly was altered, the whole frame of the kingdom was changed, before these things could be done. It is long to tell, by what evil arts of the conspirators, and by what extreme weakness and want ot steadiness in the lawful government, this equal usurpation on the rights of the prince and people, having Jirst cheated, and then offered violence to both, has been able to triumph, and to THE OLD AXD THE XEW WHIGS. 241 employ with success the forged signature of an imprisoned sov- ereign, and the spurious voice of dictated addresses, to a subse- quent ratification of things that had never received any previous sanction, general or particular, expressed or implied, from the nation, (in whatever sense that word is taken,) or from any part of it. After the weighty and respectable part of the people had been murdered, or driven by the menaces of murder from their houses, or were dispersed in exile into every country in Europe; after the soldiery had been debauched from their officers ; after property had lost its weight and consideration, along with its security ; after voluntary clubs and associations of factious and unprincipled men were substituted in the place of all the. legal corporations of the kingdom arbitrarily dissolved ; after free- dom had been banished from those popular meetings '' whoso sole recommendation is freedom ; after it had come to that pass that no dissent could appear in any of them, but at the certain price of life; after even dissent had been anticipated, and a*ination became as quick as suspicion ; such pretended ratification by addresses could be no Act of what any lover of the people would choose to call by their name. It is that voice which every successful usurpation, as well as this before us, may easily procure, even without making (as these tyrants have made) donatives from the spoil of one part of the citizens to corrupt the other. The pretended rights of man, which have made this havoc, cannot be the rights of the people. For, to be a people, and t. have these rights, are things incompatible. The one supposes the presence, 1 he other the absence, of a state of civil society. The very foundation of the French commonwealth is false and self-destructive; nor can its principles In- adopted in any coun- try, without the certainty of bringing it to the very same condi- tion in which France is found. Attempts are made to introduce them into every nation in Europe. This nation, as possessing atest influence, they wish most to corrupt, as by that mean- they are assured the contagion must become general. I hope, therefore, I shall be excused, if I endeavour to show, as shortly as the matter will admit, the danger of giving to them, either avowedly or tacitly, the smallest countenance. There are times and circumstances in which not to speak out is at least to connive. Many think it enough for them, that the principles propagated by these clubs and societies, enemies to their country and its Constitution, are not. owned by the modern iijx in rnrlininrnt, who are so warm in condemnation of Mr. 9 The "popular meeting.*" here referred to were the primary assemblies. 242 BURKE. Burke and his book, and of course of all the principles of the ancient, constitutional Whigs of this kingdom. Certainly they are not owned. But are they condemned with the same zeal as Mr. Burke and his book are condemned? Are they condemned at all ? Are they rejected or discountenanced in any way what- soever? Is any man who would fairly examine into the de- meanour and principles of those societies, and that too very moderately, and in the way rather of admonition than of pun- ishment, is such a man even decently treated? Is he not reproached, as if, in condemning such principles, he had belied the conduct of his whole life, suggesting that his life had been governed by principles similar to those which he now repro- bates ? The French system is in the mean time, by many active agents out of dcors, rapturously praised ; the British Constitu- tion is coldly tolerated. But these Constitutions are different, both in the foundation and in the whole superstructure ; and it is plain that you cannot build up the one but on the ruins of the other. After all, if the French be a superior system of lib- erty, why should we not adopt it? To what end are our praises? Is excellence held out to us only that we should not copy after it? And what is there in the manners of the people, or in the climate of France, which renders that species of republic lit ted for them, and unsuitable to us? A strong and marked differ- ence between the two nations ought to be shown, before we can admit a constant, affected panegyric, a standing annual com- memoration, to be without any tendency to an example. But the leaders of party will not go the length of the doc- trines taught by the seditious clubs ? I am sure they do not mean to do so. God forbid 1 Perhaps even those who are di- rectly carrying on the work of this pernicious foreign faction do not all of them intend to produce all the mischiefs which must inevitably follow from their having any success in their proceedings. As to leaders in parties, nothing is more common than to see them blindly led. The world is governed by go- betweens. These go-betweens influence the persons with whom they carry on the intercourse, by stating their own sense to each of them as the sense of the other ; and thus they recip- rocally master both sides. It is first buzzed about the ears of leaders, that "their friends without-doors are very eager for some measure, or very warm about some opinion, that you must not be too rigid with them. They are useful persons, and zealous in the cause. They may be a little wrong ; but the spirit of liberty must not be damped ; and, by the influence yon obtain from some degree of concurrence with them at present, you may be enabled to set them right hereafter." Thus the leaders are at first drawn to a connivance with senti- THE OLD AND THE XEW WHIGS. 243 ments and proceedings often totally different from their seri- ous and deliberate notions. But their acquiescence answers every purpose. With no better than such powers, the go-betweens assume a new representative character. What at best was but an acqui- escence, is magnified into an authority, and thence into a desire on the part of the leaders ; and it is carried down as such to the subordinate members of parties. By this artifice they in their turn are led into measures which at first, perhaps, few of them wished at all, or at least did not desire vehemently or systematically. There is in all parties, between the principal leaders in Par- liament and the lowest followers out of doors, a middle sort of men, a sort of equestrian order, who, by the spirit of that mid- dle situation, arc the fittest for preventing things from running to excess. But indecision, though a vice of a totally diit'erent character, is the natural accomplice of violence. The irresolu- tion and timidity of those who compose this middle order often prevent the elleet of their controlling situation. The fear of differing with the authority of leaders on the one hand, and of contradicting the desires of the multitude on the other, induces them to give a careless and passive assent to measures in which they never were consulted : and thus things proceed, by a sort of activity of inertness, until whole bodies, leaders, middle men, and followers, an; all hurried, with every appearance, and with many of the effects, of unanimity, into schemes of politics, in the substance of which no two of them were ever fully agreed, and the origin and authors of which, in this circular mode of communication, none of them find it possible to trace. In my experience I have seen much of this in affairs which, though trilling in comparison to the present, were yet of some impor- tance to parties ; and I have known them suffer by it. The sober part give their sanction, at first through inattention and levity ; at last they give it through necessity. A violent spirit is raised, which the presiding minds, after a time, find it imprac- ticable to stop at their pleasure, to control, to regulate, or even to direct. This shows, in my opinion, how very quick and awaketied all men ought to be, who are looked up to by the public, and- who deserve that confidence, to prevent a surprise on their opinions, when dogmas are spread, and projects pursued, by which the foundations of society may be affected. Before they listen even to moderate alterations in the government of their coun- try, they ought to take care that principles are not propagated for that purpose, which are too big for their object. Doctrines limited in their present application, and wide in their general 244 BURKE. principles, are never meant to be confined to what they at first pretend. If I were to form a prognostic of the effect of the present machinations on the people from their sense of any grievance they suffer under this Constitution, my mind would be at case. But there is a wide difference between the multi- tude, when they act against their government from a sense of grievance, or from zeal for some opinions. When men are thoroughly possessed with that zeal, it is difficult to calculate its force. It is certain that its power is by no means in exact proportion to its reasonableness. It must always have been discoverable by persons of reflection, but it is now obvious to the world, that a theory concerning government may become as much a cause of fanaticism as a n reading it, his inveterate prejudices against the author were fairly overcome; and when Burke, according to the rules of ollirial etiquette', appeared at his levee, the King welcomed him with his most gracious smile, and converM-d with him a long time, while many titled by.-tanders looked in vain fur a royal recognition. 4 The full title of this piece, as originally published, is, " A Letter from the Kight-llon. Edmund Burke, to a Noble Lord, on the Attacks made upon him and his Pension, in the House of Lords, by the Duke of Bedford and the Earl of Lau- A LETTER TO A XOBLE LORD. 240 gations to the Duke of BEDFORD and to the Earl of LAUDER- DALE. These noble persons have lost no time in conferring upon me that sort of honour which it is alone within their com- petence, and which it is certainly most congenial to their nature and to their manners, to bestow. To be ill spoken of, in whatever language they speak, by the zealots of the new sect in philosophy and politics, of which these noble persons think so charitably, and of which others think so justly, to me is no matter of uneasiness or surprise. To have incurred the displeasure of the Duke of Orleans or the Duke of Bedford, to fall under the censure of citizen Brissot or of his friend the Earl of Lauderdale, I ought to consider as proofs, not the least satisfactory, that I have produced some part of the effect I proposed by my endeavours. I have la- boured hard to earn what the noble lords are generous enough to pay. Personal offence I have given them none. The part they take against me is from zeal t<> the cause. It is well 1 It is perfectly well ! I have to do homage to their justice. I have to thank the Bedfords and the Lauderdales for having so faith- fully and so fully acquitted towards mo whatever arrear of debt was left undischarged by the Priest leys and the Paines. *ome, perhaps, may think them executors in their own wrong: I at least have nothing to complain of. They have gone beyond the demands of justice. They have been (a little perhaps be- yond their intention) favourable to me. They have been the means of bringing out, by their invectives, the handsome things which Lord Grenville has had the goodness and condescension to say in my behalf. Retired as I am from the world, and from all its affairs and all its pleasures, I confess it does kindle, in my nearly extinguished feelings, a very vivid satisfaction to be so attacked and so commended. It is soothing to my wounded mir.d to be commended by an able, vigorous, and well-informed ::iun, and at the very moment when he stands forth with a manliness and resolution, worthy of himself and of his cause, for the preservation of the person and government of our sov- ereign, and therein for the security of the laws, the liberties, (lie morals, and the lives of his people. To be in any fair way con- nected with such things is indeed a distinction. No philosophy can make me above it : no melancholy can depress me so low, make me wholly insensible to such an honour. derdale, rarly in the present Session of Parliament. 1790." With a majorily of Utirke's reader.-* tlii.s is probahly the favourite of his works, and the OIK; which they read oileiiest. The distinguished lawyer and orator, Itiilus Choatc, :i man <>f ex'piisi'e taste, and who had his mind stored with the ehoieest learn- in;,'-, ancient and modern, once said to me, " I have to read Burke's Letter to a Noble Lord once a-quarter; I get sick, if I don't." 250 BURKE. "Why will they not let me remain in obscurity and inaction ? Are they apprehensive that, if an atom of me remains, the sect has something to fear? Must I be annihilated, lest, like old John Zisca's, 6 my skin might be made into a drum, to animate Europe to eternal battle against a tyranny that threatens to overwhelm all Europe, and all the human race? My Lord, it is a subject of awful meditation. Before this of France, the annals of all time have not furnished an instance of a complete revolution. That Revolution seems to have extended even to the constitution of the mind of man. It has this of wonderful in it, that it resembles what Lord Yerulam says of the operations of Nature. It was perfect, not only in its ele- ments and principles, but in all its members and its organs from the very beginning. The moral scheme of France furnishes the only pattern ever known, which they who admire will instanlli/ resemble. It is indeed an inexhaustible repertory of one kind of examples. In my wretched condition, though hardly to be classed with the living, I am not safe from them. They have tigers to fall upon animated strength. They have hyenas to prey upon carcasses. The national menagerie is collected by the first physiologists of the time ; and it is defective in no description of savage nature. They pursue even such as me into the obscurest retreats, and haul them before their revolu- tionary tribunals. Neither sex, nor age, nor the sanctuary of the tomb, is sacred to them. They have so determined a hatred to all privileged orders, that they deny even to the departed the sad immunities of the grave. They are not wholly without an object. Their turpitude purveys to their malice ; and they unplumb the dead for bullets to assassinate the living. If all revolutionists were not proof against all cau- tion, I should recommend it to their consideration, that no persons were ever known in history, either sacred or profane, to vex the sepulchre, and, by their sorceries, to call up the prophetic dead, witli any other event than the prediction of their own disastrous fate, " Leave me, O, leave me to repose ! " In one thing I can excuse the Duke of Bedford for his attack upon me and my mortuary pension. lie cannot readily com- prehend the transaction he condemns. What I have obtained was the fruit of no bargain ; the production of no intrigue ; the 5 The reformers, known in Church history as the Hussites, were divided into two parties, called the Calixtlncs and the Taborites. The latter was the more vigorous, or the radical, party, and had John Zisca for its leader. He died in 1424, and his followers were so east down at his death, that they called them- selves OrpJians. He was for waging a \\*ar of extermination against the Catho- lics ; and this lanatieal zeal caused him To wish that his skin might be made into a drum-head, to animate the battles of oilhodoxy. A LETTER TO A NOBLE LORD. 251 result of no compromise ; the effect of no solicitation. The first suggestion of it never came from me, mediately or immedi- ately,, to his Majesty or any of his Ministers. It was long known that the instant my engagements would permit it, and befoie the heaviest of all calamities had for ever condemned me to obscurity and sorrow, I had resolved on a total retreat. I had executed that design. I was entirely out of the way of serving or of hurting any statesman, or any party, when the Ministers so generously and so nobly carried into effect the spontaneous bounty of the Crown. Both descriptions have acted as became them. When I could no longer serve thorn, the Ministers have considered my situation. When I could no longer hurt them, the revolutionists have trampled on my infirmity. My gratitude, I trust, is equal to the manner in which the benefit was conferred. It came to me indeed at a time of life, and in a state of mind and body, in which no cir- cumstance of fortune could afford me any real pleasure. Hut this was no fault in the royal donor, or in his Ministers, who were pleased, in acknowledging the merits of an invalid servant, of the public, to assuage the sorrows of a desolate old man. It would ill become me to boast of any thing. It would as ill become me, thus called upon, to depreciate the value of a long life, spent with unexampled toil in the service of my country. Since the total body of my services, on account of the industry which was ,*hown in them, and the fairness of my intentions, have obtained the acceptance of my sovereign, it would be ab- surd in me to range myself on the side of the Duke of Bedford and the Corresponding Society, or, as far as in me lies, to per- mit a dispute on the rate at which the authority appointed by our Constitution to estimate such things has been pleased to set them, Loose libels ought to be passed by in silence and contempt. By me they have been so always. I knew that, as long as I re- mained in public, I should live down the calumnies of malice ,in(l the judgments of ignorance. If I happened to be now and then in the wrong, (as who is not?) like all other men, I must bear the consequence of my faults and my mistakes. The libels present (lay are jus*t of the same stuff as the libels of the But. they derive an importance from the rank of the per- sons they come from, and the gravity of the place where they were uttered. In some way or other I ought to take some of them. To assert myself thus traduced is not vanity or arrogance. It is a demand of justice ; it is a demonstration of gratitude. If I am unworthy, the Ministers are worse than prodigal. On that hypothesis, I perfectly agree with the Duke of Bedford. 252 BURKE. For whatever I have been (I am now no more) I put myself on my country. I ought to be allowed a reasonable freedom, because I stand upon my deliverance ; and no culprit ought to plead in irons. Even in the utmost latitude of defensive lib- erty, I wish to preserve all possible decorum. Whatever it may be in the eyes of these noble persons themselves, to me their situation calls for the most profound respect. If I should hap- pen to trespass a little, which I trust I shall not, let it always be supposed, that a confusion of characters may produce mistakes; that, in the masquerades of the grand carnival of our ago, whimsical adventures happen ; odd things are said and pa^s oil'. If I should fail a single point in the high respect I owe to thu.se illustrious persons, I cannot be supposed to mean the Duke of Bedford and the Earl of Lauderdale of the House of Peers, but the Duke of Bedford and the Earl of Lauderdale of Palace- Yard 1 the Dukes and Earls of Brentford. There they are on the pavement ; there they seem to come nearer to my hum- ble level ; and, virtually at least, to have waived their high privilege. flaking this protestation, I refuse all revolutionary tribunals, where men have been put to death for no other reason than that they had obtained favours from the Crown. I claim, not the letter, but the spirit, of the old English law, that is, to be tried by my peers. I decline his Grace's jurisdiction as a judge. I challenge the Duke of Bedford as a juror to pass upon the value of my services. Whatever his natural parts may be, I cannot recognize, in his few and idle years, the competence to judge of my long and laborious life. If I can help it, he shall not be on the inquest of my \\ei-, and from the more dreadful contagion of its principles ; to preserve, while they can be preserved, pure and untainted, the. ancient, inbred integrity, piety, good-nature, and good- huniour of the people of England, from the dreadful pestilence which, beginning in France, threatens to lay waste the whole moral, and in a great degree the whole physical world, having done; both in the focus of its most intense malignity. The labours of his Grace's founder merited the curses, not loud but deep, of the Commons of England, on whom lie and his master had effected a complete Parliamentary JRc/orm, by 270 BUKKE. making them, in their slavery and humiliation, the true and adequate representatives of a debased, degraded, and undone people. My merits were in having had an active, though not always an ostentatious, share in every one Act, without excep- tion, of undisputed constitutional utility in my time, and in having supported, on all occasions, the authority, the efficiency, and the privileges of the Commons of Great Britain. I ended my services by a recorded and fully reasoned assertion on their own journals of their constitutional rights, and a vindication of their constitutional conduct. I laboured in all things to merit their inward approbation, and (along with the assistance of the largest, the greatest, and best of my endeavours) I received their free, unbiassed, public, and solemn thanks. Thus stands the account of the comparative merits of the Crown grants which compose the Duke of Bedford's fortune as balanced against mine. In the name of common sense, why should the Duke of Bedford think that none but of the House of Russell arc entitled to the favour of the Crown ? AVhy should he imagine that no king of England has been capable of judging of merit but King Henry the Eighth? Indeed, he will pardon me ; he is a little mistaken : all virtue did not end in, the first Earl of Bedford. All discernment did not lose its vis- ion when his creator closed his eyes. Let him remit his rigour on the disproportion between merit and reward in others, ami they will make no inquiry into the origin of his fortune. They will regard with much more satisfaction, as he will contemplate with Infinitely more 'advantage, whatever in his pedigree has been dulcified by an exposure to the influence of heaven in a long How of generations, from the hard, acidulous, metallic tincture of the spring. It is little to be doubted, that several of his forefathers in that long series have degenerated into hon- our and virtue. Let the Duke of Bedford (I am sure he will) reject with scorn and horror the counsels of the lecturers, those wicked panders to avarice and ambition, who would tempt him, in the troubles of his country, to seek another enormous fortune from the forfeitures of another nobilitj', and the plunder of an- other Church. Let him (and I trust that yet he will) employ all the energy of his youth, and all the resources of his wealth, to crush rebellious principles which have no foundation in morals, and rebellious movements that have no provocation in tyranny. Then will be forgot the rebellions which, by a doubtful pri- ority in crime, his ancestor had provoked and extinguished. On such a conduct in the noble Duke, many of his countrymen might, and with some excuse might, give way to the enthu of their gratitude, and, in the dashing style of some of the old declaimers, cry out, that if the fates had found no other way iu A LETTER TO A NOBLE LORD. 271 which they could give a Duke of Bedford and his opulence as props to a tottering world, then the butchery of the Duke of Buckingham might be tolerated: it might be regarded even with complacency, whilst in the heir of confiscation they saw the sympathizing comforter of the martyrs who suffer under the cruel confiscation of this day ; whilst they behold with ad- miration his zealous protection of the virtuous and loyal nobility of France, and his manly support of his brethren, the yet stand- ing nobility and gentry of his native land. Then his Grace's merit would be pure and new and sharp, as fresh from the mint of honour. As he pleased he might reflect honour on his predecessors, or throw it forward on those who were to succeed him. He might be the* propagator of the stock of honour, or the root of it, as he thought proper. Had it pleased God to continue to me the hopes of succession, I should have been, according to my mediocrity, and the medi- ocrity of the age I live in, a sort of founder of a family: I should have left a son who, in all the points in which personal merit can be viewed, in science, in erudition, in genius, in taste, in honour, in generosity, in humanity, in every liberal sentiment and every liberal accomplishment, would not have shown him- self inferior to the Duke of Bedford, or to any of those whom he traces in his line. His Grace very soon would have wanted all plausibility in his attack upon that provision which belonged more to mine than to me. HE would soon have supplied every deficiency, and symmetrized every disproportion. It would not have been for that successor to resort to any stagnant wasting reservoir of merit in me, or in any ancestry. He had in himself a salient, living spring of generous and manly action. Every day he lived he would have re-purchased the bounty of the Crown, and ten times more, if ten times more he had received. He was made a public creature, and had no enjoyment what- ever but in the performance of some duty. At this exigent moment the loss of a finished man is not easily supplied. But a Disposer whose power we are little able to resist, and whose wisdom it behoves us not at all to dispute, has ordained it in another manner, and (whatever my querulous weakness might suggest; a far better. The storm has gone over me ; and I lie like one of those old oaks which the late hurricane has scattered about me. I am stripped of all my honours, I am torn up by the roots, and lie prostrate on the earth! There, and prostrate there, I most unfeignedly recognize the Divine justice, and in some degree submit to it. But whilfst I humble myself before God, I do not know that it is forbidden to repel the at- tacks of unjust and inconsiderate men. The patience of Job is proverbial. After some of the convulsive struggles of our irri- 272 BURKE. table nature, he submitted himself, and repented in dust and ashes. But even so, I do not find him blamed for reprehending, and with a considerable degree of verbal asperity, those ill- natured neighbours of his who visited his dunghill to read moral, political, and economical lectures on his misery. I am alone. I have none to meet my enemies in the gate. Indeed, my Lord, I greatly deceive myself, if in this hard season I would give a peck of refuse wheat for all that is called fame and honour in the world. This is the appetite but of a few. It is a luxury, it is a privilege, it is an indulgence for those who are at their ease. But we are all of us made to shun disgrace, as we are made to shrink from pain and poverty and disease. It is an instinct ; and, under the direction of reason, instinct is always in the right. I live in an inverted order. They who ought to have succeeded me are gone before me. They who should have been to me as posterity are in the place of ances- tors. I owe to the dearest relation (which ever must subsist in memory) that act of piety which lie would have performed to me, I owe it to him to show that he was not descended, as the Duke of Bedford would have it, from an unworthy parent. The Crown has considered me alter long service: the Crown has paid the Duke of Bedford by advance. He has had a long credit for any service which he may perform hereafter. He is secure, and long may he be secure, in his advance, whether he performs any services or not. But let him take care how he endangers the safety of that Constitution which secures his own utility or his own insignificance ; or how he discourages those who take up, even puny arms, to defend an order of things which, like the Sun of heaven, shines alike on the useful and the worthless. His grants are ingrafted on the public law of Europe, covered with the awful hoar of innumerable ages. They are guarded by the sacred rules of prescription, found in that full treasury of jurisprudence from which the jejuneness and penury of our municipal law has, by degrees, been enriched and strengthened. This prescription I had my share (a very full share) in bringing to its perfection. The Duke of Bedford will stand as long as prescriptive law endures ; as long as the great stable laws of property, common to us with all civilized nations, are kept in their integrity, and without the smallest in- termixture of laws, maxims, principles, or precedents of the Grand Revolution. They are secure against all changes but one. The whole Revolutionary system, institutes, digest, code, novels, text, gloss, comment, are not only not the same, but they are the very reverse, and the reverse fundamentally, of all the laws on which civil life has hitherto been upheld in all the governments of the world. The learned professors of the Rights A LETTER TO A NOBLE LORD. 273 of Man regard prescription not as a title to bar all claim set up against all possession ; but they look on prescription as itself a bar against the possessor and proprietor. They hold an imme- morial possession to be no more than a long-continued, and therefore an aggravated injustice. Such are their ideas, such their religion, and such their law. But as to our country and our race, as long as the well- compacted structure of our Church and State, the sanctuary, the holy of holies of that ancient law, defended by reverence, defended by power, a fortress at once and a temple, shall stand inviolate on the brow of the British Sion; as long as the British monarchy, not more limited than fenced by the orders of the State, shall, like the proud Keep of Windsor, rising in the majesty of proportion, and girt with the double belt of its kin- dred and coeval towers ; as long as this awful structure shall oversee and guard the subjected land, so long the mounds and dykes of the low, fat, Bedford level will have nothing to fear from all the pickaxes of all the levellers of France. As long as our sovereign lord the King, and his faithful subjects, the Lords and Commons of this realm, the triple cord, which no man can break; the solemn, sworn, constitutional frank-pledge of this nation ; the firm guarantees of each other's being, and each other's rights ; the joint and several securities, each in its place and order, for every kind and every quality of property and of dignity; as long as these endure, so long the Duke of Bedford is safe : and we are all safe together, the high from the blights of envy and the spoliations of rapacity; the low from the iron hand of oppression and insolent spurn of contempt. Amen I and so be it : and so it will be, Dum domus JEncx Capitoli immobile saxura Accolet; impcriumquc pater llomanus habebit. 2 ' But if the rude inroad of Gallic tumult, with its sophistical rights of man to falsify the account, and its sword as a make- weight to throw into the scale, shall be introduced into our city by a misguided populace, set on by proud great men, them- selves blinded and intoxicated by a frantic ambition, we shall all of us perish and be overwhelmed in a common ruin. If a great storm blow on our coast, it will cast the whales on the strand as well as the periwinkles. His Grace will not survive the poor grantee he despises, no, not for a twelvemonth. If the look for safety in the services they render to this Gallic cause, it is to be foolish even above the weight of privilege 2 So long as the House of ^Eneas dwells near the immovable rock of the Cap- itol, and the Roman wields the sword of empire. BURKE. allowed to wealth. If his Grace be one of these whom they en- deavour to proselytize, he ought to be aware of the character of the sect whose doctrines he is invited to embrace. With them insurrection is the most sacred of revolutionary duties to the State. Ingratitude to benefactors is the first of revolutionary virtues. Ingratitude is indeed their four cardinal virtues com- pacted and amalgamated into one ; and he will find in it every thing that has happened since the commencement of the philo- sophic Revolution to this hour. If he pleads the merit of hav- ing performed the duty of insurrection against the order he lives in, (God forbid he ever should!) the merit of others will be to perform the duty of insurrection against him. If he pleads (again God forbid he should ! and I do not suspect he will) his ingratitude to the Crown for its creation of his family, others will plead their right and duty to pay him in kind. They will laugh, indeed they will laugh, at his parchment and his wax. His deeds will be drawn out with the rest of the lumber of his evidonce-room, and burnt to the tune of ca ira in the courts of Bedford (then Equality) House. Am I to blame, if I attempt to pay his Grace's hostile re- proaches to me with a friendly admonition to himself? Can I be blamed for pointing out to him in what manner he is likely to be affected, if the sect of the cannibal philosophers of Franco should proselytize nny considerable part of this people, and, by their joint proselytizing arms, should conquer that government to which his Grace does not seem to me to give all the support his own security demands? Surely it is proper that lie, and that others like him, should know the true genius of this sect ; what their opinions are ; what they have done, and to whom ; and what (if a prognostic is to be formed from the dispositions and actions f men) it is certain they will do hereafter. lie ought to know that they have sworn assistance, the only en- gagement they ever will keep, to all in this country who bear a resemblance to themselves, and who think, as such, that tlic whole duty of man consists in destruction. They are a misallicd and disparaged branch of the house of Nimrod. They are the Duke of Bedford's natural hunters, and he is their natural game. Because he is not very profoundly reflecting, he sleeps in profound security : they, on the contrary, are always vigi- lant, active, enterprising, and, though far removed from any knowledge which makes men estimable or useful, in all the in- struments and resources of evil their leaders are not meanly instructed or insufficiently furnished. In the French Revolu- tion every thing is new ; and, from want of preparation to meet so unlooked-for an evil, every thing is dangerous. Xever, before this time, was a set of literary men converted into a A LETTER TO A NOBLE LORD. 275 gang of robbers and assassins. Never before did a cien of bra- voes and banditti assume the garb and tone of an academy of philosophers. Let me tell his Grace, that an union of such characters, mon- strous as it seems, is not made for producing despicable ene- mies. But if they are formidable as foes, as friends they are dreadful indeed. The men of property in France confiding in a force which seemed to be irresistible, because it had never been tried, neglected to prepare for a conflict with their ene- mies at their own weapons. They were found in such a situa- tion as the Mexicans were, when they were attacked by the dogs, the cavalry, the iron, and the gunpowder, of a handful of bearded men, whom they did not know to exist in nature. This is a comparison that some, I think, have made ; and it is just. In France they had their enemies within their houses. They were even in the bosoms of many of them. But they had not sagacity to discern their savage character. They seemed tame, and even caressing. They had nothing but douce humanite in their mouth. They could not bear the punishment of the mild- est laws on the greatest criminals. The slightest severity of justice made their flesh creep. The very idea that war existed in the world disturbed their repose. Military glory was no more, with them, than a splendid infamy. Hardly would they hear of self-defence, which they reduced within such bounds as to leave it no defence at all. All this while they meditated the confiscations and massacres we have seen. Had any one told those unfortunate noblemen and gentlemen how, and by whom, the grand fabric of the French monarchy under which they flourished would be subverted, they would not have pit- ied him as a visionary, but would have turned from him as what they call a mauvais plaisant. Yet we have seen what has happened. The persons who have suffered from the cannibal philosophy of France are so like the Duke of Bedford, that nothing but his Grace's probably not speaking quite so good French could enable us to find out any difference. A great many of them had as pompous titles as he, and were of full as illustrious a race : some few of them had fortunes as ample : s.'vrral of them, without meaning the least disparagement to the Duke of Bedford, were as wise, and as virtuous, and as val- iant, and as well educated, and as complete in all the linea- ments of men of honour, as he is : and to all this they had ad- ded the powerful outguard of a military profession, which, in its nature, renders men somewhat more cautious than those who have nothing to attend to but the lazy enjoyment of undis- turbed possessions. But security was their ruin. They are dashed to pieces in the storm, and our shores are covered with 27C BURKE. the wrecks. If they had been aware that such a thing might happen, such a thing never could have happened. I assure his Grace that, if I state to him the designs of his enemies in a manner which may appear to him ludicrous and impossible, I tell him nothing that has not exactly happened, point by point, but twenty-four miles from our own shore. I assure him that the Frenchified faction, more encouraged than others are warned by what has happened in France, look at him and his landed possessions as an object at once of curiosity and rapacity. He is made for them in every part of their double character. As robbers, to them he is a noble booty ; as spcculatists, he is a glorious subject for their experimental philosophy. lie affords matter for an extensive analysis, in all the branches of their science, geometrical, physical, civil, and political. These philosophers are fanatics : independent of any interest, which if it operated alone would make them much more tractable, they are carried with such a headlong rago towards every desperate trial, that they would sacrifice the whole human race to the slightest of their experiments. I am better able to enter into the character of this description of men than the noble Duke can be. I have lived long and variously in the world. Without any considerable pretensions to litera- ture in myself, I have aspired to the love of letters. I have lived for a great many years in habitudes with those who pro- fessed them. I can form a tolerable estimate of what is likely to happen from a character chielly dependent for fame and fortune on knowledge and talent, as well in its morbid and per- verted state as in that which is sound and natural. Naturally men so formed and finished are the first gifts of Providence to the world. But when they have once thrown off the fear of God, which was in all ages too often the case, and the fear of man, which is now the case, and when in that state they come to understand one another, and to act in corps, a more dreadful calamity cannot arise out of Hell to scourge mankind. Nothing can be conceived more hard than the heart of a thoroughbred metaphysician. It comes nearer to the cold malignity of a wicked spirit than to the frailty and passion of a man. It is like that of the principle of evil himself, incorporeal, pure, unmixed, dephlegmated, defecated evil. It is no easy operation to eradicate humanity from the human breast. What Shake- speare calls "the compunctious visitings of nature" will some- times knock at their hearts, and protest against their mur- derous speculations. But they have a means of compounding w T ith their nature. Their humanity is not dissolved. They only give it a long prorogation. They are ready to declare tint they do not think two thousand years too long a period for the A LETTER TO A NOBLE LORD. 277 good that they pursue. It is remarkable that they never see any way to their projected good but by the road of some evil. Their imagination is not fatigued with the contemplation of human suffering through the wild waste of centuries added to centuries of misery and desolation. Their humanity is at their horizon ; and, like the horizon, it always ilies before them. The geometricians and the chemists bring, the one from the dry bones of their diagrams, and the other from the soot of their furnaces, dispositions that make them worse than indif- iVivnt about those feelings and habitudes which are the sup- port of the moral world. Ambition is come upon them sud- denly ; they are intoxicated with it, and it has rendered them fearless of the danger which may from thence arise to others or to themselves. These philosophers consider men, in their experiments, no more than they do mice in an air-pump, or in a recipient of mephitic gas. Whatever his Grace may think of himself, they look upon him, and every thing ihat belongs to him, with no more regard than they do upon the whiskers of that little, long-tailed animal that has been long the game of the grave, demure, insidious, spring-nailed, velvet-pawed, green-eyed philosophers, whether going upon two legs or upon four. His Graoe'ft landed possessions are irresistibly Inviting to an (ifirrtrfiiH experiment. They are a downright Insult upon the rights of man. They are more extensive than the territory of many of the (irecian republics ; and they are without compari- son more fertile than most of them. There are now republics in Italy, in (iennany, and in Switzerland, which do not possess any thing like- so fair and ample a domain. There is scope for seven philosophers to proceed in their analytical experiments, upon Harrington's seven different forms of republics, in the acres of this one Duke. Hitherto they have been wholly un- productive to speculation ; fitted for nothing but to fatten bul- ;ind to produce grain for beer, still more to stupefy the dull English understanding. Abbe Sieves has whole nests of pigeon-holes full of constitutions ready made, ticketed, sorted, and numbered; suited to every season and every fancy ; some with the top of the pattern tit the bottom, and some with the bottom at the top; some plain, some flowered; some distin- UMii-'hcd for their simplicity, others for their complexity ; some of blood colour; some of boue de Paris; some with directories, others without a direction; some with councils of elders and councils of youngsters ; some without any Council at all. Some where the electors choose thu representatives ; others, where presentatives choose the electors. Some in long coats, and some in short cloaks ; some with pantaloons ; some with- 278 BURKE. out breeches. Some with five-shilling qualifications; some totally unqualified. So that no constitution-fancier may go unsuited from his shop, provided he loves a pattern of pillage, oppression, arbitrary imprisonment, confiscation, exile, revolu- tionary judgment, and legalized premeditated murder, in any shapes into which they can be put. What a pity it is that the progress of experimental philosophy should be checked by his Grace's monopoly ! Such are their sentiments, I assure him ; such is their language, when they dare to speak ; and such are their proceedings, when they have the means to act. Their geographers and geometricians have been some time out of practice. It is some time since they have divided their own country into squares. That figure has lost the charms of its novelty. They want new lands for new trials. It is not only the geometricians of the republic that find him a good subject, the chemists have bespoken him after the geometricians have done with him. As the first set have an eye on his (I race's lands, the chemists arc not less taken with his buildings. They consider mortar as a very anti-revolutionary invention in its present state ; but, properly employed, an admirable material for overturning all establishments. They have found that the gunpowder of ruins is far the fittest for making other ruins, and so adinjinitwn. They have calculated what quantity of matter convertible into nitre is to be found in Bedford House, in AVo- burn Abbey, and in what his Grace and his trustees have still suffered to stand of that foolish royalist Inigo Jones, in Covent Garden. Churches, play-houses, coffee-houses, all alike are destined to be mingled, and equalized, and blended into one common rubbish ; and, well sifted and lixiviated, to crystallize into true, democratic, explosive, insurrectionary nitre. Their academy del Cimento, (per antiphrasin,) with Morveau and Jlas- senfrats at its head, have computed that the brave sans-culottes may make war on all the aristocracy of Europe for a twelve- month, out of the rubbish of the Duke of Bedford's buildings. 3 While the Morveaux and Priestleys are proceeding with these 3 There is nothing on which the leaders value themselves more than on tho chemical operations by which they convert the pride of aristocracy to an instru- ment of its own destruction. They tell us that hitherto things " had not yet heeu properly and in a revolutionary manner explored." "The strong chateaux^ those feudal fortresses that ircre ordered to be. demolished, attracted next the at- tention of your committee. Nature there had secretly regained her nahts, and had produced saltpetre for the purpose, as it should seem, ofj\tcilitatinr/ the exe- cution of your decree by preparing the means of destruction. From the.se ruins, which still frown on the liberties of the republic, we have extracted the means of producing good ; and those piles which have hitherto glutted the pride of despots, will soon furnish wherewithal to tame the traitor?, and to overwhelm the disaffected." Autlwr's Note. A LETTER TO A NOBLE LORD. 279 experiments upon the Duke of Bedford's houses, the Sieyos, and the rest of the analytical legislators and constitution- venders, are quite as busy in their trade of decomposing organ- ization, in forming his Grace's vassals into primary assemblies, national guards, first, second, and third requisitioners, commit- tees of research, conductors of the travelling guillotine, judges of revolutionary tribunals, legislative hangmen, supervisors of domiciliary visitation, exactors of forced loans, and assessors of the maximum. The din of all this smithery may some time or other possibly wake this noble Duke, and push him to an endeavour to save some little matter from their experimental philosophy. If he pleads his grants from the Crown, he is ruined at the outset. If he pleads he has received them from the pillage of supersti- tious corporations, this indeed will stagger them a little, be- cause they are enemies to all corporations, and to all religion. However, they will soon recover themselves, and will tell his Grace, or his learned counsel, that all such property belongs to the nation; and that it would be more wise for him, if he wishes to live the natural term of a citizen, (that is, according to Con- dorcet's calculation, six months on an average,) not to pass for an usurper upon the national property. This is what the ser- jcants at law of the rights of man will say to the puny apprcn- tl'-(A of the common law of England. Is the genius of philosophy not yet known ? You may as well think the garden of the Tuileries was well protected with the cords of riband insultingly stretched by the National Assembly to keep the sovereign canaille from intruding on the retirement of the poor King of the French, as that such flimsy cobwebs will stand between the savages of the Revolution and their natural prey. Deep philosophers are no triflers ; brave sans- culottes are no formalists. They will no more regard a Mar- quess of Tavistock than an Abbot of Tavistock ; the Lord of AV'obuni will not be more respectable in their eyes than the Prior of Woburn ; they will make no difference between the superior of a Covent Garden of nuns and of a Coven t Garden of another description. 4 They will not care a rush whether his coat is long or short ; whether the colour be purple or blue and bufC. They will not trouble their heads with what part of his head his hair is cut from ; and they will look with equal respect on a tonsure and a crop. Their only question will be that of their Lrt/rntlrc, or some other of their legislative butchers, how he cuts up ; how he tallows in the caul, or on the kidneys. 4 Covent Garden theatre, in London, then belonged to the Duke of Bedford. In what precedes, Burke alludes to the Duke's other titles, as Baron of Woburn, and Marquess of Tavietock. 280 BURKE. Is it not a singular phenomenon that, whilst the sans-culotte carcass-butchers and the philosophers of the shambles are pricking their dotted lines upon his hide, and, like the print of the poor ox that we see in the shop-windows at Charing Cross, alive as he is, and thinking no harm in the world, he is divided into rumps, and sirloins, and briskets, and into all sorts of pieces for roasting, boiling, and stewing, that, all the while they :iro measuring him, his Grace is measuring me ; is invidiously com- paring the bounty of the Crown with the deserts of the defender of his order, and in the same moment fawning on those who have the knife half out of the sheath ; poor innocent ! "Pleased to the last, he crops the flowery foorl, Ami licks the hand just raised to sheet his blood." No man lives too long, who lives to do with spirit, and suffer with resignation, what Providence pleases to command, or in- flict ; but indeed they are sharp incommoditios which beset old age. It was but the other day, that, on putting in order some things which had been brought here on my taking leave of Lon- don for ever, I looked over a number of fino portraits, most of them of persons now dead, but whose society, in my bettor days, made this a proud and happy place. Amongst these was the picture of Lord Keppel. It was painted by an artist worthy of the subject, the excellent friend of that excellent man from their earliest youth, and a common friend of us both, with whom we lived for many years without a moment of coldnos, of peevishness, of jealousy, or of jar, to the day of our final separation. I ever looked on Lord Koppol as one of the greatest and best men of his age ; and I loved and cultivated him accordingly. He was much in my heart, and I believe I was in his to the very last beat. It was after his trial at Portsmouth that he gave me this picture. With what zeal and anxious affection I attended him through that his agony of glory ; what part my son took in the early flush and enthusiasm of his virtue, and the pious passion with which he attached himself to all my connections ; with what prodigality we both squandered ourselves in courting almost every sort of enmity for his sake, I believe he felt, just as I should have felt such friendship on such an occasion. I par- took indeed of this honour, with several of the first and best and ablest in the kingdom, but I was behindhand with none of them; and I am sure that if, to the eternal disgrace of this nation, and to the total annihilation of every trace of honour and virtue in it, things had taken a different turn from what they did, I should have attended him to the quarter-deck with no less good will and more pride, though with far other feelings, than I par- A LETTER TO A NOBLE LORD. 281 took of the general flow of national joy that attended the justice that was done to his virtue. Pardon, my Lord, the feeble garrulity of age, which loves to diffuse itself in discourse of the departed great. At my years we live in retrospect alone ; and. wholly unfitted for the society of vigorous life, we enjoy the best balm to all wounds, the con- solation of friendship in those only whom we have lost for ever. Feeling the loss of Lord Keppel at all times, at no time did I feel it so much as o.n the first day when I was attacked in the House of Lords. Had he lived, that reverend form would have risen in its place, and, with a mild, parental reprehension to his nephew the Duke of Bedford, he would have told him that the favour of that gracious Prince who had honoured his virtues with the government of the navy of Great Britain, and with a seat in the hereditary great council of his kingdom, was not undeservedly shown to the friend of the best portion of his life, and his faith- ful companion and counsellor under his rudest trials. He would have told him that, to whomever else these reproaches might !>> becoming, they were not decorous in his near kindred. He would have told him that when men in that rank lose decorum they lose every tiling. On thar day 1 had a loss in Lord Keppel ; but the public loss of him in this awful crisis! I speak from much knowledge of the person, he never would have listened to any compromise with the rabble rout of this sans-culotterie of France. His goodness of heart, his reason, his taste, his public duty, his principles, his prejudices, would have repelled him for ever from all connection with that horrid medley of madness, vice, impiety, and crime. Lord Keppel had two countries, one of descent, and one of birth. Their interest and their glory are the same ; and his mind was capacious of both. His family was noble, and it was Dutch ; that is, ho was of the oldest and purest nobility that Europe can hoaort of cure for selfishness and a narrow mind; mceiving that a man born in an elevated place in himself was nothing, but every thing in what went before and what was to come after him. Without much speculation, but by the suro 282 BURKE. instinct of ingenuous feelings, and by the dictates of plain, un- sophisticated natural understanding, he felt that no great com- monwealth could by any possibility long subsist without a body of some hind or other of nobility, decorated with honour, and fortified by privilege. This nobility forms the chain that con- nects the ages of a nation, which otherwise (with Mr. Paine) would soon be taught that no one generation can bind another. He felt that no political fabric could be well made without some such order of things as might, through a series of time, afford a rational hope of securing unity, coherence, consistency, and stability to the State. He felt that nothing else can protect it against the levity of Courts, and the greater levity of the multi- tude. That to talk of hereditary monarchy, without any thing else of hereditary reverence in the commonwealth, was a low- minded absurdity, fit only for those detestable "fools aspiring to be hnaves " who began to forge in 1789 the false money of the French constitution. That it is one fatal objection to all new-fancied and new-fabricated republics, (among a people who, once possessing such an advantage, have wickedly and in- solently rejected it,) that the prejudice of an old nobility is a thing that cannot be made. It may be improved, it may be cor- rected, it may be replenished ; men may be taken from it or aggregated to it, but the tiling itself is matter of inveterate opinion, and therefore cannot be matter of mere positive insti- tution. He felt that this nobility in fact does not exist in wrong of other orders of the State, but by them, and for them. I knew the man I speak of: and, if we can divine the future out of what we collect from the past, no person living would look with more scorn and horror on the impious parricide com- mitted on all their ancestry, and on the desperate attainder passed on all their posterity, by the Orleans, and the Rochefou- caults, and the Fayettes, and the Yiscomtes de Xoailles, and the false Perigords, and the long ct ccr.tcra of the perfidious sans-culottes of the Court, who like demoniacs, possessed with a spirit of fallen pride and inverted ambition, abdicated their dig- nities, disowned their families, betrayed the most sacred of all trusts, and, by breaking to pieces a great link of society and all the cramps and holdings of the State, brought eternal confusion and desolation on their country. For the fate of the miscreant parricides themselves he would have had no pity. Compassion for the myriads of men, of whom the world was not worthy, who by their means have perished in prisons, or on scaffolds, or are pining in beggary and exile, would leave, no room in his, or in any well-formed mind, for any such sensation. We are not made at once to pity the oppressor and the oppressed. Looking to his Batavian descent, how could he bear to behold A LETTER TO A NOBLE LORD. 283 his kindred, the descendants of the brave nobility of Holland, whose blood, prodigally poured out, had, more than all the canals, meres, and inundations of their country, protected their independence, to behold them bowed in the basest servitude to the basest and vilest of the human race ; in servitude to those who in no respect were superior in dignity, or could aspire to a better place than that of hangmen to the tyrants, to whose scepterecl pride they had opposed an elevation of soul that surmounted, and overpowered, the loftiness of Castile, the haughtiness of Austria, and the overbearing arrogance of France ? Could he with patience bear, that the children of that nobility who would have deluged their country and given it to the sea, rather than submit to Louis the Fourteenth, who was then in his meridian glory, when his arms were conducted by the Tu- rennes, by the Luxembourgs, by the Boufflers ; when his coun- cils were directed by the Colberts and the Louvois ; when his tribunals were filled by the Lamoignons and the Daguessaus, that these should be given up to the cruel sport of the Piche- grus, the Jourdans, the Santerres, under the Rolands, the Bris- sots, and Gorfas, and llobespierres, the Ileubels, the Carnots, and Talliens, and Dantons, and the whole tribe of regicides, robbers, and revolutionary judges, that, from the rotten carcass of their own murdered country, have poured out innumerable swarms of the lowest, and at once the most destructive, of the a of animated nature, which, like columns of locusts, have laid waste the fairest part of the wprld ? Would Keppel have borne to see the ruin of the virtuous patricians, that happy union of the noble and the burgher, who, with signal prudence and integrity, had long governed the cit- ies of the confederate republic, the cherishing fathers of their country, who, denying commerce to themselves, made it nour- ish in a manner unexampled under their protection? Could Keppel have borne that a vile faction should totally destroy this harmonious construction, in favour of a robbing democracy, founded on the spurious rights of man? lie was no great clerk, but lie was perfectly well versed in the interests of Europe, and he could not have heard with patience, that the country of Grotius, the cradle of the law of nations, and one of the richest repositories of all law, should be taught a new code by the ignorant flippancy of Thomas Paine, the pre- sumptuous foppery of La Fayette, with his stolen rights of man in his hand, the wild, profligate intrigue and turbulency of Murat, and the irapi^bs sophistry of Condorcet, in his insolent addresses to the Batavian republic. Could Keppel, who idolized the house of Nassau, who was 284 BURKE. himself given to England along with the blessings of the British and Dutch Revolutions ; with revolutions of stability; with rev- olutions which consolidated and married the liberties and the interests of the two nations for ever, could he see the fountain of British liberty itself in servitude to France? Could he see with patience a Prince of Orange expelled as a sort of diminu- tive despot, with every kind of contumely, from the country which that family of deliverers had so often rescued from sla- very, and obliged to live in exile in another country, which owes its liberty to his House ? 5 Would Keppel have heard with patience that the conduct to be held on such occasions was to become short by the knees to the faction of the homicides, to entreat them quietly to retire? or, if the fortune of war should drive them from their first wicked and unprovoked invasion, that no security should be taken, no arrangement made, no barrier formed, no alliance en- tered into for the security of that which, under a foreign name, is the most precious part of England? What would lie have said, if it was even proposed that the Austrian Netherlands (which ought to be a barrier to Holland, and the tie of an alli- ance, to protect her against any species of rule that might be erected, or even be restored in France) should be formed into a republic under her influence, and dependent upon her power? But, above all, what would he have said, if he had heard it made a matter of accusation against me, by his nephew the Duke of Bedford, that I was the author of the war? Had I a mind to keep that high distinction to myself, as from pride I might, but from justice I dare not, he would have snatched his share of it from my hand, and held it with the grasp of a dying convulsion to his end. It would be a most arrogant presumption in me to assume to myself the glory of what belongs to his Majesty, and to his Min- isters, and to his Parliament, and to the far greater majority of his faithful people: but, had I stood alone to counsel, and that all were determined to be guided by my advice, and to follow it implicitly, then I should have been the sole author of a war. But it should have been a war on my ideas' and my principles. However, let his Grace think as he may of my demerits with regard to the war with regicide, he will find my guilt confined to that alone. He never shall, with the smallest colour of rea- 5 The Prince of Orange was at that time living in England. He had been Stadtholder in 1794, when the French, having already kindled and blown r.p their revolutionary lires throughout the country, invaded Holland with large forces, and turned every thing topsy-turvy there. The Prince was of the samo illustrious family which furnished the heroic, William the Third to England, and, along with him, security to the English liberties. FRANCE AT WAR WITH HUMANITY. 285 son, accuse me of being the author of a peace with regicide. But that is high matter, and ought not to be mixed with any thing of so little moment as what may belong to me, or even to the Duke of Bedford. 6 I have the honour to be, &c. EDMUXD BUKKE. FRANCE AT WAR WITH HUMANITY. 7 I AM sure you cannot forget with how much uneasiness we li'-ard, in conversation, the language of more than one gentle- man at the opening of this contest, "that he was willing to try the war for a year or two, and, if it did not succeed, then to vote for peace." As if war was ;i mutter of experiment ! As if you could take it up or lay it down as an idle frolic ! As if the dire goddess that presides over it, with her murderous !-]>ear in her hand, and her gorgon at her breast, was a coquette to be flirted with ! We ought with reverence to approach that tremendous divinity, that loves courage, but commands coun- sel. War never leaves where it found a nation. It is never to be entered into without mature deliberation, not a delibera- tion lengthened out into a perplexing indecision, but a deliber- ation leading to a sure and fixed judgment. When so taken up, it is not to be abandoned without reason as valid, as fully and as extensively considered. Peace may be made as unadvisedly as war. Nothing is so rash as fear; and the coun- cils of pusillanimity very rarely put off, whilst they are always sure to aggravate, the evils from which they would fly. In that great war carried on against Louis the Fourteenth, >r near eighteen years, government snared no pains to satisfy The whole Russell family rrtuin, to this day, an irrepressible grudge rain>t Hnrke on account of this Lry of 1- ranee. IT'.Ki." In this work the author discusses a great variety of top- S all in his usual profound, comprehensive, and eloquent manner; and it is jiuarkable that his imagination here appears more sensitive, mure opulent, and MI-I: redundant, than in any of his previous writings. Most of the discussions, AS ever, are not particularly suited to the uses of this volume, even if there n-ic room for them; which there is not. But the following extract, besides its jh literary value, is fraught with wise practical leach ings, which may well be pressed here, ami now. 286 BURKE. the nation, that, though they were to be animated by a desire of glory, glory was not their ultimate object ; but that every thing dear to them, in religion, in law, in liberty, every thing which as freemen, as Englishmen, and as citizens of the great commonwealth of Christendom, they had at heart, was then at stake. This was to know the true art of gaining the affections and confidence of a high-minded people ; this was to under- stand human nature. A danger to avert a danger, a present inconvenience and suffering to prevent a foreseen future and a worse calamity, these are the motives that belong to an ani- mal who, in his constitution, is at once adventurous and provi- dent, circumspect and daring ; whom his Creator has made, as the poet says, "of large discourse, looking before and after." But never can a vehement and sustained spirit of fortitude be kindled in a people by a war of calculation. It has nothing that can keep the mind erect under the gusts of adversity. Even where men are willing, as sometimes they are, to barter their blood for lucre, to hazard their safety for the gratification of their avarice, the passion which animates them to that sort of conflict, like all the short-sighted passions, must see its objects distinct and near at hand. The passions of the lower order are hungry and impatient. Speculative plunder ; contin- gent spoil ; future, long adjourned, uncertain booty ; pillage which must enrich a late posterity, and which possibly may not reach to posterity at all, these, for any length of time, will never support a mercenary war. The people are in the right. The calculation of profit in all such wars is false. On balancing the account of such wars, ten thousand hogsheads of sugar are purchased at ten thousand times their price. The blood of man should never be shed but to redeem the blood of man. It is well shed for our family, for our friends, for our God, for our country, for our kind. The rest is vanity ; the rest is crime. In the war of the Grand Alliance, 8 most of these considera- tions voluntarily and naturally had their part. Some were pressed into the service. The political interest easily went in the track of the natural sentiment. In the reverse course the carriage does not follow freely. I am sure the natural feeling is a far more predominant ingredient in this war than in that of any other that ever was waged by this kingdom. If the war made to prevent the union of two crowns upon one 8 The "Grand Alliance" here referred to was an alliance of Groat Britain, Austria, ami the States-'. Jeneral of Holland, against the union of the French and Spanish crowns in the Bourbon family. It was in the war under tbat alliance that Marlborough gained his great victories against Louis the Fourteenth, in the early part of the eighteenth ceutury. FRAXCE AT WAR WITH HUMANITY. 287 head was a just war ; this, which is made to prevent the tearing of all crowns from all heads which ought to wear them, and with the crowns to smite off the sacred heads themselves, this is a just war. If a war to prevent Louis the Fourteenth from imposing his religion was just, a war to prevent the murderers of Louis the Sixteenth from imposing their irreligion upon us is just ; a war to prevent the operation of a system, which makes life without dignity, and death without hope, is a just war. If to preserve political independence and civil freedom to na- tions was a just ground of war ; a war to preserve national inde- pendence, property, liberty, life, and honour, from certain, universal havoc, is a war just, necessary, manly, pious; and we are bound to persevere in it by every principle, Divine and human, as long as the system which menaces them all, and all equally, has an existence in the world. You, who have looked at this matter with as fair and impar- tial an eye as can be united with a feeling heart, you will not think it a hardy assertion, when I affirm that it were far better to be conquered by any other nation than to have this faction for a neighbour. Before I felt myself authorized to say this, I considered the state of all the countries in Europe, for these last, three hundred years, which have been obliged to submit to a foreign lav/. In most of these I found the condition of the an- nexed countries even better, certainly not worse, than the lot of those which were the patrimony of the conqueror. They wanted some blessings, but they were free from many great evils. They wore rich and tranquil. Such was Artois, Flan- ders, Lorrain, Alsatia, under the old government of France. Such was Silesia under the King of Prussia. They, who are to live in the vicinity of this new fabric, are to prepare to live in perpetual conspiracies and seditions ; and to end, at last, in be- ing conquered, if not to her dominion, to her resemblance. But vv-e talk of conquest by other nations, it is only to put a This is the only power in Europe by which it is possible we should be conquered. To live under the continual dread of immeasurable evils is itself a grievous calamity. To live ithout the dread of them is to turn the danger into the disas- ter. The inllucnce of such a France is equal to a war ; its ex- ample is more wasting than u hostile irruption. The hostility with any other power is separable and accidental ; this power, by the very condition of its existence, by its very essential con- stitution, is in a state of hostility with us, and with all civilized people. A government of the nature of that set up at our very door has never been hitherto seen, or even imagined, in Europe. 288 BURKE. What our relation to it will be cannot be judged by other rela- tions. It is a serious thing to have connection with a people who live only under positive, arbitrary, and changeable institu- tions ; and those not perfected, nor supplied, nor explained, by any common acknowledged rule of moral science. I remember that in one of my last conversations with the late Lord Camden, we were struck much in the same manner with the abolition in France of the law, as a science of methodized and artificial equity. France, since her Revolution, is under the sway of a seel whose leaders have deliberately, at one stroke, demolished tlie whole body of that jurisprudence which France had pretty nearly in common with other civilized countries. In that juris- prudence were contained the elements and principles of the law of nations, the great ligament of mankind. With the law they have of course destroyed all seminaries in which jurispru- dence was taught, as well us all the corporations established for its conservation. I have not heard of any country, whether in Europe or Asia, or even in Africa on this side of Mount Atlas, which is wholly without some such colleges and such corpora- tions, except France. Xo man, in a public or private concern, can divine by what rule or principle her judgments are to be directed ; nor is there to be found a professor in any univer>ity, or a practitioner in any court, who will hazard an opinion of what is or is not law in France, in any case whatever. They have not only annulled all their old treaties, but they have re- nounced the law of nations, from whence treaties have their force. With a fixed design they have outlawed themselves, and, to their power, outlawed all other nations. Instead of the religion and the law by which they were in a great politic communion with the Christian world, they have constructed their republic on three bases, all fundamentally opposite to those on which the communities of Europe are built. Its foundation is laid in regicide, in Jacobinism, 9 and in atheism ; and it has joined to those principles a body of sys- tematic manners, which secures their operation. If I am asked how I would be understood in the use of these terms, regicide, Jacobinism, atheism, and a system of corre- sponding manners, and their establishment, I will tell you: I call a commonwealth regicide, which lays it down as a fixed law of nature, and a fundamental right of man, that all 9 The Jacobins were the extreme radical faction in t'.ie French Revolution, and took that name from their place of rendezvous, which was a forsaken mon- asteiy, previously occupied by an order or fraternity of monks called Jacobins. The revolutionary Jacobins were at first a political club, who held secret meet ings, to concoct measures which were to be forced upon the Legislature. The Rcigu of Terror was their great triumph in political architecture. FRANCE AT WAR WITH HUMANITY. 289 ment, not being a democracy, is an usurpation ; l that all kings, as such, arc usurpers ; and for being kings may and ought to be put to death, with their wives, families, and adherents. The commonwealth which acts uniformly upon those principles, and which, after abolishing every festival of religion, chooses the most flagrant act of a murderous regicide treason for a feast of eternal commemoration, and which forces all her people to observe it, this I call rriiii-iiJr 7>// ratab'iiKhmrnt. Jacobinism is the revolt of the enterprising talents of a coun- try against its property. When private men form themselves into associations for the purpose of destroying the pre-existing laws and institutions of their country; when they secure to themselves an army, by dividing amongst the people of no prop- erty the estates of the ancient and lawful proprietors ; when a State recognizes those acts ; when it does not make confiscations for crimes, but makes crimes for confiscations ; when it lias its principal strength, and all its resources, in such a violation of property ; when it stands chiefly upon such a violation ; massa- cring by judgments, or otherwise, those who make any struggle for their old legal government, and their legal, hereditary, or acquired possessions, I call this Jncobinitan l>u I'titiihlidunent. I call it uthf:ift,it lit/ cfiffthlixltiiunt, when any State, OS such, shall not acknowledge the existence of God as a moral governor of the world; when it shall offer to Him no religious or moral wor- ship ; when it shall abolish the Christian religion by a regular decree; - when it shall persecute with a cold, unrelenting, steady cruelty, by every mode of confiscation, imprisonment, exile, and death, all its ministers ; when it shall generally shut up or pull down churches; when the IV w buildings which remain of tliis kind shall be opened only for the purpose of making a pro- fane apotheosis of monsters whose vices and crimes have no parallel amongst men, and whom all other men consider as objects of general detestation, and the severest animadversion of law. When, in the place of that religion of social benevo- lence, and of individual self-denial, in mockery of all religion they institute impious, blasphemous, indecent theatric rites in honour of their vitiated, perverted reason, and erect altars to ; i-i -onilication of their own corrupted and bloody republic ; 3 1 Nothing could be more solemn than their promulgation of this principle as :i preamble lo the destructive code of their famou> articles for the decomposition. i-ty, i:ito whatever country they .-lioiild enter. .-liilhor'ii Xotc. '1 In the Fall of 17'J:3, some of the chiefs publicly ;rave out their resolution "to del lirone the, King of Heaven, as well as the monar.-hs of the KarUi." Not long . the National Convention passed a formal decree, abolishing Christianity, and establishing atheism as. the State religion. They also proclaimed death to be "an eternal bleep." 3 On this occasion, a veiled female was brought into the Convention; and 290 BURKE. when schools and seminaries are founded at the public expense, to poison mankind, from generation to generation, with tho horrible maxims of this impiety ; when, wearied out with in- cessant martyrdom and the cries of a people hungering and thirsting for religion, they permit it only as a tolerated evil, I call this atheism bt/ establishment. When to these establishments of regicide, of Jacobinism, and of atheism, you add the correspondent system of manner*, no doubt can be left on the mind of a thinking man concerning their determined hostility to the human race. Manners are of more importance than laws. Upon" them, in a great measure, the laws depend. The law touches us but here and there, and now and then. Manners are what vex or soothe, corrupt or purify, exalt or debase, barbarize or refine us, by a constant, steady, uniform, insensible operation, like that of the air we breathe in. They give their whole form and colour to our lives. According to their quality, they aid morals, they supply them, or they totally destroy them. Of this the new French legisla- tors were aware: therefore, with the same method, and under the same authority, they settled a system of manners the most licentious, prostitute, and abandoned, that ever has been known, and at the same time the most coarse, rude, savage, and fero- cious. Nothing in the Revolution, no, not to a phrase or a gesture, not to the fashion of a hat or a shoe, was left to acci- dent. All has been the result of design ; all has been matter of institution. No mechanical means could be devised, in favour of this incredible system of wickedness and vice, that has not been employed. The noblest passions, the love of glory, the love of country, have been debauched into means of its preser- vation and its propagation. All sorts of shows and exhibitions, calculated to inflame and vitiate the imagination, and pervert the moral sense, have been contrived. They have sometimes brought forth five or six hundred drunken women, calling at the bar of the Assembly for the blood of their own children, as be- ing royalists or constitutionalists. Sometimes they have got a body of wretches, calling themselves fathers, to demand the murder of their sons, boasting that Rome had but one Brutus, but that they could show five hundred. There were instances one of the chiefs, taking her by the hand, said, "Mortals, cease to tremble he- fore the powerless thunders of a tiod whom your fear* have created. Hem-e. forth acknowledge no divinity but Reason. I offer you its noblest and purest imajre: if you must have idols, sacrifice only to such as this." Then, letting fall the veil, he added, "Fall before the august Senate of Freedom. Veil of Hear-on! " At the same time appeared a celebrated beauty of the opera, known in more than one character to most of the members. This "goddess of rea.-on" was then taken to the cathedral of Xotre Dame, placed upon the high altar, ami re- ceived the adoration of all present. FRANCE AT WAR WITH HUMANITY. 291 in which they inverted and retaliated the impiety, and pro- duced sons who called for the execution of their parents. The foundation of their republic is laid in moral paradoxes. Their patriotism is always, prodigy. All those instances to be found in history, whether real or fabulous, of a doubtful public spirit at which morality is perplexed, reason is staggered, and from which affrighted nature recoils, are their chosen, and almost sole, examples for the instruction of their youth. The whole drift of their institution is contrary to that of the wise legislators of all countries, who aimed at improving in- stincts into morals, and at grafting the virtues on the stock of the natural affections. They, on the contrary, have omitted no pain* to eradicate every benevolent and noble propensity in the minds of men. In their culture it is a rule always to graft virtues on vices. They think every thing unworthy of the name of public virtue, unless it indicates violence on the pri- vate. All their new institutions (and with them every thing is new.) strike at the root of our social nature. Other legislators, knowing that marriage is the origin of all relations, and conse- quently the first element of all duties, have endeavoured, by every art, to make it sacred. The Christian religion, confining it to the pairs, and rendering that relation indissoluble, has by these two things done more towards the peace, happiness, set- tlement, and civilixation of the world, than by any other part in this whole scheme of Divine Wisdom. The direct contrary course has been taken in the synagogue of Antichrist, I mean in that forge and manufactory of all evil, the sect which pre- dominated in the Constituent Assembly of 1789. Those mon- sters employed the same or greater industry to desecrate and degrade that state, which other legislators have used to render it holy and honourable. Ily a strange, uncalled-for declara- tion, they pronounced that marriage was no better than a common civil contract. 4 It was one of their ordinary tricks to put their sentiments into the mouths of certain personated characters, which they theatrically exhibited at the bar of what ought to be a serious Assembly. One of these was brought out in the figure of a prostitute, whom they called by the :ilT'ct-d name of "a mother without being a wife." This creature they made to call for a repeal of the incapacities which in civilized States are put upon basiards. The prostitutes of the Assembly gave to this their puppet the sanction of their 4 All this rcv>rcscntation, shocking as it is, spicks the simple language of actual history. The Convention passed a decree, declaring marriage a civil contract merely, binding only during the pleasure of the contracting parties. And a celebrated comic actress expressed the public feeling when the called marriage " the Sacrament of Adultery." 292 BUHKE. greater impudence. In consequence of the principles laid down, and the manners authorized, bastards were not lone: after put on the footing of the issue of lawful unions. Proceed- ing in the spirit of the first authors of their Constitution, suc- ceeding assemblies went the full length of the principle, and gave a license to divorce at the mere pleasure of either party, and at a month's notice. With them the matrimonial connec- tion is brought into so degraded a state of concubinage, that 1 believe none of the wretches in London who keep warehouse of infamy would give out one of their victims to private custody on so short and insolent a tenure. There was indeed a kind of profligate equity in giving to women the same licentious power. The reason they assigned was as infamous as the act ; declaring that women had been too long under the tyranny of parents and of husbands. It is not necessary to observe upon the hor- rible consequences of taking one half of the species wholly out of the guardianship and protection of the other. The practice of divorce, though in some countries permitted, has been discouraged in all. In the East, polygamy and divorce are in discredit; and the manners correct the laws. In Home, whilst Rome was in its integrity, the few causes allowed for divorce amounted in effect to a prohibition. They were only three. The arbitrary was totally excluded, and accordingly some hundreds of years passed without a single example of that kind. When manners were corrupted, the laws were re- laxed ; as the latter always follow the former, when they are not able to regulate them, or to vanquish them. Of this cir- cumstance the legislators of vice and crime were pleased to take notice, as an inducement to adopt their regulation ; hold- ing out a hope that the permission would as rarely be made use of. They knew the contrary to be true ; and they had taken good care that the laws should be well seconded by the manners. Their law of divorce, like all their laws, had not for its object the relief of domestic uneasiness, but the total cor- ruption of all morals, the total disconnection of social life. It is a matter of curiosity to observe the operation of this en- couragement to disorder. I have before me the Paris paper. correspondent to the usual register of births, marriages, and deaths. Divorce, happily, is no regular head of registry amongst civilized nations. With the Jacobins it is remark-- able that divorce is not only a regular head, but it has the post of honour. It occupies the lirst place in the list. In the three first months of the year 1703, the number of divorces in that city amounted to 502. The marriages were 1783 ; so that the proportion of divorces to marriages was not much less than one to three, a thing unexampled, I believe, among mankind. I FRANCE AT WAR WITH HUMANITY. 293 caused an inquiry to be made at Doctors' Commons concerning the number of divorces; and found that all the divorces (which, except by special Act of Parliament, are separations, and not proper divorces) did not amount in all those courts, and in a hundred years, to much more than one-fifth of those that passed, in the single city of Paris, in three months. I followed up the inquiry relative to that city through several of the sub- sequent months until I was tired, and found the proportions still the same. Since then I have heard that they have declared for 11 revisal of these laws ; but I know of nothing done. It ap- pears as if the contract that renovates the world was under no law at all. From this we may take our estimate of the havoc that has been made through all the relations of life. With the Jacobins of France, vague intercourse is without reproach ; marriage is reduced to the vilest concubinage; children are encouraged to cut the throats of their parents; mothers are taught that tenderness is no part of their character, and, to demonstrate their attachment to their party, that they ought to make no scruple to i-ike with their bloody hands in the bowels of those who came from their own. To all this let us join the practice of cdnuilttdium, with which, in the proper terms, and with the greatest truth, their several factions accuse each other. Iy cannibalism, I mean their de- vouring, as a nutriment of their ferocity, some part of the bod- ies of those they have murdered ; their drinking the blood of their victims, and forcing the victims themselves to drink the blood of their kindred slaughtered before their faces. .1 5 y can- nibalism, I mean also to signify all their nameless, unmanly, and abominable insults on the bodies of those they slaughter. As to those whom they suffer to die a natural death, they do not permit them to enjoy the la^t consolations of mankind, or those rights ol' sepulture which indicate hope, and which mere nature has taught to mankind, in all countries, to soothe the alllictions and to cover the infirmity of mortal condition. They disgrace men in the entry into life, they vitiate and en- slave them through the whole course of it, and they deprive them of all comfort at the conclusion of their dishonoured and depraved existence. Endeavouring to persuade the people that they are no better than bea>ts, the whole body of their institu- tion tends to make them beasts of prey, furious and savage. For this purpose the active part of them is disciplined into a ferocity which has no parallel. To this ferocity then; is joined not one of the rude, unfashioned virtues, which accompany the , where the whole arc left to grow up together in the rank- of uncultivated nature. But nothing is left to nature in their systems. 294 BURKE. The same discipline which hardens their hearts relaxes their morals. Whilst courts of justice were thrust out by revolution- ary tribunals, and silent churches were only the funeral monu- ments of departed religion, there were no fewer than nineteen or twenty theatres, great and .small, most of them kept open at the public expense, and all of them crowded every night. Among the gaunt, haggard forms of famine and nakedness, amidst the yells of murder, the tears of affliction, and the cries of despair, the song, the dance, the mimic scene, the buffoon laughter, went on as regularly as in the gay hour of festive peace. I have it from good authority, that, under the scaffold of judicial murder, and the gaping planks that poured down blood on the spectators, the spare was hired out for a show of dancing dogs. I think, without concert, we have made the very same remark on reading some of their pieces, which, being writ- ten for other purposes, let us into a view of their social life. It struck us that the habits of Paris had no resemblance to the finished virtues, or to the polished vice, and elegant, though not blameless luxury, of the capital of a great empire. Their society was more like that of a den of outlaws upon a doubtful frontier ; of a lewd tyvern for the revels and debauches of ban- ditti, assassins, bravoes, smugglers, and their more desperate paramours, mixed with bombastic players, the refuse and re- jected otl'al of strolling theatres, pufling out ill-sorted versos about virtue, mixed with the licentious and blasphemous songs proper to the brutal and hardened course of life belonging to that sort of wretches. This system of manners in itself is at war with all orderly and moral society, and is in its neighbour- hood unsafe. If great bodies of that kind were anywhere es- tablished in a bordering territory, we should have a right to demand of their governments the suppression of such a nui- sance. What are we to do if the government and the whole community is of the same description? Yet that government has thought proper to invite ours to lay by its unjust hatred, and to listen to the voice of humanity as taught by their example. The operation of dangerous and delusive first principles obliges us to have recourse to the true ones. Jn the intercourse between nations we are apt to rely too much on the instrumen- tal part. We lay too much weight upon the formality of trea- ties and compacts. We do not act much more wisely when we trust to the interests of men as guarantees of their engage- ments. The interests frequently tear to pieces the engagements, and the passions trample upon both. Entirely to trust to either, is to disregard our own safety, or not to know mankind. Men are not tied to one ailbther by papers and seals. They are led to associate by resemblances, by conformities, by sympa- FRANCE AT WAR WITH HUMANITY. 295 tliies. It is with nations as with individuals. Nothing is so strong a tie of amity between nation and nation as correspond- ence in laws, customs, manners, and habits of life. They have more than the force of treaties in themselves. They are obli- gations written in the heart. They approximate men to men, without their knowledge, and sometimes against their inten- tions. The secret, unseen, but irrefragable bond of habitual intercourse holds them together, even when their perverse and litigious nature sets them to equivocate, scuffle, and fight about the terms of their written obligations. As to war, if it be the means of wrong and violence, it is the sole means of justice amongst nations. Nothing can banish it from the world. They who say otherwise, intending to impose upon us, do not impose upon themselves. But it is one of the greatest objects of human wisdom to mitigate those evils which we are unable to remove. The conformity and analogy of which 1 speak, incapable, like every thing else, of preserving perfect trust and tranquillity among men, lias a strong tendency to fa- cilitate accommodation, and to produce a generous oblivion of the rancour of their quarrels. With this similitude, peace is more of peace, and war is less of war. I will go further. There have been periods of time in which communities, apparently in peace with each other, have been more perfectly separated than, in latter times, many nations in Europe have been in the c'.ur^e of long and bloody wars. The cause must be sought in tin- similitude throughout Europe of religion, laws, and man- ners. At bottom, these are all the same. The writers on pub- lic law have often called this aygrcgate of nations a common- wealth. They had reason. It is virtually one great State having the same basis of general law, with some diversity of provincial is and local establishments. The nations of Europe have had the very same Christian religion, agreeing in the funda- i-ntal parts, varying a little in the ceremonies and in the sub- inate doctrines. The whole of the polity and economy of every country in Europe has been derived from the samo sources. It was drawn from the old Germanic or Gothic eustu- mary, from the feudal institutions, which must be considered as an emanation from that custninary ; and the whole has been improved and digested into system and discipline by the Unman law. From hence; arose the several orders, with or without a monarch, (which are called states,) in every European country ; r>ng traces of which, where monarchy predominated, vvcro never wholly extinguished or merged into despotism. In the lew places where monarchy was cast off, the spirit of Euro. p'-an monarchy was still left. Those countries still continued countries of states ; that is, of classes, orders, and distinctions Hie] 296 BURKE. such as had before subsisted, or nearly so. Indeed, the force and form of the institution called states continued in greater perfection in those republican communities than under mon- archies. From all those sources arose a system of manners and of education which was nearly similar in all this quarter of the globe ; and which softened, blended, and harmonized the col- ours of the whole. There was little difference in the form of the universities for the education of their youth, whether with regard to faculties, to sciences, or to the more liberal and ele- gant kinds of erudition. From this resemblance in the modes of intercourse, and in the whole form and fashion of life, no citizen of Europe could be altogether an exile in any part of it. There was nothing more than a pleasing variety to recreate and instruct the mind, to enrich the imagination, and to meliorate the heart. When a man travelled or resided for health, pleas- ure, business, or necessity, from his own country, he never felt himself quite abroad. The whole body of this new scheme of manners, in support of the new scheme of politics, I consider as a strong and decisive proof of determined ambition and systematic hostility. I defy the most refining ingenuity to invent any other cause for the total departure of the Jacobin republic from every one of the ideas and usages, religious, legal, moral, or social, of this civil- ized world, and for her tearing herself from its communion with such studied violence, but from a formed resolution of keeping no terms with that world. It has not been, as has been falsely and insidiously represented, that these miscreants had only broke with their old government. They made a schism with the whole universe, and that schism extended to almost every thing great and small. For one, I wish, since it is gone thus far, that the breach had been so complete as to make all intercourse impracticable; but partly by accident, partly by design, partly from the resistance of the matter, enough is left to preserve in- tercourse, whilst amity is destroyed or corrupted in its principle. FANATICAL ATHEISM. IN THE Revolution of France two sorts of men were princi- pally concerned in giving a character and determination to its pursuits, the philosophers and the politicians. They took dif- ferent ways, but they met in the same end. The philosophers had one predominant object, which they pursued with a fanati- cal fury, that is, the utter extirpation of religion. To that FANATICAL ATHEISM. 297 every question of empire was subordinate. They had rather domineer in a parish of atheists than rule over a Christian world. Their temporal ambition was wholly subservient to their proselytizing spirit, in which they were not exceeded by Mahomet himself. They who have made but superficial studies in the natural history of the human mind have been taught to look on re- ligious opinions as the only cause of enthusiastic zeal and secta- rian propagation. But there is no doctrine whatever, on which men can warm, that is not capable of the very same effect. The social nature of man impels him to propagate his princi- ples, as much as physical impulses urge him to propagate his kind. The passions give zeal and vehemence. The under- standing bestows design and system. The whole man moves under the discipline of his opinions. "Religion is among the most powerful causes of enthusiasm. When any thing con- cerning it becomes an object of much meditation, it cannot be indifferent to the mind. They who do not love religion, hate it. The rebels lo'iod perfectly abhor the Author of their being. They hate Him " with nil their heart, with all their mind, with all their soul, and with all their strength." lie never presents Himself to their thoughts, but to menace and alarm them. They cannot strike the Sun out of heaven, but. they are able to raise a smouldering smoke that obscures him from their own Xot. being able to revenge themselves on (Jod, they have a delight in vicariously defacing, degrading, torturing, and tearing in pieces, His image in man. Let no one judge of them by what he has conceived of them when they were not incor- porated and had no lead. They were then only passengers in a common vehicle. They were then carried along with the general motion of religion in the community, and, without being aware of it, partook of its influence. In that situation, at wor>t, their nature was left free to counteract their princi- They despaired of giving any very general currency to their opinions. They considered them as a reserved privilege for the chosen few. But when the possibility of dominion, lead, and propagation presented itself, and that the ambition, which before had so often made them hypocrites, might rather gain than lose by a daring avowal of their sentiments, then the. nature of this infernal spirit, which has "evil for its good," peared in its full perfection. Nothing indeed but the pos- i of some power can with any certainty discover what at the bottom is the true character of any man. Without reading the speeches of Yergniaux, Fran^ais of Xautz, Isnard, and some others of that sort, it would not be easy to conceive the passion, rancour, and malice of their tongues and hearts. They 298 BURKE. worked themselves up to a perfect frenzy against religion and all its professors. They tore the reputation of the clergy to pieces by their infuriated declamations and invectives, before they lacerated their bodies by their massacres. This fanatical atheism left out, we omit the principal feature in the French Revolution, and a principal consideration with regard to the effects to be expected from a peace with it. The other sort of men were the politicians. To them, who had little or not at all reflected on the subject, religion was in itself no object of love or hatred. They disbelieved it, and that was all. Xoutral with regard to that object, they took the side which in the present state of things might best answer their purposes. They soon found that they could not do with- out the philosophers ; and the philosophers soon made them sensible that the destruction of religion was to supply them with means of conquest, first at home, and then abroad. The philosophers were the active internal agitators, and supplied the spirit and principles: the second gave the practical direction. Sometimes the one predominated in the composition, sometimes the other. The only difference between them was in the neces- sity of concealing the general design for a time, and in their dealing with foreign nations ; the fanatics going straight for- ward and openly, the politicians by the surer mode of zigzag. In the course of events this, among other causes, produced fierce and bloody contentions between them. But at the bot- tom they thoroughly agreed in all the objects of ambition and irreligion, and substantially in all the means of promoting these ends. Letters on a Reyicide Peace. HOW TO DEAL WITH JACOBIN FRANCE. MUCH controversy there has been in Parliament, and not a little amongst us out of doors, about the instrumental means of this nation towards the maintenance of her dignity and the assertion of her rights. On the most elaborate and correct detail of facts, the result seems to be, that at no time has the wealth and power of Great Britain been so considerable as it is at this very perilous moment. We have a vast interest to pre- serve, and we possess great means of preserving it: but it is to bo remembered that the artificer may be encumbered by his tools, and that resources may be among impediments. If wealth is the obedient and laborious slave of virtue and of public hon- our, then wealth is in its place, and has its use : but if this order DESOLATION OP THE CARXATIC. 299 is changed, and honour is to be sacrificed to the conservation of riches, riches, which have neither eyes nor hands, nor anything truly vital in them, cannot long survive the being of their vivi- fying powers, their legitimate masters, and their potent pro- tectors. If we command our wealth, we shall be rich and free: if our wealth commands us, we are poor indeed. YTc are bought by the enemy with the treasure from our own coffers. Too great a sense of the value of a subordinate interest may be the very source of its danger, as well as the certain ruin of interests of a superior order. Often has a man lost his all because he would not submit to hazard all in defending it. A display of our wealth before robbers is not the way to restrain their bold- ness, or to lessen their rapacity. This display is made, I know, to persuade the people of England that thereby we shall awe the enemy, and improve the terms of our capitulation: it is made, not that we should fight with more animation, but that we should supplicate with better hopes. "\Ve arc mistaken. We have an enemy to deal with who never regarded our contest as a measuring and weighing of purses. lie is the Gaul that puts his sword into the scale. 5 lie is more tempted with our wealth as booty than terrified with it as power. But let us be rich or poor, let us be either in what proportion we may, nature is false or tliis is true, that where the essential public force (of which money is but a part) is in any degree upon a par in a, conflict between nations, that State which is resolved to hazard its ex- istence rather than to abandon its object must have an infinite advantage over that which is resolved to yield rather than to carry its resistance beyond a certain point. Humanly speaking, that people which bounds its efforts only with its being must give the law to that nation which will not push its opposition beyond its convenience. Letters on a Regicide Peace. DESOLATION OF THE CARXATIC. Tin; great fortunes made in India, in the beginnings of con- quest, naturally excited an emulation in all the parts, and :. Alluding to P.rennus, the; lender of the Gauls, who in the year B. C. 390 overthrew Hi" Unman- terribly in the battle at the Allia, ami captured their city, ;ill but the Capitol, whir.h was a strong fortress. lie then laid siege- to tiie < apitol, mid, alter a .-ie^e of siv months, agreed to withdraw on the payment or a thousand pounds of gold by the Romans. It is said that, while they were weighing out the gold, he cast his sword iuto the other scale, and exacted the weight of that in addition. 300 BURKE. through the whole succession, of the Company's sen-ice. But in the Company it gave rise to other sentiments. They did not find the new channels of acquisition flow with equal riches to them. On the contrary, the high flood-tide of private emolu- ment was generally in the lowest ebb of their affairs. They began also to fear that the fortune of war might take away what the fortune of war had given. Wars were accordingly discour- aged by repeated injunctions and menaces ; and, that the ser- vants might not be bribed into them by the native princes, they were strictly forbidden to take any money whatsoever from their hands. But vehement passion is ingenious in resources. The Company's servants were not only stimulated, but better instructed, by the prohibition. They soon fell upon a contriv- ance which answered their purposes far better than the meth- ods which were forbidden ; though in this also they violated an ancient, but they thought an abrogated, order. They r<-\ er>ed their proceedings. Instead of receiving presents, they made loans. Instead of carrying on wars in their own name, thoy contrived an authority, at once irresistible and irresponsible, in whose name they might ravage at pleasure; and, being thus freed from all restraint, they indulged themselves in the most extravagant speculations of plunder. The cabal of creditors who have boon the object of the late bountiful grant from his Majesty's Ministers, in order to possess themselves, under the name of creditors and assignee's, of every country in India as fast as it should be conquered, inspired into the mind of the 2\'abob of Arcot (then a dependent on the Company of the hum- blest order) a scheme of the most wild and desperate ambition that I believe ever was admitted into the thoughts of a man so situated. First, they persuaded him to consider himself as a principal member in the political system of Europe. In the next place, they held out to him, and he readily imbibed, the idea of the general empire of Ilindostan. As a preliminary to this undertaking, they prevailed on him to propose- a tripartite division of that vast country: one part to the Company; another to the Mahrattas ; and the third to himself. To himself he re- served all\lie southern part of the great peninsula, compre- hended unden the general name of the Decan. On this scliame of their servants, the Company was to appear in the Carnaw in no other light than as a contractor for the provision of armies, and the hire of mercenaries for his use and under his direction. This disposition was to be secured by the Nabob's putting himself under, the guarantee of France, and, by the means of that rival nation, preventing the English for ever from assuming an equality, much less a superiority, in the Carnatic. In pursuance of this treasonable project^ (treason- DESOLATION OF THE CARXATIC. 301 able on the part of the English,) they extinguished the Com- pany as a sovereign power in that part of India ; they withdrew the Company's garrisons out of all the forts and strong-holds of the Carnatic ; they declined to receive the ambassadors from foreign Courts, and remitted them to the Nabob of Arcot ; they fell upon, and totally destroyed, the oldest ally of the Company, the King of Tanjore, and plundered the country to the amount of near five millions sterling ; one after another, in the Nabob's name, but with English force, they brought into a miserable servitude all the princes and great independent nobility of a vast country. In proportion to these treasons and violences, which mined the people, the fund of the Nabob's debt grew and nourished. Among the victims to this magnificent plan of universal plunder, worthy of tin- heroic avarice of the projectors, you have all heard (and lie has made himself to be well femembered) of an Indian chief called Ilyder All Khan. This man possessed the western, as the Company under the name of the Nabob of Arcot does the eastern, division of the Carnatic. It was among the leading measures in the design of this cabal, (according to their own emphatic language,) to t.'-iir/>le this Ilyder All. They declared Ihe Nabob of Arcot to be his sovereign, and him- self to U> a rebel, and publicly invested their instrument with the sovereignty of the kingdom of Mysore. But their victim was not of the passive kind. They were soon obliged to conclude a treaty of peace and close, alliance with this rebel, atthe gates of Madras. Both before and since that treaty, every principle of policy pointed out this power as a natural alliance ; and on his part it was courted by every sort of amicable oiiice. Hut the cabinet council of English creditors would not suffer their Nabob of Arcot t<> sign the treaty, nor even to give to a prince, at least his equal, the ordinary titles of respect and courtesy. From that time forward, a continued plot was carried on within the divan, black and white, of the nabob of Arcot, for the destruction of Ilyder Ali. As to the outward members of the double, or rather treble, government of Madras, which had signed the treaty, they were always prevented by some over- ruling influence (which they do not describe, but which cannot be iniMinderMood) from performing what justice and interest combined so evidently to enforce. AVhen at length Ilyder Ali found t iat he had to do with men who either wo.nld sign no convent-oiV, or whom no treaty and no signature could bind, and who were the determined enemies of human intercourse itself, he decreed to make the country HM! by these incorrigible and predestinated criminals a memorable example to mankind. lie resolved, in the gloomy 302 BURKE. recesses of a mind capacious of such things, to leave the whole Carnatic an everlasting monument of vengeance, and to put perpetual desolation as a barrier between him and those against whom the faith .which holds the moral elements together was no protection. He became at length so confident of his force, so collected in his might, that he made no secret whatsoever of his dreadful resolution. Having terminated his disputes with every enemy and every rival, who buried their mutual animosities in their*common detestation against the creditors of the Nabob of Arcot, he drew, from every quarter, whatever a savage ferocity could add to his new rudiments in the art of destruction ; and, compounding all the materials of fury, havoc, and 'desolation into one black cloud, he hung for a while on the declivities of the mountains, "Whilst the authors of all these evils were idly and stupidly gazing on this menacing meteor, which blackened all their horizon, it suddenly burst, and poured down the whole of its contents upon the plains of the Carnatic. Then ensued a scene of woe, the like of which no eye had seen, no heart conceived, and which no tongue can adequately tell. All the horrors of war before known or heard of were mercy to that new havoc. A storm of universal fire Ma>ted every field, consumed every house, destroyed every temple. The misera- ble inhabitants, flying from their flaming villages, in part were slaughtered ; others, without regard to sex, to age, to the respect of rank or sacredness of function, fathers torn from children, husbands from wives, enveloped in a whirlwind of cavalry, and, amidst the goading spears of drivers and the trampling of pursuing horses, were swept into captivity, in an unknown and hostile land. Those who were able to evade this tempest fled to the walled cities. But, escaping from fire, sword, and exile, they fell into the jaws of famine. The alms of the settlement, in this dreadful exigency, were certainly liberal ; and all was done by charity that private charity could do; but it was' a people in beggary; it was a nation which stretched out its hands for food. For months tog-ether these creatures of sufferance, whose very excess and luxury in their most plenteous days had fallen short of the al- lowance of our austerest fasts, silent, patient, resigned, without sedition or disturbance, almost without complaint, perished by an hundred a day in the streets of Madras ; every day soventy at least laid their bodies inJ4ic streets, or on the glacis of Tan- jore, and expired of fanii.^. \ the granary of India. I was going to awake your justice towards this unhappy part of our fellow- citizens, by bringing before you some of the ciivumstai: this plague of hunger. Of all the calamities which beset and waylay the life of man, this conies the nearest to our heart, and DESOLATION OF THE CARXATIC. 303 is that wherein the proudest of us all feels himself to be nothing more than lie is : but I find myself unable to manage it with decorum: these details are of a species of horror so nauseous and disgusting ; they are so degrading to the sufferers and to the hearers; they are so humiliating to human nature itself; that, on better thoughts, I find It more advisable to throw a pall over this hideous object, and to leave it to your general conceptions. For eighteen months, without intermission, this destruction raged from the gates of Madras to the gates of Tanjore ; and so completely did those masters in their art, Ilyder All and his more ferocious son, absolve themselves of their impious vow, that, when the British armies traversed, as they did, the Car- natic for hundreds of miles in all directions, through the whole line of their march they did not see one man, not one woman, not one child, not one four-footed beast of any description what- ever. One dead, uniform silence reigned over the whole region. With the inconsiderable exceptions of the narrow vicinage of some few forts, I wish to be understood as speaking literally. The Carnatic is a country not much inferior in extent to Eng- land. Figure to yourself, Mr. Speaker, the land in whoso representative chair you sit; figure to yourself the form and fashion of your sweet and cheerful country from Thames to Trent north and south, and from the Irish to the (lerman Sea east and we>t, emptied and embowelled (may Clod avert the omen of our crimes!) by so accomplished a desolation. Extend your imagination a little further, and then suppose your Minis- ters taking a survey of this scene of waste- and desolation: what would be your thoughts, ii you should be informed that they were computing how much had been the amount of the excises, how much the customs, how much the land and malt tax, in order that they might charge (take it in the most favourable light) for public service, upon the relics of the satiated ven- g 'a'K-e of relentless enemies, the whole of what England had yielded in the most exuberant seasons of peace and abundance? What would you call it? To call it tyranny sublimed into mad- 6 Rather obscure, perhaps. Tho meaning seems to be, that the British Min- istry took measures lor exacting, or extorting, from what had been left by the frln tteut every wise conqueror has gone much further than he was bound to go. It ha* been his ambition and his policy to reconcile the van- quished to his fortune, to show that they had gained by the chanue ; to convert their momentary suffering into a long bene- fit, and to draw from the humiliation of his enemies an acces- sion to his own glory. This has been so constant ;i practice, that it is to repeat the histories of all politic conquerors in all nations and in all times; and 1 will not so much distrust your Lordships' enlightened and discriminating studies and correct memories as to allude to one of them. 1 will only show you that the Court oi' Directors, under whom he served, has adopted that idea; that they constantly inculcated it to him, and to all their servants ; that they run a parallel bet ween their own and the native government, and, supposing it to be very evil, did not hold it upas an example to be followed, but as an abuse to be 'orrected; that they never made it a question, whether India is to be improved by English law and liberty, or English law and liberty vitiated by Indian corruption. No, my Lords, this arbitrary [tower is not to be had by con- Nor can any sovereign have it by succession ; for no man can succeed to fraud, rapine, and violence. Neither by compact, covenant, nor submission, for men cannot covenant themselves out of their rights and their duties, nor by any other means, can arbitrary power be conveyed to any man. Those who give to others such rights perform acts that are void 310 BURKE. as they are given, good indeed and valid only as tending to subject themselves, and those who act with them, to the Divine displeasure ; because morally there can be no such power. Those who give and those who receive arbitrary power are alike criminal ; and there is no man but is bound to resist it to the best of his power, wherever it shall show its face to the world. It is a crime to bear it, when it can be rationally shaken off. Nothing but absolute impotence can justify men in not resisting it. Law and arbitrary power are in eternal enmity. Name me a magistrate, and I will name property ; name me a power, and I will name protection. It is a contradiction in terms, it is blasphemy in religion, it is wickedness in politics, to say that any man can have arbitrary power. In every patent of oflice the duty is included. For what else does a magistrate exist? To suppose, for power, is an absurdity in idea. Judges are guided and governed by the eternal laws of justice, to which we are all subject. We may bite our chains if we will, but we shall be made to know ourselves, and be taught that man is born to be governed by law ; and he that will substitute will in the place of it is an enemy to God. Despotism does not in the smallest degree abrogate, alter, or lessen any one relation of life, or weaken the force or obliga- tion of any one engagement or contract whatsoever. I> ism, it' it means any thing that is at all defensible, means a mode of government bound by no written rules, and coerced by no controlling magistracies or well-settled orders in the State. I3ut, if it has no written law, it neither does nor can cancel the the primeval, indefeasible, unalterable law of Nature and of na- tions ; and if no magistracies control its exertions, those tions must derive their limitation and direction either from the equity and moderation of the ruler, or from downright revolt on the part of the subject, by rebellion divested of all its criminal qualities. The moment a sovereign removes the idea of secu- rity and protection from his subjects, and declares that he is every thing and they nothing ; when he declares that no con- tract he makes with them can or ought to bind him, he then declares war upon them: he is no longer sovereign; they are no longer subjects. CRUELTIES OF DEBI SI^G. 311 CRUELTIES OF DEBI SING. 9 IT is the nature of tyranny and rapacity never to learn mod- eration from the ill-success of first oppressions : on the con- trary, all oppressors, all men thinking highly of the methods dictated by their nature, attribute the frustration of their do- sires to the want of sufficient vigour. Then they redouble the efforts of their impotent cruelty; which producing, as they must ever produce, new disappointments, they grow irritated against the objects of their rapacity ; and then rage, fury, mal- ice, implacable because unprovoked, recruiting and reinforcing their avarice, their vices are no longer human. From cruel men they are transformed into savage beasts, with no other vestiges of reason left but what serve to furnish the inventions and refinements of ferocious subtlety, for purposes of which beasts are incapable, and at which fiends would blush. I)ebi Sing and his instruments suspected, and in a few cases t !H'\ suspected justly, that the country people had purloined from their own estates, and had hidden in secret places in the circum- jacent deserts, some small reserve of their own grain, to main- tain themselves during the unproductive months of the year, and to leave some hope for a future season. But the uwler- tvrants knew that the demands of ]SIr. Hastings would admit no plea for delay, much less for the subtraction of his bribe; and that he would not abate a shilling of it to the wants of the whole human race. These hoards, real or supposed, not being discovered by menaces and imprisonment, they fell upon the last resource, the naked bodies of the people. And here, my Lords, began such a scene of cruelties and tortures as I believe no history has ever presented to the indignation of the world ; such us "I am sure, in the most barbarous ages, no politic t \ runny, no fanatic persecution, has ever yet exceeded. The following piece is from the third day of Burke's opening speech. "Warren Hastings was l'<>r sonic thirteen years Governor-General of the British Knipire in India. During hid rule the most outrageous frauds, rapines, opprcs- ',d cruelties were practised upon the native inhabitants by his subordi- nates, and with his sanction, or at least his allowance. Debi Sing was a native of the country, and was notoriously steeped in all the worst virulence of East- ern luxury, profligacy, and rapacity. By the payment, or the promise, of an enormous bribe, to Hastings, he got himself armed with full authority and power t > collect tl.e taxes and revenues of certain provinces; that is, to enrich himself as much as he possibly could, by whatever means he might choose to employ. , rovinccs were then turned over, unreservedly, to his merciless avarice and revenge, to be distressed, plundered, and ravaged, at his pleasure. It was in pursuance of this scheme that he perpetrated the horrible inhumanities hero described. 312 BURKE. My Lords, they began by winding cords round the fingers of the unhappy freeholders of those provinces, until they clung to and were almost incorporated with one another ; and then they hammered wedges of iron between them, until, regardless of the cries of the sufferers, they had bruised to pieces and for ever crippled those poor, honest, innocent, laborious hands, which had never been raised to their mouths but with a penurious and scanty proportion of the fruits of their own soil : but those fruits (denied to the wants of their own children) have furnished the investment of our trade with China, and been sent annually out, and without recompense, to purchase for us that delicate meal with which your Lordships, and all this auditory, and all this country, have begun every day for these fifteen years at their expense. To those beneficent hands that labour for our benefit the return of the British government has been cords and hammers and wedges. But there is a place where these crippled and disabled hands will act with resistless power. What is it that they will not pull down, when they are lifted to ] leaven against their oppressors? Then what can withstand such hands? Can the power that crushed and destroyed them? Powerful in prayer, let us at least deprecate, and thus en- deavour to secure ourselves from, the vengeance which these mashed and disabled hands may pull down upon us. .My Lords, it is an awful consideration ! let us think of it. But, to pursue this melancholy but necessary detail. I am next to open to your Lordships, that the mo>t substantial and leading yeomen, the responsible farmers, the parochial magis- trates and chiefs of villages, were tied two and two by the legs together ; and their tormentors, throwing them with their heads downwards, over a bar, beat them on the soles of the feet with rattans, until the nails fell from the toes ; and then attack- ing them at their heads, as they hung downward, as before at their feet, they beat them with sticks and other instruments of blind fury, until the blood gushed out at their eyes, mouths, and noses. Not thinking that the ordinary whips and cudgels, even so administered, Avere sufficient, to others (and often also to the same who had suffered as I have stated) they applied, in- stead of rattan and bamboo, whips made of the branches of the bale-tree, a tree full of sharp and strong thorns, which tear the skin and lacerate the flesh far worse than ordinary scourges. For others, exploring with a searching and inquisi- tive malice, stimulated by an insatiate rapacity, all the devious paths of Nature for whatever is most unfriendly to man, they made rods of a plant highly caustic and poisonous, called Hcchettea, every wound of which festers and gangrenes, adds double and treble to the present torture, leaves a crust of lep- : AW CRUELTIES OF DEBT SING. 313 rous sores upon the body, and often ends in the destruction of life itself. At night, these poor innocent sufferers, these mar- tyrs of avarice and extortion, were brought into dungeons; and, in the season when nature takes refuge in insensibility from all the miseries and cares which wait on life, they were three times scourged, and made to reckon the watches of the night by periods and intervals of torment. They were then led out, in the severe depth of Winter, which there at certain seasons would be severe to any, to the Indians is most severe and al- mo>t intolerable, they were led out before break of day, and, stiff and sore as they were with the bruises and wounds of the night, were plunged into water; and, whilst their jaws clung together with the cold, and their bodies were rendered infi- nitely more sensible, the blows and stripes were renewed upon their backs ; and then, delivering them over to soldiers, they -ent into their farms and villages to discover where the lew handfuls of grain might be found concealed, or to extract some loan from the remnants of compassion and courage not- subdued in those who had reason to fear that their own turn of torment would be next, and that their very humanity, being taken as a proof of their wealth, would subject them (as it did in many cases subject them) to the same inhuman tortures. After this circuit of the day through their plundered and ru- ined villages, they were remanded at night to the same prison, whipped, as before, at their return to the dungeon, and at morn- ing whipped at their leaving it, and then sent, as before, to pur- chase, by begging in the day, the reiteration of the torture in the night. Days of menace, insult, and extortion, nights of bolts, fetters, and llageilntion, succeeded to each other in the sune round, and for a long time made up all the vicissitudes of life to those miserable people. lint there are persons whose fortitude could bear their own suffering ; there are men who are hardened by their very pains, and the mind, strengthened even by the torments of the body, vises with a strong defiance against its oppressor. They were assaulted on the side of their sympathy. Children were scourged almost to death in the presence of their parents. This was not enough. The son and father were bound close together, face to face and body to body, and in that situation cruelly lashed together, so that the blow which escaped the tlier fell upon the son, and the blow which missed the son wound over the back of the parent. The circumstances were combined with so subtle a cruelty, that every stroke which did not excruciate the sense should wound and lacerate the senti- ments and affections of nature. On the same principle, and for the same ends, virgins, who 314 BUKKE. had never seen the Sun, were dragged from the inmost sanctu- aries of their houses, and in the open court of justice, in the very place where security was to be sought against all wrong and all violence, (but where no judge or lawful magistrate had long sat, but, in their place, the ruffians and hangmen of "\Var- rcn Hastings occupied the bench,) these virgins, vainly invoking Heaven and Earth in the presence of their parents, and whilst their shrieks were mingled with the indignant cries and groans of all the people, publicly were violated by the l<\u->t and wickedest of the human race. Wives were torn from the arms of their husbands, and suffered the same flagitious wrongs, which were indeed hid in the bottoms of the dungeons in which their honour and their liberty were buried together. Often they were taken out of the refuge of this consoling gloom, stripped naked, and thus exposed to the world, and then cruelly scourged ; and, in order that cruelty might riot in all the cir- cumstances that .melt into tenderness the fiercest natures, tin- nipples of their breasts were put between the sharp and elastic sides of cleft bamboos. Here in my hand is my authority ; for otherwise one would think it incredible. But it did not end there. Growing from crime to crime, ripened by cruelty for cruelty, these fiends, at length outraging sex, decency, nature, applied lighted torches and slow fire (I cannot proceed for shame and horror !) these infernal furies planted death in the source of life ; and where that modesty which, more than reason, distin- guishes men from beasts retires from the view, and even shrinks from the expression, there they exercised and glutted their unnatural, monstrous and nefarious cruelty, there where the reverence of nature and the sanctity of justice dares not to pur- sue, nor venture to describe their practices. 1 1 During the delivery of this speech, the House of Lords was packed to its utmost capacity with whatever was most illustrious in the kingdom. It is said that, while giving utterance to this appalling description, Burkc's eyes \\rre literally streaming and his whole frame quivering with emotion; and that the vast audience, their feelings having beeu gradually wrought up to the climax, could not restrain themselves. I quote from Mjicknight's Life and Time* cf llurle: "The whole assembly were deeply affected. Mrs. Siddons < that all the illusions of the stage sank into insignificance before :. then beheld; and the great actress did homage t>> the great orator. Mrs. Sheri- dan fainted. Even the stern Lord Chancellor Thurlow, who was deeply preju- diced both against Burke and the cause he advocated, could not keep up his sullen hostility, and for the lirtt time in his life a tear was observed to lie in his eye. But the most wonderful etlect was produced on Hastings himself. lie hated Burke, and had despised him, until he had by stern experience been com- pelled to fear him. As he listened to the harrowing recital of crimes which, if he had not authorized, he most certainly had not censured, even his callous heart seemed to feel the pangs of sorrow and remorse, and for the moment ho thought himself the most wicked of mankind. The orator at length was over- IMPEACHMENT OF HASTINGS. 315 These, my Lords, were sufferings which we feel all in com- mon, in India and in England, by the general sympathy of our common nature. But there were in that province (sold to the tormentors by Mr. Hastings) things done, which, from the peculiar manners of India, were even worse than all I have laid before you ; as the dominion of manners and the law of opinion contribute more to human happiness and misery than any thing in mere sensitive nature can do. The women thus treated lost their caste. My Lords, we are not here to commend or blame the institutions and prejudices of a whole race of people, radicated in them by a long succes- sion of ages, on which no reason or argument, on which no vicissitudes of things, no mixtures of men, or foreign conquest, have been able to make the smallest impression. The aborigi- nal Gentoo inhabitants are all dispersed into tribes or castes, each caste born to an invariable rank, rights, and descriptions of employment, so that one caste cannot by any means pass into another. With the Gentoos, certain impurities or dis- graces, though without any guilt of the party, infer loss of caste ; and when the highest caste, that of Brahmin, which is not only noble, but sacred, is lost, the person who loses it does not slide down into one lower, but reputable, he is wholly driven from ail honest society. All the relations of life are at once dissolved. His parents are no longer his parents; his wife is no longer his wife ; his children, no longer his, are no longer to regard him as their father. It is something far worse than complete outlawry, complete attainder, and universal excommu- nication. It is a pollution even to touch him ; and if he touches any of his old caste, they are justified in putting him to death. Contagion, leprosy, plague are not so much shunned. No hon- est occupation can be followed. He becomes an halicore, if (which is rare) he survives that miserable degradation. IMPEACHMENT OF HASTINGS. 2 MY LORDS, what is it that we want here to a great act of national justice V Do we want a cause, my Lords? You have come by liia own feelings; his tongue seemed to be paralyzed by his emotion; while scorn and horror were depicted upon his brow, and the lightning of indig- nation flashed from his eye." 2 This piece makes the conclusion of Burke's opening speech. The speaker had held his audience undiminished through the whole four days of his speak- ing; ai:;! when he came to the close his powerful voice rose and swelled to its 316 BURKE. the cause of oppressed princes, of undone women of the first rank, of desolated provinces, and of wasted kingdoms. Do you want a criminal, my Lords? When was there so much iniquity ever laid to the charge of any one ? Xo, my Lords, you must not look to punish any other such delinquent from India. Warren Hastings has not left substance enough in India to nourish Midi another delinquent. My Lords, is it a prosecutor you want? You have before you the Commons of Great Britain as prosecutors: and I believe, my Lords, that the Sun, in his beneficent progress round the world, does not behold a more glorious sight than that of men, separated from a remote people by the material bounds and barriers of Nature, united by the bond of a social and moral community; all the Commons of England resenting, as their own, the indignities and cruelties that are offered to all the people of India. Do we want a tribunal? My Lords, no example of antiq- uity, nothing in the modern world, nothing in the range of human imagination, can supply us with a tribunal like this. Ms- Lords, here we see virtually, in the mind's eye, that sacred majesty of the Crown, under whose authority you --it. and whose power you exercise. We see in that invisible authority, what we all feel in reality and life, the beneficent powers and protect- ing justice of his Majesty. We have here the heir-apparent to the crown, such as the fond wishes of the people of England wish an heir-apparent of the crown to be. AVe have lien- all the branches of the royal family, in a situation betsveen majesty and subjection, bet ween the sovereign and the subject, offer- ing a pledge in that situation for the support of the rights of the Crown and the liberties of the people, both which extremities they touch. My Lords, we have the great hereditary pet-rage here, those who has'e their own honour, the honour ol their ancestors, and of their posterity, to guard, and who will justify, as they have always justified, that provision in the Constitution by which justice is made an hereditary office. My Lords, we have here a new nobility, who have risen and exalted them- selves by various merits, by great military services which utmost compass, rolling and reverberating through the lofty arches of (ho house, and bowing the hearts of his audience in the deepest solemnity. SVilliam Windham, a first-rate judge of oratory, and himself no mean orator, \vlio was associated with Burke, as Fox and Sheridan also were, in the management of the trial, pronounced this peroration " the noblest ever uttered by man." The whole speech, indeed, taken all together, i-^ unrivalled in British eloquence, perhaps in all eloquence. But the most astonishing fe attire of the speech is the perfect intellectual mastery it displays of the entire subject, both as a whole and in all its minutest details, that subject the largest too ever attempted to be handled in any effort of the kind. IMPEACHMENT OF HASTINGS. 317 have extended the fame of this country from the rising to the setting Sun. We have those who, by various civil merits and various civil talents, have been exalted to a situation which they well deserve, and in which they will justify the favour of their sovereign, and the good opinion of their fellow-subjects, ami make them rejoice to see those virtuous characters that were the other day upon a level with them now exalted above them in rank, but feeling with them in sympathy what they felt in common with them before. We have persons exalted from the practice of the law, from the place in which they administered high though subordinate justice, to a seat here, to enlighten with their knowledge, and to strengthen with their votes those principles which have distinguished the courts in which they have presided. My Lords, you have here, also, the lights of our religion, you have the Bishops of England. My Lords, you have that true image of the primitive Church, in its ancient form, in its ancient ordinances, purified from the superstitions and the vices which a long succession of ages will bring upon the best institu- tions. You have the representatives of that religion which says that their God is love, that the very vital spirit of their institu- tion is charity; a religion which so much hates oppression, that, when the God whom we adore appeared in human form, lie did not appear in a form of greatness and majesty, but in sympathy with the lowest of the people, and thereby made it a linn and ruling principle that their welfare was the object of all government, since the Person who was the Master of Nature cho>e to appear Himself in a subordinate situation. These are the considerations which influence them, which animate them, and will animate them, against all oppression; knowing that ITo who is called first among them, and first among us all, both of the Hock that is fed and of those who feed it, made Himself "the servant of all." My Lords, these are the securities which we have in all the tituent parts of the body of this House. We know them, we reckon, we rest upon them, and commit safely the interests oil ndia.and of humanity into your hands. Therefore it is with confidence, that, ordered by the Commons, I impeach Warren Hastings, Esquire, of high crimes and misdemeanour*. I impeach him in the name of the Commons of Great Britain in Parliament assembled, whose parliamentary trust he has betrayed. 1 impeach him in the name of all the Commons of Great Britain, whose national character he has dishonoured. I impeach him in the name of the people of India, whose 318 BUKKE. laws, rights, and liberties he has subverted, whose proper- ties he lias destroyed, whose country he has laid waste and desolate. I impeach him in the name and by virtue of those eternal laws of justice which he has violated. I impeach him in the name of human nature itself, which he has cruelly outraged, injured, and oppressed, in both sexes, in every age, rank, situation, and condition of life. JUSTICE AND REVENGE. 8 WE know from history and the records of this House, that a Lord Bacon has been before you. AVlio is there that, upon hearing ibis name, docs not instantly recognize every thing of genius the most profound, every thing of literature the most extensive, every thing of discovery the most penetrating, every thing of observation on human life the most distinguishing and refined ? All these must be instantly recognized, for they are all inseparably associated with the name of Lord Verulam. Yet, when this prodigy was brought before your Lordships by the Commons of Great Britain for having permitted his menial servant to receive presents, what was his dcmesfhour? Did he require his counsel not "to let down the dignity of his de- fence?" No. That Lord Bacon whose least distinction was, that he was a peer of England, a Lord High Chancellor, and the son of a Lord Keeper, behaved like a man who knew him- self, like a man who was conscious of merits of the highest kind, but who was at the same time conscious of having fallen into guilt. The House of Commons did not spare him. They brought him to your bar. They found spots in that Sun. And what, I again ask, was his behaviour? That of contrition, that of humility, that of repentance, that which belongs to the greatest men lapsed and fallen through human infirmity into error. He did not hurl defiance at the accusations of his country ; he bowed himself before it. Yet, with all his peni- tence, he could not escape -the pursuit of the House of Com- mons, and the inflexible justice of this Court. Your Lordships 3 Burke's " Speech in General Reply " occupied nine days in the delivery, beginning May 2>, and ending June 16, 1794, more than six years after the open- ing speech. The passage here given is from the first day of the speech in reply. To my sense it is one of the noblest strains of eloquence in the language : though of course not equal to the sublime conclusion of the whole speech, which comes next in these selections from Burke. JUSTICE AND REVENGE. 319 fined him forty thousand pounds, notwithstanding all his merits, notwithstanding his humility, notwithstanding his contrition, notwithstanding the decorum of his behaviour, so well suited to a man under the prosecution of the Commons of England before the Peers of England. You fined him a sum fully equal to one hundred thousand pounds of the present day ; you im- prisoned him during the King's pleasure ; and you disqualified him for ever from having a seat in this House and any office in this kingdom. This is the way in which the Commons behaved formerly, and in which your Lordships acted formerly, when no culprit at this bar dared to hurl a recriminatory accu- sation against his prosecutors, or dared to censure the language in which they expressed their indignation at his crimes. The Commons of Great Britain, following this example and fortified by it, abhor all compromise with guilt either in act or in language. They will not disclaim any one w r ord that they have spoken, because, my Lords, they have said nothing abu- sive or illiberal. We have indeed used, and will again use, such expressions as are proper to portray guilt. After describ- ing the magnitude of the crime, we describe the magnitude of tin- criminal. We have declared him to be not only a public robber himself, but the head of a system of robbery, the captain-gen. -ral of the gang, the chief under whom a whole predatory baud was arrayed, disciplined, and paid. In develop- ing such a mails of criminality, and in describing a criminal of such magnitude as we have now brought before you, we could not use lenient epithets without compromising with crime. We therefore shall not relax in our pursuit nor in our language. Xo, my Lords, no ! we shall not fail to feel indignation, wher- ever our moral nature has taught us to feel it; nor shall we hesitate to speak the. language which is dictated by that indig- nation. Whenever men are oppressed where they ought to be protected, we call it tyranny, and we call the actor a tyrant. Whenever goods are taken by violence from the possessor, we call it a robbery, and the person who takes it we call a robber. Money clandestinely taken from the proprietor we call theft, and the person who takes it we call a thief. When a false pa- per is made out to obtain money, we call the act a forgery. The steward who takes bribes from his master's tenants, and then, nding the money to be his own, lends it to that master and takes bonds for it to himself, we consider guilty of a breach of trust; and the person who commits such crimes we call a cheat, a swindler, and a forger of bonds. All these offences, without the least softening, under all these names, we charge upon this num. We have so charged in our record; we have so charged in our speeches ; and we are sorry that our language does not fur- 320 BURKE. nish terms of sufficient force and compass to mark the multi- tude, the magnitude, aud the atrocity of his crimes. If it should still be asked why we show sufficient acrimony to excite a suspicion of being in any manner influenced by malice or a desire of revenge, to this, my Lords, wo answer, "Because we would be thought to know our duty, and would have all the world know how resolutely we aiv determined to perform it." The Commons of Great Britain are not disposed to quarrel with the Divine wisdom a,nd goodness, which has moulded up re- venge into the frame and constitution of man. lie that lias made us what we are, has made us at once resentful and reason- able. Instinct tells a man that he ought to revenge an injury ; reason tells him that he ought not to be a judge in his own cause. From that moment revenge passes from the private to the public hand; but in being transferred it is far from being extinguished. My Lords, it is transferred as a sacred trust, to be exercised for the injured, in measure and proportion, by per- sons who, feeling as lie feels, are in a temper to reason better than he can reason. Ilevenge is taken out of the hands of the original injured proprietor, lest it should be carried beyond the bounds of moderation and justice. But, my Lords, it is in its transfer exposed to a danger of an opposite description. The delegate of vengeance may not feel the wrong sufficiently; he may be cold and languid in the performance of his sacred duty. It is for these reasons that good men are taught to tremble even at the first emotions of anger and resentment for their own particular wrongs; but they are likewise taught, if they are well taught, to give the loosest possible rein to their resentment and indignation, whenever their parents, their friends, their country, or their brethren of the common family of mankind are injured. Those who have not such feelings, under such cir- cumstances, are base and degenerate. These, my Lords, are the sentiments of the Commons of Great Britain. Lord Bacon has very well said that "revenge is a kind of wild justice." It is so ; and without this wild, austere stock there would be no justice in the world. But when, by the skil- ful hand of morality and wise jurisprudence, a foreign scion, but of the very same species, is grafted upon it, its harsh qual- ity becomes changed; it submits to culture, and, laying aside its savage nature, it bears fruits and flowers, sweet to the world, and not ungrateful even to Heaven itself, to which it elevates its exalted head. The fruit of this wild stock is revenge regu- lated, but not extinguished, revenue transferred from the suf- fering party to the communion and sympathy of mankind. This is the revenge by which we are actuated, and which we should be sorry if the false, idle, girlish, novel-like morality of JUSTICE AND REVEXGE. 321 the world should extinguish in the breast of us who have a great public duty to perform. This sympathetic revenge, which is condemned by clamorous imbecility, is so far from being a vice, that it is the greatest of all possible virtues, a virtue which the uncorrupted judgment of mankind has in all ages exalted to the rank of heroism. To give up all the repose and pleasures of life, to pass sleepless nights and laborious days, and, what is ten times more irksome to an ingenuous mind, to offer one's self to calumny and all its herd of hissing tongues and poisoned fangs, in order to free the world from fraudulent prevaricators, from cruel oppressors, from robbers and tyrants, has, I say, the test of heroic virtue, and well deserves such a distinction. The Commons, despair- ing to attain the heights of this virtue, never lose sight of it for a moment. For seventeen years they have, almost without in- termission, pursued, by every sort of inquiry, by legislative and by judicial remedy, the cure of this Indian malady, worse ten thousand times than the leprosy which our forefathers brought from the Ku>t. Could they have done this, if they had not been actuated by some strong, some vehement, some perennial ;i, which, burning like, vestal lire, chaste and eternal, never suffers generous sympathy to grow cold in maintaining the rights of the injured, or in denouncing the crimes of the oppressor? My Lords, the. Managers for the Commons have been actu- ated by this passion: they feel its influence at this moment; and, so far from softening either their measures or their tone, the\ do here, in the presence of their Creator, of this House, and of the world, make this solemn declaration, and nuncupate this deliberate vow: That they will ever glow with the most determined and inextinguishable animosity against tyranny, oppression, and peculation iu all, but more particularly as prac- tised by this man in India; that they never will relent, but will pursue and prosecute him and it, till they see corrupt pride prostrate under the feet of justice. APPEAL FOIl JUDGMENT UPON HASTINGS. MY LORDS, in the progress of this impeachment, you have heard our charges ; you have heard the prisoner's plea of mer- it- ; yon have heard our observations on them. In the progress <>f this impeachment, you have seen the condition in which Mr. J last ings received Benares : you have seen the condition in 322 BURKE. which Mr. Hastings received the country of the Itohillas ; you have seen the condition in which he received the country of Oude ; you have seen the condition in which he received the provinces of Bengal ; you have seen the condition of the coun- try when the native government was succeeded by that of Mr. Hastings ; you have seen the happiness and prosperity of all its inhabitants, from those of the highest to those of the lowest rank. My Lords, you have seen the very reverse of all this under the government of Mr. Hastings, the country itself, all its beauty and glory, ending in a jungle for wild beasts. You have seen flourishing families reduced to implore that pity which the poorest man and the meanest situation might very well call for. You have seen whole nations in the mass reduced to a condition of the same distress. These things in his govern- ment at home. Abroad, scorn, contempt, and derision cast upon and covering the British name, war stirred up, and dishonour- able treaties of peace made, by the total prostitution of British faith. Now take, my Lords, together, all the multiplied delin- quencies which we have proved, from the highest degree of tyranny to the lowest degree of sharping and cheating, and then judge, my Lords, whether the House of Commons could rest for one moment, without bringing these matters, which have battled all legislation at various times, before you, to try at last what judgment will do. Judgment is what gives force, effect, and vigour to laws: laws without judgment are con- temptible and ridiculous ; we had better have no laws than laws not enforced by judgments and suitable penalties upon delin- quents. Revert, my Lords, to all the sentences which have heretofore been passed by this High Court; look at the sen- tence passed upon Lord Bacon, look at the sentence passed upon Lord Macclesfield ; and then compare tho sentences which your ancestors have given with the delinquencies which were then before them, and you have the measure to be taken in your sentence upon the delinquent now before you. Your sen- tence, I say, will be measured according to that rule which ought to direct the judgment of all courts in like cases, lessen- ing it for a lesser offence, and aggravating it for a greater, until the measure of justice is completely full. My Lords, I have done ; the part of the Commons is con- cluded. "With a trembling solicitude we consign this product of our long, long labours to your charge. Take it! take it! It is a sacred trust. Never before was a cause of such magnitude submitted to any human tribunal. My Lords, at this awful close, in the name of the Commons, and surrounded by them, I attest the retiring, I attest the ad- vancing generations, between which, as a link in the great chain APPEAL FOR JUDGMENT UPON HASTINGS. 323 of eternal order, we stand. "We call this nation, we call the world to witness, that the Commons have shrunk from no la- bour, that we have been guilty of no prevarication, that we have made no compromise with crime, that we have not feared any odium whatsoever, in the long warfare which we have carried on with the crimes, with the vices, with the exorbitant wraith, with the enormous and overpowering influence of Eastern cor- ruption. This war we have waged for twenty-two years, and the conflict has been fought at your Lordships' bar for the last seven years. My Lords, twenty-two years is a great space in the scale of the life of man ; it is no inconsiderable space in the history of a great nation. A business which has so long occu- pied the councils and the tribunals of Great Britain cannot pos- sibly be huddled over in the course of vulgar, trite, and transi- tory events. Xothing but some of those great revolutions that break the traditionary chain of human memory, and alter the very face of Xature itself, can possibly obscure it. My Lords, we are all elevated to a degree of importance by it; the mean- est of us will, by means of it, more or less become the concern of posterity, if we are yet to hope for such a thing, in the present state of the world, as a recording, retrospective, eivil- i/rd posterity: but this is in the hands of the great Disposer of events ; it is not Ours to settle how it shall be. My Lords, your House yet stands, it stands as a great edi- fice ; but. let me say that it stands in the midst of ruins, in the mid>t of the ruins that have been made by the greatest moral earthquake that ever convulsed and shattered this globe of ours. My Lords, it has pleased Providence to place us in such a state, that we appear every moment to be upon the verge of some ureat mutations. There is one thing, and one thing only, which all mutation, that which existed before the world, and will survive the fabric of the world itself: I mean justice, that justice which, emanating from the Divinity, has a place in the of every one of us, given us for our guide with regard to ourselves and with regard to others, and which will stand, after :!;!> globe is burned to ashes, our advocate or accuser before at Judge, when He comes to call upon us for the tenour Of a Well-spent life. My Lords, the Commons will share in every fate with your Lordships; there is nothing sinister which can happen to you, in which we shall not be involved. And if it should so happen that we shall In; subjected to some of those, frightful changes which we have seen ; if it should happen that your Lordships, stripped of all the decorous distinctions of human society, should, by hands at once huso and cruel, be led to those scaf- folds and machines of murder upon which great kings and 324 BURKE. glorious queens have shed their blood, amidst the prelates, amidst the nobles, amidst the magistrates who supported their thrones, may you in those moments, i'eel that consolation which I am persuaded they felt in the critical moments of their dread- ful agony ! My Lords, there is a consolation, and a great consolation it is! which often happens to oppressed virtue and fallen dig- nity. It often happens that the very oppressors and persecu- tors themselves are forced to bear testimony in its favour. I do not like to go for instances a great way back into antiquity. I know very well that length of time operates so as to give an air of the fabulous to remote events, which lessens the interest and weakens the application of examples. I wish to come nearer the present time. Your Lordships know and have heard (for which of us lias not known and heard?) of the Par- liament of Paris. The Parliament of Paris had an origin very, very similar to that of the great Court before which J stand; the Parliament of Paris continued to have a great resemblance to it in its constitution, even to its fall. The Parliament of Paris, my Lords, WAS; it is gone! It has passed away; it has vanished like a dream! It fell, pierced by the sword of the Comte de Mirabeau. And yet I will say that that man, at the time of his inflicting the death-wound of that Parliament, produced at once the shortest and the grandest funeral oration that ever was or could be made upon the departure of a mvat court of magistracy. Though he had himself smarted under its lash, as every one knows who knows his history, (and he was elevated to dreadful notoriety in history. 1 ) yet, when he pro- nounced the death-sentence upon that Parliament, and indicted the mortal wound, he declared that his motives for doing it were merely political, and that their hands were as pure as those of justice itself, which they administered. A great and glorious exit, my Lords, of a great and glorious body! And never was an eulogy pronounced upon a body more deserved. They were persons, in nobility of rank, in amplitude of fortune, in weight of authority, in depth of learning, inferior to few of those that hear me. My Lords, it was but the other day that they submitted their necks to the axe ; but their honour was unwounded. Their enemies, the persons who sentenced them to death, were lawyers full of subtlety, they were enemies full of malice ; yet, lawyers full of subtlety, and enemies full of malice, as they w r ere, they did not dare to reproach them with having supported the wealthy, the great, and powerful, and of having oppressed the weak and feeble, in any of their judg- ments, or of having perverted justice, in any one instance whatever, through favour, through interest* or cabal. APPEAL FOR JUDGMENT UPON HASTINGS. 325 My Lords, if you must fall, may you so fall ! But if you stand, and stand I trust you will, together with the fortune of this ancient monarchy, together with the ancient laws and liberties of this great and illustrious kingdom, may you stand as unimpeached in honour as in power! May you stand, not as a substitute for virtue, but as an ornament of virtue, as a security for virtue! May you stand long, and long stand the terror of tyrants ! May you stand the refuge of afflicted nations ! May you stand a sacred temple, for the perpetual residence of an inviolable justice! Conclusion of Speech in reply. THE vigorous and laborious class of life has lately got, from the bon ton of the humanity of this day, the name of the labour- ing poor. We have heard of many plans for the relief of "the labouring poor." This puling jargon is not as innocent as it is foolish. In meddling with great affairs, weakness is never in- noxious. Hitherto the name of poor (in the sense in which it is used to excite compassion) has not been used for those who can, but for those who cannot, labour, for the sick and infirm, for orphan infancy, for languishing and decrepit age : but when wo affect to pity, as poor, those who must labour or the v/orld can- not exist, we are trifling with the condition of mankind. It is the common doom of man that he must eat his bread by the sweat of his brow, that is by the sweat of his body, or the sweat of his mind. If this toil was inflicted as a curse, it is, as might be expected from the curses of the Father of bless ings, it is tempered with many alleviations, many comforts. Every at- tempt to fly from it, and to refuse the very terms of our exist- ence, becomes much more truly a curse, and heavier pains and penalties fall upon those who would elude the tasks which are put upon them by the great Master Workman of the world, who, in His dealings with His creatures, sympathizes with their weakness, and, speaking of a creation wrought by mere will out of nothing, speaks of six days of labour and one otrcst. I do not call a healthy young man, cheerful in his mind and vigorous in hi> arms, I cannot call such a man poor; I cannot pity my kind as a kind, merely because they are men. This affected pity only tends to dissatisfy them with their condition, and to teach k resources where no resources are to be found, in .-tiling els> than their own industry, and frugality, and so- briety. Whatever maybe the intention (which, because I do not know, I cannot dispute) of those who would discontent mankind by this strange pity, they act towards us, in the conse- quences, as if they were our worst enemies. DANIEL WEBSTER: SKETCH OF HIS LIFE. DAM EL WELTER, the great Statesman of America, was born in the town of Salisbury, New Hampshire, on the 18th of January, 1782. The part of Salisbury in \vliich he first sa\v the light has since been set off as a separate, town, with the name of Franklin. His father, Kbene/.er Web-ter, served large! v, both as a soldier and an officer, in the Revolutionary war, and distinguished himself in the battle of Bennington. lie was also in the service- at White 1'lains, and at West Point when Arnold attempted to sur- render that post. lh> Avas twice married, and each marriage gave him live children. Daniel being the youngest but one of the ten. Exekiel, the brother whom he loved most deeplv, was the next before him; bora on the llth of April, 17SO. During his childhood, Daniel was sickly and delicate, giving no promise of the robust and vigorous frame which he had in his manhood. In his Aiito'iielf in the course of a straitened and toilsome life; but he had a mind strong and healthy by nature, insomuch that he became a sort of intellectual leader in the neigh boWhood. And he seemed to have no higher aim in life than to educate his children to the utmost of his limited ability. The only means within his reach were the small town schools, which were kept by indifferent teachers, in several neighbourhoods of the town, each a small part of the year. To these schools Daniel was sent with the other children. When the school was near by, it was easy to attend; but sometimes he had to go. in Winter, two and a half or three miles, still living at home ; at other times, when the school was further off, his father boarded him out in a neighbour- ing family, that he might still attend ; and something of special pains were used for him in this behalf, because " the slendernessand frailty" of his con- stitution were not thought likely ever to admit of his pursuing anv robust occupation. Nothing but read in 2: and writing was taught in these schools ; and writing was so irksome to him, that the masters used to tell him they feared, after all, his lingers ww destined for the plough-tail. In his early boyhood. Webster was fond of poetry, and could repeat, from memory, the greater part of Watts's Psalms and Hymns, at the a ire of twelve. In his Autobiography, we have the following: "',! remember that my father brought home from some of the lower towns Pope's Essay on Mw, pub- lished in a sort of pamphlet. I took it, and very soon could repeat it. from beginning to end. We had so few books, that to read them once or twice was nothing. We thought thev were all to be got bv heart." II tells us that, till his fourteenth or fifteenth year, he read what he could get to read, went to school when he could; and, when not at school, was ;i fanner's youngest boy, not good for much, for want of health and strength, but was expected to do something. Up to that time, lie had no hope of any education beyond what the village school could afford. Putt in May, 17%. his father plaeed him in Phillips Academy at Exeter. I quote again from 320 * SKETCH OF HIS LIFE. 327 his Autobiography : " I believe I made tolerable progress in most branches which I attended to, while in this school ; but there was one thing I could not do : I could not make a declamation. Many a piece did I commit to memory, and recite and rehearse, in my own room, over and over again ; yet, when the day came, when the school collected to hear declamations, when my name was called, and I saw all eyes turned to my scat, I could not raise myself from it. Sometimes the instructors frowned, sometimes thev smiled. When the occasion was over, I went home and wept bitter tears of mortification." He remained at Exeter only nine months. In February, 1797, his father placed him with the Rev. Samuel Wood, the minister of the adjoining town of IJoscawcn ; and while on the way thither first disclosed to him his pur- pose of sending him to college. " The very idea," savs he, "thrilled mv whole frame. I remember that I was quite overcome. The thing appeared to me so hi^h, the expense and sacrifice it was to cost my father so great, I could only press his hand and shed tears. Excellent, excellent parent! I cannot think of him, even now, without turning child again." Among the books which he found at Hoscawcn was Don Quixote. " I began to read it," says he, "and it is literally true that I never closed my eyes till I had finished it; nor did I lay it down for five minutes; so great was the power of that extraordinary book on my imagination." In August, 1707, \Vebster entered Dartmouth College. His chief dis- tinction while in college was in studies outside the regular course : in writing and in debate he excelled all the rest of his class, and was a general favourite with the students ; withal, he was a fair scholar within the prescribed studies, and was verv punctual in his attendance on all the exercise-;. " Mv college, life," says he, " was not an idle one. Besides the regular attendance on lire- scribed duties and studies, I read something of English history and English literature. Perhaps my reading was too miscellaneous. I even paid my board for a year bv superintending a little weeklv newspaper, and making selections for it from books of literature, and from the contemporary pub- lications. I suppose I sometimes wrote a foolish paragraph myself. While in college I delivered two or three occasional addresses, which were published. I trust they are forgotten : they were in very bad taste. I had not then learned that all true power in writing is in the idea, not in the stvlc ; an error into which the Am r/icfnrfrn, as it is usually taught, nriv easily lead stronger heads than mine." Among his class-mates with whom he kept up a correspondence during his life, was my own excellent pastor, the Rev. Dr. Thomas A. Merrill, of Middlebury. Vermont; who, writing in 18.V5, after Webster's death, relates a passage that happilv illustrates the, power of \Vcb- srer at that time. It appears that, in his junior year, Webster read a poem on a battle between an English and a French man-of-war, in which the latter "k. Dr. Merrill writes that, it " held the professor and the class in apparent amazement. I almost shudder as, fifty-four years alter, I seem lie, French ship go down, and to hear her cannon continue to roar till she is absolutely submerged." Webster went through the regular four years' course, and graduated in Aairn^t, 1801. His character at that time is described by his biographer, !'. Curtis, as follows : " His faculty for labour was something prodigious, his memory disciplined by methods not tauirht him by others, and his intellect was expanded far beyond his years. He was abstemious, religious* of the highest sense of honour, and of the most elevated deport- IHs manners were, genial, his affections warm, his conversation was brilliant and instructive, his temperament cheerful, his gavetv overflowing." Nothing like justice- can be (lone to Webster's nobleness of character, without sour- rel-reiice to what took place; be, ween him and his brother Kzekiel. Their father's plan was, that Ex.ekiel should stay at home, and cany on the farm, and that Daniel should be educated for one of the learned 328 WEBSTER. professions. But, in his Sophomore year, as Daniel saw the wide gulf that was to open between himself and his elder brother, his heart was moved. He could not boar to have it so. He thought Kzckicl's talents to !>. : us his own ; and his h 'art yearned to have him blest with equal advantage-. So, after consulting with his brother, he b"okc the matter to his father, then aged, infirm, and embarrassed in his affairs. lie would keep school, lie would get along as he could, he would be more than four years in goi 'g through college, if need were, that his brother too might be sent to s-udy. Th'j result was, that Kzckicl soon went to preparing for college ; and he entered Dartmouth in March, 1801, just six months before Daniel grad- uated. Meanwhile Daniel worked on the small newspaper already men- tioned, and paid his board, thus saving so much for his brother : he also taught school during the winter vacation, and gave his earnings to the same purpose. On leaving college in August, 1801, Webster returned to his father's house, and soon began the study of the law with Thomas W. Thompson, E-q., his father's neighbour and friend. He had spent four months in this study, when, the family getting more straitened than ever, duty and affec- tion pressed him to undertake something for their relief. Having been offered the charge of an academv in Frveburg, Maine, he bought a hor>e for S-Jfi.OO, and, with his saddle-bags stuffed, set out for the place. lie en- gaged for six months, at the rate of $350.00 a-vcar. lie went to board in the family of .lames ( >si:ood, Esq., registrar of deeds for the county of < Ox- ford. Rather than copy the deeds himself, Mr. Osgood preferred to pay twenty-five cents a-piccc for the copying of them; and Webster gladiy availed himself of the chance, and thus earned enough to pav his board. I quote from his Autobiography : " In May, 1802, having a weed's vacation, I took my quarter's salary, mounted a horse, went straight over the hills to Hanover, and had the pleasure of putting these earnings into my brother's hands for his college expenses. Having enjoyed this hi-j;h pleas- ure, I hied me back again to my school and my copying of deeds." There be^an his friendship with the Rev. Dr. Samuel Osgood, son of the regis- trar, who wrote of him long afterwards as follows: " He was grcatlv be- loved by all who knew him. He was punctual in his attendance upon public worship, and ever opened his school with prayer. I never heard him use a profane word, and never saAV him lose his temper." At the end of the six mouths, Webster gave up his school, though a liberal increase of sa'arv was offered him if he would stav ; the earnest de- sire of his father, the advice of other friends, and his own inclination draw- ing him back to the law. He resumed his place in Mr. Thompson's office, and continued there till March, 1S04, applying himself diligently to his legal studies, but at the same time keeping up and extending his inter- course with the springs of more liberal culture. Poor as he was, and much as he craved the speed v returns of productive work, still he could not cn- tirelv withhold himself from those elegant studies which bring in their immediate riches to the mind alone. Webster now felt a strong desire to finish his studies in Boston. His brother Ezckicl, after a hard struggle, had at length found employment as teacher of a private school in that city; and he had eight scholars in Latin and Greek, whom he would have to dismiss, unless he had an assistant. He strongly urged Daniel to come to Boston, assuring him of enough to pav his board by teaching an hour and a half a-day. So, in July, 1S04, to Boston he came, lie was so fortunate as to find" a place in the office of Christopher (lore, a man eminent both in and out of his profession, and who afterwards became governor of Massachusetts. It was in this way : hearing that Mr Gore wanted a clerk, he got a stranger to introduce him. He told his story with a modest but manly air, and was heard with encour- aging good-nature. He mentioned some of his acquaintances in New SKETCH OF HIS LIFE. 329 Hampshire, and among them one who had been Mr. Gore's class-mate. When he rose to depart, Mr. Gore spoko to him as follows : " My young friend, you look as though you might be trusted. You say you came to study, and not to wa^tc time. I will take you at your word'. You may as well hang up your hat at once ; go into the other loom; take your hook, and sit down to reading it, and write at your convenience to New Hamp- shire for your letters." In August, 1804, Ezckicl was under the necessity of going to Hanover to take his degree. During his absence, Daniel took charge of his school. Edward Everett was at that time one of the pupils; and there began the life-long friendship of the two men. Webster's father hud for several years held the office of " side-judge," as it was called, in Ilillsborough county, a place of considerable influence and importance in tho>c days. In 1804, the clerkship in the Court of Common Pleas there became vacant, and the place was offered to Webster, with $1500.00 a-ycar. This was indeed a tempting prize; it offered, both for him\\, and other of his friends; and, say what wo will, th'J Federalists of that day were the purest, wisest, noblest political party this country has Web-ter continued, substantially, in the same creed, held fast to the same principles of government, to the end of his career. Hence, in p:irt, his profound reverence for our National Constitution ; hence, his at- tachment, deep as life, to the Union which it compacted. But he wa-i too large and too wi>,c a man to b^ cooped up within any formal lines of pol- icy ; his mind was too far-sighted and too well-poised not to admit the force of circumstances in modifying the application of principles; too statesman-like, in short, to sacrifice tho spirit of his creed to its letter. 330 WEBSTER. The wars and revolutions in Europe, together with the controversies which grew out of them to our own government, now forced his thoughts, in a manner, into the channel of political questions. In common with the other Federalists. he was utterly opposed to the famous embargo law of 1807; and, as he had a most cordial and righteous hatred of Napoleon and his doings, he was, to say the lea-t, very slow to admit the ncces.-ity of a war with (Jreat Britain in 1812. Howbeit, he was nominated n Represent- ative to the Thirteenth Congress, was elected, and took his scut in Mav, 1813. Not long after, Mr. Mason was elected to the National Senate. Of Webster's course at Washington, the shortness of this SL->t<-h does not allow me to speak in detail ; sulliee it to say that he soon became a man of decided mark : Congress then nUmnded in able men, Clay and Calhoun being chief among them; and Webster at once took rank with the a' lie continued to represent the Rockingham district till March, 1817. Meanwhile he had broken awav from Portsmouth, and removed to Boston, where he now entered upon a career of great professional distinction : busi- ness flowed in upon him. and his income soon rose to twenty thousand a-year. While in Congress, he had been admitted to practice in the Su- preme Court of the United States, lie had ma*iy engagements there, and in February, 181<. he made his great argument in the famous Dartmouth College case. This set the seal to his lame as an advocate; and thence- forth he would have been regarded as a great, a very great lawyer, but that he was so much greater as a statesman. In 18:20, Webster was elected to the State Convention for revising the Constitution of Ma<>aclinsett>. and it is admitted on all hands that he was the leading member of that body. Some two years later, Boston insisted on having him for her representative in Congress : he was elected accord- ingly, and took his seat in December, 182'5. and continued to serve in that portion till he was elected to the Senate, in which body lie took his scat on the 4th of March. 1827. Before his removal to Portsmouth, his father had died ; and before the end of 18J7 .Mrs. Webster died, having borne him five children, two of whom had also died before their mother. In April, 1829, death fell sud- denly upon his brother K/.ekiel in the court-room at Conconl. New Hamp- shire, while lie was addressing the jury. In December following, Webster, having been held some time in New York bv professional engagements, was there married to Miss Caroline Le Roy, an intelligent and accom- plished ladv, who survived him. We now approach the time when the country was made to understand the full measure of Webster's greatness as a Senator and a statesman. lie had indeed been all the while steadily advancing in reputation and in- fluence, but still the people had not fairlv begun to know what a man he was. On the 2Gth of January, 1830, lie made his speech in reply to llayne. As it was generally known at Washington that he had the floor for that day, the Senate-chamber was crowded to its utmost capacity. The Speaker was left alone in the other House of Congress. A great many ladies were present, and not an inch of standing-room was unoccu- pied. The whole assemblage were held in wonder and astonishment from the beginning to the end. Of the speech itself, I can but say that it made n deeper impression than any speech ever before delivered on this conti- nent. It was printed in all the newspapers; it was circulated in pamphlet form ; it was read evcrvwhere ; and it carried all before it wherever it was read. In short, it marks a new era in the political education of the Ameri- can people. Webster's labours in the Senate for several years were very much occu- pied with questions touching the currency. The science, or the hush of finance had long been a special study with him, and he had made him- self u thorough muster of that most intricate and difficult branch of states- SKETCH OF HIS LIFE. 331 manship. His strong, cool, comprehensive intellect was eminently suited to the subject; and as a financier he has had no equal, probably no second, in this country, with the one exception of Hamilton. General Jackson came to the presidency in March, 1829. He was a man of very strong character, but no statesman. With a heart full of patriotic ardour, he united a hasty, impetuous, despotic temper; and he was immensely popu- lar. Mr. Van Burcn soon gained a decided .ascendency in his councils: a man rather diminutive in stature, and of so much political adroitness, that he came to be generally distinguished as " the little magician. " For some cause or other, the President undertook a grand " experiment" upon the financial institutions of the country ; as a part of his scheme he went to war against the Bank of the United States; and in carrying on that war he hit upon the principle of administering the Constitution as he un- derstood it, and not as law, usage, precedent, and judicial decision had set- tled its meaning and interpretation. The charter of the hank was to expire in 1836, and in 1832 Congress passed, by decided majorities, a hill .renewing its charter for twenty years. The President vetoed the bill; and, as it could not command the requisite two thirds in both Houses, it failed to become a law. In the Fall of 1833, he " assumed the responsi- bility" of removing the public deposits from the bank, where they had been placed by law, and of assigning them to the keeping of such State banks as he chose, without waiting for any law on the subject. These two measures laid the bank upon its death-bed. The experiment stood upon the promise of a better currency than the nation had ever seen : its speedy eft'ect was to throw the whole currency and commerce of the country into utter confusion and disorder. Business everywhere literally went to smash. As time wore on, the experiment proved, in every respect, a most disastrous and ignominious failure, spreading ruin and distress wherever it planted its foot. All this Webster had foreseen and foretold; but then, as afterwards, "his was the wise man's ordinary lot, to prophesy to ears that would not hear." In March, 1834, the Senate, passed a resolution censuring the removal of the deposits. The President visited them with a long Protest against that censure. The Protest was bristling with new and startling theories and pretensions of Presidential prerogative ; and it drew from Webster one of the best speeches he ever made. As the speech is given entire in this vol- ume, I need say no more of it here than that (Jovernor Ta/.cwell, of Vir- ginia, a very eminent statesman of that day, but differing from Webster in most of his political views, was so much delighted with it, that he wrote to Mr. Tyler requesting him to thank Webster in his behalf, and adding words If it is published in pamphlet form, beg him to send me one. I will have it bound in good Russia leather, and leave it as a special leg- acy to my children." During these, years, in Webster's judgment, the Constitution was hardly in less danger from executive encroachment than from local nullification ; a;:d he was constantly standing in its defence, and dealing his hardest blows against its assailants on the one side or on the other. But all this while he was training and educating the national mind into right consti- tutional views, and at the same time ensouling the people with the right patriotic spirit, for maintaining the Constitution through the dreadful crisis of secession and civil war. Up to the time of the removal aforesaid, the opposition were known as the National Kcpiibliean party. From the alarming strides of executive power, they now took the, name of " Whigs," and Webster began to be talked of for the I're.-idency. From that time onward, his aspirations no doubt looked to that olliec. Most certainly he was ambitions of the Presi- Indeed he had aright to he; but he never did anv thing unbe- coming a great and good man, to that end. He would not, he could not, 332 WEBSTER. it was not in his nature to eat dirt to the people for their votes; and the people had already reached that point that they could hardly be induced to vote for a man who would not eat dirt to them. In 1836, the Whigs nomi- nated Mr. Clay. Failing to elect him, the party then got badly smitten, with the disease of " availability." In the strength of that disease, they elected General Harrison in 1840, and General Taylor in 1848; but thev failed to elect General Scott in 1832, whereupon the party died of that disease. In 1837, Van Burcn being President, the scheme known as the " Sub- Treasury" was set on foot. Under Jackson's experiment, nearly all the banks in the country, the deposit banks among them, had been compelled to suspend specie payment ; and the plan next hit upon was, that the gov- ernment should take care only to provide a safe currency for its own use, leaving the country to shift for itself, in that matter. The Sub-Treasury was born of that idea. Webster made two speeches against it. The sec- ond, delivered March 12, 1838, is the most elaborate and instructive of his speeches on the currency: nay, more ; it is among the best, if not the very best, that he ever made. It is worthy to be a standard text-book with every student of finance. Mr. S. Jones Lloyd, afterwards Lord Overstono, one of the highest financial authorities in England, being called before a committee of the House of Commons to enlighten them in matters of cur- rency, prodmvd a copy of the speech, and declared it to be one of the ablest and most satisf'aetorv discussions he had ever seen in its kind ; and ho afterwards spoke of Webster as a master who had instructed him on that subject. In the Summer of 1836, Webster, with his wife, his daughter Julia, and others of his family, made a private visit to England. He was everywhere received in all the highest circles of intellect and culture, as no American had ever been received there before. He met Wordsworth repeatedly in London, and was " delighted with him." Hallam was "extremely struck by his appearance, deportment, and conversation." To Carlylc, he was " a magniiicent specimen": " as a parliamentary Hercules, one would incline to back him at first sight against all the extant world." Mr. John Ken- yon travelled with him four davs. Writing to Mr. George Ticknor, of 'Boston, in 1853, he observes that this " enabled me to know and to love not only the great-brained, but large-hearted, genial man ; and this love I have held for him ever since, through good report and evil report ; and I shall retain this love for him to the day of my own departure" Again re- ferring to some of Webster's playful sallies : "Fancy how delightful and how attaching I found all this genial bearing from so famous a man ; so affec- tionate, so little of a humbug. His greatness sat so easy and calm upon him ; he never had occasion to whip himself into a froth." General Harrison became President in March, 1841, and took Webster into his Cabinet as Secretary of State. On the 5th of April he died, hav- ing issued a proclamation summoning Congress to meet in extra on the 31st of May. Of course the Presidential office fell into the hands of Mr. Tyler. Congress undertook, as their first care, to rectify the cur- rency. As the Whigs had a majoritv in both Houses, thev passed a bill chartering a new national bank. The President, to the amazement of everybody, vetoed the bill, and the Whigs were not strong enough to pass it over the veto. The other members of the Cabinet forthwith resigned. Webster held on to his place. lie saw how he could do important service to his country and to humanity, and his heart was set upon doing it. This had reference to the long-vexed question of the north-eastern boun- dary, a standing theme of irritation to the two governments, and more than once on the eve of flaming out in a destructive war. The British Ministry sent Lord Ashburton as a special ambassador for the occasion. In Ashburton, Webster found a man like-minded with himself; while his SKETCH OF HIS LIFE. 333 perfect candour and fairness, and his benignity and magnanimity of bear- ing made Ashburton feel that the honour of his government was just as sate in Webster's hands as in his own. Not only that particular question, but several others, lull of delicacy and of peril, were settled at the same time ; and the settlement has given entire satisfaction to the people of both nations. The old international sore was thus completely healed; and Webster achieved one of the greatest triumphs of diplomacy on record. Meanwhile, however, a most dreadful tcmpe.-t of ob'loquy and calumny broke out upon Webster, from a portion of the Whigs, because he stayed in the Cabinet, and it raged against him without stint. A large section even of the Whigs in Massachusetts joined in this wretched chorus of vituperation, as thinking to rail and browbeat him out of his propriety. But lie had, in an eminent degree, the high quality of civil and political courage ; neither fear nor favour could make him budge an inch from his clear and conscientious convictions; and he stood through " the pollings of this pitiless storm," with his heart full of grief indeed, but nevertheless unflinching in his duty. On the 30th of September. 1842, while the tern- ]>!>' was in full blast, he math; a speech in Fancuil Hall, and, referring to his assailants, said, " 1 am. (ientlemen, something hard to coax, but as to being driven, that is out of the question." I>ut Webster's greatest service to the country was during the last three years of his Hie. He hated slavery much, hut he loved the Union more: this was inexpressibly dear to him ; he knew its unspeakable importance to the well-being of the American people ; and the thought of its being de- stroyed wrung liis heart with anguish. He also saw that the controversies then raging between the North ami the South, unless they could be allayed, must soon culminate in seee^ion and civil war. For the prevention, or, if this might not be, for the postponement, of such an issue, he felt that every danger must be faced, every exertion made, every sacrifice incurred. For the>e reasons, he. put forth his whole strength in favour of the Com- promise Measures df ls.">o. lie well knew the risk he was running; but, in his judgment, the occasion called on him, imperatively, to head the for- lorn hope. And so, in the last hope of saving his cause, he deliberately staked his all: he himself went down indeed, but the cause \va- saved. In ail this, most assuredly, he was right, nobly right, heroically right ; and none the less so, that his action was fatal, politically, to himself. The crowning success and triumph of his life grew from his great speech of the 7th of March, 1850^ The Compromise Measures were carried, and the explosion, then so imminent, was postponed. Ten years of time were thereby gained. It is not too much to say that this gaining of time saved the Union: for >ve may well tremble to think of what, in all probability* would have been the result, had the explosion come on in 1851, instead of 18G1. And it owing to Webster, far more than to any other one man, yes, more than to any other fifty men, that the nation was prepared for the crisis when it came. His earnest teachings, warnings, and exhortations, as to the value of the Union, and the dutv, nav, the neeessitv, of preserving it at all hazards, had sunk deep into the mind of the country. For twenty year.-, this had been the burden of all his public speaking. His words were on the lips and in the hearts of the people from Maine to California; and when, upon the bursting of the storm, the, people sprang so gloriously to the rescue, it was the great soul of Daniel Webster, breathing arid beat- ing in them, without their knowing it, that brought and held them to the work, till Mere.s.Moii was overwhelmed by a wide-sweeping torrent of blood and lire. The war was all fought out on the lines which Webster had marked down ; nay, more; the decisive battles for the Union were won by him, ten years before the war began. Nor did it escape his " large dis- course," that the crisis, after all, was but postponed. In his private inter- course, he expressed it as his settled conviction, ihut the trial was bound 334 WEBSTER. to come, sooner or later. Now that war cost the nation not less than five hundred thousand lives, and five thousand millions of money. Those who foresaw nothing of this cost may be excused for having provoked the con- test, as they also may for having scoffed, ;vs they did, at the great man's warnings and his fears : but, a.s \Vcbster had a forecast of it all, he would have been utterly inexcusable, both as a statesman and a man, if he had not strained every nerve, and staked his all, to avert the dreadful evil. On the death of General Taylor, in July, 1850, Proidcnt Fillmore called Webster into his Cabinet as Secretary of State. Though he had long been suffering from a chronic catarrh, and though his life was (a-t ebbing away, at the President's earnest solicitations he remained in office till his death, which occurred at his house in Marshfield on the 24th of October, 1852. How the dying man met his last hour on Earth, is well shown in that, upon beginning to repeat the Lord's Praver, he grew faint, and called out earnestly, " Hold me up; I do not wish to pray with a fainting voice." Webster's vast power of intellect is admitted by all : but it is not so generally known that he was as sweet as he was powerful, and nowhere more powerful than in his sweetness. When thoroughly aroused in pub- lie >peech, there was indeed something terrible about him ; his big, dark, burning eye seemed to bore a man through and through : but in hi- hours, wluMi his massive brow and features were lighted up with a charac- teristic smile, it was like a gleam of Paradise ; no person who once saw that full-souled smile of his could ever forget it. His goodly person, his gracious bearing, and his benignant courtesy made him the delight of every circle he entered : in the presence of ladies, especially, his great powers seemed to robe themselves spontaneously in beauty ; and his attentions were so delicate and so respectful, that they could not but be charmed. It was my good fortune to see and hear Webster on various occasions, in Fanenil Hall, in the national Senate, in the court-room, and in the ordi- nary talk of man with man. In all these he was great, great in intellect, great in character, and in all the proper correspondencies of greatness. And I have it from those who knew him well, that intimacy never wore off the impression of his greatness: on the contrary, none could get so near him, or stay near him so long, but that he still kept growing upon them. But he had something better than all this: he was as lovelv in disposition as he was great in mind : a larger, warmer, manlier heart, a heart more alive with tenderness and all the gentle affections, was never lodged in a hu- man breast. Of this 1 could give many telling and touching proofs from his private history, if my space would permit. Scorch me, if you will, for saying it, but I verily believe there was more of solid goodness of heart in one hour of Daniel Webster than in a whole year of any other man whom Massachusetts has since had in the national councils. Notwithstanding his great abilities as a financier, Webster's own pri- vate finances were often much embarrassed. In giving himself up to the public service, he cut himself off from a large professional income. lie was by nature free, generous, and magnificent in his dispositions. His vast reputation, the dignity and elegance of his manners, the engaging suavity and affability of his conversation, in a word, the powerful magnetism of the man, drew a great deal of high company round him, and necessarily made his expenses large. Therewithal; he had " a tear for pity, and a hand open as day for melting charity"; and his big, kind heart ever joyed to share his best with the humblest about him. Nevertheless it has to be conceded that he was, I will not say prodigal, but something too lavish, or at least too liberal, in his domestic appointments. This was indeed a serious blem- ish. To be sure, all the money in the country could not measure the worth of his services. Still it would have been better for his peace of mind, and would have saved a deal of ugly scandal, if he had kept strictly within the small returns which his great public services brought in to him. DANIEL WEBSTER. SPEECH IN REPLY TO IIAYJSTE. 1 WHEN" this debate, Sir, was to be resumed, on Thursday morning, it so happened that it would have been convenient for me to be elsewhere.' 2 The honourable member, however, did not incline to put off the discussion to another day. He had a shot, he said, to return, and he wished to discharge it. That shot, Sir, which he thus kindly informed us was coining, that we might stand out of the way, or prepare ourselves to fall by it and die with decency, has now been received. Under all ad- vantages, and witli expectation awakened by the tone which preceded it, it has been discharged, and has spent its force. It may become me t. say no more of its effect than that, if nobody is found, after all, either killed or wounded, it is not the first time, in the history of human affairs, that the vigour and suc- cess of the war have not quite corne up to the lofty and sounding phrase of the manifesto. The gentleman, Sir, in declining to postpone the debate, told the Senate, with the emphasis of his hand upon his heart, that there was something rankling here, of which he wished to rid himself by an immediate reply. In this respect, Sir, I have a 1 Under this heading I give nearly all of what is commonly known as Web- ster's ".Second Speech on Foot's Resolution," delivered in the National Senate, January 2G, 1830. Foot was one of the Senators from Connecticut; and his re-oiiition had reference only to the disposal of the public lands in the West. Tin- Jlon. Robert Y. Iliiyne, whose speech drew forth this great effort, was one of the. Senators from South Carolina, and was admitted on all hands to be a very able and brilliant and eloquent speaker. ]Jut his speech, on this occasion, was highly discur.-ive, not to say rambling, introducing a large variety of topics, and hardly touching upon the special subject-matter of the resolution before the Senate. J give the argument, of Webster's speech entire, I believe, in all its milting only some amplifications which, though apt and telling at the time, would now be rather in the way, besides that they make the speech too long for this volume. 2 Webster had at that time a pressing and important engagement in the Su- preme Court, which occupied him so much that lie had no thought of sharing iu this debate till Hayne'a speech roused and riveted his mind to the question. 3135 336 WEBSTER. great advantage over the honourable gentleman. There is nothing here, Sir, which gives me the slightest uneasiness ; neither fear, nor anger, nor that which is sometimes more troublesome than either, the consciousness of having been in the wrong. There is nothing either originating here or now re- ceived here by the gentleman's shot. Xothing originating here, for I had not the slightest feeling of imkindness towards the honourable member. Some passages, it is true, had occurred since our acquaintance in this body, which I could have wished might have been otherwise ; but I had used philosophy and for- gotten them. I paid the honourable member the attention of listening with respect to his first speech ; and when he sat down, though surprised, and I must even say astonished, at some of his opinions, nothing was further from my intention than to commence any personal warfare. Through the whole of the few remarks I made in answer, I avoided, studiously and carefully, every tiling which I thought possible to be construed into disrespect. And, Sir, while there is thus nothing originat- ing here, which I have wished at any time, or now wish, to dis- charge, I must repeat, also, that nothing has been received I/n-c which rankles, or in any way gives me annoyance. I will not accuse the honourable member of violating the rules of civilixed war ; I will not say that he poisoned his arrows. But whether his shafts w r ere, or were not, dipped in that which would have caused rankling if they had reached their destination, there was not, as it happened, quite strength enough in the bow to bring them to their mark. If he wishes now to gather up those shafts, he must look for them elsewhere: they will not be found fixed and quivering iirthe object at which they were aimed. The honourable member complained that I had slept on his speech. I must have slept on it, or not slept at all. The mo- ment the honourable member sat down, his friend from Mis- souri rose, 3 and, with much honeyed commendation of the speech, suggested that the impressions which it had produced were too charming and delightful to be disturbed by other senti- ments or other sounds, and proposed that the Senate should adjourn. Would it have been quite amiable in me, Sir, to in- terrupt this excellent good feeling? Must I not have been absolutely malicious, if I could have thrust myself forward, to destroy sensations thus pleasing? Was it not much better and kinder, both to sleep upon them myself, and to allow others also the pleasure of sleeping upon .them ? But if it be meant, by sleeping upon his speech, that I took time to prepare a reply, 3 This "friend from Missouri" was Mr. Bcnton, one of the leaders of what was then called tlie Jackson party, in the Senate. SPEECH IN REPLY TO HAYNE. 337 it is quite a mistake. Owing to other engagements, I could not employ even the interval between the adjournment of the Sen- ate and its meeting the next morning, in attention to the subject of this debate. Nevertheless, Sir, the mere matter of fact is undoubtedly true. I did sleep on the gentleman's speech, and slept soundly. And I slept equally well on his speech of yester- day, to which I am now replying. It is quite possible that in this respect, also, I possess some advantage over the honour- able member, attributable, doubtless, to a cooler temperament on my part; for, in truth, I slept upon his speeches remarkably well. But the gentleman inquires why 7ie was made the object of such a reply? "Why was he singled out? If an attack has been made on the East, he, he assures us, did not begin it : it was made by the gentleman from Missouri. Sir, I answered the gentleman's speech because I happened to hear it; and be- cause, also, I chose to give an answer to that speech which, if unanswered, I thought most likely to produce injurious impres- sions. I did not stop to inquire who was the original drawer of the bill. I found a responsible indorser before me, and it was my purpose to hold him liable, amUto bring him to his just responsibility, without delay. But, Sir, this interrogatory of the honourable member was only introductory to another. He proceeded to ask me whether I had turned upon him, in this debute, from the consciousness that I should find an overmatch, if I ventured on a contest with his friend from Missouri. If, Sir, the honourable member, modestice yratia, had chosen thus to defer to his friend, and to pay him a compliment, without inten- tional disparagement to others, it would have been quite accord- ing to the friendly courtesies of debate, and not at all ungrateful to my own feelings. I am not one of those, Sir, who esteem any tribute of regard, whether light and occasional, or more >us and deliberate, which may be bestowed on others, as so much unjustly withholden from themselves. ]>ut the tone and manner of the gentleman's question forbid me thus to interpret U. I am not at liberty to consider it as nothing more than a civility to his friend. It had an air of taunt and disparagement, something of the loftiness of asserted superiority, which does imi allow me to pass it over without notice. It was put as a question forme to answer, and so put as if it were difficult for me to answer, whether I deemed the member from Missouri an overmatch for myself in debate here. It seems to me, Sir, that this is extraordinary language, and an extraordinary tone, for the discussions of this body. Matches and overmatches! Those terms are more applicable elsewhere than here, and fitter for other assemblies than this. 338 WEBSTER. Sir, the gentleman seems to forget where and what we are. This is a Senate, a Senate of equals, of men of individual hon- our and personal character, and of absolute independence. AVe know no masters, we acknowledge no dictators. This is a hall for mutual consultation and discussion; not an arena for the exhibition of champions. I offer myself, Sir, as a match for no man ; I throw the challenge of debate at no man's feet. But then, Sir, since the honourable member has put the question in a manner that calls for an answer, I will give him an answer; and I tell him that, holding myself to be the humblest of the members here, I yet know nothing in the arm of his friend from Missouri, either alone or when aided by the arm of his friend from South Carolina, that need deter even me from espousing whatever opinions I may choose to espouse, from debating whenever I may choose to debate, or from speaking whatever I may see fit to say, on the iloor of the Senate. Sir, when uttered as matter of commendation or compliment, I should dissent from nothing which the honourable member might say of his friend. Still less do I put forth any pretensions of my own. But when put to me as matter of taunt, I throw it back, and say to the gentleman that he could possibly say nothing more likely than such a comparison to wound my pride of personal charac- ter. The anger of its tone rescued the remark from intentional irony, which otherwise, probably, would have been its general acceptation. But, Sir, if it be imagined that by this mutual quotation and commendation ; if it be supposed that, by casting the characters of the drama, assigning to each his part, to one the attack, to another the cry of onset ; or if it be thought that, by a loud and empty vaunt of anticipated victory, any laurels are to be won here ; if it be imagined, especially, that any, or all these things will shake any purpose of mine, I can tell the hon- ourable member, once for all, that he is greatly mistaken, and that he is dealing with one of whose temper and character he has yet much to learn. Sir, I shall not allow myself, on this occasion, I hope on no occasion, to be betrayed into any loss of temper: but if provoked, as I trust I never shall be, into crimi- nation and recrimination, the honourable member may perhaps find that, in that contest, there will be blows to take as well as blows to give ; that others can state comparisons as significant, at least, as his own ; and that his impunity may possibly de- mand of him whatever powers of taunt and sarcasm he may possess. I commend him to a prudent husbandry of his resources. But, Sir, the Coalition! The Coalition! Ay, "the mur- dered Coalition I" The gentlemen asks, if I were led or frighted into this debate by the spectre of the Coalition. SPEECH IN REPLY TO IIAYNE. 339 " Was it the ghost of the murdered Coalition," he exclaims, " which haunted the member from Massachusetts ; and which, like the ghost of Banquo, would never down ? " ** The murdered Coalition!" Sir, this charge of a coalition, in reference to the late administration, 4 is not original with the honourable member. It did not spring up in the Senate. Whether as a fact, as an ar- gument, or as an embellishment, it is all borrowed. He adopts it, indeed, from a very low origin, and a still lower present con- dition. It is one of the thousand calumnies with which the press teemed during an excited political canvass. It was a charge, of which there was not only no proof or probability, but which was in itself wholly impossible to be true. No man of common information ever believed a syllable of it. Yet it was of that class of falsehoods which, by continued repetition through all the organs of detraction and abuse, are capable of misleading those who are already far misled, and of further fanning passion already kindling into flame. Doubtless it served in its day, and, in greater or less degree, the end de- signed by it. Having done that, it has sunk into the general mass of stale and loathed calumnies. It is the very cast-off slough of a polluted and shameless press. Incapable of further mischief, it lies in the sewer, lifeless and despised. It is not now, Sir, in the power of the honourable member to give it dig- nity or decency, by attempting to elevate it, and to introduce it into the Senate. He cannot change it from what it is, an ob- ject of general disgust and scorn. On the contrary, the contact, if he choose to touch it, is more likely to drag him down, down, to the place where it lies itself. But, Sir, the honourable member was not, for other reasons, entirely happy in his allusion to the story of Banquo's murder and Banquo's ghost. It was not, I think, the friends, but the 4 "The Coalition !" was one of the partisan outcries raised against the ad- ministration of 1'resident John Quiney Adams; and it was urged with incredi- ble violence during the canva-s of 1 -S in order to defeat the reelection of Ad- ams, and bring in General Jackson. In 1821, Mr. Clay was a candidate for the Presidency along with Adams. As there was then no flection by the people, it fell to the House of Kcpresentatives to elect a President, and (/lay's friends, or the most of them, voted for Adams, and thus secured a majority of the States in }\i- favour. Adams gave the jirst scat in his cabinet to Clay; not from any pre- vious understanding between them, or between their friends, but because Clay .vidently the right man for the place. This appointment was eagerly seized upon as inferring a bargain; and the false accusation of a corrupt coali- tion thus grounded probably did a good deal towards defeating the reelection of Adams in l&W. Air. Calhoun was elected Vice-President both in 18-J4 and in 1828; and in the latter year he gave all bis influence against Adams and in favour of Jackson. All through those years, Calhoun carried the politics of South Carolina in his pocket, nor was hid strength by any means conlined to that State. 340 WEBSTER. enemies of the murdered Banquo, at whose bidding his spirit would not down. The honourable gentleman is fresh in his reading of the English classics, and can put me right if I am wrong: but, according to my poor recollection, it was at those who had begun with caresses and ended with foul and treach- erous murder that the gory locks were shaken. The ghost of Banquo, like that of Hamlet, was an honest ghost. It dis- turbed no innocent man. It knew where its appearance would strike terror, and who would cry out, "A ghost!" It made itself visible in the right quarter, and compelled the guilty and the conscience-smitten, and none others, to start, with, 'Pr'ythcc, sec there! behold! look! lo! li'I stand here, I s:iw him ! " THEIR eyeballs were seared (was it not so, Sir?) who had thought to shield themselves by concealing their own hand, and laying the imputation of the crime on a low and hireling agency in wickedness; who had vainly attempted to stifle the workings of their own coward consciences, by ejaculating, through white lips and chattering teeth, "Thou canst not say I did it ! " I have misread the great Poet if those who had no way partaken in the deed of the death either found that they were, or feared that they should be, pushed from their stools by the ghost of the slain, or exclaimed, to a spectre created by their own fears and their own remorse, " A vaunt I and quit our sight!" There is another particular, Sir, in which the honourable member's quick perception of resemblances might, I should think, have seen something in the story of Banquo, making it not altogether a subject of the most pleasant contemplation. Those who murdered Banquo, what did they win by it? Sub- stantial good? Permanent power? Or disappointment, rather, and sore mortification; dust and ashes, the common fate of vaulting ambition overleaping itself? Did not even-handed justice ere long commend the poisoned chalice to their own lips? Did they not soon find that for another they had "filed their mind?" that their ambition, though apparently for the moment successful, had but put a barren sceptre in their grasp? 5 Ay, sir, 5 The application here intended, though clear enough at the time, is some- what obscure to us. Supposing there to have, been a coalition, and that coali- tion to have been killed, the killing must have been done by the friends of Calhoun, among whom Mr. Ilayne stood foremost. Of course they who had killed the coalition were the. ones to be haunted by its ghost; and Webster hore delicately implies that they had expected to stand lir^t in the counseU of tlio SPEECH IN REPLY TO HAYNE. 341 " a barren sceptre in their gripe, Thence to be wrench? d by an unlineal hand, No son of theirs succeeding ." Sir, I need pursue the allusion no further. I leave the hon- ourable gentleman to run it out at his leisure, and to derive from it all the gratification it is calculated to administer. If he finds himself pleased with the associations, and prepared to be quite satisfied though the parallel should be entirely completed, I had almost said I am satisfied also ; but that I shall think of. Yes, Sir, I will think of that. In the course of my observations the other day, Mr. Presi- dent, I paid a passing tribute of respect to a very worthy man, Mr. Dane, of Massachusetts. It so happened that he drew the Ordinance of 1787, for the government of the Northwestern Territory. A man of so much ability, and so little pretence ; of so great a capacity to do good, and so unmixed a disposition to do it for its own sake ; a gentleman who had acted an impor- tant part, forty years ago, in a measure the influence of which is still deeply felt in the very matter which was the subject of debate, might, I thought, receive from me a commendatory recognition. But the honourable member was inclined to be facetious on the subject. He was rather disposed to make it matter of ridicule, that I had introduced into the debate the name of one Nathan Dane, of whom he assures us he had nrvi-r before heard. Sir, if the honourable member had never before heard of Mr. Dane, I am sorry for it. It shows him less acquainted with the public men of the country than I had sup- posed. Let me tell him, however, that a sneer from him at the mention of the name of Mr. Dane is in bad taste. It may well be a mark of ambition, Sir, either with the honourable gentle- man or myself, to accomplish as much to make our names known to advantage, and remembered with gratitude, as Mr. [>anr, has accomplished. But the truth is, Sir, I suspect, that Mr. Dane lives a little too far north, lie is of Massachusetts, and too near the north star to be reached by the honourable gent Ionian's telescope. If his sphere had happened to range south of Mason and Dixon's line) he might probably have come within the scope of his vision. I spoke, Sir, of the Ordinance of 1787, which prohibited party in wlion- In-half the killing was done, and also to hold the succession of jjoucr. ttut it was not long in becoming evident that Van I?uvcn, and not Cal- Imun, had the ascendant in Jack.-ion':* counsels; in fact, mailers soon grew to a dccMed rupture between Jackson and Calhoun; and at the time \,hon this speech \\-as madf ir, was manifest thatCalhouu and hh friends were cut off from the party succession. 342 WEBSTER. slavery, in all future times, northwest of the Ohio, as a measure of great wisdom and foresight, and one which had been attended with highly beneficial and permanent consequences. I supposed that, on this point, no two gentlemen in the Sen- ate could entertain different opinions. But the simple expres- sion of this sentiment has led the gentleman not only into a laboured defence of slavery, in the abstract, and on principle, but also into a warm accusation against me, as having attacked the system of domestic slavery now existing in the Southern States. For all this, there was not the slightest foundation, in any thing said or intimated by me. I did not utter a single word which any ingenuity could torture into an attack on the sla- very of the South. I only said that it was highly wise and use- ful, in legislating for the Northwestern country while it was yet a wilderness, to prohibit the introduction of slaves ; and added, that I presumed there was no reflecting and intelligent person, in the neighbouring State of Kentucky, who would doubt that, if the same prohibition had been extended, at the same early period, over that commonwealth, her strength and population would, at this day, have been far greater than they are. If these opinions be thought doubtful, they are nevertheless, I trust, neither extraordinary nor disrespectful. They attack nobody and menace nobody. And yet, Sir, the gentleman's optics have discovered, even in the mere expression of this sentiment, what he calls the very spirit of the Missouri ques- tion! He represents me as making an onset on the whole South, and manifesting a spirit which would interfere with, and disturb, their domestic condition! Sir, this injustice no otherwise surprises me than as it is com- mitted here, and committed without the slightest pretence of ground for it. I say it only surprises me as being done here ; for I know full well that it is, and has been, the settled policy of some persons in the South, for years, to represent the people of the North as disposed to interfere with them in their own exclusive and peculiar concerns. This is a delicate and sensi- tive point, in Southern feeling ; and of late years it has always been touched, and generally with effect, whenever the object has been to unite the whole South against Northern men or Northern measures. This feeling, always carefully kept alive, and maintained at too intense a heat to admit discrimination or reflection, is a lever of great power in our political machine. It moves vast bodies, and gives to them one and the same dircc- 6 This " Missouri question" was upon the Admission of Missouri as a slave- holding State, ia 1820. The question was agitated a long time with exceeding heat, and bittcTiu'.'-s ; the agitation ending at last in what was called "The Mis- souri Compromise." SPEECH IN REPLY TO HAYXE. 343 tion. But it is without adequate cause, and the suspicion which exists is wholly groundless. There is not, and never lias been, a disposition in the North to interfere with these interests of the South. Such interference has never been supposed to be within the power of government; nor has it been in any way attempted. The slavery of the South lias always been regarded as a matter of domestic policy, left with the States themselves, and with which the federal government had nothing to do. Certainly, Sir, I am, and ever have been, of that opinion. The gentleman, indeed, argues that slavery, in the abstract, is no evil. Most assuredly I need not say I differ with him, altogether and most widely, on that point. I regard domestic slavery as one of the greatest of evils, both moral and political. But whether it be a malady, and whether it be curable, and, if so, by what means ; or, on the other hand, whether it be the vulnus immcdicalile of the social system, I leave it to those whose right and duty it is to inquire and to decide. And this I believe, Sir, is, and uniformly has been, the sentiment of the North. Having had occasion to recur to the Ordinance of 1787, in order to defend myself against the inferences which the hon- ourable member has chosen to draw from my former observa- tions on that subject, I am not willing now entirely to take leave of it without another remark. It need hardly be said that that paper expresses just sentiments on the great subject of civil and religious liberty. Such sentiments were common, and abound in all our State papers of that day. But this Ordinance did that which was not so common, and which is not even now universal ; that is, it set forth and declared it a high and bind- ing duty of government itself to support schools, and advance the means of education, on the plain reason that religion, mo- rality, and knowledge are necessary to good government, and to the happiness of mankind. One observation further. The im- portant provision incorporated into the Constitution of the United States, and several of those of the States, and recently adopted into the reformed constitution of Virginia, restraining lative power in questions of private right, and from impair- ing the obligation of contracts, is first introduced and estab- lished, as far as I uin informed, .1s matter of express written constitutional law, in this Ordinance of 1787. And I must add, also, in regard to the author of the Ordinance, who has not had the happiness to attract the gentleman's notice heretofore, nor to avoid his sarcasm now, that ho was chairman of that select committee of the old Congress whose report first expressed the strong sense of that body, that the old Confederation was not adequate to the exigencies of the country, and recommending 344 WEBSTER. to the States to send delegates to the convention which formed the present Constitution. But the honourable member has now found out that this gen- tleman, Mr. Dane, was a member of the Hartford Convention. 7 However uninformed the honourable member may be of charac- ters and occurrences at the North, it would seem that he has at his elbow, on this occasion, some high-minded and lofty spirit, some magnanimous and true-hearted monitor, possessing the means of local knowledge, and ready to supply the honourable member with every thing, down even to forgotten and moth- eaten two-penny pamphlets, which may be used to the disad- vantage of his own country. But, as to the Hartford Conven- tion, Sir, allow me to say, that the proceedings of that body seem now to be less read and studied in Now England than further south. They appear to be looked to, not in New Eng- land, but elsewhere, for the purpose of seeing how far they may serve as a precedent. But they will not answer the pur- pose ; they are quite too tame. The latitude in which they original IM! was too cold. Other conventions, of more recent ex- istence, have gone a whole bar's length beyond it. The learned doctors of Colleton and Abbeville have pushed their commen- taries on the Hartford collect so far, that the original text- writers are thrown entirely into the shade. I have nothing to do, Sir, with the Hartford Convention. Its journal, which the gentleman has quoted, I never read. So far as the honourable member may discover in its proceedings a spirit in any degree resembling that which was avowed and justified in those other conventions to which I have alluded, or so far as those pro- ceedings can be shown to be disloyal to the Constitution, or tending to disunion, so far I shall be as ready as any one to be- stow on them reprehension and censure. Having dwelt long on this Convention, and other occurrences of that day, in the hope, probably, (which will not be gratified,) that I should leave the course of this debate to follow him at length in those excursions, the honourable member returned, and attempted another object. He referred to a speech of mine in the other House, the same which I had occasion to allude to myself, the other day ; and has quoted a passage or two from it, with a bold though uneasy and labouring air of 7 The Ilartfovd Convention was an assembly of delegates from some of the New England istates, which met at Hartford, Connecticut, in the Winter of 1814-13, and sat with closed doors. The members were men of high personal character, belonging to the old Federal party, and were strongly opposed to the war then pending with Great Britain ; which brought upon them the reproach of having met for the treasonable purpose of withdrawing the New England States from the Union. SPEECH IN EEPLY TO HAYXE. 345 confidence, as if he had detected in me an inconsistency. Judg- ing from the gentleman's manner, a stranger to the course of the debate and to the point in discussion would have imagined, from so triumphant a tone, that the honourable member was about to overwhelm me with a manifest contradiction. Any one who heard him, and who had not heard what I had, in fact, previously said, must have thought me routed and discomfited, as the gentleman had promised. Sir, a breath blows all this triumph away. There is not the slightest difference in the sen- timents of my remarks on the two occasions. What I said here on Wednesday is in exact accordance with the opinion ex- pressed by me in the other House in 1825. Though the gentle- man had the metaphysics of Hudibras, though he were able " to sever and divide A hair 'twixt north and northwest side," he yet could not insert his metaphysical scissors between the fair reading of my remarks in 1825, and what I said here last week. There is not only no contradiction, no difference, but, in truth, too exact a similarity, both in thought and language, to be entirely in just taste. I had myself quoted the same speech ; had recurred to it, and spoke with it open before me ; and much of what I said was little more than a repetition from it. I need not repeat at large the general topics of the honoura- ble gentleman's speech. When he said yesterday that he did not attack the Eastern States, he certainly must have forgotten, not only particular remarks, but the whole drift and tenour of his speech ; unless he means, by not attacking, that he did not commence hostilities, but that another had preceded him in the attack. He, in the first place, disapproved of the whole course of the government, for forty years, in regard to its dis- position of the public lands ; and then, turning northward and eastward, and fancying he had found a cause for alleged nar- rowness and niggardliness in the "accursed policy" of the tariff, to which he represented the people of New England as wodded, he went on for a full hour with remarks, the whole scope of which was to exhibit the results of this policy, in fct-lings and in measures unfavourable to the West. 1 thought his opinions unfounded and erroneous, as to the general course of Hie government, and ventured to reply to them. The gentleman had remarked on the analogy of other cases, and quoted the conduct of European governments towards their own subjects settling on this continent, as in point, to show that we had been hard and rigid in selling, when we should have given the public lands to settlers without price. 346 WEBSTER. I thought the honourable member had suffered his judgment to be betrayed by a false analogy; that' he was struck with an appearance of resemblance whore there was no real similitude. I think so still. The first settlers of North America wore enterprising spirits, engaged in private adventure, or fleeing from tyranny at home. When arrived here, they were for- gotten by the mother country, or remembered only to be op- pressed. Carried away again by the appearance of analogy, or struck with the eloquence of the passage, the honourable; member yesterday observed that the conduct of government towards the Western emigrants, or my representation of it, brought to his mind a celebrated speech in the British Parlia- ment. It was, Sir, the speech of Colonel Barre. On the ques- tion of the Stamp Act, <>r f-a tax, I forget which, Colonel Barre had heard a member on the treasury bench argue that the people of the United States, being British colonists, planted by the maternal care, nourished by the indulgence and pro- tected by the arms of England, would not grudge their mite to relieve the mother country from the heavy burden under which she groaned. The language of Colonel Barre, in reply to this, was, "They planted by your care ! Your oppression planted them in America. They lied from your tyranny, and grew by your neglect of them. So soon as you began to care for theni, you showed your can- by sending persons to spy out their liber- ties, misrepresent their character, prey upon them, and eat out their substance." And how does the honourable gentleman mean to maintain that language like this is applicable to the conduct of the gov- ernment of the United States towards the Western emigrants, or to any representation given by me of that conduct? Were the settlers in the West driven thither by our oppression? Have they flourished only by our neglect of them? Has the government done nothing but prey upon them, and eat out their substance? Sir, this fervid eloquence of the Brit- ish speaker, just, when and where it was uttered, and fit to remain an exercise for the schools, is not a little out of place, when it is brought thence to be applied here to the conduct of our own country towards her own citizens. From America to England, it may be true ; from Americans to their own govern- ment, it would be strange language. Let us leave it, to be recited and declaimed by our boys against a foreign nation ; not introduce it here, to recite and declaim ourselves against our own. But I come to the point of the alleged contradiction. In my remarks on Wednesday, I contended that we could not give away gratuitously all the public lands ; that we held them in SPEECH IX REPLY TO IIAYXE. 347 trust; that the government had solemnly pledged itself to dispose of them as a common fund for the common benefit, and to sell and settle them as its discretion should dictate. Now, Sir, what contradiction does the gentleman find to this senti- ment in the speech of 1825? He quotes me as having then said that we ought not to hug these lands as a very great treasure. Very well, Sir, supposing me to be accurately reported in that expression, what is the contradiction? I have not now said that we should hug these lands as a favourite source of pecu- niary income. No such thing. It is not my view. What I have said, and what I do say, is, that they are a common fund, to be disposed of for the common benefit, to be sold at low prices for the accommodation of settlers, keeping the object of settling the lands as much in view as that of raising nioney from thorn. This I say now, and this I have always said. Is this hugging them as a favourite treasure? Is then 1 no differ- ence between hugging and hoarding this fund, on the one hand, as a great treasure, and, on the other, disposing of it at low prices, placing the. proceeds in the general treasury of the Union? My opinion is, that as much is to be made of the land as fairly and reasonably may be, selling it all the while at such rates as to give the fullest effect to settlement. This is not giving it all away to the Slates, as the gentleman would propose ; nor is it hugging the fund closely and tenaciously, as a favourite treasure ; but it is, in my judgment, a just and wise, policy, perfectly according with all the various duties which rest on government. So much for my contradiction. And what is it ? AY here is the ground of the gentleman's triumph ? What inconsistency in word or doctrine has he been able to detect ? Sir, if this ho a sample of that discomfiture with which the honourable gentleman threatened me, commend me to the word ilifif-Diujlturc for the rest of my life. We approach, at length, Sir, to a more important part of the honourable gentleman's observations. Since it does not accord with my views of justice and policy to give away the public lands altogether, as mere matter of gratuity, I am asked by the. honourable gentleman on what ground it is that I consent to voto them away in particular instances. How, he inquires, do i reconcile, with these, professed sentiments my support of meas- ures appropriating portions of the lands to particular roads, particular canals, particular rivers, 'and particular institutions of education in the West ? This leads, Sir, to the real and wide difference in political opinion between the honourable gentle- man and myself. On my part, 1 look upon all these objects as connected with the common good, fairly embraced in its object and its terms: he, on the contrary, deems them all, if good at 348 WEBSTER. all, only local good. This is our difference. The interrogatory which he proceeded to put at once explains this difference. "What interest," asks he, "has South Carolina in a canal in Ohio?" Sir, this very question is full of significance. It de- velops the gentleman's whole political system ; and its answer expounds mine. Here we differ. I look upon a road over the Alleghany, a canal round the falls of the Ohio, or a canal or railway from the Atlantic to the Western waters, as being an object largo and extensive enough to be fairly said to be for the common benefit. The gentleman thinks otherwise, and this is the key to his construction of the powers of the government. He may well ask what interest has South Carolina in a canal in Ohio. On his system, it is true, she has no interest, On that system, Ohio and Carolina are different governments, and differ- ent countries ; connected here, it is true, by some slight and ill- defined bond of union, but, in all main respects, separate and diverse. On that system, Carolina has no more interest in a canal in Ohio than in Mexico. The gentleman therefore only follows out his own principles ; he dors no more than arrive at the natural conclusions of his own doctrines: he only announces the true results of that creed which he has adopted himself, and would persuade others to adopt, when he thus declares that South Carolina has no interest in a public work in Ohio. Sir, we narrow-minded people of New England do not reason thus. Our notion of things is entirely different. We look upon the States, not as separated, but as united. We love to dwell on that union, and on the mutual happiness which it has so much promoted, and the common renown which it has so greatly contributed to acquire. In our contemplation, Carolina and Ohio are parts of the same country ; States, united under the same general government, having interests common, associated, intermingled. In whatever is within the proper sphere of the constitutional power of this government, we look upon the States as one. We do not impose geographical limits to our patriotic feeling or regard ; we do not follow rivers and moun- tains, and lines of latitude, to find boundaries, beyond which public improvements do not benefit us. We who come hero, as agents and representatives of these narrow-minded and selfish men of New England, consider ourselves as bound to regard with an equal eye the good of the whole, in whatever is within our powers of legislation. Sir, if a railroad or canal, beginning in South Carolina and ending in South Carolina, appeared to me to be of national importance and national magnitude, believing, as I do, that the power of government extends to the encour- agement of works of that description, if I were to stand up heft- , and ask, What interest has Massachusetts in a railroad in South SPEECH Itf EEPLY TO HAYNE. 349 Carolina? I should not be willing to face my constituents. These same narrow-minded men would tell me that they had sent me to act for the whole country, and that one who pos- sessed too little comprehension, either of intellect or feeling, one who was not large enough, both in mind and in heart, to embrace the whole, was not fit to be entrusted with the interest of any part. Sir, I do not desire to enlarge the powers of the government by unjustifiable construction, nor to exercise any not within a fair interpretation. But when it is believed that a power does exist, then it is, in my judgment, to be exercised for the general benefit of the whole. So far as respects the exercise of such a power, the States are one. It was the very object of the Consti- tution to create unity of interests to the extent of the powers of the general government. In war and peace we are one ; in commerce, one ; because the authority of the general govern, mcnt rearhrs to war and peace, and to the regulation of com- merce. I have never seen any more difficulty in erecting light- houses on the lakes than on the ocean ; in improving the har- bours of inland seas than if they were within the el>!> and llow of the tide; or of removing obstructions in the vast streams of the West, more than in any work to facilitate commerce on the Atlantic coast. If there be any power for one, there is power also for the other ; and they are all and equally for the common good of the country. There are other objects, apparently more local, or the bene- fit of which is less general, towards which, nevertheless, I have concurred with others, 1<> give aid by donations of land. It is proposed to construct a road in or through one of the new States, in which this government possesses large quantities of land. Have the United States no right, or, as a great and un- taxed proprietor, are they under no obligation to contribute to an object thus calculated to promote the common good of all the proprietors, themselves included? Arid even with respect to education, which is the extreme case, let the question be considered. In the first place, as we have seen, it was made matter of compact with these States, that they should do their part to promote education. In the next place, our whole sys- tem of land laws proceeds on the idea that education is for the common good ; because, in every division, a certain portion is uniformly reserved and appropriated for the use of schools. And, finally, have not these new States singularly strong claims, founded on the ground already stated, that the govern- ment is a great untaxed proprietor, in the ownership of the soil y It is a consideration of great importance, that probably there is in no part of the country, or of the world, so great call 350 WEBSTER. for the moans of education as in those new States, owing to the vast numbers of persons within those ages in which education and instruction are usually received, if received at all. This is the natural consequence of recency of settlement and rapid increase. The census of these States shows how great a pro- portion of the whole population occupies the classes bet \vt-eii infancy and manhood. These are the wide fields, and here is the deep and quick soil for the seeds of knowledge and virtue ; and this is the favoured season, the very spring-time, for sowing them. Let them be disseminated without stint. Let them be scattered with a bountiful hand, broadcast. Whatever the gov- ernment can fairly do towards these objects, in my opinion, ought to be done. These, Sir, are the grounds, succinctly stated, on which my votes for grants of lands for particular objects rest ; while I maintain, at the same time, that it is all a common fund, for the common benefit. And reasons like these, I presume, have in- fluenced the votes of other gentlemen from Xew England. Those who have a different view of the powers of the govern- ment, of course, come to different conclusions, on these, as on other questions. I observed, when speaking on this subject lie- fore, that if we looked to any measure, whether for a road, a canal, or any thing else, intended for the improvement of the West, it would be found that, if the Xew England ayes were struck out of the lists of votes, the Southern noes would always have rejected the measure. The truth of this has not been denied, and cannot be denied. In stating this, I thought it just to ascribe it to the constitutional scruples of the South, rather than to any other less favourable or less charitable cause. But no sooner had I done this, than the honourable gentleman asks if I reproach him and his friends with their constitutional scru- ples. Sir, I reproach nobody. I stated a fact, and gave the most respectful reason for it that occurred to me. The gentle- man cannot deny the fact ; he may, if he choose, disclaim the reason. It is not long since I had occasion, in presenting a peti- tion from his own State, to account for its being intrusted to my hands, by saying that the constitutional opinions of the gentleman and his worthy colleague prevented them from sup- porting it. Sir, did I state this as matter of reproach? Far from it. Bid I attempt to find any other cause than an honest one for these scruples ? Sir, I did not. It did not become me to doubt or to insinuate that the gentleman had either changed hi-* sentiments, or that he had made up a set of constitutional opinions accommodated to any particular combination of politi- cal occurrences. Had I done so, I should have felt that, while I was entitled to little credit in thus questioning other people's SPEECH IN REPLY TO HAYNE. 351 motives, I justified the whole world in suspecting my own. But how has the gentleman returned this respect for others' opinions ? His own candour and justice, how have they been exhibited towards the motives of others, while he has been at so much pains to maintain, what nobody has disputed, the purity of his own ? This government, Mr. President, from its origin to the peace of 1815, had been too much engrossed with various other im- portant concerns to be able to turn its thoughts inward, and look to the development of its vast internal resources. In the early part of President Washington's administration, it was fully occupied with completing its own organization, providing for the public debt, defending the frontiers, and maintaining domestic peace. Before the termination of that administration, the fires of the French Revolution blazed forth, as from a new- opened volcano, and the whole breadth of the ocean did not secure us from its effects. The smoke and the cinders reached us, though not the burning lava. Difficult and agitating ques- tions, embarrassing to government, and dividing public opinion, sprung out of the new state of our foreign relations, and were succeeded by others, and yot again by others, equally embar- rassing, and equally exciting division and discord, through tho long series of twenty years, till they finally issued in the war with England. Down to the close of that war, no distitu-f, marked, and deliberate attention had been given, or could have been given, to the internal condition of the country, its capaci- ties of improvement, or the constitutional power of the govern- ment in regard to objects connected with such improvement. The peace, Mr. President, brought about an entirely new and a most interesting state of things: it opened to us other pros- poets, and suggested other duties. We ourselves wen- changed, and the whole world was changed. The pacification of Europe, after June, 1815, assumed a firm and permanent aspect, Tho nations evidently manifested that they were disposed for peace. Some agitation of the waves might be expected, even after tin; storm had subsided, but the tendency was, strongly and rapidly, towards settled repose. It so happened, Sir, that I was at that time a member of Con- gress, and, like others, naturally turned my thoughts to the con- templation of the recently-altered condition of the country and of the world. It appeared plainly enough to me, as well as to wiser and more experienced men, that the policy of the govern- ment would naturally take a start in a new direction ; IKM-UUSC new directions would necessarily be given to the pursuits and Occupations of the people. We had pushed our commerce far and fast, under the advantage of a neutral flag. But there were 352 WEBSTER. now no longer flags either neutral or belligerent. The harvest of neutrality had been great, but we had gathered it all. With the peace of Europe, it was obvious there would spring up in her circle of nations a revived and invigorated spirit of trade, and a new activity in all the business and objects of civilized life. Hereafter, our commercial gains were to be earned only by success in a close and intense competition. Other nations would produce for themselves, and carry for themselves, and manufacture for themselves, to the full extent of their abilities. The crops of our plains would no longer sustain European ar- mies, nor our ships longer supply those whom war had rendered unable to supply themselves. It was obvious that, under these chvnmst;in mortals to the skies, I have yet none, as I trust, of that other spirit which would drag angels down. When I shall be found, Sir, in my place here in the Senate, or elsewhere, to sneer at public merit, because it happens to spring up beyond the little limits of my own State or neighbourhood ; when I refuse, for any such cause, or for any cause, the homage due to Amer- ican talent, to elevated patriotism, to sincere devotion to lib- erty and the country ; or, if I see an uncommon endowment of Heaven, if I see extraordinary capacity and virtue in any son of the South, and if, moved by local prejudice or gangrened by State jealousy, I get up here to abate the tithe of a half from his just character and just fame, may my tongue cleave to the roof of my mouth! SPEECH IK REPLY TO HAYKE. 3G5 Sir, let me recur to pleasing recollections ; let me indulge in refreshing remembrance of the past ; let me remind you that, in early times, no States cherished greater harmony, both of principle and feeling, than Massachusetts and South Carolina. Would to God that harmony might again return ! Shoulder to shoulder they went through the Revolution; hand in hand they stood round the administration of Washington, and felt his own great arm lean on them for support. Unkind feeling, if it exist, alienation and distrust, are the growth, unnatural to such soils, of false principles since sown. They are weeds, the seeds of which that same great arm never scattered. Mr. President, I shall enter on no encomium upon Massachu- setts ; she needs none. There she is : behold her, and judge for yourselves. There is her history; the world knows it by heart. The past, at least, is secure. There is Boston, and Con- cord, and Lexington, and Bunker Hill ; and there they will re- main for ever. The bones of her sons, falling in the great struggle for Independence, now lie mingled with the soil of every State from New England to Georgia ; and there they will lie for ever. And, Sir, where American Liberty raised its first voice, and where its youth was nurtured and sustained, there it still lives, in the strength of its manhood and full of its original spirit. If discord and disunion shall wound it ; if party strife and blind ambition shall hawk at and tear it ; if folly and mad- ness, if uneasiness under salutary and necessary restraint, shall succeed in separating it from that Union by which alone its ex- istence is made sure ; it will stand, in the end, by the side of that cradle in which its infancy was rocked; it will stretch forth its arm, with whatever of vigour it may still retain, over the friends Who gather round it ; and it will fall at last, if fall it must, amidst the proudest monuments of its own glory, and on the very spot of its origin. There yet remains to be performed, Mr. President, by far the most grave and important duty which I feel to be devolved on me by this occasion. It is to state, and to defend, what I con- ceive to be the true principles of the Constitution under which AVO are here assembled. I might well have desired that so weighty a task should have fallen into other and abler hands. I could have wished that it should have been executed by those whose character and experience give weight and influence to opinions, such as cannot possibly belong to mine. But, Sir, I have met the occasion, not sought it; and I shall proceed to .state my own sentiments, without challenging for them any particular regard, with studied plainness, and as much precision as possible. 366 WEBSTER. I understand the honourable gentleman from South Carolina to maintain, that it is a right of the State legislatures to inter- fere, whenever, in their judgment, this government transcends its constitutional limits, and to arrest the operation of its laws. I understand him to maintain this right, as a right existing under the Constitution, not as a right to overthrow it on the ground of extreme necessity, such as would justify violent revolution. I understand him to maintain an authority, on the part of the States, thus to interfere, for the purpose of correcting the exer- cise of power by the general government, of checking it, and of compelling it to conform to their opinion of the extent of its powers. I understand him to maintain, that the ultimate power of judging of the constitutional extent of its own authority is not lodged exclusively in the general government, or any branch of it; but that, on the contrary, the States may lawfully decide for themselves, and each State for itself, whether, in a given case, the Act of the general government transcends its power. I understand him to insist that, if the exigency of the case, in the opinion of any State government, require it, such State government may, by its own sovereign authority, annul an Act of the general government which it deems plainly and palpa- bly unconstitutional. This is the sum of what I understand from him to be the South Carolina doctrine, and the doctrine which he maintains. I propose to consider it, and compare it with the Constitution. Allow me to say, as a preliminary remark, that I call this the South Carolina doctrine, only because the gentleman himself has so denominated it. I do not feel at liberty to say that South Carolina, as a State, has ever advanced these sentiments. I hope she has not, and never may. That a great majority of her people are opposed to the tariff laws, is doubtless true. That a majority, somewhat less than that just mentioned, con- scientiously believe these laws unconstitutional, may probably also be true. But that any majority holds to the right of direct State interference at State discretion, the right of nullifying Acts of Congress, by Acts of State legislation, is more than I know, and what I shall be slow to believe. That there are individuals besides the honourable gentleman who do maintain these opinions, is quite certain. I recollect the recent expression of a sentiment, which circumstances at- tending its utterance and publication justify us in supposing was not unpremeditated: "The sovereignty of the State. never to be controlled, construed, or decided on, but by her own feelings of honourable justice." SPEECH IX REPLY TO HAYNE. 367 We all know that civil institutions are established for the pub- lic benefit, and that when they cease to answer the ends of their existence they may be changed. But I do not understand the doctrine now contended for to be that which, for the sake of distinctness, we may call the right of revolution. I understand the gentleman to maintain, that it is constitutional to interrupt the administration of the Constitution itself, in the hands of those who are chosen and sworn to administer it, by the direct interference, in form of law, of the States, in virtue of their sovereign capacity. The inherent right in the people to reform their government I do not deny : and they have another right, and that is, to resist unconstitutional laws, without overturning the government. It is no doctrine of mine, that unconstitu- tional laws bind the people. The great question is, Whose pre- rogative iff it to decide on the constitutionality or unconstitutionality of the laws ? On that, the main debate hinges. The proposition that, in case of a supposed violation of the Constitution by Con- t.he States have a constitutional right to interfere and annul the law of Congress, is the proposition of the gentleman. I do not admit it. If the gentleman had intended no more than to assert the right of revolution for justifiable cause, he would have said only what all agree to. Cut I cannot conceive that there can be a middle course, between submission to the laws, when regularly pronounced constitutional, on the one hand, and open resistance, which is revolution or rebellion, on the other. This leads us to inquire into the origin of this government, and the source of its power. Whose agent is it? Is it the creat- ure of the State legislatures, or the creature of the people ? If the government of the United States be the agent of the State governments, then they may control it, provided they can agree in the manner of controlling it: if it be the agent of the people, then the people alone can control it, restrain it, modify, or re- form it. It in observable enough, that the doctrine for which the honourable gentleman contends leads him to the necessity of maintaining, not only that this general government is the LTouture of the States, but that it is the creature of each of the severally ; so that each may assert the power, for itself, of determining whether it acts within the limits of its authority. lie servant of four-aiid-twciity masters, of different wills and different purposes, and yet bound to obey all. This absurd- ity (for it srcms no less) arises from a misconception as to the origin of this government and its true character. It is, Sir, the people's Constitution, the people's government, made for the people, made by the people, and answerable to the people. The people of the United States have declared that this Consti- 3G8 . WEBSTER. tution shall be the supreme law. We must either admit the proposition or dispute their authority. The States are, unques- tionably, sovereign, so far as their sovereignty is not affected by this supreme law. But the State legislatures, as political bodies, however sovereign, are yet not sovereign over the peo- ple. So far as the people have given power to the general gov- ernment, so far the grant is unquestionably good, and the government holds of the people, and not of the State govern- ments. We are all agents of the same supreme power, the people. The general government and the State governments derive their authority from the same source. Neither can, in relation to the other, be called primary, though one is definite and restricted, and the other general and residuary. The na- tional government possesses those powers which it can be shown the people have conferred on it, and no more. All the rest belongs to the State governments, or to the people them- selves. So far as the people have retrained State sovereignty, by the expression of their will in the Constitution of the United States, so far, it must be admitted, State sovereignty is effectually controlled. I do not contend that it is, or ought to be, controlled further. The sentiment to which I have referred propounds that State sovereignty is only to be controlled by its own "feeling of justice;" that is to say, it is not to be con- trolled at all ; for one who is to follow his own feelings is under no legal control. Now, however men may think this ought to be, the fact is, that the people of the United States have chosen to impose control on State sovereignties. There are those, doubtless, who wish they had been left without restraint ; but the Constitution has ordered the matter differently. To make war, for instance, is an exorcise of sovereignty ; but the Consti- tution declares that no State shall make war. To coin money is another exercise of sovereign power ; but no State is at lib- erty to coin money. Again, the Constitution says that no sov- ereign State shall be so sovereign as to make a treaty. These prohibitions, it must be confessed, are a control on the State sovereignty of South Carolina, as well as of the other States, which does not arise "from her own feelings of honourable jus- tice." Such an opinion, therefore, is in defiance of the plainest provisions of the Constitution. There are proceedings of public bodies, to which I refer, for the purpose of ascertaining more fully what is the length and breadth of that doctrine, denominated the Carolina doc- trine, which the honourable member has now stood up on this floor to maintain. In one of them I find it resolved, that "the tariff of 1828, and every other tariff designed to promote one branch of industry at the expense of others, is contrary to the SPEECH Itf EEPLY TO HAYNE. 3G9 meaning and intention of the federal compact ; and such a dangerous, palpable, and deliberate usurpation of power, by a determined majority, wielding the general government beyond the limits of its delegated powers, as calls upon the States which compose the suffering minority, in their sovereign capac- ity, to exercise the powers which, as sovereigns, necessarily devolve upon them when their compact is violated." Observe, Sir, that this resolution includes our old tariff of 1816, as well as all others ; because that was established to pro- mote the interest of the manufacturers of cotton, to the mani- fest and admitted injury of the Calcutta cotton trade. Observe, again, that all the qualifications are here rehearsed and charged upon the tariff, which are necessary to bring the case within the gentleman's proposition. The tariff is a usurpation ; it is a dangerous usurpation ; it is a palpable usurpation ; it is a delib- erate usurpation. It is such a usurpation, therefore, as calls upon the States to exercise their right of interference. Here is a ease, thMj. within the gentleman's principles, and all his qualifications of his principles. It is a case for action. The Constitution is plainly, dangerously, palpably, and deliberately violated ; and the States must interpose their own authority to arrest the law. Let us suppose the State of South Carolina to express this same opinion, by the voice of her legislature. That would be very imposing : but what then ? Is the voice of one State conclusive? It so happens that, at the very moment when South Carolina resolves that the tariff laws are unconsti- tutional, Pennsylvania and Kentucky resolve exactly the re- verse. They hold those laws to be both highly proper and strictly constitutional. And now, Sir, how does the honourable member propose to deal with this case ? Uow does he relieve us from this difficulty, upon any principle of his? His con- struction gets us into it ; how does he propose to get us out? In Carolina, the tariff is a palpable, deliberate usurpation : Carolina therefore may nullify it, and refuse to pay the duties. In Pennsylvania, it is both clearly constitutional and highly expedient; and there the duties are to be paid. And yet we live under a government of uniform laws, and under a Consti- tution too, which contains an express provision, as it happens, that all duties shall be equal in all the States. Does not this approach absurdity ? If there be no power to settle such questions, independent of either of the States, is not the whole Union a rope of sand V Are we not thrown back again, precisely, upon the old Confederation ? Jt is too plain to be argued. Four-and-twenty interpreters of constitutional law, each with a power to decide for itself, 370 WEBSTER. and none with authority to bind anybody else, and this consti- tutional law the only bond of their union! What is such a state of things but a mere connection during pleasure, or, to use the phraseology of the times, during feeling? And that feeling too, not the feeling of the people, who established the Constitution, but the feeling of the State governments. In another of the South Carolina addresses, having premised that the crisis requires "all the concentrated energy of passion," an attitude of open resistance to the laws of the Union is ad- vised. Open resistance to the laws, then, is the constitutional remedy, the conservative power of the State, which the South Carolina doctrines teach for the redress of political evils, real or imaginary. And its authors further say that, appealing with confidence to the Constitution itself to justify their opinions, they cannot consent to try their accuracy by the courts of just ice. In one sense indeed, Sir, this is assuming an attitude of open resistance in favour of liberty. But what sort of liberty? The liberty of establishing their own opinions, in defiance of the opinions of all others ; the liberty of judging and of deciding exclusively themselves, in a matter in which others have as much right to judge and decide as they ; the liberty of placing their own opinions above the judgment of all others, above the laws, and above the Constitution. This is their liberty, and this is the fair result of the proposition contended for by the hon- ourable gentleman. Or, it may be more properly said, it is identical with it, rather than a result from it. Resolutions, Sir, have been recently passed by the legislature of South Carolina. I need not refer to them : they go no fur- ther than the honourable gentleman himself has gone, and I hope not so far. I content myself, therefore, with debating the matter with him. And now, Sir, what I have first to say on this subject is. that at no time, and under no circumstances, has New England, or any State in New England, or any respectable body of persons in New England, or any public man of standing in New Eng- land, put forth such a doctrine as this Carolina doctrine. New England has studied the Constitution in other schools, and un- der other teachers. She looks upon it with other regards, and deems more highly and reverently both of its just authority and its utility and excellence. The history of her legislative proceedings may be traced. The ephemeral effusions of tempo- rary bodies, called together by the excitement of the occasion, may be hunted up : they have been hunted up. The opinions and votes of her public men, in and out of Congress, may be explored. It will all be in vain. The Carolina doctrine can derive from her neither countenance nor support. She rejects SPEECH IX REPLY TO HAYXE. 371 it now ; she always did reject it ; and, till she loses her senses, she always will reject it. The honourable member has referred to expressions on the subject of the embargo law, made in this place, by an honourable and venerable gentleman, now favour- ing us with his presence.* He quotes that distinguished Senator as saying that, in his judgment, the embargo law was unconsti- tutional, and that therefore, in his opinion, the people were not bound to obey it. That, Sir, is perfectly constitutional lan- guage. An unconstitutional law is not binding : but then it docs not rest with a resolution or a law of a State legislature to decide whether an Act of Congress be or be not constitutional. An uncon- stitutional Act of Congress would not bind the people of this District, although they have no legislature to interfere in their behalf ; and, on the other hand, a constitutional law of Congress does bind the citizens of every State, although all their legisla- tures should undertake to annul it by Act or resolution. The venerable Connecticut Senator is a constitutional lawyer, of sound principles and enlarged knowledge ; a statesman prac- tised and experienced, bred in the company of Washington, and holding just views upon the nature of our governments. He believed the embargo unconstitutional, and so did others ; but what then? Who did he suppose was to decide that question ? The State legislatures? Certainly not. No such sentiment ever escaped his lips. Let us follow up, Sir, this New England opposition to the embargo laws ; let us trace it, till we discern the principle which controlled and governed New England throughout the whole course of that opposition. We shall then see what similarity there is between the New England school of constitutional opinions and this modern Carolina school. The gentleman, I think, read a petition from some single individual, addressed to the legislature of Massachusetts, asserting the Carolina doctrine; th.it is, the right of State interference to arrest the laws of the Union. The fate of that petition shows the sentiment of the i*"4i>hiture. It met no favour. The opinions of Massachusetts very different. Misgoverned, wronged, oppressed, as she felt herself to be, she still held fast her integrity to the Union. The gentleman may find in her proceedings much evidence of -Faction with the measures of government, and great and t treason or murder. Now, is this regulating commerce, or de- stroying it? Is it guiding, controlling, giving the rule to com- merce, as a subsisting thing, or is it putting an end to it alto- gether? Nothing is more certain than that a majority in New England deemed this law a violation of the Constitution. The very case required by the gentleman to justify State interfer- ence had then arisen. ^Massachusetts believed this law to be "a deliberate, palpable, and dangerous exercise of a power not granted by the Constitution." Deliberate it was, for it was long continued ; palpable she thought it, as no words in the Constitution gave the power, and only a construction, in her 5 This famous embargo law was prompted, as a measure of defence, by the fierce commercial war carried on between Great Britain and Napoleon. The former fought with her Orders in Council, the latter, by his Berlin and Milan Decrees, each in effect interdicting the other from all commerce with neutral powers. As Great Britain was then mistress of the seas, and as Napoleon had all the continent of Europe under hit; foot, the effect of that war was to cut off the whole foreign trade of the United States. And the purpose of the embargo law was to retaliate on both of the European belligerents by totally excluding their ships from all the American ports. This completed the work which the Orders and Decrees aforesaid had begun. I quote from Mr. G. T. Curtis's Life of Daniel ircbster : "No measure of the Federal Government, since the adop- tion of the Constitution, had ever appeared, to most of those on whose interests it directly operated, so sudden, so unnecessary, and so oppre.-sivo, as the Km- bargo. It fell upon the Eastern States with a terrific weight. Six towns in New England possessed more than a third of the tonnage of the whole Union. At one blow, this great mass of shipping was rendered almost valueless. The. numerous classes, who were dependent on its active employment for their live- lihood, were suddenly deprived of their long-accustomed means of earning their daily bread." Perhaps I ought to add that, to meet the exigency, President Jefferson called an extra session of Congress in October, 1807; on the 18th of December, sent Congress a message recommending the Embargo; and the bill to that effect became a law on the 22d of the same month. This was sudden indeed 1 SPEECH IX REPLY TO HAYNE. 373 opinion most violent, raised it; dangerous it was, since it threatened utter ruin to her most important interests. Here, then, was a Carolina case. How did Massachusetts deal with it? It was, as she thought, a plain, manifest, palpable violation of the Constitution, and it brought ruin to her doors. Thou- sands of families, and hundreds of thousands of individuals, were beggared by it. While she saw and felt all this, she saw and felt also, that, as a measure of national policy, it was per- fectly futile ; that the country was no way benefited by that which caused so much individual distress ; that it was efficient only for the production of evil, and all that evil inflicted on our- selves. In such a case, under such circumstances, how did Massachusetts demean herself? Sir, she remonstrated, she memorialized, she addressed herself to the general government, not exactly "with the concentrated energy of passion," but with her own strong sense, and the energy of sober conviction. But she did not interpose the arm of her own power to arrest the law, and break the embargo. Far from it. Her principles bound her to two things ; and she followed her principles, lead where they might. First, to submit to every constitutional law of Congress ; and, secondly, if the constitutional validity of tho law be doubted, to refer that question to the decision of the proper tribunals. The first principle is vain and ineffectual without the second. A majority of us in New England believed the embargo law unconstitutional ; but the great question was, and always will be, in such cases, Who is to decide this? Who is to judge between the people and the government? And, Sir, it is quite plain, that the Constitution of the United States con- fers on the government itself, to be exercised by its appropriate department, and under its own responsibility to the people, this power of deciding ultimately and conclusively upon the just extent of its own authority. If this had not been done, we should not have advanced a single step beyond the old Confederation. Being fully of opinion that the embargo law was unconstitu- tional, the people of New England were yet equally clear in the opinion (it was a matter they did not doubt upon) that the ques- tion. after all, must be decided by the judicial tribunals of the "United States. Before those tribunals, therefore, they brought tin- question. Under the provisions of the law, they had given bonds, to millions in amount, and which were alleged to be for- feited. They suffered the bonds to be sued, and thus raised the question. In the old-fashioned way of settling disputes, they went to law. The case came to hearing, and solemn argu- ment ; and he who espoused their cause, and stood up for them inst the validity of the embargo Act, was none other than aga o74 AVEBSTER. that great man, of whom the gentleman has made honourable mention, Samuel Dexter. lie was then, Sir, in the fulness of his knowledge and the maturity of his strength. lie had retired from long and distinguished public service here, to the renewed pursuit of professional duties ; carrying with him all thai, en- largement and expansion, all the new strength and force, which an acquaintance with the more general subjects discussed in the national councils is capable of adding to professional attain- ment, in a mind of true greatness and comprehension. lie was a lawyer, and he was also a statesman. He had studied the Constitution, when he filled public station, that he might de- i'end it ; he had examined its principles, that he might maintain them. More than all men, or at least as much as any man, he was attached to the general government and to the union of the Slates. His feelings and opinions all ran in that direction. A question of constitutional law, too, was, of all subjects, that one which was best suited to his talents and learning. Aloof frcm technicality, and unfettered by artificial rule, such a qu gave opportunity for that deep and clear analysis, that mighty grasp ol' principle, which so much distinguished his higher efforts. His very statement was argument ; his inference. seemed demonstration. The earnestness of his own conviction wrought conviction in others. One was convinced, and be- lieved, and assented, because it was gratifying, delightful, to think, and feel, and believe, in unison with an intellect of such evident superiority. Mr. Dexter, Sir, such as I have described him, argued the New England cause. He put into his effort his whole heart, as well as all the powers of his understanding ; for he had avowed, in the most public manner, his entire concurrence with his neighbours on the point in dispute. He argued the cause : it was lost, and New England submitted. The established tribu- nals pronounced the law constitutional, and New England acquiesced. Now, Sir, is not this the exact opposite of the doc- trine of the gentleman from South Carolina? According to him, instead of referring to the judicial tribunals, we should have broken up the embargo by laws of our own ; we should have repealed it, quoad New England; for we had a strong, palpable, and oppressive case. Sir, we believed the embargo unconstitutional ; but still that was matter of opinion, and who was to decide it? We thought it a clear case; but, neverthe- less, we did not take the law into our own hands, because we did not wish to bring about a revolution, nor to break the Union : for I maintain that, between submission to the decision of the constituted tribunals and revolution, or disunion, there 1 is no middle ground; there is no ambiguous condition, half allegiance, SPEECH Itf REPLY TO HAYNE. 375 and half rebellion. And, Sir, how futile, how very futile it is, to admit the right of State interference, and then attempt to save it from the character of unlawful resistance, by adding terms of qualification to the causes and occasions, leaving all these qualifications, like the case itself, in the discretion of the State governments I It must be a clear case, it is said, a deliberate case ; a palpable case ; a dangerous case. But then the State is still left at liberty to decide for herself what is clear, what is deliberate, what is palpable, what is dangerous. Do adjectives and epithets avail any thing? Sir, the human mind is so constituted, that the merits of both sides of a controversy appear very clear, and very palpa- ble, to those who respectively espouse them ; and both sides usually grow clearer as the controversy advances. South ( 'aro- lina sees unconstitutionulity in the tariff; she sees oppression there also, and she sees danger. Pennsylvania, with a vision not less sharp, looks at the same tariff, and sees no such thing in it ; she sees it all constitutional, all useful, all safe. The faith of South Carolina is strengthened by opposition, and she now not only sees, but resolves, that the tariff is palpably un- constitutional, oppressive and dangerous : but Pennsylvania, not to be behind her neighbours, and equally willing to strengthen her own faith by a confident asseveration, resolves, also, and gives to every warm affirmative of South Carolina a plain, downright, Pennsylvania negative. South Carolina, to show the strength and unity of her opinion, brings her assem- bly to a unanimity, within seven voices : Pennsylvania, not to be outdone in this respect more than others, reduces her dis- sentient fraction to a single vote. Now, Sir, again I ask the gentleman, What is to be done? Are these States both right? Ts he bound to consider them both right? If not, which is in the wrong? or, rather, which has the best right to decide? And if he, and if I, are not to know what the Constitution means, and what it is, till those two State legislatures, and the twenty-two others, shall agree in its construction, what have wo sworn to, when we have sworn to maintain it? All this, Sir, shows the inherent futility I had almost used a stronger word of conceding this power of interference to the States, and then attempting to secure it from abuse by imposing quali- fications of which the States themselves are to judge. One of two tilings is true, either the laws of the Union are beyond the discretion and beyond the control of the States ; or else we no constitution of general government, and are thrust back again to the days of the Confederation. Let me here say, Sir, that if the gentleman's doctrine had been received and acted upon in New England, in the times of S7G WEBSTER. the embargo and non-intercourse, we should probably not now have been here. The government would very likely have gone to pieces, and crumbled into dust. No stronger case can ever arise than existed under those laws ; no States can ever enter- tain a clearer conviction than the New England States then entertained ; and if they had been under the influence of that heresy of opinion, as I must call it, which the honourable mem- ber espouses, this Union would, in all probability, have been scattered to the four winds. I ask the gentleman, therefore, to apply his principles to that case ; I ask him to come forth and declare whether, in his opinion, the New England States would have been justified in interfering to break up the embargo sys- tem, under the conscientious opinions which they held upon it? Had they a right to annul that law? I)oes he admit or deny? If what is thought palpably unconstitutional in South Carolina justifies that State in arresting the progress of the law, tell me whether that which was thought palpably unconstitutional also in Massachusetts would have justified her in doing the samo thing. Sir, I deny the whole doctrine. It has not a foot of ground in the Constitution to stand on. No public man of reputation ever advanced it in Massachusetts in the warmest times, or could maintain himself upon it there at any time. I must now beg to ask, Sir, whence is this supposed right of the States derived? Where do they find the power to interfere with the laws of the Union ? Sir, the opinion which the hon- ourable gentleman maintains is a notion founded in a total misapprehension, in my judgment, of the origin of this govern- ment, and of the foundation on which it stands. I hold it to bo a popular government, erected by the people ; those who ad- minister it, responsible to the people ; and itself capable of being amended and modified, just as the people may choose it should be. It is as popular, just as truly emanating from the people, as the State governments. It is created for one pur- pose ; the State governments for another. It has its own powers ; they have theirs. There is no more authority with them to arrest the operation of a law of Congress, than with Congress to arrest the operation of their laws. We are here to administer a Constitution emanating immediately from the peo- ple, and trusted by them to our administration. It is not the creature of the State governments. It is of no moment to the argument, that certain acts of the State legislatures are neces- sary to fill our seats in this body. That is not one of their origi- nal State powers, a part of the sovereignty of the State. It is a duty which the people, by the Constitution itself, have imposed on the State legislatures ; and which they might have left to be SPEECH IK REPLY TO HAYtfE. 377 performed elsewhere, if they had seen fit. So they have left the choice of President with electors ; but all this does not affect the proposition, that this whole government, President, Senate, and House of Representatives, is a popular govern- ment. It leaves it still all its popular character. The governor of a State (in some of the States) is chosen, not directly by the people, but by those who are chosen by the people, for the pur- pose of performing, among other duties, that of electing a gov- ernor. Is the government of the State, on that account, not a popular government? This government, Sir, is the independent offspring of the popular will. It is not the creature of State legislatures ; nay, more, if the whole truth must be told, the people brought it into existence, established it, and have hith- erto supported it, for the purpose, amongst others, of imposing certain salutary restraints on State sovereignties. The States cannot now make war; they cannot contract alliances; they cannot make, each for itself, separate regulations of commerce ; they cannot lay imposts ; they cannot coin money. If this Con- stitution, Sir, be the creature of State legislatures, it must be admitted that it has obtained a strange control over the voli- tions of its creators. The people, then, Sir, erected this government. They gave it a Constitution, and in that Constitution they have enumerated the powers which they bestow on it. They have made it a lim- ited government. They have defined its authority. They have restrained it to the exercise of such powers as are granted ; and all others, they declare, are reserved to the States or the peo- ple. But, Sir, they have not stopped here. If they had, they would have accomplished but half their work. No definition can be so clear as to avoid possibility of doubt ; no limitation so precise as to exclude all uncertainty. Who, then, shall construe this grant of the people ? Who shall interpret their will, where it may be supposed they have left it doubtful ? With whom do they repose this ultimate right of deciding on the powers of the government? Sir, they have settled all this in the fullest man- ner. They have left it with the government itself, in its appro- priate branches. Sir, the very chief end, the main design, for which the whole Constitution was framed and adopted, was to establish a government that should not be obliged to act through State agency, or depend on State opinion and State dis- cretion. The people had had quite enough of that kind of government under the Confederation. Under that system, the legal action, the application of law to individuals, belonged ex- clusively to the States. Congress could only recommend ; their Arts were not of binding force, till the States had adopted and sanctioned thorn ? Are we in that condition still? Are wo yet 378 WEBSTER. at the mercy of State discretion and State construction ? Sh*j if we are, then vain will be our attempt to maintain the Consti- tution under which we sit. But, Sir, the people have wisely provided, in the Constitution itself, a proper, suitable mode and tribunal for settling ques- tions of constitutional law. There are in the Constitution grants of powers to Congress, and restrictions on these powers. There are, also, prohibitions on the States. Some authority must, therefore, necessarily exist, having the ultimate jurisdic- tion to fix and ascertain the interpretation of these grants, restrictions, and prohibitions. The Constitution has itself pointed out, ordained, and established that authority. How has it accomplished this great and essential end? By declar- ing, Sir, that "the Constitution and the laics of the United States made in pursuance thereof shall be the supreme law of the land, an}/ thiny in Ihc constitution or laws of any State to the contrary riotwithrtandKng.'* This, Sir, was the first great step. By this the supremacy of the Constitution and laws of the United States is declared. The people so will it. Xo State law is to be valid which comes in conflict with the Constitution or any law of the United States passed in pursuance of it. But who shall decide this question of interference? To whom lies the last appeal? This, Sir, the Constitution itself decides also, by declaring "that the judicial power ahiiU extend tu all cases arising under the Constitution and laws <-f the United Xfalts." These two provi.Mons, Sir, cover the whole ground. They are, in truth, the keystone of the arch. With these, it is a government ; without them, it is a confeder- ation. In pursuance of these clear and express provisions, Congress established, at its very first session, in the judicial Act, a mode for carrying them into full effect, and for bringing all questions of constitutional power to the final decision of the Supreme Court. It then, Sir, became a government. It then had the means of self-protection ; and, but for this, it would, in all probability, have been now among things which are past. Having constituted the government, and declared its powers, the people have further said that, since somebody must decide on the extent of these powers, the government shall itself decide ; subject, always, like other popular governments, to its responsibility to the people. And now, Sir, I repeat, how is it that a State legislature acquires any power to interfere ? Who, or what, gives them the right to say to the people, " We, who are your agents and servants for one purpose, will undertake to decide that your other agents and servants, appointed by you for another purpose, have transcended the authority you gave them" ? The reply would be, I think, not impertinent, " Who SPEECH IN EEPLY TO HAYNE. 379 made you a judge over another's servants ? To their own mas- ters they stand or fall." Sir, I deny this power of State legislatures altogether. It cannot stand the test of examination. Gentlemen may say that in an extreme case a State government might protect the peo- ple from intolerable oppression. Sir, in such a case the people might protect themselves, without the aid of the State govern- ments. Such a case warrants revolution. It must make, when it comes, a law for itself. A nullifying Act of a State legisla- ture cannot alter the case, nor make resistance any more lawful. In maintaining these sentiments, Sir, 1 am but asserting the rights of the people. I state what they have declared, and insist on their right to declare it. They have chosen to repose this power in the general government, and I think it my duty to support it, like other constitutional powers. For myself, Sir, I do not admit the competency of South Caro- lina, or any other State, to prescribe my constitutional duty ; or to settle, between me and the people, the validity of laws of Congress, for which I have voted. I decline her umpirage. I have not sworn to support the Constitution according to her construction of its clauses. I have not stipulated, by my oatli of office or otherwise, to come under any responsibility, except to the people, and those whom they have appointed to pass upon the question, whether laws, supported by my votes, con- form to the Constitution of the country. And, Sir, if we look to the general nature of the case, could any thing have been more preposterous than to make a government for the. whole Union, and yet leave its powers subject, not to one interpreta- tion, but to thirteen or twenty-four interpretations? Instead of one tribunal, established by all, responsible to all, with power to decide for all, shall constitutional questions be left to four-and-twenty popular bodies, each at liberty to decide for ;iml none bound to respect the decisions of others; and each at liberty, too, to give a new construction on every new flection of its own members? Would any thing with such a principle in it, or rather with such a destitution of all principle, be lit to be called a government? No, Sir. It should not be denominated a Constitution. It should be called, rather, a col- lection of topics for everlasting controversy ; heads of debate for a disputatious people. It would not be a government. It would not be adequate to any practical good, nor fit for any country to live under. To avoid all possibility of being misunderstood, allow me to repeat again, in the fullest manner, that I claim no powers for the government by forced or unfair construction. I admit that it is a government of strictly limited powers ; of enumerated, 380 WEBSTER. specified, and particularized powers ; and that whatsoever ig not granted, is withheld. But notwithstanding all this, and however the grant of powers may be expressed, its limits and extent may yet, in some cases, admit of doubt ; and the general government would be good for nothing, it would be incapable of long existing, if some mode had not been provided in which those doubts, as they should arise, might be peaceably, but authoritatively, solved. And now, Mr. President, let me run the honourable gentle- man's doctrine a little into its practical application. Let us look at his probable modus opei'andi. If a thing can be done, an ingenious man can tell liow it is to be done ; and I wish to be informed how this State interference is to be put in practice, without violence, bloodshed, and rebellion. We will take the existing case of the tariff law. South Carolina is said to have made up her opinion upon it If we do not repeal it, (u> we probably shall not,) she will then apply to the case the remedy of her doctrine. She will, we must suppose, pass a law of her legislature, declaring the several Acts of Congress, usually called the tariff laws, null and void, so far as they respect South Carolina, or the citizens thereof. So far, all is a paper transac- tion, and easy enough. But the collector at Charleston is col- lecting the duties imposed by these tariff laws. He, therefore, must be stopped. The collector will seize the goods if the tariff duties are not paid. The State authorities will undertake their rescue ; the marshal, with his posse, will come to the col- lector's aid ; and here the contest begins. The militia of the State will be called out to sustain the nullifying Act. They will march, Sir, under a very gallant leader ; for I believe the honourable member himself commands the militia of that part of the State. He will raise the NULLIFYING ACT on his stand- ard, and spread it out as his banner I It will have a preamble, setting forth that the tariff laws are palpable, deliberate, and dangerous violations of the Constitution ! He will proceed, with this banner flying, to the custom-house in Charleston, "all the while, sonorous metal blowing martial sounds." Arrived at the custom-house, he will tell the collector that he must col- lect no more duties under any of the tariff laws. This he will be somewhat puzzled to say, by the way, with a grave counte- nance, considering what hand South Carolina herself had in that of 1816. But, Sir, the collector would probably not desist at his bidding. He would show him the law of Congress, the treasury instruction, and his own oath of office. lie would say, he should perform his duty, come what come might. Here would ensue a pause ; for they say that a certain still- ness precedes the tempest. The trumpeter would hold his SPEECH IK REPLY TO HAYNE. 381 breath awhile, and, before all this military array should fall on the custom-house, collector, clerks, and all, it is very probable some of those composing it would request of their gallant com- mander-in-chief to be informed a little upon the point of law ; for they have doubtless a just respect for his opinions as a law- yer, as well as for his bravery as a soldier. They know he has read Blackstone and the Constitution, as well as Turerme and Vauban. They ^vould ask him, therefore, something concern- ing their rights in this matter. They would inquire whether it was not somewhat dangerous to resist a law of the United States. What would be the nature of their offence, they would wish to learn, if they, by military force and array, resisted the execution in Carolina of a law of the United States, and it should turn out, after all, that the law was constitutional ? He would answer, of course, Treason. No lawyer could give any other answer. John Fries, 6 he would tell them, had learned that, some years ago. How, then, they would ask, do you pro- pose to defend us ? We are not afraid of bullets, but treason has a way of taking people off that we do not much relish. How do you propose to defend us? "Look at my floating ban- ner," he would reply; "see there the nullifying law!" Is it your opinion, gallant commander, they would then say, that, if we should be indicted for treason, that same floating banner of yours would make a good plea in bar? "South Carolina is a sovereign State," he would reply. That is true ; but would the judge admit our plea? "These tariff laws," he would repeat, "are unconstitutional, palpably, deliberately, dangerously." That all may be so ; but if the tribunal should not happen to be of that opinion, shall we swing for it? We are ready to die for our country, but it is rather an awkward business, this dying without touching the ground I After all, that is a sort of hemp tax worse than any part of the tariff. Mr. President, the honourable gentleman would be in a di- lemma, like that of another great general. He would have a knot before him which he could not untie. He must cut it with his sword. He must say to his followers, "Defend yourselves with your bayonets" ; and this is war, civil war. Direct collision, therefore, between force and force is the un- avoidable result of that remedy for the revision of unconstitu- tional laws which the gentleman contends for. It must happen in the very first case to which it is applied. Is not this the plain result? To resist by force the execution of a law, gener- ally, is treason. Can the courts of the United States take G Congress having laid a tax on whiskey, a rebellion broke out in Pennsylva- nia against the law, BO great that it had to bo put down by military force, ami Joh'u Fries came to grief as a leader la tbrut rebellion. 382 WEBSTER. notice of the indulgence of a State to commit treason? The common saying, that a State cannot commit treason herself, is nothing to the purpose. Can she authorize others to do it? If John Fries had produced an Act of Pennsylvania, annulling the law of Congress, would it have helped his case ? Talk about it as we will, these doctrines go the length of revolution. They are incompatible with any peaceable administration of the gov- ernment. They lead directly to disunion and civil commotion ; and therefore it is, that at their commencement, when they are first found to be maintained by respectable men, and in a tangible form, I enter my public protest against them all. The honourable gentleman argues, that if this government be the sole judge of the extent of its own powers, whether that right of judging be in Congress or the Supreme Court, it equally subverts State sovereignty. This the gentleman sees, or thinks he sees, although he cannot perceive how the right of judging, in this matter, if left to the exercise of State legislatures, has any tendency to subvert the government of the Union. The gentleman's opinion may be, that the right ought not to have been lodged with the general government ; he may like better such a constitution as we should have under the right of State interference ; but I ask him to meet me on the plain matter of fact. I ask him to meet me on the Constitution itself. I ask him if the power is not found there, clearly and visibly found there ? But, Sir, what is this danger, and what are the grounds of it? Let if be remembered that the Constitution of the United States is not unalterable. It is to continue in its present form no longer than the people who established it shall choose to continue it. If they shall become convinced that they have made an injudicious or inexpedient partition and distribution of power between the State governments and the general govern- ment, they can alter that distribution at will. If any thing be found in the national Constitution, either by original provision or subsequent interpretation, which ought not to be in it, the people know how to get rid of it. If any construction be established, unacceptable to them, so as to become, practically, a part of the Constitution, they will amend it, at their own sovereign pleasure. But, while the people choose to maintain it as it is ; while they are satisfied with it, and refuse to change it ; who has given, or who can give, to the State legislatures a right to alter it, either by interl'eivnee, construction, or otherwise? Gentlemen do not seem to recol- lect that the people have any power to do any thing for them- selves. They imagine there is no safety for them, any longer than they are under the close guardians hip $>f the State legisla- SPEECH IX REPLY TO HAYXE. 383 tures. Sir, the people have not trusted their safety, in regard to the general Constitution, to these hands. They have re- quired other security, and taken other bonds. They have chosen to trust themselves, first, to the plain words of the instrument, and to such construction as the government itself, in doubtful ca>os, should put on its own powers, under their oaths of oll'ire, and subject to their responsibility to them; just as tin 1 people of a State trust their own State governments with a similar power. Secondly, they have reposed their trust in the eflicacy of frequent elections, and in their own power to remove their own servants and agents, whenever they see cause. Thirdly, they have reposed trust in the judicial power, which, in order that it might be trustworthy, they have made as respectable, as disinterested, and as independent as was practicable. Fourthly, they have seen fit to rely, in case of necessity, or high expediency, on their known and admitted power to alter or amend the Constitution, peaceably and quietly, whenever experience shall point out defects or imper- fections. And, finally, the people of the United States have at no time, in no way, directly or indirectly, authorized any State legislature to construe or interpret their high instrument of government; much less, to interfere, by their own power, to arrest its course and operation. If, Sir, the people in these respects had done otherwise than they have done, their Constitution could neither have been preserved, nor would it have been worth preserving. And if its plain provisions shall now be disregarded, and these new doctrines interpolated in it, it will become as feeble and help- less a being as its enemies, whether early or more recent, could possibly desire. It will exist in every State but as a poor de- pendent on State permission. It must borrow leave to be ; and will be no longer than State pleasure, or State discretion, sees fit to grant the indulgence, and to prolong its poor existence. But, Sir, although there are fears, there are hopes also. The people have preserved this their own chosen Constitution for forty years, and have seen their happiness, prosperity, and renown grow with its growth, and strengthen with its strength. They are now, generally, strongly attached to it. Overthrown by direct assault, it cannot be ; evaded, undermined, NULLI- FIED, it will not be, if we, and those who shall succeed us here, nts and representatives of the people, shall conscien- tiously and vigilantly discharge the two great branches of our public trust, faithfully to preserve, and wisely to adnjinisterit. Mr. President, I have thus stated the reasons of my dissent to the doctrines which have been advanced and maintained. I am conscious of having detained you and the Senate much too 384 WEBSTER. long. I was drawn into the debate with no previous delibera- tion, such as is suited to the discussion of so grave and impor- tant a subject. But it is a subject of which my heart is full, and I have not been willing to suppress the utterance of its spontaneous sentiments. I cannot, even now, persuade myself to relinquish it, without expressing, once more, my deep con- viction that, since it respects nothing less than the Union of the States, it is of most vital and essential importance to the public happiness. I profess, Sir, in my career hitherto, to have kept steadily in view the prosperity and honour of the whole country, and the preservation of our Federal Union. It is to that Union we owe our safety at home, and our consideration and dignity abroad. It is to that Union that we are chiefly indebted for whatever makes us most proud of our country. That Union we reached only by the discipline of our virtues in the severe school of adversity. It had its origin in the necessi- ties of disordered finance, prostrate commerce, and ruined credit. Under its benign influences, these great interests im- mediately awoke, as from the dead, and sprang forth with newness of life. Every year of its duration has teemed with fresh proofs of its utility and its blessings ; and, although our territory has stretched out wider and wider, and our population spivad further and further, they have not outrun its protection or its benefits. Jt has been to us all a copious fountain of national, social, and personal happiness. I have not allowed myself, Sir, to look beyond the Union, to see what might lie hidden in the dark recess behind. I have not coolly weighed the chances of preserving liberty when the bonds that unite us together shall be broken asunder. I have not accustomed myself to hang over the precipice of disunion, to see whether, with my short sight, I can fathom the depth of the abyss below ; nor could I regard him as a safe counsellor in the affairs of this government, whose thoughts should be mainly bent on considering, not how the Union may be best preserved, but how tolerable might be the condition of the people when it shall be broken up and destroyed. While the Union lasts, we have high, exciting, gratifying prospects spread out before us, for us and our children. Beyond that I seek not to penetrate the veil. God grant that, in my day at least, that curtain may not rise ! God grant that on my vision never may be opened what lies behind ! When my eyes shall be turned to behold, for the last time, the Sun in heaven, may I not see him shining on the broken and dishonoured fragments of a once glorious Union ; on States dissevered, discordant, belligerent ; on a land rent with civil feuds, or drenched, it may be, in fra- ternal blood ! .Let their last feeble and lingering glance rather BLESSINGS OF THE CONSTITUTION. 385 behold the gorgeous ensign of the republic, now known and honoured throughout the Earth, still full high advanced, its arms and trophies streaming in their original lustre, not a stripe erased or polluted, nor a single star obscured ; bearing for its motto, no such miserable interrogatory, as "What is all this worth?" nor those other words of delusion and folly, "Liberty first, and Union afterwards" ; but everywhere, spread all over in characters of living light, blazing on all its ample folds, as they iloat over the sea and over the land, and in every wind under the whole heavens, that other sentiment, dear to every true American heart, Liberty and Union, now and for ever, one and inseparable I BLESSINGS OF THE CONSTITUTION. 7 GENTLEMEN, as connected with the Constitution, you have local recollections which must bind it still closer to your at- tachment and affection. It commenced its being and its bless- ings here. It was in this city, in the midst of friends, anxious hopeful, and devoted, that the new government started in its course. To us, who are younger, it has come down by tradi- tion ; but some around me are old enough to have witnessed, and did witness, the interesting scene of the first inauguration. They remember what voices of gratified patriotism, what shouts of enthusiastic hope, what acclamations rent the air, how mny <>* were suffused with tears of joy, how cordially each man '.I the hand of him who was next to him, when, standing in the open air, in the centre of the city, in the view of assem- bled thousands, the first President was heard solemnly to pro- nounce the words of his official oath, repeating them from the 7 This very noble strain of discourse is fVom a speech made on the following occasion. In February, 1831, soon after the delivery of the great speech in reply to Ilayno, some leading gentlemen of New York invited Webster to a public dinner, a^ a mark of honour for his powerful championship of the Union. The dinner took place in the City Hotel on the 10th of March. Chancellor Kent pro- sided ; and, on introducing Webster to tho assembly, he referred, in strong and eloquent terms, to the great Senator's recent work in Congress, and closed with the following: ''Socrates was said to have drawn doAvn philosophy from the Kkie--, and scattered it among the schools. It may with equal truth be said that eunstiuitional law, by means of those senatorial discussions and the master genius that guided them, was rescued from the archives of our tribunals and the libraries of our lawyers, and placed under the oye, and submitted to the judg- ment, of the American people. Their verdict is with us, and from it there lies no appeal." 386 WEBSTER. lips of Chancellor Livingston. You then thought, Gentlemen, that the great work of the Revolution was accomplished. You then felt that you had a government; that the United States were then, indeed, united. Every benignant star seemed to shed its selectest influence on that auspicious hour. Ilnv unv heroes of the Eevolution ; here were sages of the Convention ; here were minds, disciplined and schooled in all the various fortunes of the country, acting now in several relations, but all cooperating to the same great end, the successful administra- tion of the new and untried Constitution. And he, how shall I speak of him? he was at the head, who was already first in war, who was already first in the hearts of his countrymen, and who was now shown also, by the unanimous suffrage of the country, to be first in peace. Gentlemen, how gloriously have the hopes then indulged been fulfilled ! Whose expectation was then so- sanguine, I may almost ask whose imagination then so extravagant, as to run forward, and contemplate as probable the one half of what has been accomplished in forty years ? Who among you can go back to 1789, and see what this city, and this country too, then were ; and, beholding what they now are, can be ready to consent that the Constitution of the United States shall be weakened, dishonoured, nullified ? The legislative history of the first two or three years of the government is full of instruction. It presents, in striking light, the evils intended to be remedied by the Constitution, and the provisions which were deemed essential to the remedy of those evils. It exhibits the country, in the moment of its change from a weak and ill-defined confederacy of States into a gen- eral, efficient, but still restrained and limited government. It shows the first working of our peculiar system, moved, as it then was, by master hands. Gentlemen, for one, I confess I like to dwell on this part of our history. It is good for us to be here. It is good for us to study the situation of the country at this period, to survey its difficulties, to look at the conduct of its public men, to see how they struggled with obstacles, real and formidable, and how glo- riously they brought the country out of its state of depv- and distress. Truly, Gentlemen, these founders and fathers of the Constitution were great men, and thoroughly furnished for every good work. All that reading and learning could do ; all that talent and intelligence could do ; and, what perhaps is still more, all that long experience in difficult and troubled times, and a deep and intimate practical knowledge of the condition of the country, could do, conspired to fit them for the great busi- ness of forming a general, but limited government, embracing BLESSINGS OP THE CONSTITUTION. 387 common objects, extending over all the States, and yet touching the power of the States no further than those common objects require. I confess I love to linger around these original foun- tains, and to drink deep of their waters. I love to imbibe, in as full measure as I may, the spirit of those who laid the founda- tions of the government, and so wisely and skilfully balanced and adjusted its bearings and proportions. Gentlemen, what I have said of the benefits of the Constitu- tion to your city might be said, with little change, in respect to every other part of the country. Its benefits are not exclusive. What has it left undone, which any government could do, for the whole country ? In what condition has it placed us ? Where do we now stand ? Are we elevated, or degraded, by its opera<- tion ? What is our condition under its influence, at the very moment when some talk of arresting its power and breaking its unity ? Do we not feel ourselves on an eminence ? Do we not challenge the respect of the whole world? What has placed us thus high V What has given us this just pride? What else is it, but the unrestrained and free operation of that same Fed- eral Constitution which it has been proposed now to hamper, and manacle, and nullify? Who is there among us, that, should he find himself on any spot of the Earth where human beings exist, and where the existence of other nations is known, would not be proud to say, I am an American? I am a country- man of Washington? I am a citizen of that Eepublic which, although it has suddenly sprung up, yet there are none on the globe who have ears to hear, and have not heard of ; who have eyes to see, and have not read of ; who know any thing, and yet do not know of its existence and its glory ? And, Gentlemen, let me now reverse the picture. Let me ask, who there is among us, if he were to be found to-morrow in one of the civil- ized countries of Europe, and were there to learn that this goodly form of government had been overthrown ; that the United States were no longer united ; that a death-blow had been struck upon their bond of union ; that they themselves had destroyed their chief good and their chief honour; who is there whose heart would not sink within him? Who is there who would not cover his face for very shame? At this very moment, Gentlemen, our country is a general refuge for the distressed and the persecuted of other nations. Whoever is in affliction from political occurrences in his own country looks here for shelter. Whether he be republican, flying from the oppression of thrones, or whether he be mon- arch or monarchist, flying from thrones that crumble and fall under or around him, he feels equal assurance that, if he get 388 WEBSTER. foothold on our soil, his person will be safe, and his rights will be respected. And who will venture to say that, in any government now existing in the world, there is greater security for persons or property than in that of the United States ? We have tried these popular institutions in times of great excitement and commotion, and they have stood, substantially, firm and steady, while the fountains of the great political deep have been else- where broken up ; while thrones, resting on ages of proscrip- tion, have tottered and fallen ; and while, in other countries, the earthquake of unrestrained popular commotion has swal- lowed up all law and all liberty and all right together. Our gov- ernment has been tried in peace, and it has been tried in war ; and has proved itself fit for both. It has been assailed from without, and it has successfully resisted the shock ; it has been disturbed within, and it has effectually quieted the disturbance. It can stand trial, it can stand assault, it can stand adversity, it can stand every thing but the marring of its own beauty, and the weakening of its own strength. It can stand every thing but the effects of our own rashness and our own folly. It can stand every thing but disorganization, disunion, and nullification. It is a striking fact, and as true as it is striking, that at this very moment, among all the principal civilized States of the world, that government is most secure against the danger of popular commotion, which is itself entirely popular. Certain it is, that, in these times of so much popular knowledge and so much popular activity, those governments which do not admit the people to partake in their administration, but keep them under and beneath, sit on materials for an explosion, which may take place at any moment, and blow them into a thousand atoms. Gentlemen, let any man who would degrade and enfeeble the national Constitution, let any man who would nullify its laws, stand forth and tell us what he would wish. What dors lu- propose? Whatever he may be, and whatever substitute he may hold forth, I am sure the people of this country will de- cline his kind interference, and hold on by the Constitution which they possess. Any one who would willingly destroy it, I rejoice to know, would be looked upon with abhorren> is deeply entrenched in the regards of the people. Doubtless it may be undermined by artful and long-continued hostility; it may be imperceptibly weakened by secret attack ; it may be insidiously shorn of its powers by slow degrees ; the public vigilance may be lulled, and when it awakes it may find the Constitution frittered away. In these modes, or some of BLESSINGS OF THE CONSTITUTION. 389 them, it is possible that the union of the States may be dissolved. But if the general attention of the people be kept alive, if they see the intended mischief before it is effected, they will prevent it by their own sovereign power. They will interpose themselves between the meditated blow and the object of their regard and attachment. Next to the controlling authority of the people themselves, the preservation of the government is mainly committed to those who administer it. If conducted in wisdom, it cannot but stand strong. Its genuine, original spirit is a patriotic, liberal, and generous spirit ; a spirit of con- ciliation, of moderation, of candour, and charity ; a spirit of friendship, and not a spirit of hostility toward the States ; a spirit careful not to exceed, and equally careful not to relin- quish, its just powers. While no interest can or ought to feel itself shut out from the benefits of the Constitution, none should consider those benefits as exclusively its own. Tho interests of all must be consulted, and reconciled, and provided for, as far as possible, that all may perceive the benefits of a united government. Among other things, we are to remember that new States have arisen, possessing already an immense population, spread- ing and thickening over vast regions which were a wilderness when the Constitution was adopted. Those States are not, like Xew York, directly connected with maritime commerce. They are entirely agricultural, and need markets for con- sumption ; and they need, too, access to those markets. It is the duty of the government to bring the interests of these new States into the Union, and incorporate them closely in the family compact. Gentlemen, it is not impracticable to recon- cile these various interests, and so to administer the govern- ment as to make it useful to all. It was never easier to admin- ister the government than it is now. We are beset with none, or with few, of its original difficulties ; and it is a time of great general prosperity and happiness. Shall we admit ourselves incompetent to carry on the government, so as to be satisfactory to the whole country? Shall we admit that there has so little uded to us of the wisdom and prudence of our fathers? li the government could be administered in Washington's time, when it was yet new, when the country was heavily in debt, when foreign relations were threatening, and when Indian wars pressed on the frontiers, can it not be administered now? Let us not acknowledge ourselves so unequal to our duties. Gentlemen, on the occasion referred to by the Chair, it be- came necessary to consider the judicial power, and its proper functions under the Constitution. In every free and balanced 390 WEBSTER. government, this is a most essential and important power. Indeed, I think it is a remark of Mr. Hume, that the admin is. tration of justice seems to be the leading object of institutions of government ; that legislatures assemble, that armies are embodied, that both war and peace are made, with a sort of ultimate reference to the proper administration of laws, and the judicial protection of private rights. The judicial power comes home to every man. If the legislature passes incorrect or unjust general laws, its members bear the evil as M-ell as others. But judicature acts on individuals. It touches ever}* private right, every private interest, and almost every private feeling. What we possess is hardly lit to be called our own, unless we feel secure in its possession ; and this security, this feeling of perfect safety, cannot exist under a wicked, or even under a weak and ignorant, administration of the laws. There is no happiness, there is no liberty, there is no enjoyment of life, unless a man can say, when he rises in the morning, I shall be subject to the decision of no unjust judge to-day. But, Gentlemen, the judicial department, under the Consti- tution of the United States, possesses still higher duties. It is true, that it may be called on, and is occasionally called on, to decide questions which are, in one sense, of a political nature. The general and State governments, both established by the people, are established for different purposes, and with differ- ent powers. Between those powers questions may arise ; and who shall decide them? Some provision for this end is abso- lutely necessary. What shall it be? This was the question before the Convention ; and various schemes were suggested. It was foreseen that the States might inadvertently pass laws inconsistent with the Constitution of the United States, or with Acts of Congress. At least, laws might be passed which would be charged with such inconsistency. How should these ques- tions be disposed of? Where shall the power of judging, in case of alleged interference, be lodged? One suggestion in the Convention was, to make it an executive power, and to lodge it in the hands of the President, by requiring all State laws to be submitted to him, that he might negative such as he thought appeared repugnant to the general Constitution. This idea, perhaps, may have been borrowed from the power exer- cised by the Crown over the laws of the Colonies. It would evidently have been not only an inconvenient and troubli proceeding, but dangerous also to the powers of the State-;. It was not pressed. It was thought wiser and safer, on the whole, to require State legislatures and State judges to take an oath to support the Constitution of the United States, and theu leave the States at liberty to pass whatever laws they pleased, and if BLESSINGS OF THE CONSTITUTION. 391 interference, in point of fact, should arise, to refer the question to judicial decision. To this end, the judicial power, under the Constitution of the United States, was made coextensive with the legislative power. It was extended to all cases arising under the Constitution and the laws of Congress. The judi- ciary became thus possessed of the authority of deciding, in the last resort, in all cases of alleged interference, between State laws and the Constitution and laws of Congress. Gentlemen, this is the actual Constitution, this is the law of the land. There may be those who think it unnecessary, or who would prefer a different mode of deciding such questions. But this is the established mode, and, till it be altered, the courts can no more decline their duty, on these occasions, than on other occasions. But can any reasonable man doubt the expe- diency of this provision, or suggest a better? Is it not abso- lutely essential to the peace of the country that this power should exist somewhere? Where can it exist, better than win-re it now does exist? The national judiciary is the com- mon tribunal of the whole country. It is organized by the common authority, and its places filled by the common agent. This is a plain and practical provision. It was framed by no bunglers, nor by any wild theorists. And who can say that it has failed? Who can find substantial fault with its operation or its results? The great question is, whether we shall provide for the peaceable decision of cases of collision. Shall they be decided by law or by force ? Shall the decisions be decisions of peace, or decisions of war ? ( )n the occasion which has given rise to this meeting, the prop- osition contended for in opposition to the doctrine just stated wns, that every State, under certain supposed exigencies, and in certain supposed cases, might decide for itself, and. act for itself, and oppose its own force to the execution of the laws. By what argument do you imagine, Gentlemen, that such a proposition was maintained? I might call it metaphysical and subtile ; but these terms would imply at least ingenuity, and some degree of plausibility ; whereas the argument appears to me plain assumption, mere perverse construction of plain lun- tfuugi! in the body of the Constitution itself. As I understand it, when put forth in its revised and most authentic shape, it is this: That the Constitution provides that any amendments may IH- made to it which shall be agreed to by three fourths of the States: there is, therefore, to be nothing in the Constitution to which three fourths of the States have not agreed. All this is true ; but then comes this inference, namely, that, when one State denies the constitutionality of any law of Congress, she may arrest its execution as to herself, and keep it arrested, till 392 WEBSTER. the States can all be consulted by their conventions, and three fourths of them shall have decided that the law is constitu- tional. Indeed, the inference is still stranger than this : for State conventions have no authority to construe the Constitu- tion, though they have authority to amend it ; therefore the argument must prove, if it prove any thing, that, when any one State denies that any particular power is included in the Consti- tution, it is to be considered as not included, and not to be found there till three fourths of the States agree to insert it. In short, the result of the whole is, that, though it requires three fourths of the States to insert any thing in the Constitu- tion, yet any one State can strike any thing out of it. For the power to strike out, and the power of deciding, without appeal, upon the construction of what is already in, are substantially and practically the same. And, Gentlemen, what a spectacle should we have exhibited under the actual operation of notions like these I At the very moment when our government was quoted, praised, and com- mended all over the world ; when the friends of republican lib- erty everywhere were gazing at it with delight, and were in perfect admiration at the harmony of its movements, one State steps forth, and, by the power of nullification, breaks up the whole system, and scatters the bright chain of the Union into as many sundered links as there are separate States ! Seeing the true grounds of the Constitution thus attacked, I raised my voice in its favour, I must confess, with no prepara- tion or previous intention. I can hardly say that I embarked in the contest from a sense of duty. It was an instantaneous im- pulse of inclination, not acting against duty, I trust, but hardly waiting for its suggestions. I felt it to be a contest for the in- tegrity of the Constitution, and I was ready to enter into it, not thinking, or caring, personally, how I might come out. Gentlemen, I have true pleasure in saying that I trust the crisis has in some measure passed by. The doctrines of nullifi- cation have received a severe and stern rebuke from public opinion. The general reprobation of the country has been cast upon them. Recent expressions of the most numerous branch of the national legislature are decisive and imposing. Every- where, the general tone of public feeling is for the Constitution. "While much will be yielded everything, almost, but the in- tegrity of the Constitution, and the essential interests of the country to the cause of mutual harmony and mutual concilia- tion, no ground can be granted, not an inch, to menace and bluster. Indeed, menace and bluster, and the putting-forth of daring unconstitutional doctrines, are, at this very moment, the chief obstacles to mutual harmony and satisfactory accom- BLESSINGS OF THE CONSTITUTION". 393 modation. Men cannot well reason, and confer, and take coun- sel together, about the discreet exercise of a power, with those who deny that any such power rightfully exists, and who threaten to blow up the whole Constitution if they cannot otherwise get rid of its operation. It is matter of sincere grati- fication, Gentlemen, that the voice of this great State has been so clear and strong, and her vote all but unanimous, on the most interesting of these occasions, in the House of Repre- sentatives. Certainly, such respect to the Union becomes New York. It is consistent with her interests and her character. That singularly prosperous State which now is, and is likely to continue to be, the greatest link in the chain of the Union will ever be, it is to be hoped, the strongest link also. The great States which lie in her neighbourhood agreed with her fully in this matter. Pennsylvania, I believe, was loyal to the Union, to a man ; and Ohio raises her voice, like that of a lion, against whatsoever threatens disunion and dismemberment. This harmony of sentiment is truly gratifying. It is not to be gainsaid, that the union of opinion in this great central mass of our population, on this momentous point of the Constitution, augurs well for our future prosperity and security. I have said, Gentlemen, what I verily believe to be true, that there is no danger to the Union from open and avowed attacks on its essential principles. Nothing is to be feared from those who will march up boldly to their own propositions, and tell us that they mean to annihilate powers exercised by Congress. But, certainly, there are dangers to the Constitution, and we ought not to shut our eyes to them. "VVe know the importance of a firm and intelligent judiciary: but how shall we secure the continuance of a firm and intelligent judiciary? Gentlemen, the judiciary is in the appointment of the executive power. It cannot continue or renew itself. Its vacancies are to be filled in the ordinary modes of executive appointment. If the time shall ever come, (which Heaven avert !) when men shall be T>la<-( (1 in the supreme tribunal of the country who entertain opinions hostile to the just powers of the Constitution, we shall then be visited by an evil defying all remedy. Our case will be past surgery. From that moment the Constitution is at an end. If they who are appointed to defend the castle shall betray it, \v >< betide those within 1 If I live to see that day come, I shall dospair of the country. I shall be prepared to give it back to all its former afflictions, in the days of the Confederation. I know no security against the possibility of this evil, but an awakened public vigilance. I know no safety, but in that state of public opinion which shall lead it to rebuke and put down every attempt, either to gratify party by judicial appointments, 394 WEBSTER. or to dilute the Constitution by creating a .court which shall construe away its provisions. If members of Congress betray their trust, the people will find it out before they are ruined. If the President should at any time violate his duty, his term of office is short, and popular elections may supply a seasonable remedy. But the judges of the Supreme Court possess, for very good reasons, an independent tenure of office. No elec- tion reaches them. If, with this tenure, they betray their trusts, Heaven save us I Let us hope for better results. The past, certainly, may encourage us. Let us hope that wo shall never see the time when there shall exist such an awkward pos- ture of affairs, as that the government shall be found in opposi- tion to the Constitution, and when the guardians of the Union shall become its betrayers. Gentlemen, our country stands, at the present time, on com- manding ground. Older nations, with different systems of government, may be somewhat slow to acknowledge all that justly belongs to us. But we may feel without vanity, that America is doing her part in the great work of improving human affairs. There are two principles, Gentlemen, strictly and purely American, which are now likely to overrun the civilized world. Indeed, they seem the necessary result of the progress of civilization and knowledge. These are, first, popu- lar governments, restrained by written constitutions ; and, secondly, universal education. Popular governments and gen- eral education, acting and reacting,, mutually producing and reproducing each other, are the mighty agencies which in our days appear to be exciting, stimulating, and changing civilized societies. Man, everywhere, is now found demanding a par- ticipation in government, and he will not be refused ; and he demands knowledge as necessary to self-government. On the basis of these two principles, liberty and knowledge, our own American systems rest. Thus far we have not been disap- pointed in their results. Our existing institutions, raised on these foundations, have conferred on us almost unmixed hap- piness. Do we hope to better our condition by change ? When we shall have nullified the present Constitution, what are we to receive in its place? As fathers, do we wish for our children better government or better laws? As members of society, as lovers of our country, is there any thing we can desire for it better than that, as ages and centuries roll over it, it may possess the same invaluable institutions which it now enjoys ? For my part, Gentlemen, I can only say, that I desire to thank the beneficent Author of all good for being born tcJicre I was born, and when I was born ; that the portion of human exist- ence allotted to me has been meted out to me in this goodly PRESIDENTIAL NULLIFICATION. 395 land, and at this interesting period. I rejoice that I have lived to see so much development of truth, so much progress of liberty, so much diffusion of virtue and happiness. And, through good report and evil report, it will be my consolation to be a citizen of a republic unequalled in the annals of the world for the freedom of its institutions, its high prosperity, and the prospects of good which yet lie before it. Our course, Gentlemen, is onward, straight onward, and forward. Let us not turn to the right hand nor to the left. Our path is marked out for us, clear, plain, bright, distinctly denned, like the milky way across the heavens. If we are true to our country, in our day and generation, and those who come after us shall be true to it also, assuredly, assuredly we shall elevate her to a pitch of prosperity and happiness, of honour and power, never yet? reached by any nation beneath the Sun. PRESIDENTIAL NULLIFICATION. 8 proceed, Sir, to a few remarks upon the President's constitutional objections to the bank ; and I cannot forbear to say, in regard to them, that he appears to me to have assumed very extraordinary grounds of reasoning. He denies that the constitutionality of the bank is a settled question. If it be not, will it ever become so, or what disputed question ever can be settled? As early as 1791, after great deliberation, the first bank charter was passed by Congress, and approved by President Washington. It established an institution, resembling, in all things now objected to, the present bank. That bank, like this, could take lands in payment of its debts ; that charter, like the present, gave the States no power of taxation ; it allowed foreigners to hold stock ; it restrained Congress from creating other banks. It gave also exclusive privileges, and in 8 The pages which follow under this heading are from a speech delivered in . ate, July ll,1832,on President Jackson's Veto of the bill reehartcring I'm- Hank of the United States. That speech is, I think, a highly instructive and important passage in Webster's great course of constitutional expositions; and I here reproduce what seem to me the main points of his argument. It id not easy to see how the President's reasonings in his veto message differ, in princi- ple, from the nullilication doctrines of South Carolina; but there is this to bo baid of OiM.Tal Jackson, that he was too honest to sec the nullification element in tho.-r reasonings, and at the same time too patriotic and too determined in character to tolerate any overt act of nullification in another. 30G WEBSTER. all particulars it was, according to the doctrine of the message, as objectionable as that now existing. That bank continued twenty years. In 1816, the present institution was established, and has been ever since in full operation. Now, Sir, the ques- tion cf the power of Congress to create such institutions has been contested in every manner known to our Constitution and laws. The forms of the government furnish no new mode in which to try this question. It has been discussed over and over again, in Congress ; it has been argued and solemnly adjudged in the Supreme Court ; every President, except the present, has considered it a settled question; many of the State legislatures have instructed their Senators to vote for the bank ; the tribunals of the States, in every instance, have sup- ported its constitutionality ; and, beyond all doubt and dispute, the general public opinion of the country has at all times given, and does now give, its full sanction and approbation to the exercise of this power, as being a constitutional power. There has been no opinion questioning the power expressed or inti- mated, at any time, by either House of Congress, by any Pres- ident, or by any respectable judicial tribunal. Now, Sir, if this practice of near forty years ; if these repeated exer< i-rs of the power; if this solemn adjudication of the Supreme Court, with the concurrence and approbation of public opinion, do not settle the question, how is any question ever to be settled, about which any one may choose to raise a doubt? But the President does not admit the authority of precedent Sir, I have always found that those who habitually deny most vehemently the general force of precedent, ami assert most strongly the supremacy of private opinion, are yet, of all men, most tenacious of that very authority of precedent, whenever it happens to be in their favour. I beg leave to ask, Sir, upon what ground, except that of precedent, and precedent alone, the President's friends have placed his power of removal from office? No such power is given by the Constitution, in terms, nor anywhere intimated, throughout the whole of it; no para- graph or clause of that instrument recognizes such a power. To say the least, it is as questionable, and has l.t-cn as often questioned, as the power of Congress to create a bank; and. enlightened by what has passed under our own observation, we now see that it is of all powers the most capable of flagrant abuse. 9 Now, Sir, I ask again, What becomes of this power, it 9 President Jackson, within the first two years of his administration, made not less than two thousand removals from ofliee, all in favour of his party. Tlu-n it was that the government entered upon the custom of using the whole >} >tem of federal offices as the bribes and rewards of political partisanship. I'p to that time, the power of removal had been exercised only in a few extreme cases. PRESIDENTIAL NULLIFICATION. 397 the authority of precedent be taken away ? It has all along been . denied to exist ; it is nowhere found in the Constitution ; and its recent exercise, or to call things by their right names its recent abuse, has, more than any other single cause, rendered good men either cool in their affections toward the government of their country or doubtful of its long continuance. Yet> there is precedent in favour of this power, and the President exercises it. We know, Sir, that, without the aid of that precedent, his acts could never have received the sanction of this body, even at a time when his voice was somewhat more potential here than it now is, or, as I trust, ever again will be. Does the President, then, reject the authority of all precedent except what it is suitable to his own purposes to use ? And does he use, without stint or measure, all precedents which may aug- ment his own power, or gratify his own wishes? But if the President thinks lightly of the authority of Congress in construing the Constitution, he thinks still more lightly of the authority of the Supreme Court, lie asserts a right of individ- ual judgment on constitutional questions, which is totally incon- sistent with any proper administration of government, or any regular execution of the laws. Social disorder, entire uncer- tainty in regard to individual rights and individual duties, the -sation of legal authority, confusion, the dissolution of free government, all these are the inevitable consequences of the principles adopted by the message, whenever they shall be carried to their full extent. Hitherto it has been thought that the final decision of constitutional questions belonged to the supreme judicial tribunal. The very nature of free govern- ment, it has been supposed, enjoins this ; and our Constitution, moreover, lias been understood so to provide, clearly and ex- pressly. It is true, that each branch of the legislature has an undoubted right, in the exercise of its functions, to consider the constitutionality of a law proposed to be passed. This is naturally a part of its duty ; and neither branch can be com- pelled to pass any law, or do any other act, which it deems to be beyond the reach of its constitutional power. The Presi- dent has the same right, when a bill is presented for his ap- proval ; for he is doubtless bound to consider, in all cases, whether such bill be compatible with the Constitution, and whether he can approve it consistently with his oath of office. But when a law has been passed by Congress, and approved by the President, it is now no longer in the power either of the same President or his successors to say whether the law is Tin: abuse of it has since done more perhaps than any other one thing to corrupt and debauch our politics. 398 WEBSTER. constitutional or not. He is not at liberty to disregard it ; he is not at liberty to feel or affect "constitutional scruples," and to sit in judgment himself on the validity of a statute of the government, and to nullify it, if he so chooses. After a law has passed through all the requisite forms, after it has received the requisite legislative sanction and the executive approval, the question of its constitutionality then becomes a judicial question, and a judicial question alone. In the courts that question may be raised, argued, and adjudged ; it can be ad- judged nowhere else. The President is as much bound by the law as any private citizen, and can no more contest its validity than any private citizen. He may refuse to obey the law, and so may a privuu- citizen; but both do it at their own peril, and neither of them can settle the question of its validity. The President may w//a law is unconstitutional, but he is not the judge. Who is to decide that question? The judiciary alone p -his un- questionable and hitherto unquestioned right. The judiciary is the constitutional tribunal of appeal, for the citizen-, a;.,uinst both Congress and the executive, in regard to the constitution- ality of laws. It has this jurisdiction expressly conferred upon it; and when it has decided the question, its judgment must, from the very nature of all judgments from which there is no appeal, be conclusive. Hitherto, this opinion, and a cor, pondent practice, have prevailed, in America, with all wise and considerate men. If it were otherwise, there would be no gov- ernment of laws ; but we should all live under the government, the rule, the caprices of individuals. On the argument of the message, the President of the Tinted States holds, under a new pretence and a new name, a tial abuse of the power of removal from ofllce was y made prominent. " To the victors belong the spoils " had then grown into THE SPOILS TO THE VICTORS. 403 for political opinions ; and this system it has carried into ope- ration to the full extent of its ability. The President has not only filled all vacancies with his own friends, generally those most distinguished as personal partisans, but he has turned out political opponents, and thus created vacancies, in order that he might fill them with his own friends. I think the number of removals and appointments is said to be two thou- sand. While the administration and its friends have been attempting to circumscribe and to decry the powers belonging to other branches, it has thus seized into its own hands a pat- ronage most pernicious and corrupting, an authority over men's means of living most tyrannical and odious, and a power to punish free men for political opinions altogether intolerable. You will remember, Sir, that the Constitution says not one word about the President's power of removal from office. It is a power raised entirely by construction. It is a constructive power, introduced, at first> to meet cases of extreme public necessity. It has now become coextensive with the executive will, calling for no necessity, requiring no exigency, for its exercise ; to be employed at all times, without control, without question, without responsibility. When the question of the President's power of removal was debated in the first Congress, those who argued for it limited it to extreme cases. Cases, they said, might arise in which it would be absolutely necessary to remove an officer before the Senate could be assembled. An officer might become insane ; he might abscond : and from these and other supposable cases, it was said, the public service might materially suffer, if the President could not remove the incumbent. And it was further said, that there was little or no danger of the abuse of the power for party or personal objects. Xo President, it was thought, would ever commit such an out- rage on public opinion. Mr. Madison, who thought the power ought to exist, and to be exercised in cases of high necessity, declared, nevertheless, that if a President should resort to the power when not required by any public exigency, and merely for personal objects, he would deserve to be impeached. By a very small majority, I think, in the Senate, by the cast- ing vote of the Vice-President, Congress decided in favour common use as a sort of maxim or proverb suited to the case: I well remember liavinj? often beard it quoted by the partisans of the President as a just and safe rule of action in regard to the official patronage of the government. Probably a more immoral and debasing principle was never invoked, to help on the work of political corruption; and Webster had good reason to be alarmed at the ex- traordinary change of habit thus inaugurated in our National State. The whole speech is exceedingly able, of course; but there is, I think, something of special cause why the part here given should be kept in mind. 404 WEBSTER. of the existence of the power of removal, upon the grounds which I have mentioned ; granting the power in a case of clear and absolute necessity, and denying its existence every- where else. Mr. President, we should recollect that this question was discussed, and thus decided, when Washington was in the executive chair. Men knew that in his hands the power would not be abused ; nor did they conceive it possible that any of his successors could so far depart from his groat and bright ex- ample, as, by the abuse of the power, and by carrying that abuse to its utmost extent, to change the essential character of the executive from that of an impartial guardian and executor of the laws into that of the chief dispenser of party rewards. Three or four instances of removal occurred in the first twelve years of the government. At the commencement of Mr. Jef- ferson's administration, he made several others, not without producing much dissatisfaction ; so much so, that he thought it expedient to give reasons to the people, in a public paper, for even the limited extent to which he had exercised the power. He rested his justification on particular circumstances and peculiar grounds ; which, whether substantial or not, showed at least that he did not regard the power of removal as an ordinary power, still less as a mere arbitrary one, to be used as he pleased, for whatever ends he pleased, and without responsibility. As far as I remember, Sir, after the early part of Mr. Jefferson's administration, hardly an instance occurred for near thirty years. If there were any instances, they were few. But at the commencement of the present administration, the precedent of these previous cases was seized on, and a system-, a regular plan of government, a well-considered scheme for the maintenance of party power by the patronage of office, and this patronage to be created by general removal, was adopted, and has been carried into full operation. Indeed, be- fore General Jackson's inauguration, the party put the system into practice. In the last session of Mr. Adams's administra- tion, the friends of General Jackson constituted a majority in the Senate ; and nominations, made by .Mr. Adams to fill va- cancies which had occurred in the ordinary way, were post- poned, by this majority, beyond the third of March, for the pur- pose, openly avowed, cf giving the nominations to General Jackxfm. A nomination for a Judge of the Supreme Court, and many others of less magnitude, were thus disposed of. And what did we witness, Sir, when the administration actually commenced, in the full exercise of its authority ? One universal sweep, one undistinguishing blow, levelled against all who were not of the successful party. No worth, public or THE SPOILS TO THE VICTORS. 405 private, no service, civil or military, was of power to resist the relentless greediness of proscription. Soldiers of the late war, soldiers of the Revolutionary war, the very contemporaries of the liberties of the country, all lost their situations. No office was too high, and none too low ; for office was the spoil, and all the spoil*, it is said, belong to the victors! If a man, holding an office necessary for his daily support, had presented himself covered with the scars of wounds received in every battle, from Bunker Hill to Yorktown, these would not have protected him against this reckless rapacity. Nay, Sir, if Warren himself had been among the living, and had possessed any office undpr gov- ernment, high or low, he would not have been suffered to hold it a single hour, unless he could show that he had strictly com- plied with the party statutes, and h.ad put a well-marked party collar round hi 5 * own neck. Look, Sir, to the case of the late venerable Majcr Melville. He was a personification of the spirit of 1770, one of the very first to venture in the cause of lib- erty. He was of the Tea-Party ; one of the very first to expose himself to British power. And his whole life was consonant with this its beginning. Always ardent in the cause of liberty ; always a zealous friend to his country ; always acting with the party which he supposed cherished the genuine republican spirit most fervently ; always estimable and respectable in pri- vate life, he seemed armed against this miserable petty tyr- anny of party as far as man could be. But he felt its blow, and he loll. He held an office in the custom-house, and had held it for a long course of years ; and he was deprived of it, as if un- worthy to serve the country which he loved, and for whose liberties, in the vigour of his early manhood, he had thrust himself into the very jaws of its enemies. There was no mis- take in the matter. His character, his standing, his Revolu- tionary services, were all well known ; but they were known to no purpose ; they weighed not one feather against party preten- sions. It cost no pains to remove him ; it cost no compunction to wring his aged heart with this retribution from his country for his services, his zeal, and his fidelity. Sir, you will bear witness that, 1 when his successor was nominated to the Senate, and the Senate was told who it was that had been removed to make way for that nomination, its members were struck with horror. They had not conceived the administration to be capa- ble of such a thing ; and yet, they said, What can we do? The man is removed; we cannot recall him ; we can only act upon the nomination before us V Sir, you and I thought otherwise ; 1 The Hon. Nathaniel Silsbee, Webster's colleague in the Senate at the time referred to, was President of the Worcester Convention. 40G WEBSTER. and I rejoice that we did think otherwise. We thought it our duty to resist the nomination to a vacancy thus created. We thought it our duty to oppose this proscription when, and where, and as, we constitutionally could. We besought the Senate to go with us, and to take a stand before the country on this great question. We invoked them to try the deliberate sense of the people ; to trust themselves before the tribunal of public opinion ; to resist at first, to resist at last, to resist al- ways, the introduction of this unsocial, this mischievous, this dangerous, this belligerent principle, into the practice of the government. Mr. President, as far as I know, there is no civilized country on Earth, in which, on a change of rulers, there is such an inquisition for spoil as we have witnessed in this free republic. The Inaugural Address of 1829 spoke of a *tr<-hinit sole arbitress? She maintains that those laws are plain, delib- erate, and palpable violations of the Constitution ; that she has a sovereign right to decide this matter ; and that, having so de- cided, she is authorized to resist their execution by her owu SOUTH CAROLINA NULLIFICATION". 419 sovereign power ; and she declares that she will resist it, though such resistance should shatter the Union into atoms. Mr. President, I do not intend to discuss the propriety of these laws at large ; but I will ask, How are they shown to be thus plainly and palpably unconstitutional? Have they no countenance at all in the Constitution itself ? Are they quite new in the history .of the government ? Are they a sudden and violent usurpation on the rights of the States? Sir, what will the civilized world say, what will posterity say, when they learn that similar laws have existed from the very foundation of the government ; that for thirty years the power was never ques- tioned ; and that no State in the Union has more freely and un- equivocally admitted it than South Carolina herself? It is, Sir, only within a few years that Carolina has denied the constitutionality of these protective laws. The gentleman him- self has narrated to us the true history of her proceedings on this point. He says that, after the passing of the law of 1828, despairing then of being able to abolish the system of protec- tion, political men went forth among the people, and set up the doctrine that the system was unconstitutional. "And the peo- ple," says the honourable gentleman, "received the doctrine." This, I believe, is true, Sir. The people did then receive the doctrine; they had never entertained it before. Down to that period, the constitutionality of these laws had been no more doubted in South Carolina than elsewhere. And I suspect it is true, Sir, and I deem it a great misfortune, that, to the present moment, a great portion of the people of the State have never yet seen more than one side of the argument. I believe that thousands of honest men are involved in scenes now passing, led away by one-sided views of the question, and following their leaders by the impulses of an unlimited confidence. De- pend upon it, Sir, if we can avoid the shock of arms, a day for reconsideration and reflection will come ; truth and reason will act with their accustomed force, and the public opinion of South Carolina will be restored to its usual constitutional and patriotic tone. But, Sir, I hold South Carolina to her ancient, her cool, her uninfluenced, her deliberate opinions. I hold her to her own admissions, nay, to her own claims and pretensions, in 1789, in the first Congress, and to her acknowledgments and avowed sentiments through a long series of succeeding years. I hold her to the principles on which she led Congress to act in 1810 ; or, if she have changed her own opinions, I claim some respect for those who still retain the same opinions. I say she is pre- cluded from asserting that doctrines, which she has herself so 420 WEBSTER. long and so ably sustained, are plain, palpable, and dangerous violations of the Constitution. Mr. President, if the friends of nullification should be able to propagate their opinions, and give them practical effect, they would, in my judgment, prove themselves the most skilful "architects of ruin," the most effectual extinguishers of high- raised expectation, the greatest blasters of human hopes, that any age has produced. They would stand up to proclaim, in tones that would pierce the ears of half the human race, that the last great experiment of representative government had failed. They would send forth sounds, at the hearing of which the doctrine of the divine right of kings would fed, oven in its grave, a returning sensation of vitality and resuscitation. Mill- ions of eyes, of those who now feed their inherent love of lib- erty on the success of the American example, would turn away from beholding our dismemberment, and find no place on Earth whereon to rest their gratified sight. Amidft the incantations and orgies of nullification, secession, disunion, and revolution, would be celebrated the funeral rites of constitutional and republican liberty. But, Sir, if the government do its duty, if it act with firmness and with moderation, these opinions cannot prevail. J5e ;i^- sured, Sir, be assured, that, among the political sentiments of this people, the love of union is still uppermost. They will stand fast by the Constitution, and by those who defend it. I rely on no temporary expedients, on no political combinations ; but I rely on the true American feeling, the genuine patriotism of the people, and the imperative decision of the public voice. Disorder and confusion indeed may arise ; scenes of commotion and contest are threatened, and perhaps may come. With my whole heart, I pray for the continuance of the domestic peace and quiet of the country. I desire, most ardently, the restora- tion of affection and harmony to all its parts. I desire that every citizen of the whole country may look to this government with no other sentiments but those of grateful respect and at- tachment. But I cannot yield, even to kind feelings, the cause of the Constitution, the true glory of the country, and the great trust which we hold in our hands for succeeding ages. II' the Constitution cannot be maintained without meeting those scenes of commotion and contest, however unwelcome, they must come. We cannot, we must not, we dare not, omit to do that which, in our judgment, the safety of the Union requires. Not regardless of consequences, we must yet meet conse- quences; seeing the hazards which surround the discharge of public duty, it must yet be discharged. For myself, Sir, I shun no responsibility justly devolving on me, here or elsewhere, in THE PRESIDENTIAL PROTEST. 421 attempting to maintain the cause. I am tied to it by indisso- luble bands of affection and duty, and 1 shall cheerfully partake in its fortunes and its fate. I am ready to perform my own ap- propriate part, whenever and wherever the occasion may call on me, and to take my chance among those upon whom blows may fall first and fall thickest. I shall exert every faculty I possess in aiding to prevent the Constitution from being nullified, de- stroyed, or impaired ; and even should I see it fall, I will still, with a voice feeble, perhaps, but earnest as ever issued from human lips, and with fidelity and zeal which nothing shall extin- guish, call on the PEOPLE to come to its rescue. 4 THE PRESIDENTIAL PROTEST. 6 MR. PRESIDENT: I feel the magnitude of this question. We are coming to a vote which cannot fail to produce important effects on the character of the Senate and the character of the government. Unhappily, Sir, the Senate finds itself involved in a contro- 4 Pending the discussion of the Force Bill, a member of the President's Cab- inet railed on Webster at his lodgings, and earnestly requested him to take an active part in the defence of that measure. Some time before, Calhoun hud resigned the Vice-Presidency, and been elected to the Senate, as the only man fully able to maintain the cause <>f South Carolina in Confess. Early in the debate, several of the President's friends in the Senate attacked the bill with great severity, and were thrown into dismay when Webster declared his posi- tion : which he did in the following terms: "I am no man's leader; and, on the other hand, I follow no lead but that of public, duty and the star of the Constitu- tion. I believe the country is in considerable danger; I believe an unlawful combination threatens the integrity of the Union. I believe the crisis calls for a mild, temperate, forbearing, but inflexibly firm execution of the laws; and, under this conviction, I give a hearty support to the administration in all meas- vhii-h I deem to be fair, just, and necessary." :, In the Fall of LS'W, President Jackson "assumed the responsibility" of removing the public deposits from the Bank of the United States, where they had been placed by law. Before doing this, however, he found himself under the necessity of removing from office the Secretary of the Treasury, who d'-lined to execute his will in that behalf. At last, having put at the head of the Treasury a man who was ready to do his bidding, he gave a peremptory order for the removal. This was the most daring and high-handed of all his measures against the bank, and wan followed by most disastrous consequences to the business of the country. [See page 407, note 2.] On the 28th March, 1834, the Senate adopted a resolution, censuring the President's action in that re- moval. On the 17th of April, the President forwarded to the Senate an elaborate ' against that resolution. That protest drew from Wobster, on the 17th of May, the following superb speech, which I give entire. 422 "WEBSTER. versy with the President of the United States ; a man who has rendered most distinguished services to his country, has hith- erto possessed a degree of popular favour perhaps never ex- ceeded, and whose honesty of motive and integrity of purpose are still admitted by those who maintain that his administration has fallen into lamentable errors. On some of the interesting questions in regard to which the President and Senate hold opposite opinions, the more popular branch of the legislature concurs with the executive. It is not to be concealed that the Senate is engaged against imposing odds. It can sustain itself only by its own prudence and the justice of its cause. It has no patronage by which to secure friends; it can raise up no advocates through the dispensation of favours, for it has no favours to dispense. Its very consti- tution, as a body whose members are elected for a long term, is capable of being rendered obnoxious, and is daily made the subject of opprobrious remark. It is already denoim* independent of the people, and aristocratic. Xor is it, like the Other House, powerful in its numbers ; not being, like that, so large as that its members come constantly in direct and sympa- thetic contact with the whole people. Under these disadvan- tages, Sir, which, we may be assured, will be pressed and urged to the utmost length, there is but one course for us. The Senate must stand on its rendered reasons. It must put forth the grounds of its proceedings, and it must then rely on the intelligence and patriotism of the people to carry it through the contest. As an individual member of the Senate, it gives me great pain to be engaged in such a conflict with the executive govern- ment. The occurrences of the last session are fresh in the recol- lection of us all ; and, having felt it to be my duty, at that time, to give my cordial support to highly important measures of the administration, I ardently hoped that nothing might occur to place me afterwards in an attitude of opposition. 6 In all re- spects, and in every way, it would have been far more agree- able to me to have found nothing in the measures of thr utive government which I could not cheerfully support. The present occasion of difference has not been sought or made by me. It is thrust upon me, in opposition to strong opinions and wishes, on my part not concealed. The interference with the public deposits dispelled all hope of continued concurrence with the administration, and was a measure so uncalled-for, so unnecessary, and, in my judgment, so illegal and indefensible, G Alluding to the speaker's course in reference to "The Force Bill." See page 421, note 4. THE PRESIDENTIAL PROTEST. 423 that, with whatever reluctance it might be opposed, opposition was unavoidable. The paper before us has grown out of the consequences of this interference. It is a paper which cannot be treated with indifference. The doctrines which it advances, the circumstan- ces which have attended its transmission to the Senate, and the manner in which the Senate may now dispose of it, will form a memorable era in the history of the government. We are either to enter it on our journals, assent to its sentiments, and submit to its rebuke, or we must answer it, with the respect due to the chief magistrate, but with such animadversion on its doctrines as they deserve, and with the firmness imposed upon us by our public duties. I shall proceed, then, Sir, to consider the circumstances which gave rise to this Protest; to examine the principles which it attempts to establish ; and to compare those principles with the Constitution and the laws. On the 28th day of March, the Senate adopted a resolution declaring that, "in the late executive proceedings in relation to the public revenue, the President had assumed a power not conferred by the Constitution and laws, but in derogation of both." In that resolution I concurred. It is not a direct question, now again before us, whether the President really had assumed such illegal power : that point is decided, so far as the Senate ever can decide it. But the Pro- test denies that, supposing the President to have assumed such illegal power, the Senate could properly pass the resolu- tion ; or, what is the same thing, it denies that the Scnato could, in this way, express any opinion about it. It denies that the Senate has any right, by resolution, in this or any other case, to express disapprobation of the President's conduct, let that conduct be what it may; and this, one of the leading doctrines of the Protest, I propose to consider. But, as I con- curred in the resolution of the 28th of March, and did not trouble the Senate, at that time, with any statement of my own reasons, I will avail myself of this opportunity to explain, shortly, what those reasons were. In the first place, then, I have to say, that I did not vote for the resolution on the mere ground of the removal of Mr. Duane from the office of Secretary of the Treasury. Although I disapprove of the removal altogether, yet the power of removal docs exist in the President, according to the established con- struction of the Constitution ; and therefore, although in a particular case it may be abused, and, in my opinion, was abused in this case, yet its exercise cannot be justly said to be an assumption or usurpation. We must all agree that Mr. 424 "WEBSTER. Duane is out of office. lie has, therefore, been removed by a power constitutionally competent to remove him, whatever may be thought of the exercise of that power under the circum- stances of the case. If, then, the act of removing the Secretary be not the assump- tion of power which the resolution declares, in what is that as- sumption found ? Before giving a precise answer to this inquiry, allow me to recur to some of the principal previous events. At the end of the last session of Congress, the public moneys of the United States were still in their proper place. That place was fixed by the law of the land, and no power of change was conferred on any other human being than the Secretary of the Treasury. On him the power of change was conferred, to be exercised by himself, if emergency should arise, and to be ^exercised for reasons which he was bound to lay before Con- *gress. No other oilicer of the government had the slightest pretence of authority to lay his hand on these moneys for the purpose of changing the place of their custody. All the other heads of departments together could not touch them. The President could not touch them. The power of change was a trust confided to the discretion of the Secretary, and to his dis- cretion alone. The President had no more authority to take upon himself this duty, thus assigned expressly by law to the Secretary, than he had to make the animal report to Con or the annual commercial statements, or to perform any other service which the hnv specially requires of the Secretary, lie might just as well sign the warrants for moneys, in the ordinary daily disbursements of government, instead of the Secretary. The statute had assigned the especial duty of removing the deposits, if removed at all, to the Secretary of the Treasury, and to him alone. The consideration of the propriety or ne- cessity of removal must be the consideration of the Secretary; the decision to remove, his decision; and the act of removal, his act. Xow, Sir, on the 18th day of September last, a resolution was taken to remove these deposits from their legislative, that is to say, their legal custody. JJ7u)se resolution iwts this ? On the 1st day of October, they were removed. 13i/ wliose jioin tin'* done ? The papers necessary to accomplish the removal (that is, the orders and drafts) are, it is true, signed by the Secretary. The President's name is not subscribed to them ; nor does the Secretary, in any of them, recite or declare that he does the act by direction of the President, or on the Presi- dent's responsibility. In form, the whole proceeding is the proceeding of the Secretary, and, as such, had the legal effect. The deposits were removed. But whose act was it, in truth THE PRESIDENTIAL PROTEST. 425 and reality? Whose will accomplished it? On whose respon- sibility was it adopted '? These questions are all explicitly answered by the President himself, in the paper, under his own hand, read to the Cabinet on the 18th of September, and published by his authority. In this paper the President declares, in so many words, that he 1 >'u r s his Cabinet to consider the proposed measure as his own ; that its responsibility has been assumed by him ; and that he names the first day of October as a period proper for its execution. Now, Sir, it is precisely this which I deem an assumption of power not conferred by the Constitution and laws. I think the lav.- did not give this authority to the President, nor impose on him the responsibility of its exercise. It is evident that, in this removal, the Secretary was in reality nothing but the scribe : lie was the pen in the President's hand, and no more. Nothing depended on his discretion, his judgment, or his responsibility. The removal indeed has been admitted and defended in the Senate, as the direct act of the President himself. This, Sir, is what I call assumption of power. If the President had issued an order for the removal of the deposits in his own name, and under his own hand, it would have been an illegal order, and the bank would not have been at liberty to obey it. For the same reason, if the. Secretary's order had recited that it was issued by the President's direction, and on the President's authority, it would have shown, on its face, that it was illegal and invalid. Xo one can doubt that. The act of removal, to i>e lawful, must be the bona fide act of the Secretary ; his judg- ment, the result of hix deliberations, the volition of his mind. All are able to see the difference between the power to remove I'-tary from office and the power to control him, in all or any of his duties, while in office. The law charges the officer, whoevi T he may be, with the performance of certain duties. The President, with the consent of the Senate, appoints an individual to be such officer; and this individual he may re- move, if he so please ; but, until removed, he is the officer, and remains charged with the duties of his station, duties which nobody else can perform, and for the neglect or violation of which he is liable to be impeached. The distinction is visible and broad between the power of re- moval and the power to control an officer not removed. The President, it is true, may terminate hi.s political life; but he cannot control his powers and functions, and act upon him as a machine, while he is allowed to live. This power of control and direction, nowhere given, certainly, by any express provision of the Constitution or laws, is derived, by those who maintain it, 426 WEBSTER. from the right of removal ; that is to say. it is a constructive power. But the right of removal itself is but a constructive power ; it has no express warrant in the Constitution. A very important power, then, is raised by construction in the first place ; and, being thus raised, it becomes a fountain out of which other important powers, raised also by construction, are to be supplied. There is no little danger that such a mode of reasoning may be carried too far. It cannot be maintained that the power of direct control necessarily flows from the power of removal. Suppose it had been decided in 1789, when the ques- tio'n was debated, that the President does not possess the power of removal: will it be contended that, in that case, his right of interference with the acts and duties of executive offi- cers would be less than it now is? The reason of the thing would seem to be the other way. If the President may remove an incumbent when he becomes satisfied of his unfaithfulness and incapacity, there would appear to be less necessity to give him also a right of control, than there would be if he could not remove him. AVe may try this question by supposing it to arise in a judi- cial proceeding. If the Secretary of the Treasury were im- peached for removing the deposits, could he justify himself by saying that he did it by the President's direction ? If he could," then no executive officer could ever be impeached, who obeys the President; and the whole notion of making such officers impeachable at all would be farcical. If he could not so justify himself, (and all will allow he could not,) the reason can only be, that the act of removal is his own act ; the power, a power confided to him, for the just exercise of which the law looks to his discretion, his honesty, and his direct responsibility. Now, Sir, the President wishes the world to understand that he himself decided on the question of the removal of the de- posits ; that he took the whole of the measure upon himself ; that he wished it to be considered his own act ; that he not only himself decided that the thing should be done, but regulated its details also, and named the day for carrying it into effect. I have always entertained a very erroneous view of the par- tition of powers, and of the true nature of official responsibility under our Constitution, if this be not a plain case of tl. sumption of power. The legislature had fixed a place, by law, for the keeping of the public money. They had, at the same time, and by the same law, created and conferred a power of removal, to be exor- cised contingently. This power they had vested in the Secre- tary, by express words. The law did not say that the deposits should be made in the bank, unless the President should order THE PRESIDENTIAL PROTEST. 427 otherwise ; but it did say that they should be made there, un- less the Secretary of the Treasury should order otherwise. I put it to the plain sense and common candour of all men, whether the discretion which was thus to be exercised over the subject was not the Secretary's own personal discretion ; and whether, therefore, the interposition of the authority of another, acting directly and conclusively on the subject, deciding the whole question, even in its particulars and details, be not an assumption of power. The Senate regarded this interposition as an encroachment by the executive on other branches of the government ; as an interference with the legislative disposition of the public treas- ure. It was strongly and forcibly urged, yesterday, by the hon- ourable member from South Carolina, that the true and only mode of preserving any balance of power, in mixed govern- ment?, is to keep an exact balance. This is very true ; and to this end encroachment must be resisted at the first step. Tho question is, therefore, whether, upon the true principles of tho Constitution, this exercise of power by the President can be justified. Whether the consequences be prejudicial or not, if there be an illegal exercise of power, it is to be resisted in tho proper manner. Even if no harm or inconvenience result from transgressing the boundary, the intrusion is not to be suffered to pass unnoticed. Every encroachment* groat or small, is im- portant enough to awaken the attention of those who are intrusted with the preservation of a constitutional government. ~\Ve are not to wait till great public mischiefs come, till the gov- ernment is overthrown, or liberty itself put in extreme jeopardy. We should not be worthy sons of our fathers, were we, so to regard great questions affecting the general freedom. Those fathers accomplished the lie volution on a strict question of principle. The Parliament of Great Britain asserted a right to tax the Colonies in all cases whatsoever ; and it was precisely on this question that they made the Revolution turn. Tho amount of taxation was trifling, but the claim itself was incon- sistent with liberty ; and that was, in their eyes, enough. It was against the recital of an Act of Parliament, rather than against any suffering under its enactments, that they took up arms. They went to war against a preamble. They fought seven years against a declaration. They poured out their treasures and their blood like water, in a contest in opposition to an assertion which those less sagacious and not so well schooled in the principles of civil liberty would have regarded as barren phraseology, or mere parade of words. They saw in the claim of tho British Parliament a seminal principle of mis- chief, the germ of unjust power ; they detected it, dragged it 428 WEBSTER. forth from underneath its plausible disguises, struck at it ; nor did it elude either their steady eye or their well-directed blow till they had extirpated and destroyed it, to the smallest fibre. On this question of principle, while actual suffering was yet afar off, they raised their flag against a power, to which, for purposes of foreign conquest and subjugation, Home, in the height of her glory, is not to be compared ; a power which has dotted over the surface of the whole globe with her possessions and military posts, whose morning drum-beat, following the Sun, and keeping company with the hours, circles the Earth daily with one continuous and unbroken strain of the martial airs of England. The necessity of holding strictly to the principle upon which free governments are constructed, and to the precise lines which fix the partitions of power between different branches, is as plain, if not as cogent, as that of resisting, as our fathers did, the strides of the parent country upon the rights of the Colo- nies ; because, whether the power which exceeds its just limits be foreign or domestic, whether it be the encroachment of all branches on the rights of the people, or that of one branch on the rights of others, in either case the balanced and well- adjusted machinery of free government is disturbed, and, if the derangement go on, the whole system must fall. But the case before us is not a case of merely theoretic in- fringement ; nor is it one of trilling importance. Far otherwise. It respects one of the highest and most important of all the powers of government ; that is to say, the custody and control of the public money. The act of removing the deposits, which I now consider as the President's act, and which his friends on this floor defend as his act, took the national purse from beneath the security and guardianship of the law, and disposed of its contents, in parcels, in such places of deposit as he chose to select. At this very moment, every dollar of the public treasure is subject, so far as respects its custody and safe-keep- ing, to his unlimited control. We know not where it is to-day ; still less do we know where it may be to-morrow. Eut, Mr. President, this is not all. There is another part of the case, which has not been so much discussed, but which ap- pears to me to be still more indefensible in its character. It is something which may well teach us the tendency of power to move forward with accelerated pace, if it be allowed to take the first step. The 13ank of the United States, in addition to the services rendered to the treasury, gave for its charter, and for the use of the public deposits, a bonus or outright sum of one million and a half of dollars. This sum was paid by the bank into the treasury soon after the coinmeucement of its charter. THE PRESIDENTIAL PROTEST. 429 In the Act which passed both Houses for renewing the charter, in 1832, it was provided that the bank, for the same considera- tion, should pay two hundred thousand dollars a-year, during the period for which it was proposed to renew it. A similar provision is in the bill which I asked leave to introduce some weeks ago. Xow, Sir, this shows that the custody of the de- posits is a benefit for which a bank may well afford to pay a large annual sum. The banks which now hold the deposits pay nothing to the public ; they give no bonus, they pay no annuity. But this loss of so much money is not the worst part of the case, nor that which ought most to alarm us. Although they pay nothing to the public, they do pay, nevertheless, such sums, and for such uses, as may be agreed upon between themselves and the executive government. We are officially informed that an oilicer is appointed by the Secretary of the Treasury to in- spect or superintend these selected banks ; and this officer is compensated by a salary fixed by the executive, agreed to by the banks, and paid by them. I ask, Sir, if there can be a more irregular or a more illegal transaction than this ? Whose money is it out of which this salary is paid? Is it not money justly due to the United States, and paid, because it is so due, for the advantage of holding the deposits? If a dollar is received on that account, is not its only true destination into the general treasury of the government? And who has authority, without law, to create an olliee, to fix a salary, and to pay that salary out of this money ? Here is an inspector or supervisor of the deposit banks. But what law has provided for such an officer? What commission has he received? Who concurred in his ap- pointment? What oath does he take? How is he to be pun- ished or impeached, if he colludes with any of these banks to embezzle the public money or defraud the government? The value of the use of this public money to the deposit banks is probably two hundred thousand dollars a year ; or, if less than that, it is yet, certainly, a very great sum. May the President appoint whatever officers he pleases, with whatever duties he 1 leases, and pay them as much as he pleases out of these moneys thus paid by the banks, for the sake of having the deposit*? .Mr. President, the executive claim of power is exactly this, that the President may keep the money of the public in what- ever banks he chooses, on whatever terms he chooses, and to apply the sums which these banks are willing to pay for its use to whatever purposes lie chooses. These sums are not to come into the general treasury. They are to be appropriated before they get there ; they are never to be brought under the control of Congress ; they are to be paid to^ officers and agents not 430 WEBSTER. known to the law, not nominated to the Senate, and responsible to nobody but the executive itself. I ask gentlemen if all this be lawful? Are they prepared to defend it? AVill they stand lip and justify it? In my opinion, Sir, it is a dear and a most dangerous assumption of power. It is the creation of office without law ; the appointment to office without consulting the Senate ; the establishment of a salary without law ; and the payment of that salary out of a fund which is itself derived from the use of the public treasures. This. Sir, is my other iva-srm for concurring in the vote of the 28th of March ; and on grounds I leave the propriety of that vote, so far as I am concerned with it, to be judged of by the country. But, Sir, the President denies the power of the Senate to pass any such resolution, on any ground whatever. Suppose the declaration contained in the resolution to be true ; suppose the President had, in fact, assumed powers not granted to him: does the Senate possess the right to declare its opinion, affirm- ing this fact, or does it not? I maintain that the Senate does possess such a power ; the President denies it. Mr. President, we need not look far, nor search deep, for the foundation of this right in the Senate. It is clearly visible, and close at hand. In the first place, it is the right of self-defence. In the second place, it is a right founded on the duty of repre- sentative bodies, in a free government, to defend the public liberty against encroachment. We must presume that the Sen- ate honestly entertained the opinion expressed in the resolution of the 28th of March ; and, entertaining that opinion, its right to express it is but the necessary consequence of its right to defend its own constitutional authority, as one branch of the government. This is its clear right, and this, too, is its impera- tive duty. If one or both the other branches of the government happen to do that which appears to us inconsistent with the constitu- tional rights of the Senate, will any one say that the Senate is yet bound to be passive, and to be silent? to do nothing, and to say nothing? Or, if one branch appears to encroach on the rights of the other two, have these two no power of remon- strance, complaint, or resistance? Sir, the question may be put in a still more striking form. Has the Senate a right to hare an opinion in a case of this kind ? If it may have an opinion, how is that opinion to be ascertained but by resolution and vote? The objection must go the whole length ; it must maintain that the Senate has not only no right to express opinions, but no right to form opinions, on the conduct of the executive govern- ment, though in matters intimately affecting the power duties of the Senate itself. It is not possible, Sir, that such a THE PRESIDENTIAL PROTEST. 431 doctrine can be maintained for a single moment. All political bodies resist what they deem encroachments, by resolutions expressive of their sentiments, and their purpose to resist such encroachments. When such a resolution is presented for its consideration, the question is, whether it be true ; not whether the body has authority to pass it, admitting it to be true. The Senate, like oilier public bodies, is perfectly justifiable in de- fending, in this mode, either its legislative or executive author- ity. The usages of Parliament, the practice in our State legis- latures and assemblies, both before and since the Revolution, and precedents in the Senate itself, fully maintain this right. The case of the Panama mission is in point. In that case, Mr. Branch, from North Carolina, introduced a resolution, which, after reciting that the President, in his annual message, and in his communication to the Senate, had asserted that he possessed an authority to make certain appointments, although the appoint- mf-idit had not been made, went on to declare that " a silent acqui- ttomot on the part of this body, may, at some future time, be ilraini into danr/cmux precedent" ; and to resolve, therefore, that the President does not possess the right or power said to be claimed by him. This resolution was discussed, and finally laid on the table. But the question discussed was, whether the resolution was correct, in fact and principle ; not whether the Senate had any right to pass such resolution. So far as I remember, no one pretended that, if the President had exceeded his authority, the Senate might not so declare by resolution. No one ventured to contend that, whether the rights of the Senate were invaded or not, the Senate must hold its peace. The Protest labours strenuously to show that the Senate adopted the resolution of the 28th of March, under its judicial authority. The reason of this attempt is obvious enough. If the Senate, in its judicial character, has been trying the Presi- dent, then he has not had a regular and formal trial ; and, on that ground, it is hoped the public sympathy may be moved. But the Senate has acted not in its judicial, but in its legislative capacity. As a legislative body, it has defended its own just authority, and the authority of the other branch of the legisla- ture. Whatever attacks our own rights and privileges, or what- ever encroaches on the power of both House.?, we may oppose and resist, ly declaration, resolution, or other similar proceed- It' \ve look to the hooks of precedents, if we examine the journals of legislative bodies, we find everywhere instances of such proceedi 1 It is to be observed, Sir, that the Protest imposes silence on the House of Representatives as well as on the Senate. It de- clares that no power is conferred on either branch of the legis- 432 WEBSTER. lature to consider or decide upon official acts of the executive, for the purpose of censure, and without a view to legislation or impeachment. This, I think, Sir, is pretty high-toned preten- sion. According to this doctrine, neither House could assert its own rights, however the executive might assail them; neither House could point out the danger to the people, however fast executire encroachment might be extending itself, or whatever danger it might threaten to the public liberties. If the two Houses of Congress may not express an opinion of executive conduct by resolution, there is the same reason why they should not express it in any other form, or by any other mode of pro- ceeding. Indeed, the Protest limits both Houses, expressly, to the case of impeachment. If the House of lu-pivsentatives are not about to impeach the President, they have nothing to say of his measures or of his conduct; and unless the Senate are engaged in trying an impeachment, their mouths, too, are stopped. It is the practice of the executive to send us an annual message, in which he rehearses the general proceedings of the executive for the past year. This message we refer to our com- mittees for consideration. But, according to the doctrine of the Protest, they can express no opinion upon any executive pro- ceeding upon which it gives information. Suppose* the Presi- dent had told us, in his la>t annual message, what he had previously told us in his cabinet paper, that the removal of the deposits was ///.s act, done on his responsibility ; and that the Secretary of the Treasury had exercised no discretion, formed no judgment, presumed to have no opinions whatever, on the subject. This part of the message would have been referred to the Committee on Finance; but what could they say? They think it shows a plain violation of the Constitution and the laws ; but the President is not impeached; therefore they ran express no censure. They think it a direct invasion of legisla- tive power, but they must not say so. They may indeed com- mend, if they can. The grateful business of praise is lawful to them ; but if, instead of commendation and applause, they find cause for disapprobation, censure, or alarm, the Protest enjoins upon them absolute silence. Formerly, Sir, it was a practice for the President to meet both Houses, at the opening of the session, and deliver a speech, as is still the usage of some of the State legislatures. To this speech there was an answer from each House, and those answers expressed, freely, the sentiments of the House upon all the merits and faults of the administration. The discussion of the topics contained in the speech, and the debate on the an- usually drew out the whole force of parties, and lasted some- times a week. President Washington's conduct, in every year THE PRESIDENTIAL PROTEST. 433 of his administration, was thus freely and publicly canvassed. He did not complain of it ; he did not doubt that both Houses had a perfect right to comment, with the utmost latitude, con- sistent with decorum, upon all his measures. Answers, or amendments to answers, were not unfrequently proposed, very hostile to his own course of public policy, if not sometimes bor- dering on disrespect. And when they did express respect and regard, there were votes ready to be recorded against the ex- pression of those sentiments. To all this President Washington took no exception ; for he well knew that these, and similar proceedings, belonged to the power of popular bodies. But if the President were now to meet us with a speech, and should inform us of measures, adopted by himself in the recess, which should appear to us the most plain, palpable, and dangerous violations of the Constitution, we must nevertheless either keep respectful silence, or fill our answer merely with courtly phrases of approbation. Mr. President, I know not who wrote this Protest, 7 but I con- fe>s I am astonished, truly astonished, as well at the want of knowledge which it displays of constitutional law, as at the high and dangerous pretensions which it puts forth. Neither branch of the legislature can express censure upon the Presi- dent's conduct I Suppose that we should see him enlisting troops and raising an army, can we say nothing, and do noth- ing V Suppose he were to declare war against a foreign power, and put the army and the fleet in action ; are we still to be silent? Suppose we should see him borrowing money on the credit of the United States ; are we yet to wait for impeach- ment? Indeed, Sir, in regard to this borrowing money on the credit of the United States, I wish to call the a^ention of the S"iiati not only to what might happen, but to what has actually happened. We are informed that the Post-Office Department, a department over which the President claims the same control as over the rest, ha a actually borrowed near half a million vf money on the MtJii. <>f the United States. Mr. President, the first power granted to Congress by the Constitution is the power to lay taxes ; the second, the power to borrow money on the credit of the United States. Now, Sir, where does the executive find its authority, in or through any department, to borrow money without authority of Congress? This proceeding appears to me wholly illegal, and reprehensible in a very high degree. It may be said that it is not true that 7 Jt was pretty well understood at the time, that the Protest was written by the Hon. L'dward Livingston, then Secretary of State; but Webster was, in propriety, bound to ignore this. Mr. Livingston was a very able, accomplished, and honourable man; but probably u better lawyer than statesman. 434 WEBSTER. this money is borrowed on the credit of the United States, but that it is borrowed on the credit of the Post-Office Department. But that would be mere evasion. The department is but a name. It is an office, and nothing more. The banks have not lent this money to any officer. If Congress should abolish the whole department to-morrow, would the banks not expect the United States to replace this borrowed money? The money, then, is borrowed on the credit of the United States, an act which Congress alone is competent to authorize. If the Office Department may borrow money, so may the AVur Depart- ment, and the Navy Department. If half a million may be borrowed, ten millions may be borrowed. What, then, if this transaction shall be justified, is to hinder the executive from borrowing money to maintain fleets and armies, or for any other purpose, at his pleasure, without any authority of law? Yet even this, according to the doctrine of the Protest, we have no right to complain of. AYe have no right to declare that an exec- utive department has violated the Constitution and broken the law, by borrowing money on the credit of the United States. Nor could we make a similar declaration, if we were to see the executive, by means of this borrowed money, enlisting armies and equipping fleets. And yet, Sir, the President has found no difficulty, heretofore, in expressing his opinions, in a p"_ called for by the exercise of any official duty, upon the conduct and proceedings of the two Houses of Congress. At the commence- ment of this session, he sent us a message, commenting on the land bill which the two Houses passed at the end of the last session. That bill he had not approved, nor had he returned it with objections. Congress was dissolved; and the bill, there- fore, was completely dead, and could not be revived. No com- munication from him could have the least possible effect as an official act. Yet he saw fit to send a message on the subject, and in that message he very freely declares his opinion that the bill which had passed both Houses bc(jan irilh (in entire subver- sion of every one of the compacts by which the United Slates became possessed of their Vt'cstein domain ; that one of its provisions was in direct and undisguised violation of Hie plcdyc n. Sir Edward Coke and Mr. Granville were not satisfied with this title to their privileges ; and, under their lead, the House THE PRESIDENTIAL PROTEST. 437 entered on its journals a resolution asserting its privileges, as its own undoubted right, and manifesting a determination to maintain them as such. This, says the historian, so enraged his Majesty, that he sent for the journal, had it brought into the Council, and there, in the presence of his lords and great officers of State, tore out the offensive resolution with his own royal hand. He then dissolved Parliament, and sent its most refractory members to the Tower. I have no fear, certainly, Sir, that this English example will be followed, on this occa- sion, to its full extent ; nor would I insinuate that any thing outrageous has been thought of, or intended, except outrageous pretensions ; but such pretensions I must impute to the author of this Protest, whoever that author may be. When this and the other House shall lose the freedom of speech and debate ; when they shall surrender the rights of publicly and freely canvassing all important measures of the executive ; when they shall not be allowed to maintain their own authority and their own privileges by vote, declaration, or resolution, they will then be no longer free, representatives of a free people, but slaves themselves, and fit instruments to make slaves of others. The Protest, Mr. President, concedes what it doubtless re- gards as a liberal right of discussion to the people themselves. But its language, even in acknowledging this right of the people to discuss the conduct of their servants, is qualified and pecul- iar. The free people of the United States, it declares, have an undoubted right to discuss the official conduct of the President, in such language and form as they may think proper, "subject only to the restraints of truth and justice." But, then, who is to be judge of this truth and justice ? Are the people to judge for themselves, or are others to judge for them? The Protest is here speaking of political rights, and not moral rights ; and if ints are imposed on political rights, it must follow, of course, that others are to decide whenever the case arises whether these restraints have been violated. It is strange that the writer of the Protest did not perceive that, by using this language, he was pushing tlie President into a direct avowal of the doctrines of 1798. 8 The text of the Protest and the text of the obnoxious Act of that year are nearly identical. But, Sir, if the people have a right to discuss the official con- duct of the executive, so have their representatives. We have been taught to regard a representative of the people as a senti- 8 The allusion is to what is known in history as the Sedition Act, which was odious to tho people Tor the very reason that it laid restrictions oil freedom of speech in regard to tho doiugs of the government. 438 WEBSTER. nel on the watch-tower of liberty. Is he to be blind, though visible danger approaches? Is he to be deaf, though sounds of peril Jill the air? Is he to be dumb, while a thousand duties impel him to raise the cry of alarm? Is he not, rather, to catch the lowest whisper which breathes intention or purpose of encroachment on the public liberties, and to give his voice breath and utterance at the first appearance of danger? Is not his eye to traverse the whole horizon with the keen and eager vision of an unhooded hawk, 9 detecting, through all disguises, every enemy advancing, in any form, towards the citadel which he guards? Sir, this watchfulness for public liberty ; this duty of foreseeing danger and proclaiming it; this promptitude and boldness in resisting attacks on tho Constitution from any quarter; this defence of established landmarks; this fearless resistance of whatever would transcend or remove them, all belong to the representative character, are interwoven with its very nature. If deprived of them, an active, intelligent, faith- ful agent of the people will be converted into an unresisting and passive instrument of power. A representative body, which gives up these rights and duties, gives itself up. It is a repre- sentative body no longer. It has broken the tie between and its constituents, and henceforth is tit only to be regarded as an inert, self-sacriiicad mass, from which all appropriate' prin- ciple of vitality has departed for ever. 1 have thus endeavoured to vindicate the right of the Senate to pass the resolution of the 28th of March, notwithstanding the denial of that right in the Protest. But there are other sentiments and opinions expressed in the Protest, of the very highest importance, and which demand nothing less than our utmost attention. The first object of a free people is the preservation of their liberty ; and liberty is only to be preserved by maintaining constitutional restraints and just divisions of political power. Nothing is more deceptive or more dangerous than the pre- tence of a desire to simplify government. The simplest gov- ernments are despotisms ; the next simplest, limited mon- archies; but all republics, all governments of law, must impose. numerous limitations and qualifications of authority, and give many positive and many qualified rights. In other words, they must be subject to rule and regulation. This is the very essence of free political institutions. The spirit of liberty is indeed a bold and fearless spirit; but it is also a sharp-sighted spirit ; it is a cautious, sagacious, discriminating, far-seeing intelli- 9 A reference to the old sport of falconry. A cap or hood was often drawn over the hawk's head for the purpose of blinding it. THE PRESIDENTIAL PROTEST. 439 gence ; it is jealous of encroachment, jealous of power, jealous of man. It demands checks ; it seeks for guards ; it insists on securities ; it intrenches itself behind strong defences, and fortifies itself with all possible care against the assaults of ambition and passion. It does not trust the amiable weak- nesses of human nature, and therefore it will not permit power to overstep its prescribed limits, though benevolence, good intent, and patriotic purpose come along with it. Neither does it satisfy itself with flashy and temporary resistance to illegal authority. Far otherwise. It seeks for duration and perma- nence. It looks before and after ; and, building on the experi- ence of ages which are past, it labours diligently for the benefit of ages to come. This is the nature of constitutional liberty ; and this is our liberty, if we will rightly understand and pre- serve it. Every free government is necessarily complicated, because all such governments establish restraints, as well on the power of government itself as on that of individuals. If we will abolish the distinction of branches, and have but one branch ; if we will abolish jury trials, and leave all to the judge ; if we will then ordain that the legislator shall himself be that judge ; and if wo will place the executive power in the same hands, we may readily simplify government. We may easily bring it to the simplest of all possible forms. a pure despotism. But a separation of departments, so far as practi- cable, and the preservation of clear lines of division between them, is the fundamental idea in the creation of all our consti- tutions ; and doubtless the continuance of regulated liberty depends on maintaining these boundaries. Jn the progress, Sir, of the government of the United States, we seem exposed to two classes of dangers or disturbances ; one external, the other internal. It may happen that collisions arise between this government and the governments of the States. That case belongs to the first class. A memorable instance of this existed last year. It was my conscientious opinion, on that occasion, that the authority claimed by an individual State was subversive of the just powers of this government, and indeed incompatible with its existence. I gave a hearty cooperation, therefore, to measures which the crisis seemed to require. We have now before us what up- 1> -ars, to my judgment, to be an instance of the latter kind. A contest has arisen between different branches of the same government, interrupting their harmony, and threatening to disturb their balance. It is of the highest importance, there- fore, to examine the question carefully, and to decide it justly. Tho separation of the powers of government into three depart- ments, though all our constitutions profess to be founded on it. 440 WEBSTER. has nevertheless never been perfectly established in any govern- ment of the world, and perhaps never can be. The general prin- ciple is of inestimable value, and the leading lines of distinction sufficiently plain ; yet there are powers of so undecided a char- acter, that they do not seem necessarily to range themselves under either head. And most of our constitutions, too, having laid down the general principle, immediately create exceptions. There do not exist, in the general science of government, or the received maxims of political law, such precise definitions as enable us always to say of a given power whether it he legisla- tive, executive, or judicial. And this is one reason, doubtless, why the Constitution, in conferring power on all the depart- ments, proceeds not by general definition, but by specific enu- meration. And, again, it grants a power in general terms, but yet, in the same, or some other article or section, imposes a lim- itation or qualification on the grant; and the grant and the lim- itation must of course be construed together. Thus thi stitution says that all legislative power, therein granted, shall be vested in Congress, which Congress shall consist of a Senate and House of Representatives ; and yet, in another article, it gives to the President a qualified negative over all Acts of Co; So the Constitution declares that the judicial power shall be vested in one Supreme Court, and sucli inferior courts as Con- gress may establish. It gives, nevertheless, in another provision, judicial power to the Senate ; and, in like manner, though it declares that the executive power shall be vested in the PIVM- dent, using, in the immediate context, no words of limitation, yet it elsewhere subjects the treaty-making power, and the aj>- pointing power, to the concurrence of the Senate. The ir ible inference from these considerations is, that the mere nomination of a department, as one of the three great and commonly-acknowledged departments of government, does not confer on that department any power at all. Notwithstanding the departments are called the legislative, the executive, and the judicial, we must yet look into the provisions of the Consti- tution itself, in order to learn, first, what powers the Constitu- tion regards as legislative, executive, and judicial ; and, in the next place, what portions or quantities of these powers are con- ferred on the respective departments ; because no one will contend that all legislative power belongs to Congress, all ex- ecutive power to the President, or all judicial power to the courts of the United States. The first three articles of the Constitution, as all know, are employed in prescribing the organization, and enumerating the powers, of the three departments. The first article treats ot the legislature, and its first section is, "All legislative power, THE PRESIDENTIAL PROTEST. 441 herein granted, shall be vested in a Congress of the United States, which shall consist of a Senate and House of Represent- atives." The second article treats of the executive power, and its first section declares that "the executive power shall be vested in a President of the United States of America." The third article treats of the judicial power, and its first section declares that "the judicial power of the United States shall be vested in one Supreme Court, and in such inferior courts as the Congress may, from time to time, ordain and establish." It is too plain to be doubted, I think, Sir, that these descrip- tions of the persons or officers in whom the executive and the judicial powers are to be vested no more define the extent of the grant of those powers, than the words quoted from the first article describe the extent of the legislative grant to Congress. All these several titles, heads of articles, or introductory clauses, with the general declarations which they contain, serve to designate the departments, and to mark the general distribu- tion of powers ; but in all the departments, in the executive and judicial as well as in the legislative, it would be unsafe to con- tend for any specific power under such clauses. If we look into the State Constitutions, we shall find the line of distinction between the departments still less perfectly drawn, although the general principle of the distinction is laid down in most of them, and in some of them in very positive and emphatic terms. In some of these States, notwithstanding the principle of distribution is adopted and sanctioned, the legisla- ture appoints the judges ; and in others it appoints both the governor and the judges ; and in others, again, it appoints not only the judges, but all other officers. The inferences which, I think, follow from these views of the subject, are two: First, that the denomination of a department docs not fix the limits of the powers conferred on it, nor even their c-xact nature ; and, second, (which indeed follows from the first,) that, in 'our American governments, the chief executive magistrate does not necessarily, and by force of his general character of supreme executive, possess the appointing power. JIc may have it, or he may not, according to the particular pro- visions applicable to each case in the respective Constitutions. The President appears to have taken a different view of this subject. He seems to regard the appointing power as originally and inherently in the executive, and as remaining absolute in his hands, except so far as the Constitution restrains it. This I do not agree to, and shall have occasion hereafter to examine the question further. I have intended thus far only to insist on tin; high and indispensable duty of maintaining the division of power us the Constitution has marked that division out, and to 442 WEBSTER. oppose claims of authority not founded on express grants or necessary implication, but sustained merely by argument or inference from names or denominations given to departments. Mr. President, the resolutions now before us declare that the Protest asserts powers as belonging to the President incon- sistent with the authority of the two Houses of Congress, and inconsistent with the Constitution ; and that the Protest itself is a breach of privilege. I believe all this to be true. The doctrines of the Protest are inconsistent with the au- thority of the two Houses, because, in my judgment* they deny the just extent of the law-making power. I take the Protest as it was sent to us, without inquiring how far the subsequent message has modified or explained it. It is singular indeed, that a paper, so long in preparation, so elaborate in composi- tion, and which is put forth for so high a purpose as the Pro- tost avows, should not be able to stand an hour's discussion, before it became evident that it was indispensably nec< to alter or explain its contents. Explained or unexplained, lunvever, the paper contains sentiments which justify u think, in adopting these resolutions. In the first place, I think the Protest a clear breach of priv- ilege. It is a reproof or rebuke of the Senate, in language hardly respectful, for the exercise of a power clearly belonging to it as a legislative body. It entirely misrepresents the pro- ceedings of the Senate. I find this paragraph in it, among others of a similar tone and character: "A majority of the Senate, whose interference with the preliminary question has, for the best of all reasons, been studiously excluded, anticipate the action of the House of Representatives, assume not only the function which belongs exclusively to that body, but con- vert themselves into accusers, witnesses, counsel, and judges, and prejudge the whole case ; thus presenting the appalling spectacle, in a free State, of judges going through a laboured preparation for an impartial hearing and decision, by a pre- vious ex parte investigation and sentence against the supposed offender." Xo\v, Sir, this paragraph, I am bound to say, is a total mis- representation of the proceedings of the Senate. A majority of the Senate have not anticipated the House of Representatives ; they have not assumed the functions of that body ; they have not converted themselves into accusers, witnesses, counsel, or judges ; they have made no ex parte investigation ; they have given no sentence. This paragraph is an elaborate perversion of the whole design and the whole proceedings of the Senate. A Protest, sent to us by the President, against votes which the Senate has an unquestionable right to pass, and containing, too, TUE PRESIDENTIAL PROTEST. 443 sucli a misrepresentation of these votes as this paragraph mani- fests, is a breach of privilege. But there is another breach of privilege. The President interferes between the members of the Senate and their con- stituents, and charges them with acting contrary to the will of those constituents. He says it is his right and duty to look to the journals of the Senate to ascertain who voted for the resolution of the 28th of March, and then to show that indi- vidual Senators have, by their votes on that resolution, diso- beyed the instructions or violated the known will of the legisla- tures who appointed them. All this he claims as his right and his duty. And where does he find any such right or any such duty? What right has he to send a message to either House of Congress, telling its members that they disobey the will of their constituents? Has any English sovereign since Crom- well's time dared to send such a message to Parliament? Sir, if he can tell us that some of us disobey our constituents, he can tell us that all do so ; and if we consent to receive this lan- guage from him, there is but one remaining step ; and that is, that, since we thus disobey the will of our constituents, he should disperse us and send us home. In my opinion, the first step in this process is as distinct a breach of privilege as the l.'i.st. If Cromwell's examples shall be followed out, it will not be more clear then than it is now that the privileges of the Senate have been violated. There is yet something, Sir, which surpasses all this ; and that is, that, after this direct interfer- ence, after pointing out those Senators whom he would repre- sent as having disobeyed the known will of their constituents, he (HsrliiiiiH* fill ilfxir/n nf interfering ai alii Sir, who could be the writer of a message, which, in the iirst place, makes the President assert such monstrous pretensions, and, in the next lino, affront the understanding of the Senate by disavowing all right to do that very thing which he is doing ? If there be any thing, Sir, in this message, more likely than the rest of it to move one from his equanimity, it is this disclaimer of all design to interfere with the responsibility of members of the Senate to their constituents, after such interference had already been made, in the same paper, in the most objectionable and offen- sive form. If it were not for the purpose of telling these Sen- ators that they disobeyed the will of the legislatures of the i they represent, for what purpose was it that the Protest has pointed out the four Senators, and paraded against them the sentiments of their legislatures? There can be no other purpose. The Protest says indeed, that "these facts belong to the history of these proceedings" I To the history of what proceedings ? To any proceeding to which the President was 444 WEBSTER. party? To any proceeding to which the Senate was party? Have they any thing to do with the resolution of the 28th of March? But it adds, that these facts are important to the just development rf the principZef and interests inrolred in tlic pr<- ings. All this might be said of any other facts. It is mere words. To what principles, to what interests, are these facts important? They cannot be important but in one point of view ; and that is as proof, or evidence, that the Senators have diso- beyed instructions, or acted against the known will of their constituents, in disapproving the President's conduct. They have not the slightest bearing in any other way. They do not make the resolution of the Senate more or less true, nor its right to pass it more or less clear. Sir, these proceedings of the legislatures were introduced into this Protest for the very pur- pose, and no other, of showing that members of the Senate have acted contrary to the will of their constituents. Every man sees and knows this to have been the sole design ; and any other pretence is a mockery to our understandings. And this purpose is, in my opinion, an unlawful purpose ; it is an unjus- tifiable intervention between us and our constituents ; and is therefore a manifest and llagrant breach of privile: In the next place, the assertions of the Protest are inconsist- ent with the just authority of Congress, because they claim for the President a power, independent of Congress, to possess the custody and control of the public treasures. Let this point be accurately examined ; and, in order to avoid mistake, I will read the precise words of the Protest : "The custody of the public property, under such regulations as may be prescribed by legislative authority, has always been considered an appropriate function of the executive department in this and all other governments. In accordance with this principle, every species of property belonging to the United States (excepting that which is in the use of the several coordi- nate departments of the government, as means to aid them in performing their appropriate functions) is in charge of olluvrs appointed by the President, whether it be lands, or buildings, or merchandise, or provisions, or clothing, or arms and munitions of war. The superintendents and keepers of the whole are ap- pointed by the President^ and removable at his will. "Public money is but a species of public property. It cannot be raised by taxation or customs, nor brought into the treasury in any other way except by law ; but, whenever or howsoever obtained, its custody always has been, and always must be, un- less the Constitution be changed, intrusted to the executive department. No officer can be created by Congress, for the purpose of taking charge of it, whose appointment would not, THE PRESIDENTIAL PROTEST. 445 by the Constitution, at once devolve on the President, and who would not be responsible to him for the faithful performance of his duties." And, in another place, it declares that "Congress cannot, therefore, take out of the hands of the executive department the custody of the public property or money, without an as- sumption of executive power, and a subversion of the first prin- ciples of the Constitution." These, Sir, are propositions which cannot receive too much attention. They affirm that the custody of the public money constitutionally and necessarily belongs to the executive ; and that, until the Constitution is changed, Con- gress cannot take it out of his hands, nor make any provision for its custody, except by such superintendents and keepers as are appointed by the President, and removable at his will. If these assertions be correct, we have indeed a singular Constitu- tion for a republican government ; for we give the executive the control, the custody, and the possession of the public treas- ury, by original constitutional provision ; and when Congress appropriates, it appropriates only what is already in the Presi- dent's hands. Sir, T hold these propositions to be sound in neither branch. I maintain that the custody of the public money does not neces- sarily belong to the executive, under this government; and I hold that Congress may so dispose of it, that it shall bo under the superintendence of keepers not appointed by the President, nor removable at his will. I think it competent for Congress to declare, as Congress did declare in the bank charter, that the public deposits should be made in the bank. When in the bank, they were not kept by persons appointed by the Presi- dent, or removable at his will. He could not change that cus- tody ; nor could it be changed at all, but according to provisions made in the law itself. There was indeed a provision in the, law authorizing the Secretary to change the custody. But sup- pose there had been no such provision ; suppose the contingent power had not been given to the Secretary ; would it not have been a lawful enactment? Might not the law have provided that the public moneys should remain in the bank, until Con- it self should otherwise order, leaving no power of removal anywhere else? And if such provision had been made, what power, or custody, or control, would the President have pos- i over them ? Clearly, none at all. The Act of May, 1800, directed custom-house bonds, in places where the bank which was then in existence was situated, or where it had branches, to be deposited in the bank or its branches for collection, without the reservation of any power of removal to the Secretary or any- body else. How, Sir, this was an unconstitutional law, if the 446 AYEBSTEE. Protest, in the part now under consideration, be correct; be- cause it placed the public money in a custody beyond the con- trol of the President, and in hands of keepers not appointed bv him, nor removable at his pleasure. One may readily discern, Sir, the process of reasoning by which the author of the Protest brought himself to the conclusion that Congress could not place the public moneys beyond the President's control. It is all founded on the power of appointment and the power of removal. These powers, it is supposed, must give the President complete control and authority over those who actually hold the money, and therefore must necessarily subject its custody, at all times, to his own individual will. This is the argument. It is true, that the appointment of all public oflicers, with some exceptions, is, by the Constitution, given to the President, with the consent of the Senate; and as, in most cases, public property must be held by some officer, its keepers will generally be persons so appointed. But this is only the common, not a necessary consequence of giving the appointing power to the President and Senate. Congress may still, if it shall so see lit, place the public treasure in the hand of no oflirer appointed by the President, or removable by him, but in hands quite beyond his control. Subject to one contingency only, it did this very thing by the charter of the present bank; and it did the same thing absolutely, and subject to no contingency, by tbe law of 1800. The Protest, in the first place, seizes on the fact that all otlicers must be appointed by the President, or on his nomina- tion ; it then assumes the next step, that all oflicers are, and must be, removable at his pleasure; and then, insisting that public money, like other public property, must be kept by some public officer, it thus arrives at the conclusion that it must always be in the hands of those who are appointed by the President, and who are removable at his pleasure. And it is very clear that the Protest means to maintain that the tenure of office cannot be so regulated by law, as that public officers shall not be removable at the pleasure rf the President. The President considers the right of removal as a fixed, vested, constitutional right, which Congress cannot limit, con- trol, or qualify, until the Constitution shall be altered. This, Sir, is doctrine which I am not prepared to admit. I shall not now discuss the question whether the law may not place the tenure of office beyond the reach of executive pleasure ; but I wish merely to draw the attention of the Senate to the fact that any such power in Congress is denied by the principles and by thc words of the Protest. According to that paper, we live under a Constitution by the provisions of which the public treasures are, necessarily and unavoidably, always under execu- THE PRESIDENTIAL PROTEST. ' 447 tive control ; and as the executive may re move .all officers, and appoint others, at least temporarily, without the concurrence of the Senate, he may hold those treasures, in the hands of per- sons appointed by himself alone, in defiance of any law which Congress has passed or can pass. It is to be seen, Sir, how far such claims of power will receive the approbation of the coun- try. It is to be seen whether a construction will be readily adopted which thus places the public purse out of the guardian- ship of the immediate representatives of the people. But, Sir, there is, in this paper, something even yet more strange than these extraordinary claims of power. "There is a strong disposition, running through the whole Protest, to repre- sent the executive department of this government as the pecul- iar protector of the public liberty, the chief security on which the people are to rely against the encroachment of other branches of the government. Nothing can be more manifest than this purpose. To this end, the Protest spreads out the President's official oath, reciting all its words in a formal quota- tion ; and yet the oath of members of Congress is exactly equiv- alent. The President is to swear that he will "preserve, pro- tect, and defend the Constitution ; " and members of Congress are to swear that they will " support the Constitution." There are more words in one oath than the other, but the sense is pre- cisely the same. Why, then, this reference to his official oath, and this ostentatious quotation of it ? Would the writer of the Protest argue that the oath itself is any grant of power ; or that, because the President is to "preserve, protect, and defend the Constitution," he is therefore to use what means he pleases, or any means, for such preservation, protection, and defence, except those which the Constitution and laws have specifically given him? Such an argument would be absurd; but if the oath be not cited for this preposterous purpose, with what de- sign is it thus displayed on the face of the Protest, unless it be to support the general idea that the maintenance of the Consti- tution and the preservation of the public liberties are especially confided to the safe discretion, the sure moderation, the pater- nal guard ianship of executive power? The oath of the Presi- dent contains three words, all of equal import ; that is, that he will preserve, protect, and defend the Constitution. The oath of members of Congress is expressed in shorter phrase ; it is, that they will support the Constitution. If there be any difference in the meaning of the two oaths, I cannot discern it ; and yet the Protest solemnly and formally argues thus: "The duty of defending, so far as in him lies, the integrity of the Constitution would indeed have resulted from the very nature of his office ; but, by thus expressing it in the official oath or affirmation, 448 WEBSTER. which, in this respect, differs from that of every other func- tionary, the founders of our republic have attested their of its importance, and have given to it a peculiar solemnity and force." Sir, I deny the proposition, and I dispute the proof. I deny that the duty of defending the integrity of the Constitution is, in any peculiar sense, confided to the President; and I deny that the words of his oath furnish any argument to make good that proposition. Be pleased, Sir, to remember against whom it is that the President holds it his peculiar duty to defend the in- tegrity of the Constitution. It is not against external foi- ls not against a foreign foe ; no such thing : lut it in wjainst the representatives of the people and the representatives of the >^ It is against these that the founders of our republic have im- posed on him the duty of defending the integrity of the Consti- tution ; a duty, he says, of the importance of which they have attested their sense, and to which they have given peculiar so- lemnity and force, by expressing it in his official oath ! Let us pause, Sir, and consider this most strange proposition. The President is the chief executive magistrate. Ho is com- mander-in-chief of the army and navy ; nominates all persons to oilice ; claims a right to remove all at will, and to control all while yet in office ; dispenses all favours ; and wields the whole patronage of the government. And the proposition is, that the duty of defending the integrity of the Constitution against the representatives of the States, and against the represents i the people, results to him from the very nature of his office ; and that the founders of our republic have given to this duty, thus confided to him, peculiar solemnity and force I Mr. President, the contest, for ages, has been to rescue Lib- erty froru the grasp of executive power. Whoever has engaged in her sacred cause, from the days of the downfall of those great aristocracies which had stood between the king and the people to the time of our independence, has struggled for the accomplishment of that single object. On the long list of the champions of human freedom, there is not one name dimmed by the reproach of advocating the extension of executive au- thority: on the contrary, the uniform and steady purpose of all such champions has been to limit and restrain it. To this end, the spirit of liberty, growing more and more enlightened, and more and more vigorous from age to age, has been battering, for centuries, against the solid butments of the feudal system. To this end, all that could be gained from the imprudence, snatched from the weakness, or wrung from the necessities of crowned heads, has been carefully gathered up, secured, and hoarded, as the rich treasures, the very jewels of liberty. To THE PRESIDENTIAL PROTEST. 449 this end, popular and representative right has kept up its war- fare against prerogative, with various success ; sometimes writing the history of a whole age in blood ; sometimes witness- ing the martyrdom of Sidneys and Russells ; often baffled and repulsed, but still gaining, on the whole, and holding what it gained with a grasp which nothing but the complete extinction of its own being could compel it to relinquish. At length the great conquest over executive power, in the leading western States of Europe, has been accomplished. The feudal system, like other stupendous fabrics of past ages, is known only by the rubbish which it has left behind it. Crowned heads have been compelled to submit to the restraints of law, and the PEOPLE, with that intelligence and that spirit which make their voice re- sistless, have been able to say to prerogative, "Thus far shalt thou come, and no further." I need hardly say, Sir, that into the full enjoyment of all which Europe has 1'eached only through such slow and painful steps we sprang at once, by the Declaration of Independence, and by the establishment of free representative governments ; governments borrowing more or less from the models of other free States, but strengthened, se- cured, improved in their symmetry, and deepened in their foundation, by those great men of our own country whose names will be as familiar to future times as if they were written on the arch of the sky. Through all this history of the contest for liberty, executive power has been regarded as a lion which must be caged. So far from being the object of enlightened popular trust, so far from being considered the natural protector of popular right, it has been dreaded, uniformly, always dreaded, as the great source of its danger. And now, Sir, who is he, so ignorant of the history of liberty, at home and abroad ; who is he, yet dwelling, in his contempla- tions, among the principles and dogmas of the Middle Ages ; who is he, from whose bosom all original infusion of American spirit has become so entirely evaporated and exhaled, as that he shall put into the mouth of the President of the United States the doctrine that the defence of liberty naturally results to exec- utive power, and is its peculiar duty? Who is he that, gener- ous and conliding towards power where it is most dangerous, and jealous only of those who can restrain it ; who is he that, reversing the order of the State, and upheaving the base, would poise the pyramid of the political system upon its apex ? Who is he that, overlooking with contempt the guardianship of the representatives of the people, and with equal contempt the higher guardianship of the people themselves ; who is he that declares to us, through the President's lips, that the security 450 -WEBSTER. for freedom rests in executive authority ? Who is he that be- lies the blood and libels the fame of his own ancestors, by declaring that Mr//, with solemnity of form and force of manner, have invoked the executive power to come to the protection of liberty? Who is he that thus charges them with the insanity, or the recklessness, of putting the lamb beneath the lion's paw? Xo, Sir. No, Sir. Our security is in our watchfulness of executive power. It was the constitution of this department which was infinitely the most difficult part in the great work of creating our present government. To give to the executive department such power as should make it useful, and yet not such as should render it dangerous; to make it efficient, inde- pendent, and strong, and yet to prevent it from sweeping away every thing by its union of military and civil authority, by the inlluencc of patronage, and office, and favour ; this, indeed, was difficult," They who had the work to do saw the difficulty, and we see it ; and if we would maintain our system, we shall act wisely to that end, by preserving every restraint and every guard which the Constitution has provided. And when we, and those who come after us, have done all that we can do, and all that they can do, it will be well for us and for them, if some popular executive, by the power of patronage and party, and the power, too, of that very popularity, shall not hereafter prove an overmatch for all other branches of the government. I do not wish, Sir, to impair the power of the President, as it stands written down in the Constitution, and as great and good men have hitherto exercised it. In this, as in other respects, I am for the Constitution as it is. But I will not acquiesce in the reversal of all just ideas of government ; I will not degrade the character of popular representation ; I will not blindly confide, where all experience admonishes me to be jealous ; I will not trust executive power, vested in the hands of a single magis- trate, to be the guardian of liberty. Having claimed for the executive the especial guardianship of the Constitution, the Protest proceeds to present a summary view of the powers which are supposed to be conferred on the executive by that instrument. And it is to this part of the message, Sir, that I would, more than to all others, call the particular attention of the Senate. I confess that it was only upon careful reperusal of the paper that I perceived the extent to which its assertions of power reach. I do not speak now of the President's claims of power as opposed to legislative au- thority, but of his opinions as to his own authority, duty, and responsibility, as connected with all other officers under the government. He is of opinion that the whole execut ivo power is vested in him, and that he is responsible for its entire exercise ; THE PRESIDENTIAL PROTEST. 451 that, among the duties imposed on him, is that of "taking care that the laws be faithfully executed ;" and that, "being thus made responsible for the entire action of the executive depart- ment, it was but reasonable that the power of appointing, over- seeing, and controlling those who execute the laws a power in its nature executive should remain in his hands. It is, therefore, not only his right, but the Constitution makes it his duty, to 'nominate, and, by and with the advice and consent of the Senate, appoint,' all 'officers of the United States whose appointments are not in the Constitution otherwise provided for,' with a proviso that the appointment of inferior officers may be vested in the President alone, in the courts of justice, or in the heads of departments." The first proposition, then, which the Protest asserts, in regard to the President's powers as executive magistrate, is, that, the general duty being imposed on him by the Constitu- tion, of taking care that the laws be faithfully executed, he thereby becomes himself responsible for the conduct of every person employed in tlic government; "for the entire action," as the paper expresses it, "of the executive department." This, Sir, is very dangerous logic. I reject the inference altogether. No such responsibility, nor any thing like it, follows from the general provision of the Constitution, making it his duty to see the laws executed. If it did, we should have, in fact, but one officer in the whole government. The President would be everybody. And the Protest assumes to the President this whole responsi- bility for every other officer, for the very purpose of making the President everybody, of annihilating every thing like inde- pendence, responsibility, or character in all other public agents. The whole responsibility is assumed, in order that it may be more plausibly argued that all officers of government are, not agents of the law, but the President's agents, and therefore responsible to him alone. If he be responsible for the conduct of all officers, and they be responsible to him only, then it may be maintained that such officers are but his own agents, his substitutes, his deputies. The iirst thing to be done, there- fore, is to assume the responsibility for all ; and this, you will perceive. Sir, is done, in the fullest manner, in the passages which I have read. Having thus assumed for the President the entire responsibility of the whole government, the Protest advances boldly to its conclusion, and claims, at once, absolute power over all individuals in office, as being merely the Presi- dent's agents. This is the language : "The whole executive power being vested in the President, who is responsible for its exercise, it is a necessary consequence that he should have a right to employ agents of his own choice, to aid him in the per- 452 WEBSTER. formance of his duties, and to discharge thorn when lie is no longer willing to be responsible for their acts." This, Sir, completes the work. This handsomely rounds off the whole executive system of executive authority. First, the President has the whole responsibility ; and then, being thus responsible for all, he has, and ought to have, the whole power. We have heard of political '/?//.<, and our American executive, as here represented, is indeed a unit. We have a charmingly simple government ! Instead of many officers, in different departments, each having appropriate duties, and each respon- sible for his own duties, we are so fortunate as to have to deal with but one officer. The President carries on the government ; all the rest are but sub-contractors. Sir, whatever name wo give him, we have but ONE EXECUTIVE OFFICER. A Briareus sits in the centre of our system, and with his hundred hands touches every tiling, moves every thing, controls every thing. I ask, Sir, Is this republicanism? Is this a government of laws? Is this legal rc>ponsibilit> ? According to the Protest, the very duties which every officer under the government performs are the duties of the President himself. It says that the President has a right to employ agents of his own choice, to aid HIM in the performance of HIS duties. Mr. President, if these doctrines be true, it is idle for us any longer to talk about any such thing as a government of laws. We have no government of laws, not even the semblance or shadow of it: we have no legal responsibility. We have an executive, consisting of one person, wielding all official power, and who is, to every effectual purpose, completely irresponsible. The President declares that he is "responsible for the entire action of the executive department." Responsible! What does he mean by being "responsible"? Does he mean legal responsibility? Certainly not. No such thing. Legal respon- sibility signifies liability to punishment for misconduct or mal- administration. But the Protest does not mean that the Presi- dent is liable to be impeached and punished, if a Secretary of State should commit treason, if a collector of the customs should be guilty of bribery, or if a treasurer should embezzle the public money. It does not mean, and cannot mean, that he should be answerable for any such crime or such delin- quency. What, then, is its notion of that responsibility which it says the President is under for all officers, and which au- thorizes him to consider all officers as his own personal agents? Sir, it is merely responsibility to public opinion. It is a liability to be blamed ; it is the chance of becoming unpopular, the dan- ger of losing a reelection. Nothing else is meant in the world. THE PRESIDENTIAL PROTEST. 453 It is the hazard of failing in any attempt or enterprise of am- bition. This is all the responsibility to which the doctrines of the Protest hold the President subject. It is precisely the responsibility under which Cromwell acted when he dispersed Parliament, telling its members, not in so many words indeed, that they disobeyed the will of their con- stituents, but telling them that the people were sick of them, and that he drove them out "for the glory of God, and the good of the nation." It is precisely the responsibility upon which Bonaparte broke up the popular assembly of France. I do not mean, Sir, certainly, by these illustrations, to insinuate designs of violent usurpation against the President ; far from it : but I do mean to maintain that such responsibility as that with which the Protest clothes him is no legal responsi- bility, no constitutional responsibility, no republican responsi- bility ; but a mere liability to loss of office, loss of character, and loss of fame, if he shall choose to violate the laws and overturn the liberties of the country. It is such a responsi- bility as leaves every thing in his discretion and his pleasure. Sir, it exceeds human belief that any man should put senti- ments such as this paper contains into a public communication from the President to the Senate. They are sentiments which give us all one master. The Protest asserts an absolute right to remove all persons from, office at pleasure ; and for what reason? Because they are incompetent? Because they are incapable ? Because they are remiss, negligent, or inattentive ? No, Sir ; these are not the reasons. But he may discharge them, one and all, simply because "he is no longer willing to be responsible for their acts!" It insists on an 'absolute right in the President to direct and control every act of every officer of the government, except the judges. It asserts this right of direct control over and over again. The President may go into the treasury, among the auditors and comptrollers, and direct them how to settle every man's account : what abatements to make from one, what additions to another. lie may go into the custom-house, among collectors and appraisers, and may control estimates, reductions, and appraisements. It is true that these officers are sworn to discharge the duties of their respective offices honestly and fairly, according to their own best abilities ; it is true that many of them are liable to indict- ment for official misconduct, and others responsible, in suits of individuals, for damages and penalties, if such official miscon- duct be proved ; but, notwithstanding all this, the Protest avers that all these officers are but the President's agents; that they are but aiding him in the discharge of Ids duties ; that he is responsible for their conduct, and that they are removable at 454 WEBSTER. his will and pleasure. And it is under this view of his own au- thority that the President calls the Secretaries Jus Secretaries, not once only, but repeatedly. After half a century's adminis- tration of this government, Sir ; after wo have endeavoured, Tiy statute upon statute, and by provision following provision, to define and limit official authority ; to assign particular duties to particular public servants ; to define those duties ; to create penalties for their violation ; to adjust accurately the responsi- bility of each agent with his own powers and his own duties ; to establish the prevalence of equal rule; to make the law, as far as possible, everything, and individual will, as far as possible, nothing ; after all this, the astounding assertion rings in our ears, that, throughout the whole range of official agency, in its smallest ramifications as well as in its larger masses, there is but ONE RESPONSIBILITY, ONE DISCRETION, ONE WILL ! True indeed it is, Sir, if these sentiments be maintained, true indeed it is, that a President of the United States may well repeat, from Xapoleon, what he repeated from Louis the Four- teenth, "lam the State!" The argument, by which the writer of the Protest endeavours to establish the- President's claim to this vast mass of accumu- lated authority, is founded on the provision of the Constitution, that the executive power shall be vested in the President. Xo doubt the executive power is vested in the President ; but what and how much executive power, and how limited? To this question I should answer, "Look to the Constitution, and sec ; examine the particulars of the grant, and learn what that exec- utive power is which is given to the President, either by express words or by necessary implication." But so the writer of this Protest does not reason. lie takes these words of the Consti- tution as being, of themselves, a general original grant of all executive power to the President, subject only to such express limitations as the Constitution prescribes. This is clearly the writer's view of the subject, unless indeed he goes behind the Constitution altogether, as some expressions would intimate, to search elsewhere for sources of executive power. Thus the Protest says that it is not only the right of the President, but that the Constitution makes it his duty, to appoint persons to olfice ; as if the right existed before the Constitution had created the duty. It speaks, too, of the power of removal, not as a power granted by the Constitution, but expressly as "an original executive power, unchecked by the Constitution." I should be glad to know how the President gets possession of any power by a title earlier, or more original, than the grant of the Constitution ; or what is meant by an original power, which the President possesses, and which the Constitution has Icj't un- THE PRESIDENTIAL PROTEST. 455 checked in his hands. The truth is, Sir, most assuredly, that the writer of the Protest, in these passages, was reasoning upon the British Constitution, and not upon the Constitution of the United States. Indeed, he professes to found himself on au- thority drawn from the Constitution of England. I will read, Sir, the whole passage. It is this: " In strict accordance with this principle, the power of removal, which, like that of appointment, is an original executive power, is left unchecked by the Constitution in relation to all executive officers, for whose conduct the President is responsible ; while it is taken from him in relation to judicial officers, for whose acts he is not responsible. In the government from wliich many of the fundamental principles of our system arc derived, the head of the executive department oriyinalli/ had power to appoint and remove at will all officers, executive and judicial. It was to take the judges out of this general power of removal, and thus make them inde- pendent of the executive, that the tenure of their offices was changed to good behaviour. Nor is it conceivable why they are placed, in our Constitution, upon a tenure different from that of all other officers appointed by the executive, unless it be for the same purpose." Mr. President, I do most solemnly protest (if I too may be permitted to make a protest) against this mode of reasoning. The analogy between the British Constitution and ours, in this respect, is not close enough to guide us safely ; it can only mis- lead us. It has entirely misled the writer of the Protest. The President is made to argue, upon this subject, as if he had some right anterior to the Constitution, which right is, by that instru- ment, checked, in some respects, and in other respects is left unchecked, but which, nevertheless, still derives its being from another source ; just as the British King had, in the early ages of the monarchy, an uncontrolled right of appointing and re- moving all officers at pleasure ; but which right, so far as it respects the judges, has since been checked and controlled by Act of Parliament ; the right being original and inherent, the check only imposed by law. Sir, I distrust altogether British precedents, authorities, and analogies, on such questions as this. We are not inquiring how far our Constitution has impose;! checks on a preexisting authority. We are inquiring what extent of power that Constitution has granted. The grant of power, the whole source of power, as well as the restrictions and lim- itations which are imposed on it, is made in and by the Consti- tution. It has no other origin. And it is this, Sir, which distinguishes our system so very widely and materially from the systems of Europe. Our governments are limited govern- ments ; limited in their origin, in their very creation ; limited, 456 WEBSTER. because none but specific powers were ever granted either to any department of government, or to the whole: theirs are lim- ited, whenever limited at, all, by reason of restraints imposed at different times on governments originally unlimited and des- potic. Our American questions, therefore, must be discussed. reasoned on, decided, and settled, on the appropriate principles of our own constitutions, and not by inapplicable precedents and loose analogies drawn from foreign States. Mr. President, in one of the French comedies, as you know, in which the dulness and prolixity of legal argument is in- tended to be severely satirized, while the advocate is tediously groping among ancient lore having nothing to do with his ca>e, the judge grows impatient, and at last cries out to him to come (hum to the flood I I really wish, Sir, that the writer of thisPro- tc-t. since he was discussing matters of the highest importance to us as Americans, and which arise out of our own peculiar Con- stitution, had kept himself, not only on this side the general deluge, but also on this side the Atlantic. I desire that all the broad waves of that wide sea should continue to roll between us and the influence of those foreign principles and foreign pre- cedents which he so eagerly adopts. In asserting power for an American President, I prefer he should attempt to maintain his assertions on American reasons. I know not, Sir, who the writer was, (I wish I did;) but, who- ever he was, it is manifest that he argues this part of his case, throughout, on the principles of the Constitution of England. It is true that, in England, the King is regarded as the original fountain of all honour and all olllce ; and that anciently indeed he possessed all political power of every kind. It is true that this mass of authority, in the history of that government, has been diminished, restrained, and controlled, by charters;, by immunities, by grants, and by various modifications, which the friends of liberty have, at different periods, been able to obtain or to impose. All liberty, as we know, all popular privilc- indeed the word itself imports, were formerly considered as lavours and concessions from the monarch. But whenever and wherever civil freedom could get a foothold, and could main- tain itself, these favours were turned into rights. Before and during the reigns of the princes of the Stuart family, they were acknowledged only as favours or privileges graciously allowed; although even then, whenever opportunity offered, as in the in- stance to which I alluded just now, they were contended for as rights ; and by the Revolution of 1038 they were acknowledged as the rights of Englishmen, by the prince who then ascended the throne, and as the condition on which he was allowed to sit upon it. But with us there never was a time when we acknowl- THE PRESIDENTIAL PROTEST. 457 edged original, unrestrained, sovereign power over us. Our Constitutions are not made to limit and restrain preexisting au- thority. They are the instruments by which the people confer power on their own servants. If I may use a legal phrase, the people are grantors, not grantees. They give to the govern- ment, and to each branch of it, all the power it possesses, or can possess; and what is not given they retain. In England, before her Revolution, and in the rest of Europe since, if we would know the extent of liberty or popular right, we must go to grants, to charters, to allowances, and indulgences. But with us, we go to grants and to constitutions to learn the extent of the powers of government. No political power is more original than the Constitution ; none is possessed which is not there granted ; and the grant, and the limitations of the grant, are in the same instrument. The powers, therefore, belonging to any branch of our gov- ernment are to be construed and settled, not by remote anal- ogies drawn from other governments, but from the words of the grant itself, in their plain sense and necessary import, and according to an interpretation consistent with our own history and the spirit of our own institutions. I will never agree that a President of the United States holds the whole undivided power of office in his own hands, upon the theory that he is responsible for the entire action of the whole body of those engaged in carrying on the government and executing the laws. Such a responsibility is purely ideal, delusive, and vain. There is, there can be, no substantial responsibility, any further than every individual is answerable, not merely in his reputation, not merely in the opinion of mankind, but to the law, for the faithful discharge of his own appropriate duties. Again and again we hear it said that the President is responsible to the American people I that he is responsible to the bar of public opinion ! For whatever he does, he assumes accountability to the American people ! For whatever he omits, he expects to l>e brought to the high bar of public opinion ! And this is thought enough for a limited, restrained, republican govern- ment ! an undefined, undefinable, ideal responsibility to the public judgment I Sir, if all this mean any thing, if it be not empty sound, it 'means no less than that the President may do any thing and every thing which he may expect to be tolerated in doing. lie may go just so far as he thinks it safe to go ; and Cromwell and JJonapartc went no further. I ask again, Sir, Is this legal responsibility? Is this the true nature of a govern- ment with written laws and limited powers? And allow me, Sir, to ask, too, if an executive magistrate, while professing to 458 WEBSTER. act under the Constitution, is restrained only by this responsi- bility to public opinion, what prevents him, on the same respon- sibility, from proposing a change in that Constitution? Why may he not say, "I am about to introduce new forms, new principles, and with a new spirit ; I am about to try a political experiment on a great scale ; and when I pet through with it, I shall be responsible to the American people, I shall be an- swerable to the bar of public opinion " ? Connected, Sir, with the idea of this airy and unreal responsi- bility to the public, is another sentiment, which of late we hear frequently expressed ; and that is. (hat the President is th representative <>f the American people. This is declared, in tho Protest, in so many words. "The President." says the Protest, "/. I know we shall not ily from it. But I am fearless of consequences. AVe shall hold on, Sir, and hold out, till the people themselves come THE CHARACTER OF WASHINGTON. 4G1 to its defence. We shall raise the alarm, and maintain the post, till they whose right it is shall decide whether the Senate be a faction, wantonly resisting lawful power, or whether it be op- posing, with firmness and patriotism, violations of liberty and inroads upon the Constitution. 1 THE CHARACTER OF WASHINGTON. 2 I RISE, Gentlemen, to propose to you the name of that great man in commemoration of whose birth, and in honour of whose character and services, we have here assembled. I am sure that I express a sentiment common to every one present, when I say that there is something more than ordina- rily solemn and affecting in this occasion. We are met to testify our regard for him whose name is inti- mately blended with whatever belongs most essentially to the prosperity, the liberty, the free institutions, and the renown of our country. That name was of power to rally a nation, in the hour of thick-thronging public disasters and calamities ; that name shone, amid the storm of war, a beacon light, to cheer and guide the country's friends ; it llamed, too, like a meteor, to repel her foes. That name, in the days of peace, was a load- stone, attracting to itself a whole people's confidence, a whole 1 This, I believe, is, on the whole, my favourite of all Webster's speeches,^ hia clearest, tightest, and most finished piece of workmanship. It seems to me hardly less than a model of calm, balanced, well-rounded discourse. The rea- soning, I think, holds water at every point. Clear statement, luminous order, and logical coherence are in an eminent degree its characteristics ; and as an exposition or argument in constitutional law, I do not see how it can well be beaten; while its occasional flights of rhetoric are severe and restrained, and just enough to keep the heart awake without unpoising the head. But what is perhaps most worthy of note is, that the speaker here seems perfectly at home in his subject, and moves with the ease of conscious mastery, as if he lelt per- !'-<-tly ut home. Chancellor Kent, of New York, a very high authority in such , seems to have been fairly overcome with delight on reading it. Writing t ; Webster, he speaks of it thus : " You never equalled this effort. It surpasses rvery thing in logic, in simplicity and beauty and energy of diction, in clearness, in rebuke, in sarcasm, in patriotic and glowing feeling, in just and profound constitutional views. Jt is worth millions to our liberties." 2 I here give en tiro the noble discourse pronounced by Webster in the city of Washington, on the 22d of February, 1832. The occasion was as follows: A number of gentlemen, members of Congress and others, united in a public dinner for the purpose of commemorating the centennial anniversary of Wash- ington's birth. Webster presided at the dinner, and his address was made after the removal of the cloth. 4G2 WEBSTER. people's love, and the whole world's respect. That name, de- scending with all time, spreading over the whole Earth, and uttered in all the languages belonging to the tribes and races of men, will for ever be pronounced with affectionate gratitude by every one in whose breast there shall arise an aspiration for human rights and human liberty. We perform this grateful duty, Gentlemen, at the expiration of a hundred years from his birth, near the place so cherished and beloved by him, where his dust now reposes, and in the capital which bears his own immortal name. All experience evinces that human sentiments are strongly influenced by associations. The recurrence of anniversaries, or of longer periods of time, naturally freshens the recollection, and deepens the impression, of events with which they are his- torically connected. Renowned places, also, have a power to awaken feeling, which nil acknowledge. ]S'o American can pass by the fields of Bunker Hill, Monmouth, or C'amden, as if they were ordinary spots on the Earth's surface. Whoever visits them feels the sentiment of love of country kindling anew, as if the spirit that belonged to the transactions which have rendered these places distinguished still hovered round, with power to move and excite all who in future time may approach them. But neither of these sources of emotion equals the power with which great moral examples affect the mind. When sublime .virtues cease to be abstractions, when they become embodied in human character, and exemplified in human conduct, we should be false to our own nature, if we did not indulge in the sponta- neous effusions of our gratitude and our admiration. A true lover of the virtue of patriotism delights to contemplate its purest models ; and that love of country may be well suspected which affects to soar so high into the regions of sentiment as to be lost and absorbed in the abstract feeling, and becomes too elevated or too refined to glow with fervour in the commenda- tion or the love of individual benefactors. All this is unnatural. It is as if one should be so enthusiastic a lover of poetry as to care nothing for Homer or Milton ; so passionately attached to eloquence as to be indifferent to Tully and Chatham ; or such a devotee to the arts, in such an ecstasy with the elements of beauty, proportion, and expression, as to regard the master- pieces of Raphael and Michael Angelo with coldness or con- tempt. We may be assured, Gentlemen, that he who really loves the thing itself, loves its finest exhibitions. A true friend of his country loves her friends and benefactors, and thinks it no degradation to commend and commemorate them. The vol- untary outpouring of the public feeling, made to-day, from the Xorth to the South, and from the East to the West, proves this THE CHARACTER OF WASHINGTON". 463 sentiment to be both just and natural. In the cities and in the villages, in the public temples and in the family circles, among all ages and sexes, gladdened voices to-day bespeak grateful hearts and a freshened recollection of the virtues of the Father of his Country. And it will be so, in all time to come, so long as public virtue is itself an object of regard. The ingenuous youth of America will hold up to themselves the bright model of Washington's example, and study to be what they behold ; they will contemplate his character till all its virtues spread out and display themselves to their delighted vision ; as the earliest astronomers, the shepherds on the plains of Babylon, gazed at the stars till they saw them form into clusters and constella- tions, overpowering at length the eyes of the beholders with the united blaze of a thousand lights. Gentlemen, we are at the point of a century from the birth of Washington; and what a century it has been! During its course, the human mind has seemed to proceed with a sort of geometric velocity, accomplishing, for human intelligence and human freedom, more than had been done in fives or tens of centuries preceding. Washington stands at the commence- ment of a new era, as well as at the head of the New World. A century from the birth of Washington has changed the world. The country of Washington has been the theatre on which a great part of that change has been wrought ; and Wash- ington himself a principal agent by which it has been accom- plished. His age and his country are equally full of wonders ; and of both he is the chief. If the poetical prediction, uttered a few years before his birth, be true ; if indeed it be designed by Providence that the grandest exhibition of human character and human affairs shall be made on this theatre of the Western world ; if it be true that, " The four first acts already past, A fifth shall close the drama with the day; Time's noblest offspring is the last"; how could this imposing, swelling, final scene be appropri- ately opened, how could its intense interest be adequately sus- tained, but by the introduction of just such a character as our Washington V Washington had attained his manhood when that spark of liberty was struck out in his own country which has since kin- dled into a flame, and shot its beams over the Earth. In the flow of a century from his birth, the world has changed in Hcience, in arts, in the extent of commerce, in the improvement of navigation, and in all that relates to the civilization of man. 464 WEBSTER. But it is the spirit of human freedom, the new elevation of indi- vidual man, in his moral, social, and political character, leading the whole long train of other improvements, which has most remarkably distinguished the era. Society, in this century, has not made its progress, like Chinese skill, by a greater acuteness of ingenuity in trifles: it has not merely lashed it-self to an increased speed round the old circles of thought and action ; but it has assumed a new character ; it has raised itself from beneath governments to a participation in governments ; it has mixed moral and political objects with the daily pursuits of individual men; and, with a freedom and strength before alto- gether unknown, it has applied to these objects the whole power of the human understanding. It has been the era, in short, when the social principle has triumphed over the feudal principle ; when society has maintained its rights against mili- tary power, and established, on foundations never hereafter to be shaken, its competency to govern its<>lf. It was the extraordinary fortune of Washington, that, having been intrusted, in revolutionary times, with the supreme mili- tary command, and having fulfilled that trust with equal re- nown for wisdom and valour, he should be placed at the head of the first government in which an attempt was to be made, on a large scale, to rear the fabric of social order on the basis of a written constitution and of a pure representative principle. A government was to be established, without a throne, without an aristocracy, without castes, orders, or privileges ; and this gov- ernment, instead of being a democracy, existing and acting within the walls of a single city, was to be extended over a vast country, of different climates, interests, and habits, and of vari- ous communions of our common Christian faith. The experi- ment certainly was entirely new. A popular government of this extent, it was evident, could be framed only by carrying into full effect the principle of representation, or of delegated power ; and the world was to see whether society could, by the strength of this principle, maintain its own peace and good government, carry forward its own great interests, and conduct itself to political renown and glory. By the benignity of Provi- dence, this experiment, so full of interest to us and to our posterity for ever, so full of interest indeed to the world in its present generation and in all its generations to come, was suf- fered to commence under the guidance of Washington. Des- tined for this high career, he was fitted for it by wisdom, by virtue, by patriotism, by discretion, by whatever can inspire confidence in man toward man. In entering on the untried scenes, early disappointment and the premature extinction of all hope of success would have been certain, had it not been THE CHARACTER OF WASHINGTON. 465 that there did exist throughout the country, in a most extraor- dinary degree, an unwavering trust in HIM who stood at the helm. I remarked, Gentlemen, that the whole world was and is interested in the result of this experiment. And is it not so? Do we deceive ourselves, or is it true that at this moment the career which this government is running is among the most attractive objects to the civilized world? Do we deceive our- selves, or is it true that at this moment that love of liberty and that understanding of its true principles which are flying over the whole Earth, as on the wings of all the winds, are really and truly of American origin? At the period of the birth of Washington, there existed in Europe no political liberty, in large communities, except- the Provinces of Holland, and except that England herself had set a great example, so far as it went, by her glorious Revolution of 1688. Everywhere else, despotic power was predominant, and the feudal or military principle held the mass of mankind in hopeless bondage. One half of Europe was crushed by the Bourbon sceptre, and no conception of political liberty, no hope even of religious toleration, existed among that nation which was America's first ally. The King was the State, the King was the country, the King was all. There was one king, with power not derived from his people, and too high to be ques- tioned ; and the rest were all subjects, with no political right but obedience. All above was intangible power, all below quiet subjection. A recent occurrence in the French Chambers shows us how human sentifnents on these subjects have changed. A Minister had spoken of the "King's subjects." "There are no subjects," exclaimed hundreds of voices at once, "in a country where the people make the king 1" Gentlemen, the spirit of human liberty and of free govern- ment, nurtured and grown into strength arid beauty in America, lias stretched its course into the midst of the nations. Like an emanation from Heaven, it has gone forth, and it will not return void. It must change, it is fast changing, the Earth. Our great, our high duty is to show, in our own example, that this spirit is a spirit of health as well as a spirit of power ; that its benignity is as great as its strength ; that its efficiency to secure individual rights, social relations, and moral order, is equal to the irresistible force with which it prostrates principalities and powers. The world, at this moment, is regarding us with a willing, but something of a fearful, admiration. Its deep and awful anxiety is to learn whether free States may be stable, as well as free ; whether popular power may be trusted, as well as feared ; in short, whether wise, regular, and virtuous self- 406 WEBSTER. government is a vision for the contemplation of theorists, or a truth, established, illustrated, and brought into practice in tho country of Washington. Gentlemen, for the Earth which we inhabit, and the whole circle of the Sun, for all the unborn races of mankind, w to hold in our hands, for their weal or woe, the fate of this ex- periment. If we fail, who shall venture the repetition? If our example shall prove to be one, not of encouragement, but of terror, not fit to be imitated, but fit only to be shunned, where else shall the world look for free models? If this great Watt- ern Sun be struck out of the firmament, at what other fountain shall the lamp of liberty hereafter be lighted ? What other orb shall emit a ray to glimmer, even, on the darkness of the world ? Gentlemen, there is no danger of our overrating or overstating the important part which we are now acting in human affairs. It should not flatter our personal self-respect* but it should reanimate our patriotic virtues, and inspire us with a deeper and more solemn sense both of our privileges and of our duties. We cannot wish better for our country, nor for the world, than that the same spirit which influenced Washington may in- fluence all who succeed him ; and that that same blessing from above which attended his efforts may also attend theirs. The principles of Washington's administration are not left doubtful. They are to be found in the Constitution itself, in the great measures recommended and approved by him, in his speeches to Congress, and in that most interesting paper, his Farewell Address to the people of the United States. The success of the government under his administration is the high- est proof of the soundness of these principles. And, after an experience of thirty-five years, what is there which an enemy could condemn ? What is there which either his friends, or the friends of the country, could wish to have been otherwise ? I speak, of course, of great measures and leading principles. In the first place, all his measures were right in their intent. He stated the whole basis of his own great character, when he told the country, in the homely phrase of the proverb, that hon- esty is the best policy. One of the most striking things ever said of him is, '* that he changed mankind's ideas cf political greatness." To commanding talents, and to success, the common elements of such greatness, he added a disregard of self, a spotlessness of motive, a steady submission to every public and private duty, which threw far into the shade the whole crowd of vulgar great. Tho object of his regard was the whole country. Xo part of it was enough to fill his enlarged patriotism. His love of glory, so far as that may be supposed to have influenced him THE CHARACTER OF WASHINGTON. 467 at all, spurned every thing short of general approbation. It would have been nothing to him, that his partisans or his favourites outnumbered, or outvoted, or outmanaged, or out- clamoured, those of other leaders. He had no favourites ; he rejected all partisanship ; and, acting honestly for the universal good, he deserved, what he has so richly enjoyed, the universal love. His principle it was to act right, and to trust the people for support ; his principle it was not to follow the lead of sinister and selfish ends, and to rely on the little arts of party delusion to obtain public sanction for such a course. Born for his country and for the world, he did not give up to party what was meant for mankind. The consequence is, that his fame is as durable as his principles, as lasting as truth and virtue them- selves. While the hundreds whom party excitement and tem- porary circumstances and casual combinations have raised into transient notoriety, sink again, like thin bubbles, bursting and dissolving into the great ocean, Washington's fame is like the rock which bounds that ocean, and at whose feet its billows are destined to break harmlessly for ever. The maxims upon which Washington conducted our foreign relations were few and simple. The first was an entire and indisputable impartiality towards foreign States. lie adhered to this rule of public conduct, against very strong inducements to depart from it, and when the popularity of the moment seemed to favour such a departure. In the next place, he maintained true dignity and unsullied honour in all communica- tions with foreign States. It was among the high duties de- volved upon him, to introduce our new government into the circle of civilized States and powerful nations. Not arrogant or assuming, with no unbecoming or supercilious bearing, ho yet exacted for it from all others entire and punctilious respect. lie demanded, and he obtained at once, a standing of perfect equality for his country in the society of nations ; nor was there a prince or potentate of his day, whose personal character carried with it, into the intercourse with other States, a greater degree of respect and veneration. He regarded other nations only as they stood in political relations to us. With their internal affairs, their political parties and dissensions, he scrupulously abstained from all interference ; and, on the other hand, he spiritedly repelled all such interference by others with us or our concerns. His sternest rebuke the most indignant measure of his whole administration was aimed against such an attempted interfer- ence. He felt it as an attempt to wound the national honour, and resented it accordingly. 468 WEBSTER. The reiterated admonitions in his Farewell Address show his deep fears that foreign influence would insinuate itself into our councils through the channels of domestic dissensions, and obtain a sympathy with our own temporary parties. Against all such dangers, he most earnestly entreats the country to guard itself. He appeals to its patriotism, to its self-respect, to its own honour, to every consideration connected with its welfare and happiness, to resist, at the very beginning, all tendencies towards such connection of foreign interests with our own affairs. With a tone of earnestness nowhere else found, even in his last affectionate farewell advice to his countrymen, he says : "Against the insidious wiles of foreign influence,- (I con- jure you to believe me, fellow-citizens), the jealousy of a free people ought to be constantly awake ; since history and experi- ence prove that foreign influence is one of the most baneful foes of republican government." Lastly, on the subject of foreign relations, Washington never forgot that we had interests peculiar to ourselves. The pri- mary political concerns of Europe, he saw, did not affect us. We had nothing to do with her balance of power, her family compacts, or her successions to thrones. We were placed in a condition favourable to neutrality during European wars, and to the enjoyment of all the great advantages of that relation. "Why, then," he asks us, " why forego the advantages of so peculiar a situation ? Why quit our own to stand upon foreign ground? Why, by interweaving our destiny with that of any pait of Europe, entangle our peace and prosperity in the toils of European ambition, rivalship, interest, humour, or caprice?" Indeed, Gentlemen, Washington's Farewell Address is full of truths important at all times, and particularly deserving consid- eration at the present. With a sagacity which brought the future before him, and made it like the present, he saw and pointed out the dangers that even at this moment most immi- nently threaten us. I hardly know how a greater service of that kind could now be done to the community, than by a renewed and wide diffusion of that admirable paper, and an earnest invitation to every man in the country to reperuse and consider it. Its political maxims are invaluable ; its exhortation to love of country and to brotherly affection among citizens, touching ; and the solemnity with which it urges the observance of moral duties, and impresses the power of religious obligation, gives to it the highest character of truly disinterested, sincere, parental advice. The domestic policy of Washington found its pole-star in the avowed objects of the Constitution itself. He sought so to ad- THE CHARACTER OE WASHINGTON. 469 minister that Constitution as to form a more perfect union, establish justice, ensure domestic tranquillity, provide for the common defence, promote the general welfare, and secure the blessings of liberty. These were objects interesting, in the highest degree, to the whole country, and his policy embraced the whole country. Among his earliest and most important duties was the organi- zation of the government itself, the choice of his confidential advisers, and the various appointments to office. This duty, so important and delicate, when a whole government was to be organized, and all its offices for the first time filled, was yet not difficult to him; for he had no sinister ends to accomplish, no clamorous partisans to gratify, no pledges to redeem, no object to be regarded, but simply the public good. It was a plain, straight forward matter, a mere honest choice of good men for the public service. His own singleness of purpose, his disinterested patriotism, were evinced by the selection of his first cabinet, and by the manner in which he filled the seats of Justice, and other places of high trust. lie sought for men fit for offices ; not for offices which might suit men. Above personal considerations, above local considerations, above party considerations, he felt that he could only discharge the sacred trust, which the country had placed in his hands, by a diligent inquiry after real merit, and a conscientious preference of virtue and talent. The whole coun- try was the field of his selection* lie explored that whole field, looking only for whatever it contained most worthy and distin- guished. Ho was, indeed, most successful, and he deserved success for the purity of his motives, the liberality of his senti- ments, and his enlarged and manly policy. Washington's administration established the national credit, made provision for the public debt, and for that patriotic army interests and welfare were always so dear to him ; and, by laws wisely framed, and of admirable effect, raised the com- and navigation of the country, almost at once, from de- iii and ruin to a state of prosperity. Nor were his eyes open to these interests alone. He viewed with equal concern iculture and manufactures, and, so far as they came within the regular exercise of the powers of this government, they rienced regard and favour. Jt should not he omitted, even in this slight reference to the general measures and general principles of the first President, that he saw and felt the full value and importance of the judi- cial department of the government. An upright and able ad- ministration of the laws he held to be alike indispensable to private happiness and public liberty. The Temple of Justice, 470 WEBSTER. in his judgment, was a sacred place, and he would profane and pollute it who should assign" any to minister in it, not spotless in character, not incorruptible in integrity, not competent by talent and learning, not a fit object of unhesitating trust. Among other admonitions, Washington has left us, in his last communication to his country, an exhortation against the ex- cesses of party spirit. A fire not to be quenched, he yet con- jures us not to fan and feed the ilame. Undoubtedly, Gentle- men, it is the greatest danger of our system and of our time. "Undoubtedly, if that system should be overthrown, it will be the work of excessive party spirit, acting on the government, which is dangerous enough, or noting in the government, which is a thousand times more dangerous; for government then becomes nothing but organized party, and. in the straimv vicis- situdes of human affairs, it may come at last, perhaps, to exhibit the singular paradox of government itself being in opposition to its own powers, at war with the very elements of its own existence. Such cases are hopeless. As men may lie protected against murder, but cannot be guarded a-aiiist suicide, so gov- ernment may be shielded from the assaults of external foe>, but nothing can save it when it chooses to lay violent hands on itself. Finally, Gentlemen, there was in the brea>t of Washington one sentiment so deeply felt, so constantly uppermost, that no proper occasion escaped without its utterance. From tin 1 lei- ter which he signed in behalf of the Convention when the Con- stitution was sent out to the people, to the moment when he put his hand to that last paper in which he addressed his countrymen, the Union the Union was the great object of his thoughts. In that first letter, he tells them that, to him anil his brethren of the Convention, union appears to be the great- est interest of every true American ; and in that last paper, he conjures them to regard that unity of government which con- stitutes them one people as the very palladium of their pros- perity and safety, and the security of liberty itself. He re- garded the union of these States less as one of our blessings, than as the great treasure-house which contained them all. Here, in his judgment, was the great magazine of all our means of prosperity ; here, as he thought, and as every American still thinks, are deposited all our animating prospects, all our solid hopes for future greatness. He has taught us to maintain this union, not by seeking to enlarge the powers of the government, on the one hand, nor by surrendering them, on the other ; but by an administration of them at oneo firm and moderate, pur- suing objects truly national, and carried on in a spirit of justice equity. The extreme solicitude for the preservation of the THE CHARACTER OF WASHINGTON". 471 Union, at all times manifested by him, shows not only the opinion he entertained of its importance, but his clear percep- tion of those causes which were likely to spring up to endanger it> and which, if once they should overthrow the present sys- tem, would leave little hope of any future beneficial reunion. Of all the presumptions indulged by presumptuous man, that is one of the rashest which looks for repeated and favourable opportunities for the deliberate establishment of a united gov- ernment over distinct and widely-extended communities. Such a thing has happened once in human affairs, and but once : Hie event stands out as a prominent exception to all ordinary history ; and unless we .suppose ourselves running into an age of miracles, we may not expect its repetition. Washington, therefore, could regard, and did regard, nothing as of paramount political interest, but the integrity of the Union itself. With a united government, well administered, he saw we had nothing to fear ; and without it, nothing to hope. The sentiment is just, and its momentous truth should solemnly impress the whole country. If we might regard our country as personated in the spirit of Washington, if \ve might consider him as representing her, in her past renown, her present pros- perity, and her future career, and as in that character demand- ing of us all to account for our conduct, as political men or as private citizens, how should he answer him who has \vntured to talk of disunion and dismemberment? Or how should ho answer him who dwells perpetually on local interests, and fans every kindling flame of local prejudice? How should he an- swer him who would array State against State, interest against interest, and party against party, careless of the continuance of that uniti/ of government which constitutes us one pcojili / The political prosperity which this country has attained, and which it now enjoys, it has acquired mainly through the instru- mentality of the present government. While this agent con- tinues, the; capacity of attaining to still higher degrees of pros- perity exists also. We have, while this lasts, a political life capable of beneficial exertion, with power to resistor overeouie i tunes, to sustain us against the ordinary accidents of human affairs, and to promote, by active efforts, every public -t. But dismemberment strikes at the very being which vcs these faculties. It would lay its rude and ruthless hand on this great agent itself. It would sweep away, not only what we possess, but all power of regaining lost, or acquiring new possessions. It would leave the country, not only bereft ol its prosperity and happiness, but without limbs, or organs, or families, by which to exert itself hereafter in the pursuit of that prosperity and happiness. 472 WEBSTER. Other misfortunes may be borne, or their effects overcome. If disastrous war should sweep our commerce from the ocean, another generation may renew it; if it exhaust our treasury, future inilu>try may replenish it; if it desolate and lay waste our fields still, under anew cultivation, they will grow green again, and ripen to future harvests. It were but a trille even if the walN of yonder Capitol were to crumble, if its lofty pillars should fall, audits gorgeous decorations be all covered by the dust of the valley. All these might be rebuilt. Hut who shall reconstruct the fabric" of demolished government? Who shall real- again the well-proportioned columns of constitutional lib- erty? Who shall frame together the skilful architecture which unites national sovereignty with State rights, individual secu- rity, and public prosperity? Xo, Gentlemen, if these columns fall, they will not be raised again. Like the Coliseum and the Parthenon, they will be destined to a mournful, a melancholy immortality. Bitterer tears, however, will How over them than were ever .-lied over the monuments of Uoman or Grecian art; for they will be the remnants of a more glorious edifice than Greece or Home ever saw, the edifice of constitutional Amer- ican liberty. But let us hope for better things. Let us trust in that gra- cious ]>eing who has hitherto held our country as in the hollow of His hand. Let us trust to the virtue and intelligence of the people, and to the ellicacy of religious obligation. Let us trust to the inlluence of Washington's example. Let us hope that that fear of Heaven which expels all other fear, and that regard to duty which transcends all other regard, may inlltience public men and private citizens, and lead our country still onward in her happy career. Full of these gratifying anticipations and hopes, let us look forward to the end of that century which is commenced. A hundred years hence, other disciples of Wa^h- ington will celebrate his birth with no less of sincere admiration than we now commemorate it. When they shall meet, as we now meet, to do themselves and him the honour, so surely as they shall see the blue summits of his native mountains rise in the horizon ; so surely as they shall behold the river on whose banks lie lived, and on whose banks he rests, still llowing on toward the sea, so surely may they see, as we now see, the Hag of the Union iloating on the top of the Capitol; and then, as now, may the Sun, in its course, visit no land more free, more happy, more lovely, than this our own country 1 Gentlemen, I propose "TuE MEMORY OF GEORGE WASII- IXGTON." ALEXANDER HAMILTON". 473 ALEXANDER HAMILTON. 8 GENTLEMEN, you have personal recollections and associa- tions, connected with the establishment and adoption of the Constitution, which aiv necessarily called up on an occasion like this. It is impossible to forget the prominent agency exer- cised by eminent citizens of your own, in regard to that great measure. Those great men are now recorded among the illus- trious dead ; but they have left names never to be forgotten, and never to be remembered without respect and veneration. Least of all can they be forgotten by you, when assembled here for the purpose of signifying your attachment to the Constitu- tion, and your sense of its inestimable importance to the happi- ness of the people. I should do violence to my own feelings, Gentlemen, I think I should offend yours, if I omitted respectful mention of dis- tinguished names yet fresh in your recollections. How can I stand here, to speak of the Constitution of the United States, of the wisdom of its provisions, of the difficulties attending its adoption, of the evils from which it rescued the country, and of the prosperity and power to which it has raised it, and yet pay no tribute to those who were highly instrumental in accomplish- ing the work? While we arc here to rejoice that it yet stands linn ami strong, while we congratulate one another that we live under its benign influence, and cherish hopes of its long dura- tion, \ve cannot forget who they were that, in the day of our na- tional infancy, in the times of despondency and despair, mainly d to work out our deliverance. I should feel that I was unfaithful to the strong recollections which the occasion presses upon us, that I was not true to gratitude, not true to patriotism, not true to the living or the dead, not true to your feelings or my own, if I should forbear to make mention of ALEXANDKII HAMILTON. ( 'oining from the military service of the country yet a youth, but with knowledge and maturity, even in civil affairs, far be- yond his years, he made this city the place of his adoption ; and e, the whole powers of his mind to the contemplation of the weak and distracted condition of the country. Daily in- creasing in acquaintance and conlidence with the people of New York, lie saw, what they also saw, the absolute necessity of some bond of union for the States. This was the great object of his desire. He never appears to have lost sight of it, but Mind in the lead whenever any thing was to be attempted :; Ki-'iin :i speech m:nliouers ; and I have un- derstood, though I cannot assert the fact, that their Jfcjmrl was drawn by him. His associate from this State was the venerable Judge Benson, who has lived long, and still lives, to see tin- happy results of the counsels which originated in this meeting. Of its members, he and Mr. Madison are, I believe, now tho only survivors. These commissioners recommended, what took place the next year, a general Convention of all the States, to take into serious deliberation the condition of the country, and devise such provisions as should render the constitution of the federal government adequate to the exigencies of the Union. I need not remind you, that of this Convention Mr. Hamilton was an active and efficient member. The Constitution was framed, and submitted to the country. And then another great work was to be undertaken. The Constitution would naturally find, and did find, enemies and opposers. Objections to it were numer- ous, and powerful, and spirited. These were to bo answered ; and they were effectually answered. The writers of the num- bers of The Federalist, Mr. Hamilton, Mr. Madison, and Mr. Jay, so greatly distinguished themselves in their discussions of the Constitution, that those numbers are generally received as im- portant commentaries on the text, and accurate expositions, in general, of its objects and purposes. Those papers were all written and published in this city. Mr. Hamilton was elected one of the distinguished delegation from the city, into the state Convention at Poughkeepsie, called to ratify the new Constitu- tion. Its debates are published. Mr. Hamilton appears to have exerted, on this occasion, to the utmost, every power and fac- ulty of his mind. The whole question was likely to depend on the decision of Xew York, lie felt the full importance of the crisis; and the reports of his speeches, imperfect as they probably are, are vet FIRST SETTLEMENT OF NEW ENGLAND. 475 lasting monuments to his genius and patriotism. lie saw at last his hopes fulfilled ; he saw the Constitution adopted, and the government under it established and organized. The discern- ing eye of Washington immediately called him to that post which was infinitely the most important in the administration of the new system. He was made Secretary of the Treasury ; and how he fulfilled the duties of such a place, at such a time, the whole country perceived with delight, and the whole world saw with admiration. He smote the rock of the national re- sources, and abundant streams of revenue gushed forth. He touched the dead corpse of the Public Credit, and it sprang upon its feet. The fabled birtli of Minerva from the brain of Jove was hardly more sudden or more perfect than the finan- cial system of the United States, as it burst forth from the con- ceptions of ALEXANDER HAMILTON. FIRST SETTLEMENT OF NEW ENGLAND. 4 IT is a noble faculty of our nature which enables us to con- nect our thoughts, our sympathies, and our happiness with what is distant in place or time ; and, looking before and sifter, to hold communication at once with our ancestors and our pos- terity. Human and mortal though we are, we are nevertheless not mere insulated beings, without relation to the past or the future. Neither the point of time nor the spot of rarth, in which we physically live, bounds our rational and intellectual enjoyments. We live in the past by a knowledge of its "his- tory ; and in the future by hope and anticipation. I5y ascend- ing to an association with our ancestors ; by contemplating 4 This and the three pieces which follow it .ire from a discourse delivered at Plymouth, on the 22d of December, 1820, UK; two hundredth anniversary of the landing of tlie Pilgrims. That discourse stands first, in the order of time, of a great efforts in wh:it m:iy be called civic, oratory, and is generally n-.u'arded, I believe', as UK; corner-stone of his lame as an orator. The discourse was not printed till about a year after the delivery. A copy of it having been mailed to Chancellor Kent, of New York, that eminent man acknowledged (.lie receipt of it in a letter of thanks to Webster, from which I transcribe the follow- ing: "The reflections, the sentiments, the morals, the patriotism, the eloquence, the imagination of this admirable production are exactly what I anticipated; elevated, just, and true. I think it is also embellished by a style distinguished for purity, taste, and simplicity." Ex-President John Adams, also, had the dis- course read to him, and expressed his judgment of it thus: "If there be an American who can read it without tears, 1 am not that American. Jt enters more perfectly into the genuine spirit of New England than any production I ever read." 47G WEBSTER. their example and studying their character ; by partaking their sentiments and imbibing their spirit ; by accompanying them in their toils, by sympathizing in their sufferings, and rejoicing in their successes mid triumphs, we seem to bclmg to their age, and to mingle our own existence with theirs. We become their contemporaries, live the lives which they lived, endure what they endured, and partake the rewards which they enjoyed. And in like manner, by running along the line of future time ; by contemplating the probable fortunes of those who arc coming after us ; by attempting something which may promote their happiness, and leave some not dishonourable memorial of ourselves to their regard, when we shall sleep with the fathers, we protract our own earthly being, and seem to crowd what- ever is future, as well as the past, into the narrow compass of our earthly existence. As it is not a vain and false, but an exalted and religious imagination, which leads us to rai.-c our thoughts from the orb which, amidst this universe of worlds, the Creator has given us to inhabit, and to send them, with something of the feeling which Nature prompts, and teaches to be proper among children of the same Kternal Parent, to the contemplation of the myriads of fellow-beings with which His goodness has peopled the infinite of space ; so neither is it false or vain to consider ourselves as interoted and connected with our whole race, through all time; allied to our ancestor-; allied to our posterity; closely compacted on all sides; our- selves being but links in the great chain of being which begins with the origin of our race, runs onward through its succi -,-->, disease, exile, and famine, to enjoy and to establish. And we would leave here, also, for the generations which arc rising up rapidly to fill our places, some proof that we have endeavoured to transmit the great inheritance unimpaired; that in our estimate of public principles and private virtue, in our veneration of religion arid piety, in our devotion to civil and religious liberty, in our regard for whatever advances human knowledge, or improves human happiness, we are not altogether mi worthy of our origin. There is a local feeling connected with this occasion, too strong to be resisted ; a sort of genius oftheplace, which inspires and awes us. We i'eel that we are on the spot where the iirst scene of our history was laid ; where the hearths and altars of Ni-w Knglaml were first placed ; where Christianity and civili- sation and letters made their first lodgment, in a vast extent of country, covered with a wilderness, and peopled by roving bar- barians. We are hero at the season of the year at which the event took place. The imagination irresistibly and rapidly draws around us the principal features and the leading charac- ters in the original scene. Wo cast our eyes abroad on the ocean, and we see where the little bark, with the interesting group upon its deck, made its slow progress to the shore. Wo look around us, and behold the hills and promontories where the anxious eyes of our fat hers iirst saw the places of habita- tion and of rest. We feel the cold which benumbed, and listen to the winds which pierced them. Beneath us is the Rock on which New England received the feet of the I'ilgrims. Wo eem even to behold them, as they struggle, with the elements, 478 WEBSTER. and, with toilsome efforts, gain the shore. "We listen to the chiefs in council; we see the unexampled exhibition of female fortitude and resignation ; we hear the winterings of youthful impatience, and we see, what a painter of our own has also rep- resented by his pencil, 5 chilled and shivering childhood, house- less, but for a mother's arms, couchless, but for a mother's breast, till our own blood almost freezes. The mild dignity of CARVKI: and BRADFORD; the decisive and soldierlike air and manner of STAXDISH ; the devout BRETVSTER; the enterpris- ing ALLERTOX; the general firmness and thoughtfulne^s of the whole band ; their conscious joy for dangers escaped ; their deep solicitude about dangers to come ; their trust in Heaven ; their high religious faith, full of confidence and anticipation, all of these seem to belong to this place, and to be present on this occasion, to fill us with reverence and admiration. The settlement of New England by the colony which landed here on the 22dof December, 1620, although not the first Euro- pean establishment in what now constitutes the United States, was yet so peculiar in its causes and character, and has been followed and must still be followed by such consequences, as to give it a high claim to lasting commemoration. On 11. causes and consequences, more than on its immediately attend- ant circumstances, its importance, as an historical event, de- pends. Great actions and striking occurrences, having excited a temporary admiration, often pass away and are forgotten, because they leave no lasting results, affecting the prosperity and happiness of communities. Such is frequently the fortune of the most brilliant military achievements. Of the ten thou- sand battles which have been fought; of all the fields fertili/ed with carnage ; of the banners which have been bathed in blood; of the warriors who have hoped that they had risen from the field of conquest to a glory as bright and as durable as the stars, how few that continue long to interest mankind 1 The vic- tory of yesterday is reversed by the defeat of to-day; the star of military glory, rising like a meteor, like a meteor has fallen ; disgrace and disaster hang on the heels of conquest and renown ; victor and vanquished presently pass away to oblivion ; and the world goes on in its course, with the loss only of so many lives and so much treasure. But if this be frequently, or generally, the fortune of military achievements, it is not always so. There are enterprises, mili- 5 The allusion is to a largo historical painting of the Landing of the Pilgrims at Plymouth, executed by Mr. Henry Sargent, of Boston, and presented by him to the Pilgrim Society. It represents the principal personages of the company at the moment of landing, with the Indian Samoset, who approaches them with a friendly welcome. FIRST SETTLEMENT OF NEW ENGLAND. 479 tary as well as civil, which sometimes check the current of events, give a new turn to human affairs, and transmit their consequences through ages. We see their importance in their results, and call them great, because great things follow. There have been battles which have fixed the fate of nations. These come down to us in history with a solid and permanent interest, not created by a display of glittering armour, the rush of adverse battalions, the sinking and rising of pennons, the flight, the pursuit, and the victory ; but by their effect in advan- cing or retarding human knowledge, in overthrowing or estab- lishing despotism, in extending or destroying human happiness. When the traveller pauses on the plain of Marathon, what are the emotions which most strongly agitate his breast? What, is the glorious recollection which thrills through his frame, and suffuses his eyes? Not, I imagine, that Grecian skill and Gre- cian valour were here most signally displayed ; but that Greece herself was saved. It is because to this spot, and to the event which lias rendered it immortal, he refers all the succeeding glories of the republic. It is because, if that day had gone otherwise, Greece had perished. It is because he perceives that her philosophers and orators, her poets and painters, her sculptors and architects, her governments and free institutions point backward to Marathon, and that their future existence seems to have been suspended on the contingency, whether the Persian or the Grecian banner should wave victorious in the beams of that day's setting Sun. And, as his imagination kindles at the retrospect, he is transported back to the interest- ing moment ; he counts the fearful odds of the contending : his interest for the result overwhelms him ; he trembles, as if it were still uncertain, and seems to doubt whether he may consider Socrates and Plato, Demosthenes, Sophocles, and Phidias, as secure, yet, to himself and to the world. "If we conquer," said the Athenian commander on the ap- proach of that decisive day, "if we conquer, we shall make Athens t he greatest city of Greece." A prophecy how well ful- iilled ! "If God prosper us," might have been the more appro- priate language of our fathers, when they landed upon this liock, "If God prosper us, we shall here begin a work which shall last for ages ; we shall plant here a new society, in the princi- ple of the fullest liberty and the purest religion; we shall subdue this wilderness which is before us; we shall fill the region of the great continent, which stretches almost from pole to pole, with civilization and Christianity; the temples of the true God shall rise where now ascends the smoke of idolatrous sacrifice; fields and gardens, the flowers of Summer, and the waving and golden harvest of Autumn, shall spread over a 480 WEBSTER. thousand hills, and stretch along a thousand valleys, never yet, since the creation, reclaimed to the use of civilized man. AVe shall whiten this coast with the canvas of a prosperous com- merce ; we shall stud the long and winding shore with a hun- dred cities. That which we sow in weakness shall he raised in strength. 'From our sincere, but houseless worship, there shall spring splendid temples to record (Jod's goodness; from the simplicity of our social union, tin-re shall arise wise and politic constitutions of government, full of the liberty which we our- selves bring and breathe; from our zeal for learning, institu- tions shall spring which shall scatter the light of knowledge throughout the land, and, in time, paying back where they have borrowed, shall contribute their part to the great aggregate of human knowledge ; and our descendants, through all genera- tions, shall look back to this spot and to this hour with una- bated affection and regard." Of the motives which influenced the first settlers to a vol- untary exile, induced them to relinquish their native coun- try, and to seek an asylum in this then unexplored wilderness, the first and principal, no doubt, were connected with religion. They sought to enjoy a higher degree of religious freedom, and what they esteemed a purer form of religious worship, than was allowed to their choice, or presented to their imitation, in the Old World. The love of religious liberty is a stronger sen- timent, when fully excited, than an attachment to civil or political freedom. That freedom which the conscience de- mands, and which men feel bound by their hope of salvation to contend for, can hardly fail to be attained. Conscience, in the cause of religion and the worship of the Deity, prepares the mind to act and to suffer beyond almost all other causes. It sometimes gives an impulse so irresistible, that no feti power or of opinion can withstand it. History instructs us that this love of religious liberty, a compound sentiment in the breast of man, made up of the clearest sense of right and the highest conviction of duty, is able to look the sternest despot- ism in the face, and, with means apparently the most inade- quate, to shake principalities and powers. There is a boldness. a spirit of daring, in religious reformers, not to be measured by the general rules which control men's purposes and actions. If the hand of power be laid upon it, this only seems to aug- ment its force and elasticity, and to cause its action to be more formidable and violent. Human invention has devised nothing, human power has compassed nothing, that can forcibly restrain it, when it breaks forth. Nothing can stop it, but to give way to it ; nothing can check it, but indulgence. It loses its power FIRST SETTLEMENT OF NEW ENGLAND. 481 only when it has gained its object. The principle of toleration, to which the world has come so slowly, is at once the most just and the most wise of all principles. Even when religious feeling takes a character of extravagance and enthusiasm, and seems to threaten the order of society and shake the columns of the social edifice, its principal danger is in its restraint. If it be allowed indulgence and exhaustion, like the elemental fires, it only agitates, and perhaps purifies, the atmosphere ; while its efforts to throw off restraint would burst the world asunder. It is certain that, although many of them were republicans in principle, we have no evidence that our New England an- cestors would have emigrated, as they did, from their native country, would have become wanderers in Europe, and finally would have undertaken the establishment of a colony here, merely from their dislike of the political systems of Europe. They lied not so much from the civil government, as from the hierarchy, and the laws which enforced conformity to the Church establishment. Mr. Kobinson had left England as early as 1G08, on account of the persecutions for nonconformity, and had retired to Holland. lie left England, from no disap- pointed ambition in affairs of State, from no regrets at the want of preferment in the Church, nor from any motive of distinc- tion or of gain. Uniformity in matters of religion was pressed with such extreme rigour, that a voluntary exile seemed the most eligible mode of escaping from the penalties of noncom- pliance. The accession of Elizabeth had, it is true, quenched the fires of Smithfield, and put an end to the easy acquisition of the crown of martyrdom. Her long reign had established formation, but toleration was a virtue beyond her concep- tion, and beyond the age. She left no example of it to her -or; and he was not of a character which rendered it probable that a sentiment either so wise or so liberal would originate with him. At the present period it seems incredible that the learned, accomplished, unassuming, and inoffensive ItobhiMm should neither be tolerated in his peaceable mode of w r, then belonging to Massachusetts, placed her in rela- tion to commerce, thus early, at the head of the Colonies. An author who wrote very near the close of the first century says : "New England is almost deserving that noble name, so mightily hath it increased ; and, from a small settlement at lirst, is now become a very populous and flourishing government. The capital cifi/, Boston, is a place of great wealth and trade; and by much the largest of any in the English empire of Amer- ica ; and exceeded by but few cities, perhaps two or three, in all the American world." But if our ancestors at the close of the first century could look back with joy, and even admiration, at the progress of the country, what emotions must we not feel, when, from the point in which we stand, we also look back and run along the events of the century which has now closed? The country which then, as we have seen, was thought deserving of a "noble name"; which then had "mightily increased," and become "very populous"; what was it, in comparison with what our eyes behold it? At that period a very great proportion of its inhabitants lived in the eastern section of Massachusetts proper, and in Plymouth Colony. In Connecticut, there were towns along the coast, some of them respectable, but in the interior all was a wilderness lieyond Hartford. On Connecticut river settlements had proceeded as far up as Deerfield, and Fort, iXimmer had been built near where, is now the south line of .New Hampshire. In New Hampshire, no settlement was then begun thirty miles from the mouth of Piscataqua river, and, in what is now Maine, the inhabitants were confined to the coast. The aggregate; of the whole pojmlat ion of New England did not exceed one hundred and sixty thousand. Its present amount is probably one million seven hundred thousand. Instead of being confined to its former limits, her population has rolled back- 490 WEBSTER. ward and filled up the spaces included within her actual local boundaries. Not this only, but it has overflowed those boun- daries, and the waves of emigration have pressed further and further toward the West. The Alleghany has not checked it; the banks of the Ohio have been covered with it. New Eng- land farms, houses, villages, and churches spread over and adorn the immense extent from the Ohio to Lake Eric, and stretch along from the Alleghmny on wards, beyond the Miamis, and toward the Falls of St. Anthony. Two thousand miles westward from the rock where their fathers landed, may now be found the sons of the Pilgrims, cultivating smiling fields, rearing towns and villages, and cherishing, we trust, the patri- monial blessings of wise institutions of liberty and religion. The world has seen nothing like this. Kegions large enough to be empires, and which, half a century ago, were known only as remote and unexplored wildernesses, are now teeming with population, and prosperous in all the great concerns of life ; in good governments, the means of subsistence, and social happi- ness. It may be safely asserted that there are now more than a million of people, descendants of New England ancotry, living free and happy, in regions which, hardly sixty year were tracts of unpenetrated forest. Nor do rivers, or moun- tains, or seas resist the progress of industry and enterprise. Ere long, the sons of the Pilgrims will be on the shores of the Pacific. 6 The imagination hardly keeps up with the progress of population, improvement, and civilization. It is now five-and-forty years since the growth and rising glory of America were portrayed in the English Parliament, with inimitable beauty, by the most consummate orator of modern times. Going back somewhat more than half a cen- tury, and describing our progress as foreseen from that point by his amiable friend Lord Batfaurst, then living, he spoke of the wonderful progress which America had made during the period of a single human life. 7 There is no American heart, I imagine, that does not glow, both with conscious, patriotic pride, and admiration for one of the happiest efforts of elo- quence, so often as the vision of "that little speck, scare- ble in the mass of national interest, a small seminal principle, rather than a formed body," and the progress of its astonishing development and growth, are recalled to the recollection. But a stronger feeling might be produced, if we were able to G It is hardly needful to observe how this prediction lias been fulfilled iu the settlement of California, and its incorporation as a State of the Union. 7 The allusion is to a very celebrated passage in Unrkc's >/'v// on Concifai* tion with America, which is given in an earlier part of this volume. See page lj-2. THE SECOND CENTURY OF NEW ENGLAND. 491 take up this prophetic description where he left it, and, placing ourselves at the point of time in which he was speaking, to set forth with equal felicity the subsequent progress of the country. There is yet among the living a most distinguished and venerable name, a descendant of the Pilgrims ; one who has been attended through life by a great and fortunate gen- ius ; a man illustrious by his own great merits, and favoured of Heaven in the long continuation of his years. 8 The time when the English orator was thus speaking of America pre- ceded but by a few days the actual opening of the llevolu- tionary drama at Lexington. He to whom I have alluded, then at the age of forty, was among the most zealous and ablo defenders of the violated rights of his country. He seemed already to have filled a full measure of public service and at- tained an honourable fame. The moment was full of difficulty and diinger, and big with events of immeasurable importance. The country was on the very brink of a civil war, of which no man could foretell the duration or the result. Something more than a courageous hope, or characteristic ardour, would have been necessary to impress the glorious prospect on his belief, if, at that moment, before the sound of the iirst shock of actual war had reached his ears, some attendant spirit had opened to him the vision of the future ; if it had said to him, "The blow is struck, and America is severed from England for ever I " if it had informed him that he himself, the next annual revolu- tion of the Sun, should put his own hand to the great instru- ment of Independence, and write his name where all nations should behold it and all time should not efface it ; that ere long lie himself should maintain the interest and represent the sov- ereignty of his new-born country in the proudest Courts of Europe ; that he should one day exercise her supreme magis- tracy ; that he should yet live to behold ten millions of f ellow- eitixens paying him the homage of their deepest gratitude and kindest affections ; that he should see distinguished talent and high public trust resting where his name rested ; that he should even see with his own unclouded eyes the close of the second century of New England, who had begun life almost with its commencement, and lived through nearly half the whole his- tory of his country ; and that on the morning of this auspicious day ITc should he found in the political councils of his native IS tatty 1 revising, by the light of experience, that system of gov- ernment which forty years before he had assisted to frame 8 'Keferriiix to John Adams, the second President of the United States. U At the time when this was spoken, Mr. Adams was a member, as Webster liiin.-i II also ua.-s of a Convention of Massachusetts, which assembled, hi the Fall of 1H-20, to revise and amend the Constitution of the Stute. 492 WEBSTER. and establish ; and, great and happy as he should then behold his country, there should be nothing in project to cloud iho scene, nothing to check the ardour of that confident and patri- otic hope which should glow in his bosom to the end of his long- protracted and happy life. APPEAL AGAINST THE SLA YK-TRADE. On: ancestors established their system of government on morality and religious sentiment, floral habits, they believed, cannot safely lie trusted on any other foundation than religious principle, nor any government be secure which is not supported by moral habits. Living under the heavenly light of revela- tion, they hoped to find all the social dispositions, all the duties which men owe to each other and to x,eiety. enforced and per- formed. AVhatever makes men good Christians, makes them good citizens. Our fathers came here to enjoy their religion free and unmolested ; and. at the end of two centuries fcl nothing upon which we can pronounce more confidently, noth- ing of which we can express a more deep and earnest convic- tion, than of the inest imahle importance of that religion to man, both in regard to this life and that which is to come. If the blessings of our political and social condition have not been too highly otiniated, we cannot well overrate the re-pon- sibility and duty which they impose upon us. ANY hold these institutions of government, religion, and learning, to be trans- mitted, as well as enjoyed. ANY are in the line of conveyance, through which whatever has been obtained by the spirit and efforts of our ancestors is to be communicated to our children. "NVe are bound to maintain public liberty, and. by the example of our own system, to convince the world that order and law, religion and morality, the rights of conscience, the rights sons, and the rights of property, may all be preserved and secured, in the most perfect manner, by a government entirely and purely elective. If we fail in this, our disaster will bo. signal, and will furnish an argument, stronger than has yet been found, in support of those opinions which maintain that go\ em- inent can rest safely on nothing but power and coercion. A> far as experience may show errors in our establishments, bound to correct them : ami, if any practices exi.-t, contrary to the principles of justice and humanity, within the reach of out- laws or our influence, we are inexcusable if we do not exert our- selves to restrain and abolish them. I deem it my duty on this occasion to suggest, that the land is APPEAL AGAINST THE SLAVE-TRADE. 493 not yet wholly free from the contamination of a traffic at which every feeling of humanity must for ever revolt, I mean the African slave-trade. Neither public sentiment nor the law has hitherto been able entirely to put an end to this odious and abominable trade. At the moment when God in His mercy has blessed the Christian world with a universal peace, there is rea- son to fear that, to the disgrace of the Christian name and char- acter, new efforts are making for the extension of this trade by subjects and citizens of Christian States, in whose hearts there dwell no sentiments of humanity or of justice, and over whom neither the fear of God nor the fear of man exercises a control. In the sight of our law, the African slave-trader is a pirate and a felon ; and in the sight of Heaven, an offender far beyond the ordinary depth of human guilt. There is no brighter part of our history than that which records the measures which have been adopted by the government at an early day, and at differ- ent times since, for the suppression of this traffic ; and I would call on all the true sons of New England to cooperate with the laws of man and the justice of Heaven. If there be, within the extent of our knowledge, or influence, any participation in this trallie, Irt us pledge ourselves here, upon the rock of Plymouth, to extirpate and destroy it. It is not fit that the land of the Pilgrims should bear the shame longer. I hear the sound of the hammer, I see the smoke of the furnaces where manacles and frltrrs are still forged for human limbs. I see the visages of thoM- who by stealth and at midnight labour in this work of Hell, foul and dark, as may become the artificers of such instru- ments of misery and torture. Let that spot be purified, or let it cease to be of New England. Let it be purified, or let it be set aside from the Christian world ; let it be put out of the cir- cle of human sympathies and human regards, and let civilized man henceforth have no communion with it. I would invoke those who fill the seats of justice, and all who minister at her altar, that they execute the wholesome and nec- severity of the law. I invoke the ministers of our relig- ion, that they proclaim its denunciation of these crimes, and add its solemn sanctions to the authority of human laws. If the pulpit be silent whenever or whereverthere maybe a sinner bloody with this guilt within the hearing of its voice, the pulpit is false to its trust. I call on the fair merchant, who has reaped his harvest upon the seas, that he assist in scourging from those seas the worst pirates that ever infested them. That ocean, which seems to wave with a gentle magnificence to waft the burden of an honest commerce, and to roll along its treasures with a conscious pride, that ocean, which hardy industry re- gards, even when the winds have ruffled its surface, as a field of 494 WEBSTER. grateful toil, what is it to the victim of this oppression, when he is brought to its shores, and looks forth upon it, for the first time, loaded with chains and bleeding with stripes? What is it to him but a wide-spread prospect of suffering, anguish, and death ? Nor do the skies smile longer, nor is the air longer fra- grant to him. The Sun is cast down from heaven. An inhu- man and accursed traffic has cut him off in his manhood, or in his youth, from every enjoyment belonging to his being, and every blessing which his Creator intended for him. The Christian communities send forth their emissaries of relig- ion and letters, who stop, here and there, along the coast of the va.-t continent of Africa, and with painful and tedious efforts make some almost imperceptible progress in the communication of knowledge, and in the general improvement of the natives who are immediately about them. Not thus slow and imper- ceptible is the transmission of the vices and bad passions which the subjects of Christian States carry to the land. The slave- trade having touched the coast, its influence and its evils spread, like a pestilence, over the whole continent, making sav- ago wars more savage and more frequent, and adding new and fierce passions to the contests of barbarians. I pursue this topic no further, except again to say that all Christendom, being now blessed with peace, is bound by every thing which belongs to its character, and to the character of the present age, to put a stop to this inhuman and disgraceful traffic. 1 ? BUNKER-HILL MONUMENT BEGUN. 1 THIS uncounted multitude before me and around me proves the feeling which the occasion has excited. These thousands of human faces, glowing with sympathy and joy, and, from the 10 This is, to me, the noblest passage of the Plymouth discourse. Mr. George Ticknor, who was present at the delivery, tells us, "The passage, about tin- slave- trade was delivered with a power of indignation such as I never witnessed on any other occasion." I must add, from the same hand, a description of Webster's appearance at a social gathering immediately alter the discourse : "lie \\a.s full of animation and radiant with happine.-s. Uut there was something 1 about him very grand and imposing at the same time. In a letter, which I wrote the same day, I said that ' he seemed as if he were like the mount that might not be touched, and that burned with lire.' I have the same recollection of him still." The licminiscences, from which this is taken, were written many years alter the event. I lind them quoted largely in Mr. lieorge T. Curtis's very inter- esting and instructive Life of Daniel Webster. 1 The corner-stone of Kunkcr Hill Monument was laid on the 17th of June, ISA just liity years after the battle of Bunker Hill. An Association had been BUNKER-HILL MONUMENT BEGUN. 495 impulses of a common gratitude, turned reverently to Heaven in this spacious temple of the firmament, proclaim that the day, the place, and the purpose of our assembling have made a deep impression on our hearts. If, indeed, there be any thing in local association fit to affect the mind of man, we need not strive to repress the emotions which agitate us here. We are among the sepulchres of our fathers. We are on ground distinguished by their valour, their constancy, and the shedding of their blood. We are here, not to fix an uncertain date in our annals, nor to draw into notice an obscure and unknown spot. If our humble purpose had never been conceived, if we ourselves had never been born, the 17th of June, 1775, would have been a day on which all subse- quent history would have poured its light, and the eminence where we stand a point of attraction to tho eyes of successive generations. But we are Americans. We live in what may be called the early age of this great continent ; and we know that our posterity, through all time, are here to suffer and enjoy the allotments of humanity. We see before us a probable train of great events; we know that our own fortunes have been hap- pily cast ; and it is natural, therefore, that we should be moved by the contemplation of occurrences which have guided our destiny before many of us were born, and settled the condition in which we should pass that portion of our existence which God allows to men on Earth. We do not read even of the discovery of this continent with- out feeling something of a personal interest in the event; with- out being reminded how much it has affected our own fortunes and our own existence. It would be still more unnatural for us, therefore, than for others, to contemplate with unaffected minds that interesting, I may say that most touching and pa- thetic scene, when the great Discoverer of America stood on the deck of his shattered bark, the shades of night falling on the sea, yet no man sleeping; tossed on tho billows of an un- known ocean, yet the stronger billows of alternate hope and de- spair tossing his own troubled thoughts ; extending forward his farmed Homo years before, for the purpose of rearing the monument, and Web- ster \\;is at that time President of tin; Association. The occasion was one of high interest, and drc\v a vast throng of people, together from various parts <>f the country. The discourse pronounced by Webster on that occasion was received with unbounded enthusiasm, and is certainly among his noblest strains of eloquence. J hen- give the. opening portion of it. I hud it in mind to give, nl-o, tin; passage specially addressed to the band of Revolutionary Veterans v.-ho formed tin; crowning feature of the assemblage; but that well-known pas- sage runs in a vein so lolly and so bold, that perhaps nothing less than Webster's own grand delivery could bring it fairly off, or earry the feelings smoothly through the course of it. 496 WEBSTER. harassed frame, straining westward his anxious and eager eyes, till Heaven at last granted him a moment of rapture and ec- stasy, in blessing his vision with the sight of the unknown world. Nearer to our times, more closely connected with our fates, and therefore still more interesting to our feelings and affec- tions, is the settlement of our own country by colonists from England. We cherish every memorial of these worthy ances- tors; we celebrate their patience and fortitude; we admire their daring enterprise ; we teach our children to venerate their piety; and we are justly proud of being descended from men who have set the world an example of founding civil institu- tions on the great and united principles of human freedom and human knowledge. To us, their children, the story of their labours and sulTerings can never lie without its interest. We, shall not stand unmoved on the shore of Plymouth, while the sea continues to wash it ; nor will our brethren in another early ;\nd ancient Colony forget the place of its first establishment, till their river shall cease to How by it. Xo vigour of youth, no maturity of manhood, will lead the nation to forget the spots where its infancy was cradled and defended. But the great event in the history of the continent, which we are now met here to commemorate, that prodigy of modern times, at once the wonder and the blessing of the world, is the American Revolution. In a day of extraordinary prosperity and happiness, of high national honour, distinction, and power, we are brought together, in this place, by our love of country, by our admiration of exalted character, by our gratitude for signal services and patriotic devotion. The Society whose organ I am was formed for the purpi rearing some honourable and durable monument to the memory of the early friends of American Independence. They have thought that for this object no time could be more propitious than the present prosperous and peaceful period ; that no place could claim preference over this memorable spot ; and that no day could be more auspicious to the undertaking than the anni- versary of the battle which was here fought. The foundation of that monument we have now laid. With solemnities suited to the occasion, with prayers to Almighty God for His blessing, and in the midst of this cloud of witnesses, we have begun the work. We trust it will be prosecuted, and that, springing from a broad foundation, rising high in massive solidity and una- dorned grandeur, it may remain as long as Heaven permits the works of man to last, a fit emblem both of the events in memory of which it is raised and of the gratitude of those who have reared it. We know, indeed, that the record of illustrious actions is BUNKER-HILL MONUMENT BEGUN. 497 most safely deposited in the universal remembrance of man- kind. We know that, if we could cause this structure to as- cend, not only till it reached the skies, but till it pierced them, its broad surfaces could still contain but part of that which, in an age of knowledge, hath already been spread over the Earth, and which history charges itself with making known to all fu- ture times. We know that no inscription on entablatures less broad than the Earth itself can carry information of the events we commemorate where it has not already gone ; and that no structure, which shall not outlive the duration of letters and knowledge among men, can prolong the memorial. But our object is, by this edifice, to show our own deep sense of the value and importance of the achievements of our ancestors ; and, by presenting this work of gratitude to the eye, to keep alive similar sentiments, and to foster a constant regard for the principles of the Revolution. Human beings are composed, not of reason only, but of imagination also, and sentiment; and that is neither wasted nor misapplied which is appropriated to the purpose of giving right direction to sentiments, and opening proper springs of feeling in the heart. Let it not be supposed that our object is to perpetuate national hostility, or even to cherish a mere military spirit. It is higher, purer, nobler. Wo consecrate our work to the spirit of national independence, and we wish that the light of peace may rest upon it for ever. Wo rear a memorial of our conviction of that unmeasured benefit which has boon conferred on our own land, and of the happy influences which have been produced, by the same events, on the general interests of mankind. We come, as Americans, to mark a spot which must for ever be dear to us and our poster- ity. We wish that whosoever, in all coming time, shall turn his eye hither, may behold that the place is not undistinguished where the first great battle of the Revolution was fought. We wish that this structure may proclaim the magnitude and im- portance of that event to every class and every age. We wish that infancy may learn the purpose of its erection from mater- nal lips, and that weary and withered age may behold it, and bo solaced by the recollections which it suggests. We wish that labour may look up here, and be proud, in the midst of its toil. We wish that, in those days of disaster which, as they come on all nations, must be expected to come on us also, desponding patriotism may turn its eyes hitherward, and bo assured that the foundations of our national power still stand strong. Wo h that this column, rising towards heaven among the pointed spires of so many temples dedicated to God, may contribute also to produce, in all minds, a pious feeling of dependence and gratitude. We wish, finally, that the last object to the sight of 498 WEBSTER. him who loaves his native shore, and the first to gladden his who revisits it, may be something which shall remind him of the liberty and the glory of his country. Let it rise ! let it rise, till it meet the Sun in his coining ; let the earliest light of the morning gild it, and parting day linger and play on its summit ! BUXKER-HILL MONUMENT FINISHED. 2 THE Bunker-Hill Monument is finished. Here it stands. Fortunate in the high natural eminence on which it is placed, higher, infinitely higher in its object- and purpose, it ri>e> over the land and over the sea ; and, visible, at their homes, to three hundred thousand of the people of Massachusetts, it stands a memorial of the last, and a monitor to the present and to all succeeding generations. I have spoken of the loftiness of its purpose. If it had been without any other design than the creation of a work of art, the granite of which it is composed would have slept in its native bed. It has a purpose, and that purpose gives it its character. That purpose enrobes it with dignity and moral grandeur. That well-known purpose it is which causes us to look up to it with a feeling of awe. It is it- self the orator of this occasion. It is not from my lips, it could not be from any human lips, that that strain of eloquence is this day to flow most competent to move and excite the vast multitudes around me. The powerful speaker stands motion- less before us. It is a plain shaft. It bears no inscriptions, fronting to the rising Sun, from which the future antiquary shall wipe the dust. Nor does the rising Sun cause tones of music to issue from its summit. But at the, rising of the Sun, and at the setting of the Sun ; in the. blaze of noonday, and be- neath the milder effluence of lunar light, it looks, it speaks, it acts, to the full comprehension of every American mind, and the awakening of glowing enthusiasm in every American heart. Its silent, but awful utterance ; its deep pathos, as it brings to our contemplation the 17th of June, 1775, and the consequences 2 The address from which this la taken was delivered on the 17th of June, 1S-1:', just, eighteen years alter the laying of the corner-stone. The monument was completed in July, 18^2, but the celebration of that event was justly put off till the next anniversary of the battle. Weh.-ter was Secretary of 5 the time, and President Tyler and the other members of ihe i.'ablnet graced the occasion with their presence. The throng of people \\;is c\cn greater than in IS-J."), not less than a hundred thousand being a>seinbled, and among them delcg.it ions of the descendants of New England from the remotest parts of the country. BUNKER-HILL MONUMENT FINISHED. 499 which have resulted to us, to our country, and to the world, from the events of that day, and which we know must continue to rain influence on the destinies of mankind to the end of time; the elevation with which it raises us high above the ordinary feelings of life, surpass all that the study of the closet, or even the inspiration of genius, can produce. To-day it speaks to us. Its future auditories will be the successive generations of men, as they rise up before it and gather around it. Its speech will be of patriotism and courage ; of civil and religious liberty ; of free government ; of the moral improvement and elevation of mankind ; and of the immortal memory of those who, with heroic devotion, have sacrificed their lives for their country. Banners and badges, processions and flags, announce to us, that amidst this uncounted throng are thousands of natives of New England now residents in other States. Welcome, ye kin- dred names, with kindred blood ! From the broad savannas of the South, from the newer regions of the West, from amidst the hundreds of thousands of men of Eastern origin who culti- vate the rich valley of the Genesee, or live along the chain of the Lakes, from tho mountains of Pennsylvania, and from the thronged cities of the coast, welcome, welcome ! Wher- ever else you may be strangers, here you are all at home. You assemble at this shrine of liberty, near the family altars at which your earliest devotions were paid to Heaven; near to the temples of worship first entered by you, and near to the schools and colleges in which your education was received. You bring names which are on the rolls of Lexington, Concord, and Bun- ker Ilill. You come, some of you, once more to be embraced by an aged Revolutionary father, or to receive another, perhaps a l:tst, blessing, bestowed in love and tears by a mother, yet sur- viving to witness and to enjoy your prosperity and happiness. But if family associations and the recollections of the past bring you hither with greater alacrity, and mingle with your greeting much of local attachment and private affection, greet- ing also be given, free and hearty greeting, to every American i-iti/<-n who treads this sacred soil with patriotic feeling, and respires with pleasure in an atmosphere perfumed with the recollections of 1775 ! This occasion is respectable, nay, it is sublime, by the nationality of its sentiment. Among the sev- enteen millions of happy people who form the American community, there is not one who has not an interest in this monument, sis there is not one that has not a deep and abiding interest in that which it commemorates. Woe betide the man who brings to this day's worship feeling less than wholly American I Woe betide the man who can 500 WEBSTER. stand here with the fires of local resentments burning, or the purpose of fomenting local jealousies and the stripes of local interests festering and rankling in his heart. Union, estab- lished in justice, in patriotism, and the most plain and obvious common interest, union, founded on the same love of liberty, cemented by blood shed in the same common cause, union has been the source of all our glory and greatness thus far, and is the ground of all our highest hopes. This column stands on union. I know not that it might not keep its position, if the American Union, in the mad conflict of human passions, and in the strife of parties and factions, should be broken up and de- stroyed. I know not that it would totter and fall to the earth, and mingle its fragments with the fragments of Liberty and the Constitution, when State shall be separated from State, and faction and dismemberment obliterate forever all the hopes of the founders of our republic, and the great inheritance of their children. It might stand. But who, from beneath the weight of mortification and shame that would oppress him, could look up to behold it? Whose eyeballs would not be seared by such a spectacle ? For my part, should I live to such a time, I shall avert my eyes from it for ever. ADAMS IN THE CONGRESS OF 1776. 8 THE eloquence of Mr. Adams resembled his general character, and formed indeed a part of it It was bold, manly, and ener- getic ; and such the crisis required. When public bodies are to be addressed on momentous occasions, when great int are at stake, and strong passion* excited, nothing is valuable in speech, further than as it is connected with high intellecual and moral endowments. Clearness, force, and earnestness are the qualities which produce conviction. True eloquence, in- deed, does not consist in speech. It cannot be brought from far. Labour and learning may toil for it, but they will toil in vain. Words and phrases may be marshalled in every way, but 3 John Adams and Thomas Jefferson, the second and third Presidents of the United States, l>oth died within a low hours of each other, on the 4th of July, 1820. This coincidence was so remarkable as to excite universal interest, and is said to have a fleeted the public mind moi-e deeply than any event since the death of Washington, which occurred on the 14th of December, 1799. The eity authorities of Boston took measures for having the event commemorated in a suitable manner; and on the id of August following, Webster delivered his celebrated Discourse on Adams and Jefferson in Faneuil Hall. I here give that portion of the Discourse which is generally considered the best. ADAMS IN THE CONGRESS OF 1776. 501 they cannot compass it. It must exist in the man, in the subject, and in the occasion. Affected passion, intense expression, the pomp of declamation, all may aspire after it ; they cannot reach it. It comes, if it come at all, like the outbreaking of a fountain from the earth, or the bursting forth of volcanic fires, with spontaneous, original, native force. The graces taught in the schools, the costly ornaments and studied contrivances of speech shock and disgust men, when their own lives, and the fate of their wives, their children, and their country, hang on the deci- sion of the hour. Then words have lost their power, rhetoric is vain, and all elaborate oratory contemptible. Even genius itself then feels rebuked and subdued, as in the presence of higher qualities. Then patriotism is eloquent; then self-devotion is eloquent. The clear conception, outrunning the deductions of logic, the high purpose, the firm resolve, the dauntless spirit, speaking on the tongue, beaming from the eye, informing every feature, and urging the whole man onward, right onward to his object, this, this is eloquence; or rather it is something greater and higher than all eloquence; it is action, noble, sublime, godlike action. In July, 1776, the controversy had passed the stage of argu- ment. An appeal had been made to force, and opposing armies were in the field. Congress, then, was to decide whether the tic which had so long bound us to the parent State was to be severed at once, and severed for ever. All the Colonies had signified their resolution to abide by this decision, and the people looked for it with the most intense anxiety. And surely fellow-citizens, never, never were men called to a more impor- tant political deliberation. If we contemplate it from the point where they then stood, no question could be more full of inter- est : if we look at it now, and judge of its importance by its effects, it appears in still greater magnitude. Let us, then, bring before us the assembly which was about to decide a question thus big with the fate of empire. Let us open their doors, and look in upon their deliberations. Let us sur- vey the anxious and care-worn countenances, let us hear the firm-toned voices, of this band of patriots. HANCOCK presides over the solemn sitting ; and one of those not yet prepared to pronounce for absolute independence is on the floor, and is urging his reasons for dissenting from the dec- laration. "Let us pause! This step, once taken, cannot be retraced. This resolution, once passed, will cut off all hope of reconcilia- tion. If success attend the arms of England, wo shall then be no longer Colonies, with charters and with privileges: these will all bo forfeited by this act; and wo shall be in the condi- 502 WEBSTER. tion of other conquered people, at the mercy of the conquerors. For ourselves, we may be ready to run the hazard ; but are we ready to curry the country to that length V Is meeesfl so prob- able as to justify it? Where is the military, where the naval power, by which we are to resist the whole strength of the arm of England? for she will exert that strength to the utmost. Can we rely on the constancy and perseverance of the people? or will they not act as the people of other countries have acted, and, wearied with a long war, submit, in the end, to a worse oppression? While we stand on our old ground, and insist on redress of grievances, we know we are right, and are not an- swerable for consequences. Nothing then can be imputed to us. But if we now change our object, carry our pretentious further, and set up for absolute independence, we shall lose the sympathy of mankind. We shall no longer be defending what we possess, but struggling for something which we never did JS, and which we have solemnly and uniformly disclaimed all intention of pursuing, from the very outset of the troubles. Abandoning thus our old ground of rcsi.Mance only to arbitrary acts of oppression, the nations will believe the whole to have been mere pretence, and they will look on us, not as injured, but as ambitious subjects. I shudder before this responsibility. It will be on us, if, relinquishing the ground on which we have stood so long, and stood so safely, we now proclaim indepen- dence, and carry on the war for that object, while these cities burn, these pleasant fields whiten and bleach with the bones of their owners, and these streams run blood. It will be upon us, it will be upon us, if, failing to maintain this unseasonable and ill-judged Declaration, a sterner despotism, maintained by mil- itary power, shall bo established over our posterity, when we ourselves, given up by an exhausted, a harassed, a misled peo- ple, shall have expiated our rashness and atoned for our pre- sumption on the scaffold." It was for Mr. Adams to reply to arguments like these. Wo know his opinions, and we know his character, lie would com- mence with his accustomed directness and earnest n< "Sink or swim, live or die, survive or perish, I give my hand and my heart to this vote. It is true indeed that in the begin- ning we aimed not at independence. But there's a Divinity which shapes our ends. The injustice of England lias driven us to arms ; and, blinded to her own interest for our good, she has obstinately persisted, till independence is no\v within our grasp. Wo have but to reach forth to it, and it is ours. Why then should wo defer the Declaration? Is any man so weak as now to hope fora reconciliation with England, which shall leave either safety to the country and its liberties, or safety to his life ADAMS IX THE CONGRESS OF 1776. 503 and his own honour? Are not you, Sir, who sit in that chair, is not he, our venerable colleague near you, are you not both al- ready the proscribed and predestined objects of punishment and of vengeance? Cut off from all hope of royal clemency, what are you, what can you be, while the power of England remains, but outlaws ? If we postpone independence, do we mean to carry on, or to give up, the war? Do we mean to submit to the meas- ures of Parliament, Boston-Port Bill and all? Do we mean to submit, and consent that we ourselves shall be ground to pow- der, and our country and its rights trodden down in the dust? I know we do not mean to submit We never shall submit. Do we mean to violate that most solemn obligation ever entered into by men, that plighting, before God, of our sacred honour to Washington, when, putting him forth to incur the dangers of war, as well as the political hazards of the times, we promised to adhere to him, in every extremity, with our fortunes and our lives ? I know there is not a man here, who would not rather see a general conflagration sweep over the land, or an earth- quake sink it, than one jot or tittle of that plighted faith fall to the ground. For myself, having, twelve months ago, in this place, moved you, that George Washington bo appointed com- mander of the forces raised, or to be raised, for defence of American liberty, may my right hand forget her cunning, and my tongue cleave to the roof of my mouth, if I hesitate or waver in the support I give him. " The war, then, must go on. We must fight it through. And if the war must go on, why put off longer the Declaration of In- dependence? That measure will strengthen us. It will give us character abroad. The nations will then treat with us, which they never can do while we acknowledge ourselves sub- jects in arms against our sovereign. Nay, I maintain that En ;;- i'liid herself will sooner treat for peace with us on the footing of independence than consent, by repealing her Acts, to ac- knowledge that her whole conduct toward us has been a course of injustice and oppression. Tier pride will be less wounded by submitting to that course of things which now predestinates our independence than by yielding the points in controversy to her rebellious subjects. The former she would regard as the result of fortune ; the latter she would feel as her own deep disgrace. Why then, why then, Sir, do we not as soon as pos- sible change this from a civil to a national war? And since wo must light it through, why not put ourselves in a state to enjoy all the benefits of victory, if we gain the victory? " If we fail, it can be no worse for us. But we shall not fail^ The cause will raise up armies; the cause will create navies. The people, the people, if we are true to them, will carry us. 504 WEBSTER. and will carry themselves, gloriously through this struggle. I care not how fickle other people have been found. I know the people of these Colonies, and I know that resistance to British aggression is deep and settled in their hearts, and cannot be eradicated. Every Colony, indeed, has expressed its willingness to follow, if we but take the lead. Sir, the Declara- tion will inspire the people with increased courage. Instead of a long and bloody war for restoration of privileges, for redress of grievances, for chartered immunities, hold under a British King, set before them the glorious object of entire independence, and it will breathe into them anew the breath of life. Read this Declaration at the head of the army ; every sword will bo drawn from its scabbard, and the solemn vow uttered, to main- tain it, or to perish on the bed of honour. Publish it from the pulpit ; religion will approve it, and the love of religious lib- erty will cling round it, resolved to stand with it, or fall with it. Send it to the public halls ; proclaim it there ; let them hear it who heard the lirst roar of the enemy's cannon ; let them see it who saw their brothers and their sons fall on the field of Bunker Hill, and in the streets of Lexington and Concord, and the very walls will cry out in its support. "Sir, I know the uncertainty of human affairs, but I see, I see clearly, through this day's business. You and I indeed may rue it. We may not live to the time when this Declaration shall be made good. We may die ; die, colonists ; die, slaves ; die, it may be, ignominiously and on the scaffold. Be it so ; be it so 1 If it be the pleasure of Heaven that my country shall require the poor offering of my life, the victim shall be ready at the appointed hour of sacrifice, come when that hour may. But while I do live, let me have a country, or at least the hope of a country, and that a free country. "But; whatever may be our fate, be assured, be assured, that this Declaration will stand. It may cost treasure, and it may cost blood ; but it will stand, and it will richly compensate for both. Through the thick gloom of the present, I seethe brightness of the future, as the Sun in heaven. We shall make this a glori- ous, an immortal day. When we are in our graves, our children will honour it. They will celebrate it with thanksgiving, with festivity, with bonfires, and illuminations. On its annual return they will shed tears, copious, gushing tears, not of subjection and slavery, not of agony and distress, but of exultation, of grat- itude, and of joy. Sir, before God, I believe the hour is come. My judgment approves this measure, and my whole heart is in it. All that I have, and all that I am, and all that I hope, in this life, 1 am now ready here to stake upon it ; and I leave off, as I RIGHT USE OF LEARNING. 505 began, that live or die, survive or perish, I am for the Declara- tion. It is my living sentiment, and by the blessing of God it shall be my dying sentiment, Independence now, and INDEPEN- DENCE FOR EVER." 4 EIGHT USE OF LEARNING. LITERATURE sometimes disgusts, and pretension to it much oftener disgusts, by appearing to hang loosely on the character, like something foreign or extraneous, not a part, but an ill- adjusted appendage ; or by seeming to overload and weigh it down by its unsightly bulk, like the productions of bad taste in architecture, where there is massy and cumbrous ornament, without strength or solidity of column. This has exposed learning, and especially classical learning, to reproach. Men have seen that it might exist without mental superiority, with- out vigour, without good taste, and without utility. But in such cases classical learning has only not inspired natural tal- ent ; or, at most, it has but made original feebleness of intellect, and natural bluntness of perception, something more conspicu- ous. The question, after all, if it be a question, is, whether literature, ancient as well as modern, does not assist a good understanding, improve natural good taste, add polished armour to native strength, and render its possessor, not only more ca- p.iMo of deriving private happiness from contemplation and reflection, but more accomplished also for action in the affairs of life, and especially for public action. They whose memories we now honour were learned men ; but their learning was kept in its proper place, and made subservient to the uses and ob- jects of life. They w r ere scholars, not common nor superficial ; but their scholarship was so in keeping with their character, so liK-nded and inwrought, that careless observers, or bad judges, ring an ostentatious display of it, might infer that it did not exist ; forgetting, or not knowing, that classical learning, in men who act in conspicuous public stations, perform duties 4 In reference to the foregoing speech, I cannot do better than by quoting from Curti.-'s Life of Webster: "President Fillmore informs me that ho onco :i>ked Mr. Webster, in familiar conversation, what authority he had for putting thi< speech into the mouth of John Adams, the Congress at that period having always s::t with dosed doors. Mr. Webster replied that he had no authority for 'iiiient.s of the speech excepting Mr. Adams's {general character, and a letter lie had written to his wife, that had frequently been published. After a short pause, Mr. Webber added: 'I will tell you what is not generally known. I wrote that speech one, morning in my library, and when it was finished my paper was wet with tears.'" 506 WEBSTER. which exercise the faculty of writing, or address popular, delib- erative, or judicial bodies, is often felt where it is little seen, and sometimes felt more effectually because it is not seen at all. Discourse on Adams and Jefferson. THE MURDER OF MR. WHITE. 6 I AM little accustomed, Gentlemen, to the part which I am now attempting to perform. Hardly more than once or twice has it happened to me to be concerned on the side of the gov- ernment in any criminal prosecution whatever ; and never, until the present occasion, in any case alTecting life. But I very much regret that it should have been thought nec- essary to suggest to you, that I am brought here to " hurry you against the law and beyond the evidence." 1 hope I have too much regard for justice, and too much respect for my own char- acter, to attempt either ; and, were 1 to make such attempt, I am sure that in this court nothing can be carried against the law, and that gentlemen, intelligent and just as you are, are not, by any power, to be hurried beyond the evidence. Though I could well have wished to shun this occasion, I have not felt at liberty to withhold my professional assistance, when it is sup- 5 The argument from which this famous passage is taken was made to the jury, in August, 1830, at a special session of the Supreme Court of Massachusetts, held in Salem, for the trial of John F. and Joseph J. Knapp, charged with jiar- ticipating in the murder of Captain Joseph White. The deed of murder \\ -as actually committed by the hand of one Richard Cn\\ nin>hicld, who had hren hired by the Knapps to do it for $1,000. While Crowninshicld and the Knapps were iu prison awaiting trial, J. J. Knapp, under a pledge of indemnity, made a full eonfe.-sion of the whole affair; and Crowninshield, having heard of this confession, soon after committed suicide in the prison. Knapp thereupon with- drew his confession, and refused to testify in the trial. This released the oilier party from the pledge; and then J. F. Knapp was indicted as principal in the. murder, and his brother as an accessary. Doth of the Knapps were convicted of the crime, and executed. Web.-ter was engaged by the prosecuting officers of the State to aid them in the case. The opposing counsel weiv Mr. Franklin Dexter and Mr. W. II. Gardiner, men eminent for ability and learning, who did their utmost in the defence. Some objection was made to Webster's having a. hand in the trial, but was overruled; and Mr. Dexter complained that lie had bet n brought there to " hurry the jury against the law and bey OIK It he evidence." The portion of Webster's argument here given has stood the hardest trial, per- haps, that any thing of the sort can undergo: it has been a favourite piece in school and college declamation ever since; and would have been staled long ere this, it'any thing could stale it. But no frequency of such use can take the spirit and freshness out of it Ami it gains much in effect from u full knowledge of Uie circumstauces of the case. THE MURDER OP MR. WHITE. 50T posed that I may be in some degree useful in investigating and discovering the truth respecting this most extraordinary mur- der. It has seemed to be a duty incumbent on me, as on every other citizen, to do my best and my utmost to bring to light the perpetrators of this crime. Against the prisoner at the bar, as an individual, I cannot have the slightest prejudice. I would not do him the smallest injury or injustice. But I do not affect to be indifferent to the discovery and the punishment of this deep guilt. I cheerfully share in the opprobrium, how great soever it may be, which' is cast on those who feel and manifest an anxious concern that all who had a part in planning, or a hand in executing, this deed of midnight assassination, may be brought to answer for their enormous crime at the bar of pub- lic justice. Gentlemen, it is a most extraordinary case. In some respects, it has hardly a precedent anywhere ; certainly none in our Xe\v England history. This bloody drama exhibited no sud- denly-excited, ungovernable rage. The actors in it were not surprised by any lion-like temptation springing upon their vir- tue, and overcoming it, before resistance could begin. Nor did they do the deed to glut savage vengeance, or satiate long-settled and deadly hate. It was a cool, calculating, money-making mur- der. It was all "hire and salary, not revenge." It was the weighing of money against life ; the counting-out of so many pi. <> of silver against so many ounces of blood. An aged man, without an enemy in the world, in his own house and in his own bed, is made the victim of a butcherly murder for mere pay. Truly, here is a new lesson for painters and poets. Whoever shall hereafter draw the portrait of mur- der, if he will show it as it lias been exhibited, where such :;:nle was lust to have been looked for, in the very bosom of our Xew Kn'-ilund society, let him not give it the grim visage of Moloch, the brow knitted by revenge, the face black with settled hate, and the bloodshot eye emitting livid fires of mal- ice. Let him draw, rather, a decorous, smooth-faced, bloodless demon ; a picture in repose, rather in action ; not so much an example of human nature in its depravity, and in its par- oxysms of crime, as an infernal being, a fiend, in the ordinary display and development of his character. The deed was executed with a degree of self-possession and steadiness equal to the wickedness with which it was planned. The circumstances now clear in evidence spread out the whole scene before us. Deep sleep had fallen on the destined victim, and on all beneath his roof. A healthful old man, to whom sleep was sweet, the first sound slumbers of the night held him in their soft but strong embrace. The assassin enters, through 508 WEBSTER. the window already prepared, into an unoccupied apartment. With noiseless foot he paces the lonely hall, half-lighted by the Moon ; he winds up the ascent of the stall's, and reaches the door of the chamber. Of this, he moves the lock by soft and continued pressure, till it turns on its hinges without noise ; and he enters, and beholds his victim before him. The room is uncommonly open to the admission of light. The face of the innocent sleeper is turned from the murderer, and the beams of the Moon, resting on the grey locks of his aged temple, show him where to strike. The fatal blow is given ! and the victim passes, without a struggle or a motion, from the repose of sleep to the repose of death 1 It is the assassin's purpose to make sure work ; and he yet plies the dagger, though it is obvious that life has been destroyed by the blow of the bludgeon. lie even raises the aged arm, that he may not fail in his aim at the heart, and replaces it again over the wounds of the poniard ! To finish the picture, lie explores the wrist for the pulse ! lie feels for it, and ascertains that it beats no longer 1 It is ac- complished. The deed is done. lie retreats, retraces his steps to the window, passes out through it as he came in, and es- capes. He has done the murder. Xo eye has seen him, no ear has heard him. The secret is his own, and it is sale ! Ah ! Gentlemen, that was a dreadful mistake. Such a secret can be safe nowhere. The whole creation of God has neither nook nor corner where the guilty can bestow it, and say it is safe. Not to speak of that Eye which glances through all dis- guises, and beholds every thing as in the splendour of noon, such secrets of guilt are never safe from detection even by men. True it is, generally speaking, that "murder will out." True it is, that Providence hath so ordained, and dotli so gov- ern things, that those who break the great law of Heaven by shedding man's blood seldom succeed in avoiding discovery. Especially, in a case exciting so much attention as this, discov- ery must come, and will come, sooner or later. A thousand eyes turn at once to explore every man, every thing, every cir- cumstance, connected with the time and place ; a thousand ears catch every whisper ; a thousand excited minds intensely dwell on the scene, shedding all their light, and ready to kindle the slightest circumstance into a blaze of discover}'. Meantime the guilty soul cannot keep its own secret. It is false to itself ; or rather it feels an irresistible impulse of conscience to be true to itself. It labours under its guilty possession, and knows not what to do with it. The human heart was not made for the residence of such an inhabitant. It finds itself preyed on by a torment which it dares not acknowledge to God or man. A vulture is devouring it, and it can ask no sympathy or . THE MURDER OF MR. WHITE. 509 ance, either from Heaven or Earth. The secret which the murderer possesses soon comes to possess him ; and, like the evil spirits of which we read, it overcomes him, and leads him whithersoever it will. He feels it beating at his heart, rising to his throat, and demanding disclosure. He thinks the whole world sees it in his face, reads it in his eyes, and almost hears its workings in the very silence of his thoughts. It has become his master. It betrays his discretion, it breaks down his cour- age, it conquers his prudence. When suspicions from without begin to embarrass him, and the net of circumstance to entan- gle him, the fatal secret struggles with still greater violence to burst forth. It must be confessed, it will be confessed ; there is no refuge from confession but suicide, and suicide is confession. Much has been said, on this occasion, of the excitement which has existed, and still exists, and of the extraordinary measures taken to discover and punish the guilty. Xo doubt there has been, and is, much excitement, and strange indeed it would be, had it been otherwise. Should not all the peaceable and well-disposed naturally feel concerned, and naturally exert themselves to bring to punishment the authors of this secret assassination ? Was it a thing to be slept upon or forgotten ? Did you, Gentlemen, sleep quite as quietly in your beds after this murder as before? Was it not a case for rewards, for meetings, for committees, for the united efforts of all the good, to find out a band of murderous conspirators, of midnight ruff- ians, and to bring them to the bar of justice and law? If this be excitement, is it an unnatural or an improper excitement? It seems to me, Gentlemen, that there are appearances of an- other feeling, of a very different nature and character ; not very extensive, I would hope, but still there is too much evi- dence of its existence. Such is human nature, that some per- sons lose their abhorrence of crime in their admiration of its magnificent exhibitions. Ordinary vice is reprobated by them, but extraordinary guilt, exquisite wickedness, the high flights and poetry of crime, seize on the imagination, and lead them to forget the depths of the guilt, in admiration of the excellence of the performance, or the unequalled atrocity of the purpose. There are those in our day who have made great use of this in- iirmity of our nature, and by means of it done infinite injury to the cause of good morals. They have affected not only the taste, but, I fear, also the principles, of the young, the heedless, and the imaginative, by the exhibition of interesting and beau- tiful monsters. They render depravity attractive, sometimes by the polish of its manners, and sometimes by its very extrava- gance ; and study to show off crime under all the advantages of cleverness and dexterity. Gentlemen, this is an extraordinary 510 WEBSTER. murder, but it is still a murder. We are not to lose ourselves in wonder at its origin, or in gazing on its cool and skilful exe- cution. AVe are to detect and to punish it ; and while we pro- ceed with caution against the prisoner, and are to be sure that we do not visit on his head the offences of others, we are yet to consider that we are dealing with a case of most atrocious crime, which has not the slightest circumstance about it to soften its enormity. It is murder; deliberate, concerted, malicious, murder. The learned counsel for the defendant are more concerned, they assure us, for the law itself than even for their client Your decision in this case, they say, will stand as a precedent. Gentlemen, we hope it will. We hope it will be a precedent both of candour and intelligence, of fairness and of firmness ; a precedent of good sense and honest purpose pursuing their in- vestigation discreetly, rejecting loose generalities, exploring all the circumstances, weighing each, in search of truth, and em- bracing and declaring the truth when found. It is said that "laws are made, not for the punishment of the guilty, but for the protection of the innocent." This is not quite accurate perhaps ; but> if so, we hope they will be so ad- ministered as to give that protection. But who are the inno- cent whom the law would protect? Gentlemen, Joseph White was innocent. They are innocent who, having lived in the fear of God through the day, wish to sleep in His peace through the night, in their own beds. The law is established, that those who live quietly may sleep quietly ; that they who do no harm may i'eel none. The gentleman can think of none that are in- nocent except the prisoner at the bar, not yet convicted. Is a proved conspirator in murder innocent? What is innocence? How much stained with blood, how reckless in crime, how deep in depravity may it be, and yet remain innocence? The law is made, if we would speak with entire accuracy, to protect the in- nocent by punishing the guilty. But there are those innocent out of court, as well as in ; innocent citizens not suspected of crime, as well as innocent prisoners at the bar. The criminal law is not founded in a principle of vengeance. It does not punish, that it may inflict suffering. The humanity of the law feels and regrets every pain it causes, every hour of restraint it imposes, and more deeply still every life it forfeits. But it seeks to deter from crime by the example of punishment. This is its true, and only true main object. It restrains the lib- erty of the few offenders, that the many who do not offend may enjoy their liberty. It takes the life of the murderer, that other murders may not be committed. The law might open the jails, THE MURDER OF MR. WHITE. 511 and at once set free all persons accused of offences ; and it ought to do so, if it could be made certain that no other offences would hereafter be committed ; because it punishes, not to sat- isfy any desire to inflict pain, but simply to prevent the repeti- tion of crimes. When the guilty, therefore, are not punished, the law has so far failed of its purpose ; the safety of the inno- cent is so far endangered. Every unpunished murder takes away something from the security of every man's life. And whenever a jury, through whimsical and ill-founded scruples, suffer the guilty to escape, they make themselves answerable for the augmented danger of the innocent. CHARACTER OF LORD BYRON. I HAVE read Tom Moore's first volume of Byron's Life. "Whatever human imagination shall hereafter picture of aim- man being, I shall believe it all within the bounds of credibility. Byron's case shows that fact sometimes runs by all fancy, as a steamboat passes a scow at anchor. I have tried hard to find something in him to like besides his genius and his wit, but there was no other likable quality about him. He was an in- carnation of dcmonism. He is the only man, in English history, for a hundred years, who has boasted of infidelity, and of every practical vice, not included in what may be termed (what his biographer does term) meanness. Lord Bolingbroke, in his xtravagant youthful sallies, and the wicked Lord Little- ton, were saints to him. All Moore can say is, each of his vices had some virtue or some prudence near it, which in some sort checked it. Well, if that were not so in all, who would escape hanging? The biographer, indeed, says his worst conduct must not l>e judged by an ordinary standard ! And this is true, if a favourable decision is looked for. Many excellent reasons are given for his being a bad husband, the sum of which is, that he was a very bad man. I confess, I was rejoiced then, and am re- joiced now, that he was driven out of England by public scorn ; for his vices were not in his passions, but in his principles. He denied all religion and all virtue from the house-top. Dr. John- son says there is merit in maintaining good principles, though the preacher is seduced into a violation of them. This is true. (ii)od theory is something. But a theory of living, and of dy- ing, too, made up of the elements of hatred to religion, con- tempt of morals, and defiance of the opinion of all the decent part of the public, when, before, has a man of letters avowed 512 WEBSTER. it ? If Milton were alive, to recast certain prominent characters in his great epic, he could embellish them with new traits, with- out violating probability. From a Letter to Mr. George Ticknor, 1830. CHARACTER OF JUDGE STORY. 6 YOUR solemn announcement, Mr. Chief Justice, has con- firmed the sad intelligence which had already reached us through the public channels of information, and deeply affected us all. JOSEPH STORY, one of the Associate Justices of the Supreme Court of the United States, and for many years the presiding judge of this Circuit, died on Wednesday evening last, at his house in Cambridge, wanting only a few days for the comple- tion of the sixty-sixth year of his age. Mr. Chief Justice, one sentiment pervades us all. It is that of the most profound and penetrating grief, mixed, nevertheless, with an assured conviction that the great man whom we deplore is yet with us and in the midst of us. He hath not wholly died. He lives in the affections of friends and kindred, and in the high regard of the community. He lives in our remembrance of his social virtues, his warm and steady friendships, and the vivacity and richness of his conversation. He lives, and will live still more permanently, by his words of written wisdom, by the results of his vast researches and attainments, by his im- perishable legal judgments, and by those juridical disquisitions which have stamped his name, all over the civilized world, with the character of a commanding authority. Mr. Chief Justice, there are consolations which arise to miti- gate our loss, and shed the influence of resignation over un- feigned and heart-felt sorrow. We are all penetrated with gratitude to God, that the deceased lived so long ; that he did so much for himself, his friends, the country, and the world ; that his lamp went out, at last, without unsteadiness or flicker- ing. He continued to exercise every power of his mind without dimness or obscuration, and every affection of his heart with no abatement of energy or warmth,till death drew an impenetrable This eminent jurist and amiable man died on the 10th of September, 184o. On the 12th, the day of his funeral, the Suffolk liar held a meeting in the Circuit Court Room, Boston, to commemorate the sad event, Chief Ju>tiee Sha\v, of the Supreme Court of Massachusetts, piv>idinir. I here give the greater part, ;:s much ns I can well Hnd space for, of the noble and beautiful culogium pro- nounced by Webster on that occasion. CHARACTER OF JUDGE STORY. 513 veil between us and him. Indeed, he seems to us now, as in truth he is, not extinguished or ceasing to be, but only with- drawn ; as the clear Sun goes down at its setting, not darkened, but only no longer seen. Sir, there is no purer pride of country than that in which we may indulge when we see America paying back the great debt of civilization, learning, and science to Europe. In this high return of light for light and mind for mind, in this august reck- oning and accounting between the intellects of nations, Joseph Story was destined by Providence to act, and did act, an impor- tant part. Acknowledging, as we all acknowledge, our obliga- tions to the original sources of English law, as well as of civil liberty, we have seen in our generation copious and salutary streams turning and running backward, replenishing their origi- nal fountains, and giving a fresher and a brighter green to the fields of English jurisprudence. By a sort of reversed heredi- tary transmission, the mother, without envy or humiliation, acknowledges that she has received a valuable and cherished inheritance from the daughter. The profession in England admits, witli frankness and candour, and with no feeling but that Of respect and admiration, that he whose voice we have so recently heard within these walls, but shall now hear no more, was, of all men who have yet appeared, most fitted by the com- prehensiveness of his mind, and the vast extent and accuracy of his attainments, to compare the codes of nations, to trace their differences to difference of origin, climate, or religious or political institutions, and to exhibit, nevertheless, their concur- rence in those great principles upon which the system of human civilization rests. Justice, Sir, is the great interest of man on Earth. It is the ligament which holds civilized beings and civilized nations to- gt -tlier. Wherever her temple stands, and so long as it is duly honoured, there is a foundation for social security, general hap- piness, and the improvement and progress of our race. And whoever labours on this edifice with usefulness and distinction, whoever clears its foundations, strengthens its pillars, adorns its entablatures, or contributes to raise its august dome still higher in the skies, connects himself, in name and fame and character, with that which is and must be as durable as the frame of human society. This is not the occasion, Sir, nor is it for me to consider and discuss at length the character and merits of Mr. Justice Story, as a writer or a judge. The performance of that duty, with which this I Jar will no doubt charge itself, must be deferred to another opportunity, and will U> committed to abler hands. But in the homage paid to his memory, one part may come with peculiar 514 WEBSTER. propriety and emphasis from ourselves. We have known him in private life. We have seen him descend from the bench, and mingle in our friendly circles. We have known his manner of life, from his youth up. We can bear witness to the strict up- rightness and purity of his character, his simplicity and unos- tentatious habits, the ease and affability of his intercourse, his remarkable vivacity amidst severe labours, the cheerful and animating tones of his conversation, and his fast fidelity to friends. Some of us, also, can testify to his large and liberal charities, not ostentatious or casual, but systematic and silent, dispensed almost without showing the hand, and falling and distilling comfort and happiness, like the dews of heaven. But we can testify, also, that in all his pursuits and employments, in all his recreations, in all his commerce with the world, and in his intercourse with the circle of his friends, the predominance of his judicial character was manifest. He never forgot the ermine which he wore. The judge, the judge, the useful and distinguished judge, was the great picture which he kept c Di- stantly before his eyes, and to a resemblance of which all his efforts, all his thoughts, all his life, were devoted. Mr. Chief Justice, one may live as a conqueror, a king, or a magistrate ; but he must die as a man. The bed of death brings every human being to his pure individuality ; to the in- tense contemplation of that deepest and most solemn of all relations, the relation between the creature and his Creator. Here it is that fame and renown cannot assist us ; that all ex- ternal things must fail to aid us ; that even friends, affection, and human love and devotedness, cannot succour us. This re- lation, the true foundation of all duty, a relation perceived and felt by conscience, and confirmed by Revelation, our illustrious friend, now deceased, always acknowledged. He reverenced the Scriptures of truth, honoured the pure morality which they teach, and clung to the hopes of future life which they impart. He beheld enough in Nature, in himself, and in all that can be known of things seen, to feel assured that there is a Supreme Power, without whose providence not a sparrow falleth to the ground. To this gracious Being he trusted himself for time and for eternity ; and the last words of his lips ever heard by mortal ears were a fervent supplication to his Maker to take him to Himself. RELIGION AS AN ELEMENT OF GREATNESS. 515 RELIGION AS AN ELEMENT OF GREATNESS. 7 POLITICAL eminence and professional fame fade away and die with all things earthly. Nothing of character is really per- manent but virtue and personal worth. These remain. What- ever of excellence is wrought into the soul itself belongs to both worlds. Real goodness does not attach itself merely to this life ; it points to another world. Political or professional eminence cannot last for ever ; but a conscience void of offence before God and man is an inheritance for eternity. Religion, therefore, is a necessary and indispensable element in any great human character. There is no living without it. Religion is the tie that connects man with his Creator, and holds him to His throne. If that tie be all sundered, all broken, he floats away, a worthless atom in the Universe ; its proper attractions all gone, its destiny thwarted, and its whole future nothing but darkness, desolation, and death. A man with no sense of re- ligious duty is he whom the Scriptures describe, in such terse but terrific language, as living "without God in the world." Such a man is out of his proper being, out of the circle of all his duties, out of the circle of all his happiness, and away, far, far away, from the purpose of his creation. A mind like Mr. Mason's, active, thoughtful, penetrating, se- date, could not but meditate deeply on the condition of man below, and feel its responsibilities. He could not look on this mighty system, "this universal frame, thus wondrous fair," without feeling that it was created and upheld by an Intelli- gence to which all other intelligences must be responsible. I am bound to say, that in the course of my life I never met with an in- dividual, in any profession or condition of life, who always spoke, and always thought, with such awful reverence of the power and presence of God. No irreverence, no lightness, even no too familiar allusion to God or His attributes, ever escaped his lips. The very notion of a Supreme Being was, with him, made up of awe and solemnity. It filled the whole of his great mind 7 The lion. Jeremiah Mason, one of the greatest lawyers in the United States, died at his home in Boston, on the 14th of October, 1849, having reached his eighty-first year. He and Webster had for many years been knit together in a friendship as strong and as pure as two great manly hearts are capable of. On the 14th of November following, at the opening of the Supreme Judicial Court, a series of resolutions, expressing the sense of the Suffolk Bar, was presented, and Webster gave, at considerable length, a review of the life and character of lii.H departed friend. I here reproduce but a small portion of that eloquent and affecting discourse, a passage of which no more need be said than that it is well worthy of the illustrious speaker. 516 WEBSTEK. with the strongest emotions. A man like him, with all his proper sentiments and sensibilities alive in him, must, in this state of existence, have something to believe and something to hope for ; or else, as life is advancing to its close and parting, all is heart-sinking and oppression. Depend upon it, whatever may be the mind of an old man, old age is only really happy when, on feeling the enjoyments of this world pass away, it begins to lay a stronger hold on those of another. Mr. Mason's religious sentiments and feelings were the crowning glories of his character. EACH TO INTERPRET THE LAW FOR HIMSELF. Ix that important document upon which it seems to be the President's fate to stand or to fall before the American people, the veto message, he holds the following language: "Each pub- lic ollicer who takes an oath to support the Constitution, swears that he will support it as he understands it, and not as it is un- derstood by others." The general adoption of the sentiments expressed in this sentence would dissolve our government. It would raise every man's private opinions into a standard for his own conduct; and there certainly is, there can be, no govern- ment, where every man is to judge for himself of his own rights and his own obligations. "Where every one is his own arbiter, force, and not law, is the governing power. He who may judge for himself, and decide for himself, must execute his own decis- ions ; and this is the law of force. I confess it strikes me with astonishment, that so wild, so disorganizing a sentiment should be uttered by a President of the United States. I should think it must have escaped from its author through want of reflec- tion, or from the habit of little reflection on such subjects, if I could suppose it possible that, on a question exciting so much public attention, and of so much national importance, any such extraordinary doctrine could find its way, but by inadver- tence, into a formal and solemn public act. Standing as it does, it affirms a proposition which would effectually repeal all constitutional and all legal obligations. The Constitution de- clares that every public officer, in the State governments as well as in the general government, shall take an oath to support the Constitution of the United States. This is all. "Would it not have cast an air of ridicule on the whole provision, if the Con- stitution had gone on to add the words, "as he understands it" ? What could come nearer to a solemn farce, than to bind a man by oath, and still leave him to be his own interpreter of EACH TO INTERPRET THE LAW FOR HIMSELF. 517 his own obligation ? Those who are to execute the laws have no more a license to construe them for themselves, than those whose only duty is to obey them. Public officers are bound to support the Constitution ; private citizens are bound to obey it ; and there is no more indulgence granted to the public offi- cer to support the Constitution only as he understands it, than to a private citizen to obey it only as he understands it ; and what is true of the Constitution, in this respect, is equally true of any law. Laws are to be executed, and to be obeyed, not as in- dividuals may interpret them, but according to public, authori- tative interpretation and adjudication. The sentiment of the message would abrogate the obligation of the whole criminal code. If every man is to judge of the Constitution and the laws for himself, if he is to obey and support them only as he may say he understands them, a revolution, I think, would take place in the administration of justice ; and discussions about the law of treason, murder, and arson should be ad- dressed, not to the judicial bench, but to those who might stand charged with such offences. The object of discussion should In-, if we run out this notion to its natural extent, to convince the culprit himself how he ought to understand the law. How is it possible that a sentiment so wild and so dangerous, so encouraging to all who feel a desire to oppose the laws, and to impair the Constitution, should have been uttered by the President of the United States at this eventful and critical mo- ment? Are we not threatened with dissolution of the Union? Are we not told that the laws of the government shall be openly and directly resisted ? Is not the whole country look- ing, with the utmost anxiety, to what may be the result of these threatened courses? And at this very moment, so full of peril to the State, the chief magistrate puts forth opinions and senti- ments as truly subversive of all government, as absolutely in conflict with the authority of the Constitution, as the wildest theories of nullification. I have very little regard for the law or the logic of nullification. But there is not an individual in its ranks, capable of putting two ideas together, who, if you will grant him the principles of the veto message, cannot defend all that nullification has ever threatened. 8 Speech at Worcester. Oct., i 8 This brk'f but most wise passage moves me to comment a little on what I have often heard maintained as a settled axiom in morals, namely, that " every man is the ultimate judge of his own duty." As all moralists agree tliat rights and duties go together, it follows, of eonrse, that every man is the ultimate judge of hi^ own rights; that is, the supreme judge in hirf own case. Now, to men from being judges in their own case, is, I take it, the main purpose and business of all civil government; and this because men are notoriously 51 S WEBSTER. IRREDEEMABLE PAPER. I AM well aware that bank credit may be abused. I know that bank paper may become excessive ; that depreciation will 1hen follow ; and that the evils, the losses, and the frauds con- sequent on a disordered currency fall on the rich and th> together, but with especial weight of ruin on the poor. I know that the system of bank credit must always rest on a specie basis and that it constantly needs to be strictly guarded and properly restrained ; audit may be so guarded and restrained. AVe need not give up < nt> good which belongs to it, through fear of the evils which may follow from its abuse. We have the power to take security against these evils. It is our business as statesmen, to adopt that security; it is our business, not to prostrate or attempt to prostrate the system, but to use those means of precaution, restraint, and correction, which experi- ence has sanctioned, and which are ready at our hands. very bad judges in their own cn>e. so much so, that human society cannot pub- s;.-t on that Icisis. In other \vonts, thi> a.\u>iu means nothing less than that every man i- t be a sovereign law unto himself, and i.s to do ju.-t as lie ha- a mind to; or, which comes to the same thin.;,', that every man is to clothe his own judgment with Divine authority. What is this but rr.M.hing all obligation, duty, law, into individual will? To be Mire, con-cicnce is individual, and we all ;:dm.t the supremacy of conscience in its pioper sphere. IJut (., grows and lives only in the recognition ami the strength of an exteinal law: cutoff thai recognition, and conscience must .-non die out. And that, ext TIKI! law is n matter of social prescription, not of individual judgment or will. Or, again, conscience infers the distinction of right and wrong; but it does not tell us what things are right and what are wrong: it ptippo>e< the existence of the moral law, but does not teach us what that law is. To authenticate and define that law, i.s the ollice partly of Uevclation, partly of the collective reason and experience of mankind. And it is in vain that you undertake torarry the au- thority of Revelation above or bc\ond the authority of that collective reason ar.d experience. In other words, God speaks to us as authentically and as impera- tively through social and civil institutions, through parents, teachers, and rulers, as in Scripture. And conscience binds us as strongly to obey the rtiliiK.-- fonner as of the latter; nor, if it be set free from those, can it p->- to these. Let the axiom iu question be thoroughly reduced to practice, and humanity will inevitably be carried on to suicide : any people working the principle fairly through from speculation into life will needs die of sheer law- - ; for it is nothing less than acting " as if a man were author of : and knew no other kin." If. as I am told, this doctrine is generally held and taught by the clergy of New England, then I can only say, (Jod lu Kir.l.i-'.d ! for, unless lie specially interpose, habie.- will keep growing - and divorces more frequent, till the race shall have run it>elf utterly into the ground. Most assuredly, as regards the social and relative rights and duties, society is the ultimate judge; and for the individual conscience to decl.; above or independent of social and civil prescription, is literally inhuman. Sec, on the subject, a passage from Burke, pages 22S-*2:J1. IRREDEEMABLE PAPER. 519 It would be to our everlasting reproach, it would be placing us below the general level of the intelligence of civilized States, to admit that we cannot contrive means to enjoy the benefits of bank circulation, and of avoiding, at the same time, its dangers. Indeed, Sir, no contrivance is necessary. It is contrivance, and the love of contrivance, that spoil all. We are destroying our- selves by a remedy which no evil called for. We are ruining perfect health by nostrums and quackery. We have lived, hitherto, under a well-constructed, practical, and beneficial sys- tem ; a system not surpassed by any in the world ; and it seems to me to be presuming largely, largely indeed, on the credulity and self-denial of the people, to rush with such sudden and im- petuous haste into new schemes and new theories, to overturn and annihilate all that we have so long found useful. Our system has hitherto l>een one in which paper lias been circulating on the strength of a specie basis ; that is to say. when every bank note was convertible into specie at the will of the holder. This has been our guard against excess. While banks are bound to redeem their bills by paying gold and silver on demand, and are at all times able to do this, the currency is safe and convenient. Such a currency is not paper money, in the odious sense. It is not like the continental paper of 1 (evo- lutionary times ; it is not like the worthless bills of banks which have suspended specie payments. On the contrary, it is the representative of gold and silver, and convertible into gold and silver on demand, and therefore answers the purposes of gold and silver ; and, so long as its credit is in this way sustained, it is the cheapest, the best, and the most convenient circulating medium. I have already endeavoured to warn the country against irredeemable paper; against bank paper, when bunks do not pay specie for their own notes; against that miserable, abominable, and fraudulent policy which attempts to give value to any paper, of any bank, one single moment longer than such paper is redeemable on demand in gold and silver. And I wish most solemnly and earnestly to repeat that warning. I see danger of that state of things ahead. I see imminent dan- ger that more or fewer of the State banks will stop specie pay- ments. The late measure of the Secretary, and the infatuat ion with which it seems to be supported, tend directly and strongly to that result. Under pretence, then, of a design to return to a currency which shall be all specie, we are likely to have a cur- n !iry in which there shall be no specie at all. We are in dan- ger of being overwhelmed with irredeemable paper, mere '.) This was the removal of the deposits by Mr. Taney, then Secretary of the - ury . See Sketch of Webster'* Life, page 331. 530 WEBSTER. paper, representing not gold nor silver ; no, Sir, representing nothing but broken promises, bad faith, bankrupt corporations, cheated creditors, and a ruined people. This, I fear, may be the consequence, already alarmingly near, of this attempt unwise, if it be real, and grossly fraudulent, if it be only pre- tendedof establishing an exclusive hard-money currency I Speech on the Itenwcal of tlie Deposits, Feb., 1834. THE currency of the country is at all times a most important political object. A sound currency is an essential and indispen- sable security for the fruits of industry and honest enterprise. Every man of property or industry, every man who desires to preserve what lie honestly possesses, or to obtain what he can honestly earn, has a direct interest in maintaining a safe circu- lating medium; such a medium as shall be a real and sub- stantial representative of property, not liable to vibrate witli opinions, not subject to be blown up or blown down by the breath of speculation, but made stable and secure by its imme- diate relation to that which the whole world regards as of a permanent value. A disordered currency is one of the greatest of political evils. It undermines the virtues necessary for the support of the social system, and encourages propensities de- structive of its happiness. It wars against industry, frugality, and economy; and it fosters the evil spirits of extravagance and speculation. Of all the contrivances for cheating the la- bouring classes of mankind, none has been more effectual than that which deludes them with paper money. This is the most effectual of inventions to fertilize the rich man's field by the sweat of the poor man's brow. Ordinary tyranny, oppression, excessive taxation, these bear lightly on the happiness of the mass of the community, compared with fraudulent currencies, and the robberies committed by depreciated paper. Our own history has recorded for our instruction enough, and more than enough, of the demoralizing tendency, the injustice, and the intolerable oppression, on the virtuous and well disposed, of a degraded paper currency, authorized by law, or in any way countenanced by government. BENEFITS OF THE CREDIT SYSTEM. 521 BENEFITS OF THE CEEDIT SYSTEM. Six months ago a state of things existed highly prosperous and advantageous to the country, but liable to be injuriously affected by precisely such a cause as has now been put into op- eration upon it. Business was active and carried to a great ex- tent. Commercial credit was expanded, and the circulation of money was large. This circulation, being of paper, of course rested on credit ; and this credit was founded on banking capi- tal and bank deposits. The public revenues, from the time of their collection to the time of their disbursement, were in the bank and its branches, and, like other deposits, contributed to the means of discount. Between the Bank of the United States and the State banks there was a degree of watchfulness, per- haps of rivalry ; but there was no enmity, no hostility. All moved in their own proper spheres, harmoniously and in order. The Secretary disturbed this state of peace. lie broke up all the harmony of the system. By suddenly withdrawing all tho public moneys from the Bank of the United States, he forced that bank to an immediate correspondent curtailment of its loans and discounts. It was obliged to strengthen itself; and the State banks, taking the alarm, were obliged to strengthen ihrmselves also by similar measures; so that the amount of credit actually existing, and on which men were doing business, was all at once greatly diminished. Bank accommodations were withdrawn ; men could no longer fulfil their engagements by the customary means ; property fell in value ; thousands failed ; many thousands more maintained their individual credit by enormous sacrifices ; and all, being alarmed for the future, as w.-li as distressed for the present, forbore from new transac- tions and new engagements. Finding enough to do to stand still, they do not attempt to go forward. This deprives the in- dustrious and labouring classes of their occupations, and brings want and misery to their doors. This, Sir, is a short recital of and effect. This is the history of the iirst six months of the "experiment." l Mr. President, the recent measures of tho Secretary, and the opinions which are said to be avowed by those who approve and support them, threaten a wild and ruthless attack on the com- mercial credit of the country, that most delicate and at the same time most important agent in producing general prosper- 1 The experiment which President Jacksou undertook to carry through, upon HIM rmTriK-y mid Hie financial system of the country. Tho President waa Mont to <-|.cak .t it rather oxultingly as " my experiment," See Sketch of Web- tter't Lij'e, page 331. 523 WEBSTER. ity. Commercial credit is the creation of modern times, and he- longs, in its highr-st perfection, only to the most enlightened and best-governed nations. In the primitive ages of commerce article is exchanged for article, without the use of money or credit. This is simple barter. But, in its progress, a symbol of property, a common measure of value, is introduced, to facili- tate the exchanges of property; and this maybe iron, or any other article fixed by law or by consent, but has generally been gold and ilv.'r. This, certainly, is a great advance beyond sim- ple barter, but no greater than has been gained, in modern times, by proceeding from the mere use of money to the use of credit. Credit is the vital air of the sy>teni of modern com- merce. It has done more, a thousand times, to enrich nations, thai) all the mines of all the world. It has excited labour, stim- ulated manufactures, pushed commerce over every sea, and brought every nation, every kingdom, and every small tribe, among the races of men, to be known to all the rest. It has raised armies, equipped navies, and, triumphing over the gross power of mere numbers, it has established national superiority on the foundation of intelligence, wealth, and well-directed in- dustry. Credit is to money what money is to articles of mer- chandise. As hard money represents property, so credit repre- sents hard money; and it is capable of supplying the pi money so completely, that there are writers of distinction, e>pe- cially of the Scotch school, who insist that no hard money is necessary for the interests of commerce. I am not of that opinion. I hold the immediate convertibility of bank-notes into specie to be na indispensable security for their retaining their value; but, consistently with this security, and indeed founded upon it, credit becomes the great agent of exchange. It is allowed that it increases consumption by anticipating products ; and that it supplies present wants out of future means. And as it circulates commodities without the actual use of gold and sil- ver, it not only saves much by doing away with the constant transportation of the precious metals from place to place, but accomplishes exchanges with a degree of despatch and punctu- ality not otherwise to be attained. All bills of exchange, all notes running upon time, as well as the paper circulation of the banks, belong to the system of commercial credit. They aie parts of one great whole. And, Sir, unless we are to reject the lights of experience, and to repudiate the benelits which other nations enjoy, and which we ourselves have hitherto enjoyed, we should protect this system with imceasing watchfulness, taking tare, on the one hand, to give it full and fair play, and, on the other, to guard it against dangerous excess. We shall BENEFITS OF THE CREDIT SYSTEM. 523 show ourselves unskilful and unfaithful statesmen, if we do not keep clear of extremes on both sides. It is very true that commercial credit, and the system of banking, as a part of it, does furnish a substitute for capital. It is very true that this system enables men to do business, to some extent, on borrowed capital ; and those who wish to ruin all who make use of borrowed capital act wisely to that end by decrying it. 2 This commercial credit, Sir, depends on wise laws, steadily administered. Indeed, the best-governed countries are always the richest. With good political systems, natural disadvan- tages and the competition of all the world may be defied. Without such systems, climate, soil, position, and every thing el>e, may favour the progress of wealth, and yet nations be poor. What but bad laws and bad government lias retarded the progress of commerce, credit, and wealth in the peninsula of Spain and Portugal, a part of Europe distinguished for its natural advantages, and especially suited by its position for an extensive commerce, with the sea on three sides of it, ami us many good harbours as all the rest of Europe? The, whole, history <>i commerce shows that it nourishes or fades just in proportion as property, credit, and the fruits of labour are protected by free and just political systems. ( 'redit cannot ex- ist under arbitrary and rapacious governments, and commerce, cannot exist without credit. Tripoli and Tunis and Algiers arc countries, above all others, in which hard money is indispen- sable ; because, under such governments, nothing is valuable which cannot be secreted and hoarded. And as government ile of intelligence and liberty, from these bar- barous despotisms to the highest rank of free States, its pro- is marked, at every step, by a higher degree of security and of credit. This undeniable truth should make well- informed men ashamed to cry out against banks and banking, us being aristocrat ical, oppressive to the poor, or partaking of Hie character of dangerous monopoly. Uanks are a part of the great, system of commercial credit, and have done much, under tiie influence of good government, to aid and elevate that credit. What is their history? Where down first lind them? Do they make their first appearance in despotic governments, und show themselves as inventions of power to o]>i people? The first bank was that of Venice; the second, that noa. From the example of these republics, they were next established in Holland and the free city of Hamburg. 2 "They who trade on borrowed capital ought to break," was a saying as- rrilwii to J'rcHidcnt, .TarkKon, and was much commented on at the time as a strange thing to be uttered by a prince of the Democracy. 524 WEBSTER. England followed these examples, but not until she had been delivered from the tyranny of the Stuarts, by the revolution of 1688. It was William the Deliverer, and not William the Con- queror, that established the Bank of England. Who supposes that a Bank of England could have existed in the times of Empson and Dudley ? 3 Who supposes that it could have lived under those ministers of Charles the Second who shut up the exchequer, or that its vaults could have been secure against the arbitrary power of the brother and successor of that monarch ? The history of banks belongs to the history of commerce and the general history of liberty. It belongs to the history of those causes which, in a long course of years, raised the middle and lower orders of society to a state of intelligence aud prop- erty, in spite of the iron sway of the feudal system. In what instance have they endangered liberty or overcome the laws ? Their very existence, on the contrary, depends on the security and the rule both of liberty and law. Why, Sir, have we not been taught, in our earliest reading, that to the birth of a commercial spirit, to associations for trade, to the guilds and companies formed in the towns, we are to look for the first emergence of liberty from die darkness of the Middle Ages; for the first faint blush of that morning which has grown brighter and brighter till the perfect day has come? And it is just as reasonable to say that bills of exchange are dangerous to liberty, that promissory notes are dangerous to liberty, that the power of regulating the coin is dangerous to liberty, as that credit, and banking, as a part of credit; are dangerous to liberty. Sir, I hardly know a writer on these subjects who has not se- lected the United States as an eminent and striking instance, to show the advantages of well-established credit, and the benefit of its expansion, to a degree not incompatible with safety, by a paper circulation. Or, if they do not mention the United States, they describe just such a country ; that is to say, a new and fast-growing country. Hitherto, it must be confessed, our success has been great. With some breaks and intervals, our progress has been rapid, because our system has been good. We have preserved and fostered credit, till all have become 3 King Henry the Seventh, near the close of his life, grew frightfully avari- cious and rapacious, and Enipsou and Dudley, as Barons of the Exchequer, were the agents of his avarice aud rapacity. Jiotli wore lawyers, of inventive heads and unfeeling hearts, who, says Lingard, " despoiled the subject to fill the King's coffers, and despoiled the King to enrich themselves." The measures used by them were extortionate and oppressive in the List degree; and the men became so odious to the people, that, early in the next reign, it was found neces- sary to put them to death. BENEFITS OF THE CREDIT SYSTEM. 525 interested in its further continuance and preservation. It has run deep and wide into our whole system of social life. Every man feels the vibration, when a blow is struck upon it. And this is the reason why nobody has escaped the influence of the Secretary's recent measure. While credit is delicate, sensi- tive, easily wounded, and more easily alarmed, it is also infi- nitely ramified, diversified, extending everywhere, and touching every thing. There never was a moment in which so many individuals felt their own private interest to be directly affected by what has been done, and what is to be done. There never was a mo- ment, therefore, in which so many straining eyes were turned towards Congress. It is felt, by every one, that this is a case in which the acts of the government come directly home to him, and produce either good or evil, every hour, upon his personal and private condition. And how is the public expectation met ? How is this intense, this agonized expectation answered ? I am grieved to say, I am ashamed to say, it is answered by declamation against the bank as a monster, by loud cries against a moneyed aristocracy, by pretended zeal for a hard- money system, and by professions of favour and regard to the poor. The poor I We are waging war for the benefit of the poor I We slay that monster, the bank, that we may defeat the unjust purposes of the rich, and elevate and protect the poor I And what is the effect of all this? What happens to the poor, and ull the middling classes, in consequence of this warfare? Where are they? Are they well fed, well clothed, well em- ployed, independent, happy, and grateful ? They are all' at the feet of the capitalists ; they are in the jaws of usury. If there bo hearts of stone in human bosoms, they are at the mercy of those who have such hearts. Look to the rates of interest, mounting to twenty, thirty, fifty per cent. Sir, this measure of government has transferred millions upon millions of hard- earned property, in the form of extra interest, from the indus- trious classes to the capitalists, from the poor to the rich. And this is called putting down a moneyed aristocracy I Sir, there are thousands of families who have diminished, not their luxu- ries, not their amusements, but their meat and their bread, that they might be able to save their credit by paying enormous in- terest. And there are other thousands, who, having lost their employment, have lost every thing, and who yet hear, amidst the bitterness of their anguish, that the great motive of govern- ment is kindness to the poor 1 Speech for continuing the Bank Charter, Jfarc/t, 1834. 526 WEBSTER. ABUSE OF EXECUTIVE PATRONAGE.* THE extent of the patronage springing from the power of ap- pointment and removal is so great, that it brings a dangerous mass of private and personal interest into operation in all great public elections and public question*. This is a mischief which has reached, already, an alarming height. The principle of re- publican governments, we are taught, is public virtue ; and whatever tends either to corrupt this principle, to debase it, or to weaken its force, tends, in the same degree, to the final over- throw of such governments. Our representative >y>tems sup- pose that, in exercising the high right <>f suffrage, the greatest of all political rights, and in forming opinions on great public measures, men will act conscientiously, under the influence of public principle and patriotic duty; and that, in supporting or opposing men or measures, there will be a general prevalence of honest, intelligent judgment and manly independence. These presumptions lie at the foundation of all hope of main- taining governments entirely popular. Whenever personal, in- dividual, or selfish motives influence the conduct of individuals on public questions, they affect the safety of the whole system. When these 1 motives run deep and wide, and come in .serious conflict with higher, purer, and more patriotic purposes, they greatly endanger that system ; and all will admit that, if they become general and overwhelming, so that all public princi- ple is lost sight of, and every election becomes a mere scram- ble for office, the system inevitably must fall. Every wise man, in and out of government, will endeavour, therefore, to promote the ascendency of public virtue and public principle, and to restrain, as far as practicable, in the actual operation of our institutions, the influence of selfish and private inter' I concur with those who think that, looking to the present, and looking also to the future, and regarding all the probabil- ities that await us in reference to the character and qualities oi' those who may fill the executive chair, it is important to the stability of government and the welfare of the people, that there should be a check to the progress of official influence and patronage. The unlimited power to grant office, and to take it away, gives a command over the hopes and fears of a vast mul- titude of men. It is generally true, that he who controls an- other man's means of living controls his will. Where there are favours to be granted, there are usually enough to solicit for them ; and when favours once granted may be withdrawn at 4 See the piece headed "The Spoils to the Victors," page 402. PHILANTHROPIC LOVE OF POWER. 527 pleasure, there is ordinarily little security for personal inde- pendence of character. The power of giving oflice thus affects the fears of all who are in, and (he hopes of all who are out. Those who are out endeavour to distinguish themselves by act- ive political friendship, by warm personal devotion, by chim- orous support of men in whose hands is the power of reward; while those who are in ordinarily take care that others shall not surpass them in such qualities or such conduct as is most likely to secure favour. They resolve not to be outdone in any of the works of partisanship. The consequence of all this is obvious. A competition ensues, not of patriotic labours; not of rough and severe toils for the public good; not of manliness, inde- pendence, and public spirit ; but of complaisance, of indiscrim- inate support of executive measures, of pliant subserviency and gross adulation. All throng and rush together to the altar of man-worship; and there they offer sacrifices, and pour out libations, till the thick fumes of their incense; turn their own head -, and turn, also, the head of him who is the object of their idolatry. The existence of parties in popular governments is not to be avoided ; and if they are formed on constitutional questions, or in regard to great measures of public policy, and do not run to ive length, it may be admitted that, on the whole, they do no great harm. But the patronage of office, the power of bestowing place and emoluments, creates parties, not upon any principle or any measure, but upon the single ground of per- sonal interest. Under the direct influence of this motive, they form round a leader, and they go for "the spoils of victory." And if the party chieftain becomes the national chieftain, he is still but too apt to consider all who have opposed him as ene- mies to be punished, and all who have supported him as friends to be rewarded. Blind devotion to party, and to the head of a party, thus lakes the place of the sentiments of generous pat- riotism and a high and exalted sense of public duty. Speech on the ApjjuintiiKj and Itemoving Power, Feb., 1835. PHILANTHROPIC LOVE OF POWER. the power of the executive has increased, is in- creasing, and ought, now to be brought back within its ancient constitutional limits. 6 I have nothing to do with the motives 5 This is a paraphrase of a famous resolution moved by Mr. Dunning in the House of Commons. See page 130, note 3. 528 WEBSTER. that have led to those acts which I believe to have transcended the boundaries of the Constitution. Good motives may always be assumed, as bad motives may always be imputed. Good in- tentions will always be pleaded for every assumption of power ; but they cannot justify it, even if we were sure that they ex- isted. It is hardly too strong to say, that the Constitution was made, to guard the people against the dangers of good inten- tions, real or pretended. When bad intentions are boldly avowed, the people will promptly take care of themselves. On the other hand, they will always be asked why they should re- sist or question that exercise of power which is so fair in its object, so plausible and patriotic in appearance, and which has the public good alone confessedly in view. Human beings, wo may be assured, will generally exercise power when they can get it; and they will exercise it most undoubtedly, in popular governments, under pretences of public safety or high public interest. It may be very possible that good intentions do really sometimes exist when constitutional restraints are disregarded. There are men, in all ages, who mean to exercise power use- fully ; but they mean to exercise it. They mean to govern well ; but they mean to govern. They promise to be kind mas- ters ; but they mean to be masters. They think there need be but little restraint upon themselves. Their notion of the pub- lic interest is apt to be quite closely connected with their own exercise of authority. They may not, indeed, always under- stand their own motives. The love of power may sink too deep in their own hearts even for their own scrutiny, and may pass with themselves for mere patriotism and benevolence. A character has been drawn of a very eminent citizen of Massachusetts, of the last age, which, though I think it does not entirely belong to him, yet very well describes a certain class of public men. It was said of this distinguished son of Massachusetts, that in matters of politics and government he cherished the most kind and benevolent feelings towards the whole Earth. He earnestly desired to see all nations well governed : and to bring about this happy result, he wished that the United States might govern all the rest of the world ; that Massachusetts might govern the United States; that JJoston might govern Massachusetts ; and as for himself, his own hum- ble ambition would be satisfied by governing the little town of Boston. Speech at Xiblo's Saloon, New York, March 15, 1837. THE SPIRIT OF DISUXIOST. 529 TIIE SPIRIT OF DISUNION. 6 THE spirit of union is particularly liable to temptation and seduction in moments of peace and prosperity. In war, this spirit is strengthened by a sense of common danger, and by a thousand recollections of ancient efforts and ancient glory in a common cause. But in the calms of a long peace, and in the absence of all apparent causes of alarm, things near gain the ascendency over things remote. Local interests and feelings overshadow national sentiments. Our attention, our regard, and our attachment are every moment solicited to what touches us closest, and we feel less and less the attraction of a distant orb. Such tendencies we are bound by true patriotism and by our love of union to resist. This is our duty ; and the moment, in my judgment, has arrived, when that duty should be per- formed. We hear, every day, sentiments and arguments which would become a meeting of envoys, employed by separate gov- ernments, more than they become the common legislature of a united country. Constant appeals are made to local interests, to geographical distinctions, and to the policy and pride of par- ticular State*. It would sometimes appear as if it were a set- tled purpose to convince the people that our Union is nothing 6 The following piece is the conclusion of Webster's second speech on the Sub-Treasury, delivered March 12, 1838. Calhoun, after a concurrence of several years with Webster in opposing the financial policy of the government, had un- expectedly espoused the Sub-Treasury scheme, partly as a means of uniting the South against the North. In the course of the speech aforesaid, Webster pursues Calhoun in a strain of rather caustic though good-humoured satire. This drew from Calhoun a most elaborate and searching review of Webster's political course. I have elsewhere remarked that Webster had an intense aversion to 1'nlitieal metaphysics. Herein he differed in toto from Calhoun, who, it seems to me, was rather a great political metaphysician than a statesman, in the right .sense of the term. I must add that, all through his Congressional life, Webster stood on terms of cordial friendliness with Calhoun. The two men had indeed a profound re.-pect for each other. Webster admired the genius of Calhoun, and honoured him for his high personal worth. Though they dealt many a hard !il<.\\ upon each other in the Senate, each seemed always the more drawn to the other for the perfect manliness and dignity with which the "hard pounding" was done. IJut Webster never would go along at all with the noble Southerner speculative intricacies where men " llnd no end, in wandering mazes i if it were an admitted fact that such is their true character. This is the language he utters, these are the sentiments he ex- presses, to the rising generation around him. Are they senti- ments and language which are likely to inspire our children with the love of union, to enlarge their patriotism, or to teach them, and to make them feel, that their destiny has made them common citizens of one great and glorious republic-? A princi- pal object in his late political movements, the gentleman him- self tells us, was to unite ih(. entire Xoutlt ; and against whom, or against what, does he wish to unite the entire South? Is not this the very essence of local feeling and local regard? Is it not the acknowledgment of a wish and object to create political THE SPIRIT OP DISUNION. 531 strength by uniting political opinions geographically? While the gentleman thus wishes to unite the entire South, I pray to know, Sir, if he expects me to turn toward the polar star, and, acting on the same principle, to utter the cry of Rally ! to the whole North? Heaven forbid! To the day of my death, neither he nor others shall hear such a cry from me. Finally, the honourable member declares that he shall now march off- under the banner of State rights. March off from whom? March off from what? We have been contending for great principles. We have been struggling to maintain the lib- erty and to restore the prosperity of the country ; we have made these struggles here, in the national councils, with the old Hag, the true American flag, the Eagle, and the Stars and Stripes, waving over the chamber in which we sit. He tells us, however, that he marches off under the State-rights banner ! Let him go. I remain. I am where I ever have been, and ever mean to be. Here, standing on the platform of the gen- eral Constitution, a platform broad enough and firm enough to uphold every interest of the whole country, I shall still be found. Intrusted with some part in the administration of that Constitution, 1 intend to act in its spirit, and in the spirit of u ho framed it. Yes, Sir, I would act as if our fathers, who formed it for us, and who bequeathed it to us, were looking on me; as if I could see their venerable forms bending down to behold us from the abodes above. 1 would act, too, as if the !' posterity were gazing on me. Standing thus, as in the full gaze of our ancestors and our ity, having received this inheritance from the former, to emitted to the latter, and feeling that, if I am born for any good in my day and generation, it is for the good of the wholo country, no local policy or local feeling, no temporary impulse, shall induce me to yield my foothold on the Constitu- tion of the Union. I move off under no banner not known to the whole American people, and to their Constitution and laws. Xn, sir; these walls, these columns "shall fly from their firm -on as J." I came into public life, Sir, in the service of the United . On that broad altar my earliest and all my public vows have been made. I propose; to serve no other master. So far as depends on any agency of mine, they shall continue united ; united in interest, and in affection ; united in every thing in regard to which the Constitution has decreed their union ; united in war, for the common defence, the common re- nown, and the common glory; and united, compacted, knit {irmly together in peace, for the common prosperity and happi- ness of ourselves and our children. 532 * WEBSTER. IMPORTANCE OF THE NAVY. THE gentleman says, and says truly, that at the commence- ment of the war the navy was unpopular. It was unpopular with his friends, who then controlled the politics of the coun- try. But he says he differed with his friends: in this respect he resisted party influence and party connection, and was the friend and advocate of the navy. Sir, I commend him for it. He showed his wisdom. That gallant little navy soon fought itself into favour, and no man who had placed reliance on it was disappointed. I do not know when my opinion of the importance of a naval force to the United States had its origin. 1 can give no date to my present sentiments on this subject, because I never enter- tained different sentiments. I remember, Sir, that immediately after coming into my profession, at a period when the navy was most unpopular, when it was called by all sorts of hard names and designated by many coarse epithets, on one of those occa- sions on which young men address their neighbours, I ventured to put forth a boy's hand in defence of the navy. I insisted on its importance, its adaptation to our circumstances and to our national character, and its indispensable necessity, if we in- tended to maintain and extend our commerce. These opinions and sentiments I brought into Congress ; and the first time in which I presumed to speak on the topics of the day, I attempted to urge on the House a greater attention to the naval service. There were divers modes of prosecuting the war. On these modes, or on the degree of attention and expense which should be bestowed on each, different men held different opinions. L confess I looked with most hope to the results of naval war- fare, and therefore I invoked government to invigorate and strengthen that arm of the national defence. I invoked it to seek its enemy upon the seas, to go where every auspicious in- dication pointed, and where the whole heart and soul of the country would go with it. Sir, we were at war with the greatest maritime power on Earth. England had gained an ascendency on the seas over all the combined powers of Europe. She had been at war twenty years. She had tried her fortunes on the Continent, but gener- ally with no success. At one time the whole Continent had been closed against her. A long line of armed exterior, an un- broken hostile array frowned upon her from the Gulf of Arch- angel, round the promontory of Spain and Portugal, to the extreme point of Italy. There was not a port which an English ship could enter. Everywhere on the land the genius of her THE LOO CABIN-. 533 great enemy had triumphed. He hs$ defeated armies, crushed coalitions, and overturned thrones/; frut, like the fabled giant; he was unconquerable only while lie touched the land. On the ocean he was powerless. That ffeld of fame was his adver- -^sary's, and her meteor flag was streaming in triumph over its wfrote^extent. To her maritime ascendency England owed every thing, and we were now at war ;wrth her. /One of the most charming of her poets had said of her, "^ter- march is on the mountain wave, her home is Ion the dee\p." Now, Sir, since we were at war with her, I wasj for intercepting this march ; I was for call- ing upon her, and paying our respects to her, at home ; I was for giving her to know that we, too, had a right of way over the seas, and that our marine officers and our sailors were not en- tire strangers on the bosom of the deep. I was for doing some- thing more with our navy than keeping it on our own shores, for the protection of our coasts and harbours: I was for giving play to its gallant and burning spirit ; for allowing it to go forth upon the seas, and to encounter, on an open and equal field, whatever the proudest or the bravest of the enemy could bring against it. I knew the character of its officers and the spirit of its seamen ; and I knew that, in their hands, though the Hag of the country might go down to the bottom, yet, while defended by them, it could never be dishonoured or disgraced. Since she was our enemy, and a most powerful enemy, I was for touching her, if we could, in the very apple of her eye ; for reaching the highest feather in her cap ; for clutching at the very brightest jewel in her crown. There seemed to me to be a peculiar propriety in all this, as the war was undertaken for the redress of maritime injuries alone. It was a war declared for free trade and sailors' rights. The ocean, therefore, was the proper theatre for deciding this controversy with our enemy ; and on that theatre it was my ardent wish that our own power should be concentrated to the utmost. Speech in Reply to CaZ- Iwun, March 22(7, 1838. THE LOG CABIN. IT is the cry and effort of the times to stimulate those who are called poor against those who are called rich ; and yet, among those who urge this cry, and seek to profit by it, there is Ix'trayi'd sometimes an occasional sneer at whatever savours of humble life. Witness the reproach against a candidate now be- 534 WEBSTER. fore the people for their highest honours, that a log cabin, with plenty of hard cider, is good enougli for him ! It appears to some persons that a great deal too much use is made of the symbol of the log cabin." 1 But it is to be. remem- bered that this matter of the log cabin originated, not with the friends of the Whig candidate, but with his enemies. after his nomination at Jlarrisburg, a writer in one of the lead- ing administration papers spoke of his "log cabin." and his use of "hard cider," by way of sneer and reproach. As might have been exported* (for pretenders are apt to be thrown off their guard,) this taunt at humble life proceeded from the party which claims a monopoly of the purest democracy. The whole party appeared to enjoy it, or at least they countenanced it by silent acquiescence; for I do not know that, to this day, any eminent individual or any leading newspaper attached to the administration has rebuked this scornful jeering at the supposed humble condition or circumstances in life, past or present, of a worthy man and a war-worn soldier. But it touched a tender point in the public feeling. It naturally roused indignation. What was intended as reproach was im- mediately seized on as merit. "Be it so ! Be it so !" was the instant burst of the public voice. "Let him be the log-cabin candidate. What you say in scorn, we will shout with all our lungs. From this day forward, we have our cry of rally ; and we shall see whether he who has dwelt in one of the rude abodes of the West may not become the best house in the country." All this is natural, and springs from sources of just feeling. Other things, Gentlemen, have had a similar origin. We all know that the term Whi[t was bestowed in derision, two hundred years ago, on those who were thought too fond of liberty ; and our national air of Yankee Doodle was composed by British otli- cers, in ridicule of the American troops. Yet, ere long, the last of the British armies laid down its arms at Yorkiown. while this same air was playing in the ears of officers and men. Gentlemen, it is only shallow-minded pretenders who either make distinguished origin matter of personal merit, or obscure origin matter of personal reproach. Taunt and scotling at tho humble condition of early life affect nobody, in this country, 7 The Presidential canvass of 1840 was carried on by tho Whigs with prodig- ious enthusiasm; and miniature log cabins were every where made use of to Joed that enthusiasm, and as the most effective appeals to popular intelligence. J was then in the last year of my college course; and the "college boys" made many a night vocal with the electioneering songof "Tipperanoe and Tyler too," nt tho same time drinking whatever " hard eider" they could get. II was in tho battle of Tlppccanoc that General Harrison won his chief military laurels. SPEAKING FOR THE UNIOK. 535 but those who are foolish enough to indulge in them ; and they are generally sufficiently punished by public rebuke. A man who is not ashamed of himself need not be ashamed of his early condition. Gentlemen, it did not happen to me to be born in a log cabin ; but my elder brothers and sisters were born in a log cabin, raised amid the snow-drifts of New Hampshire, at a period so early that, when the smoke rose from its rude chimney, and curled over the frozen hills, there was no similar evidence of a white man's habitation between it and the settlements on the rivers of Canada. Its remains still exist. I make to it an an- nual visit. I carry my children to it, to teach them the hard- ships endured by the generations which have gone before them. I love to dwell on the tender recollections, the kindred ties, the early affections and the touching narratives and inci- dents, which mingle with all 1 know of this primitive family abode. I weep to think that none of those who inhabited it are now among the living ; and if ever I am ashamed of it, or if I ever fail in affectionate veneration for him who reared it, and defended it against savage violence and destruction, cherished all the domestic virtues beneath its roof, and, through the fire and blood of a seven years' revolutionary war, shrunk from no danger, no toil, no sacrifice, to serve his country, and to raise his children to a condition better than his own, may my name and the name of my posterity be blotted for ever from tho memory of mankind I Speech at Saratoga, Auyimt 10, 1840, SIM- AKIN G FOR THE UNION. Mi:. I'HKSIUKNT: I wish to speak to-day, not as a Massachu- setts man, nor as a Northern man, but as an American, and a member of the Senate of the United States. It is fortunate that there, is a Senate of the United States; a body not yet moved from its propriety, not lost to a just sense of its own dig- nity and its own high responsibilities ; and a body to which the country looks, with confidence, for wise, moderate, patriotic, and healing counsels. ]t is not to be denied that we live in the midst of strong agitations, and are surrounded by very consid- erable dangers to our institutions and government. Tho im- prisoned winds are let loose. The East, the North, and the stormy South combine to throw the whole sea into commotion, to tci.^s its billows to the skies, and to disclose its profoundest depths. I do not affect to regard myself, Mr. President, as 53C WEBSTER. holding, or as fit to hold, the helm in this combat with the polit- ical elements ; but I have a duty to perform, and I mean to per- form it with fidelity, not without a sense of existing dangers, but not without hope. I have a part to act, not for my own security or safety ; for I am looking out for no fragment upon which to float away from the wreck, if wreck there must be ; but for the good of the whole, and the preservation of all ; and there is that which will keep me to my duty during this strug- gle, whether the Sun and the stars shall appear, or shall not appear for many days. I speak to-day for the preservation of the Union. " Hear me for my cause." I speak to-day, out of a solicitous and anxious heart, for the restoration to the country of that quiet and that harmony which make the blessings of this Union so rich, and so dear to us all. These are the topics that I propose to myself to discuss ; these are the motives, and the sole motives, that influence me in the wish to communicate my opinions to the Senate and the country ; and if I can do any- thing, however little, for the promotion of these ends, I shall have accomplished all that I expect. Speech of March 7, 1850. OBEDIENCE TO INSTRUCTIONS. 8 IT has become, in my opinion, quite too common, and if the legislatures of the States do not like that opinion, they have a great deal more power to put it down than I have to uphold it, it has become, in my opinion, quite too common a practice for the State legislatures to present resolutions here on all subjects, and to instruct us on all subjects. There is no public man that requires instruction more than I do, or who requires information more than I do, or desires it more heartily ; but I do not like to have it in too imperative a shape. I took notice, with pleasure, of some remarks made upon this subject, the other day, in the Senate of Massachusetts, by a young man of talent and charac- ter, of whom the best hopes may be entertained. I mean Mr. 8 The doctrine that members of Congress are bound to follow implicitly the instructions of their particular constituents was for many years pushed so hard, that it threatened to overthrow all manly firmness and independence of judg- ment in our national legislators. In several cases, grave members of Congress became so weak-kneed under this pressure as to dishonour themselves by argu- ing on ono side of a given question, and then voting on the other. The doctrine is indeed highly flattering to popular folly, for which cause political demagogues favour it, of course. Perhaps the best utterance ever made on the subject is Burke's, which will be found on page 113 of this volume. But this of Webster's is not unworthy of a place beside that. PEACEABLE SECESSION. 537 Hillard. He told the Senate of Massachusetts that he would vote for no instructions whatever to be forwarded to members of Congress, nor for any resolutions to be offered expressive of the sense of Massachusetts as to what her members of Congress ought to do. He said that he saw no propriety in one set of public servants giving instructions and reading lectures to an- other set of public servants. To his own master each of them must stand or fall, and that master is his constituents. I wish these sentiments could become more common. I have never entered into the question, and never shall, as to the binding force of instructions. I will, however, simply say this : If there be any matter pending in this body, while I am a member of it, in which Massachusetts has an interest of her own not adverse to the general interests of the country, I shall pursue her in- structions with gladness of heart, and with all the efficiency which I can bring to the occasion. But if the question be one which affects her interest, and at the same time equally affects the interests of all the other States, I shall no more regard her particular wishes or instructions, than I should regard the wishes of a man who might appoint me an arbitrator or referee, to decide some question of important private right between him and his neighbour, and then instruct me to decide in his favour. If ever there was a government upon Earth it is this govern- ment, if ever there were a body upon Earth it is this body, which should consider itself as composed by the agreement of all; each member appointed by some, but organized by the general consent of all, sitting here, under the solemn obligations of oath and conscience, to do that which they think to be best for the good of the whole. Speech of March 7, 1850. PEACEABLE SECESSION. MR. PRESIDENT, I should much prefer to have heard from every member on this floor declarations of opinion that this Union could never be dissolved, than the declaration of opinion by anybody, that, in any case, under the pressure of any cir- cumstances, such a dissolution was possible. I hear with dis- tress and anguish the word secession, especially when it falls from the lips of those who are patriotic, and known to the country, and known all over the world, for their political ser- vices. Secession I Peaceable secession I Sir, your eyes and mine are never destined to see that miracle. The dismemberment of this vast country without convulsion I The breaking up of the 538 WEBSTER. fountains of the great deop without ruffling the surface! "Who is so foolish I beg everybody's pardon as to expect to see any such thing? Sir, lie who sees these states, now revolving in. harmony around a common centre, and expects to see them quit their places and lly off without convulsion, may look the next hour to see the heavenly bodies rush from their spheres, and jostle against each other in the realms of space, without caus- ing the wreck of the Universe. There can be no such thing as a peaceable secession. Peaceable secession is an utter impossi- bility. Is the great Constitution under which we live, covering this whole country, is it to be thawed and melted away by se- cession, as the snows on the mountain melt under the influence of a vernal Sun, disappear almost unobserved, and run off? Xo, Sir! No, Sir! I will not state what might produce the disrup- tion of the Union; but I see, as plainly as I see the Sun in heaven, what that disruption itself must produce: I see that it must produce war, and such a war as I will not describe, in its twofold rhdntrfn: Peaceable secession! The concurrent agreement of all the members of this great republic to separate! Where is the Hag of the republic to remain ? Where is the eagle still to tower? or is he to cower, and shrink, and fall to the ground? Why, Sir, our ancestors, our fathers and our grandfathers, those of them that are yet living amongst us with prolonged lives, would rebuke and reproach us ; and our children and our grand- children would cry shame upon us, if we of this generation should dishonour these ensigns of the power of the government and the harmony of that Union which is every day felt among us with so much joy and gratitude. I know the idea has been entertained, that, after the dissolution of this Union, a South- ern Confederacy might be formed. I am sorry that it has ever been thought of, talked of, or dreamed of, in the wildest flights of human imagination. But the idea, so far as it exists, must be of a separation, assigning the slave States to one side, and the free States to the other. I may express myself too strongly, perhaps ; but there are impossibilities in the natural as well as in the political world ; and I hold the idea of a separation of the;-e States, those that are free to form one government, and those that are slave-holding to form another, as such an im- possibility. Sir, nobody can look over the face of this country at the pres- ent moment, nobody can see, where its population is the most dense and growing, without being ready to admit, and com- pelled to admit, that ere long the strength of America will be in the Valley of the Mississippi. Well, now, I beg to inquire what the wildest enthusiast has to say on the possibility of PEACEABLE SECESSION. 539 cutting that river in two, and leaving free States at the source and on its branches, and slave States down near its mouth, each forming a separate government? Pray, Sir, let me say to the people of this country, that these things are worthy of their pondering and of their consideration. Here are five mill- ions of freemen in the free States north of the river Ohio. Can anybody suppose that this population can be severed, by a line that divides them from the territory of a foreign and an alien government, down somewhere, the Lord knows where, upon the lower banks of the Mississippi V Sir, I am ashamed to pur- sue this line of remark: I dislike it ; I have an utter disgust for it. I would rather hear of natural blasts and mildews, war, pestilence, and famine, than hear gentlemen talk of secession. To break up this great government ! to astonish Europe with such an act of folly as Europe for two centuries has never beheld ill any government or any peoplel Sir, I hoar there is a convention to be hold at Xashville. lam bound to believe that, if worthy gentlemen meet at Nashville in convention, their object will be to adopt conciliatory coun- sels ; to advise the South to forbearance and moderation, and to advise the North to forbearance, and moderation; and to incul- cate principles of brotherly love and affection, and attachment to the Constitution of the country as it now is. I believe, if the convention meet at all, it will be for this purpose : for, certainly, if they meet for any purpose hostile to the Union, they have been singularly inappropriate in their selection of a place. I remember that, when the treaty of Amiens was concluded be- tween Franco and England, a sturdy Englishman and a distin- guished orator, who regarded the conditions of the peace as ignominious to England, said in the House of Commons that, if King William could know the terms of that treaty, he would turn in his collin ! Let me commend this saying of Mr. Wind- ham, in all its emphasis and all its force, to any persons who shall meet at Xashville for the purpose of concerting measures for the overthrow of this Union over the bones of Andrew Jackson I And now, Mr. President, instead of speaking of the possibility or utility of secession, instead of dwelling in those caverns of darkness, instead of groping with those ideas so full of all that i- horrid and horrible, let us come out into the light of day ; let enjoy the fresh air of Liberty and Union; let us cherish those hopes which In-long to us ; let us devote ourselves to those great objects that are lit. for our consideration and our action; let us raise our concept ions to the magnitude and the importance of the duties that devolve upon us; let our comprehension be as broud as the country for which we act, our aspirations as high 540 WEBSTER. as its certain destiny ; let us not be pigmies in a case that calls for men. Never did there devolve on any generation of men higher trusts than now devolve upon us, for the preservation of this Constitution and the harmony and peace of all who are des- tined to live under it. Let us make our generation one of the strongest and brightest links in that golden chain which is des- tined, I fondly believe, to grapple the people of all the States to this Constitution for ages to come. No monarchical throne presses these States together, no iron chain of military power encircles them ; they live and stand under a government popu- lar in its form, representative in its character, founded upon principles of equality, and so constructed, we hope, as to lust for ever. In all its history it has been beneficent ; it has trod- den down no man's liberty ; it has crushed no State. Its daily respiration is liberty and. patriotism ; its yet youthful veins are full of enterprise, courage, and honourable love of glory and renown. Large before, the country has now, by recent events, become vastly larger. This republic now extends, with a vast breadth, across the whole continent. The two great seas of the world wash the one and the other shore. Speech of March 7, 1850. STANDING UPON THE CONSTITUTION. THE State in whose representation I bear a part is a Union State, thoroughly and emphatically : she is attached to the Union and the Constitution by indissoluble ties : she connects all her own history from colonial times, her struggle for inde- pendence, her efforts for the establishment of this government, and all the benefits and blessings which she has enjoyed under it, in one great attractive whole, to which her affections are constantly and powerfully drawn. All these make up a history in which she has taken a part, and the whole of which she en- joys as a most precious inheritance. She is a State for the Union ; she will be for the Union. It is the law of her destiny ; it is the law of her situation ; it is a law imposed upon her by the recollections of the past, and by every interest for the pres- ent and every hope for the future. Mr. President, it has always seemed to me to be a grateful reflection that, however short and transient may be the lives of individuals, States may be permanent. The great corporations that embrace the government of mankind, protect their liber- ties, and secure their happiness, may have, something of porpe- tuity, and, as I might say, of earthly immortality. For my part, STANDING UPOK THE CONSTITUTION. 541 Sir, I gratify myself by contemplating what in the future will be the condition of that generous State which has done me the honour to keep me in the counsels of the country for so many years. I see nothing about her in prospect less than that which encircles her now. I feel that, when I and all those that now hear me shall have gone to our last home, and afterwards, when mould may have gathered upon our memories, as it will have done upon our tombs, that State, so early to take her part in the great contest of the Revolution, will stand, as she has stood and now stands, like that column which, near her Capi- tol, perpetuates the memory of the first great battle of the [Revolution, firm, erect, and immovable. I believe that, if com- motion shall shake the country, there will be one rock for ever, as solid as the granite of her hills, for the Union to repose upon. I believe that, if disasters arise, bringing clouds which shall obscure the onsign now over her and over us, there will be one star that will but burn the brighter amid the darkness of that night; and 1 believe that, if in the remotest ages (I trust they will be infinitely remote) an occasion shall occur when the sternest duties of patriotism arc demanded and to be per- formed, Massachusetts will imitate her own example ; and that, as at the breaking-out of the Revolution she was the first to offer the outpouring of her blood and her treasure in the strug- gle for liberty, so she will be hereafter ready, when the emer- gency arises, to repeat and renew that offer, with a thousand times as many warm hearts, and a thousand times as many strong hands. And now, Mr. President, to return at last to the principal and important question before us. What are we to do? How arc we to bring this emergent and pressing question to an issue and an end? Here have we been seven and a half months, disput- ing about points which, in my judgment, are of no practical importance to one or the other part of the country. Are we to dwell for ever upon a single topic, a single idea ? Are we to for- get all the purposes for which ^governments are instituted, and continue everlastingly to dispute about that which is of no essential consequence? 1 think, Sir, the country calls upon us loudly and imperatively to settle this question. I think that the whole; world is looking to see whether this great popular government, can get through such a crisis. We are the ob- served of all observers. We have stood through many trials. Can we stand through this, which takes so much the character of a sectional controversy? There is no inquiring man in all Europe who does not ask himself that question everyday, when he reads the intelligence of the morning. Can this country, with one set of interests at the South, and another set of inter- 542 WEBSTER. ests at the North, and these interests supposed, but falsely supposed, to be at variance, ran this people see, what is so evident to all the world besides, that the Tnion is their main hrpe and greatest benefit, and that their inn-rests in every part are entirely compatible V Can they see, and will they feel, that their prosperity, their respectability among the nations of the Earth, and their happiness at home depend upon the mainten- ance of their Union and their Constitution? I agree that local divisions are apt to warp the understand- f men, and to excite a belligerent feeling between section and section. It is natural, in times of irritation, for one part of the country to say. " If you do that, I will do this," and so get uj) a feeling of hostility and defiance. Then eonies belligerent legislation, and then an appeal to arms. The question i<, whether we have the true patriotism, the Americanism, neces- sary to carry us through such a trial. For myself, I propose, Sir, to abide by the principles and the purposes which 1 have avowed. 1 shall stand by the I'liion, and by all who stand by it I shall do justice to the whole country, according to the best of my ability, in all I say, and act for the good of the whole country in all I do. I mean to stand upon the Constitution. I need no other platform. I shall know but one country. The ends I aim at shall be my country's, my Cod's, and Truth's. I was horn an American; I will live an American; I shall die an American ; and I intend to perform the duties incumbent upon me in that character to the end of my career. I mean to do this with absolute disregard of personal consequences. AVhat are personal consequences y What is the individual man, with all the good or evil that may betide him, in comparison with the good or evil which may befall a great country in a crisis like this, and in the midst of great transactions which concern t hat- country's fate? I>ct the consequences be what they may, I am careless. Xo man can suffer too much, and no man can fall too soon, if he suffer or if he fall in defence of the liberti- Constitution of his country. 0, on what was called " The Compromise Bill." And they seem to me to form no unfitting close to his great career as a legislator, the noblest and wisest Senator that has ever illustrated and adorned the American Senate. See Sketch of his /./ 333. APPEAL FOR THE UKIOK. 543 AN APPEAL FOR THE UNION. 1 FELLOW-CITIZENS : By the Act of Congress of the 30th of September, 1850, provision was made for the extension of the Capitol, according to such plan as might be approved by the President of the United States, and for the necessary sums to be expended, under his direction, by such architect as he might appoint. This measure was imperatively demanded, for ilio use of the legislative and judiciary departments, the public libraries, the occasional accommodation of the chief magistrate, and for other objects. No Act of Congress incurring a largo expenditure has received more general approbation from the people. The President has proceeded to execute this law. He has approved a plan ; he has appointed an architect ; and all things are now ready for the commencement of the work. The anniversary of national independence appeared to afford an auspicious occasion for laying the foundation-stone of tin? additional building. That ceremony has now been performed by the President himself in the presence and view of tins mul- titude. He has thought that the day and the occasion made a united and imperative call for some short address to the people here assembled; and it is at his request that I have appeared before you to perform that part of the duty which was deemed incumbent on us. Fellow-citizens, fifty-eight years ago Washington stood on this spot to execute a duty like that which has now been per- formed. He then laid the corner-stone of the original Capitol. is at the head of the government, at that time weak in re- sources, burdened with debt, just struggling into political exist- .md respectability, and agitated by the heaving waves which were overturning European thrones. But even then, in many respects, the government was strong. It was strong in ;i_ r t on's own great character ; it was strong in the wisdom and patriotism of other eminent public men, his political associ- nd fellow-labourers ; and it was strong in the affections of the people. Since that time astonishing changes have been wrought in the condition and prospects of tin; American people ; and a degree, '-TCSS witnessed with which the world can furnish no par- allel. As we review the course of that progress, wonder and amazement arrest our attention at every step. 1 On the 4th of Jujy, ls:,|, President l-'illi v. l;ii now States of the South! You are not of the original Thirteen. The battle had been fought and won, the Revolution achieved, and the Constitution established, your States had any existence as States. You came to a prepared banquet, and had scats assigned you at table just as honourable as those which were filled by older guests. You 546 WEBSTER. have been and are singularly prosperous ; and, if any one should deny this, you would at once contradict his assertion. You have bought vast quantities of choice and excellent land at the lowest price ; and it' the public domain has not been lav- ished upon you, you will yourselves admit that it has been appropriated to your own uses by a very liberal hand. And yet in some of these States, not in all, persons are found in favour of a dissolution of the Union, or of secession from it. Such opinions are expressed even where the general prosperity of the community has been most rapidly advanced. In the flour- ishing and interesting State of Mississippi, 1'or example, there is a large party which insists that her grievances are intoler- able, that the whole body politic is in a state of suffering; and all along, and through her whole extent on the .Mississippi, a loud cry rings that her only remedy is "Secession, seers-ion." Xo\v, (.ientlem.cn, what inlliction does the State of Mississippi suffer under? What oppression prostrates her strength or destroys her happinosV JJefmv we can judge of her proper remedy, we must know something of the d ;iid, for my part, I confess that the real evil existing in the case appears to me to be a certain inquietude or uneasiness growing out of a high degree of prosperity and a consciousness of wealth and power, which sometimes lead men to be ready for change to push on unreasonably to still higher elevation. If this be the truth of the matter, her political doctors are about right. If the complaint spring from overwrought prosperity, for that disease I have no doubt that secession would prove a sovereign remedy. But I return to the leading topic on which I was engaged. In the department of invention there have been wonderful ap- plications of science to arts within the last sixty years. The spacious hall of the Patent Office is at once the repository and proof of American inventive art and genius. The resul; seen in the numerous improvements by which human labour is abridged. Without going into details, it may be sufficient to say, that many of the applications of steam to locomotion and manu- factures, of electricity and magnetism to the production of mechanical motion, tho electrical telegraph, the registration of astronomical phenomena, the art of multiplying engravings, the introduction and improvement among us of all the important inventions of the Old World, are striking indications of the progress of this country in the useful arts. The network of railroads und telegraphic lines by which this vast country is AN 1 APPEAL FOR THE UNION. 547 reticulated have not only developed its resources, but united, emphatically in metallic bands, all parts of the Union. While the country has boon expanding in dimensions, in numbers, and in wealth, the government has applied a wise forecast in the adoption of measures necessary, when the world shall no longer be at peace, to maintain the national honour, whether by appropriate displays of vigour abroad, or by well- adapted means of defence at home. A navy, which has so often illustrated our history by heroic achievements, though in peaceful times restrained in its operations to narrow limits, in its admirable elements, the means of great and sudden expansion, and is justly looked upon by the nation as the right arm of its power. An army, still smaller, but not less perfect in its detail, has on many a Held exhibited the military aptitudes mid prowess of the race, and demonstrated the wisdom which has presided over its organization and government, And this extension of territory embraced within the United States, increase of its population, commerce, and manufactures, development of its resources by canals and railroads, and rapidity of intercommunication by means of steam and elec- tricity, have all been accomplished without overthrow of, or danger to, the public liberties, by any assumption of military power; and indeed without any permanent increase of the army, except, for tin; purpose of frontier defence, and of afford- ing a slight guard to the public property ; or of the navy, any further than to assure the navigator that, in whatsoever sea he shall sail his ship, he, is protected by the stars and stripes of his country. Thi>, too, has been done, without the shedding of a drop of blood for treason or rebellion ; while systems of popu- lar representation have regularly been supported in the State governments and the general government; while laws, national aii tending toward bis proper destiny, while he seeks for knowledge and virtue, for the will of his Maker, and for just conceptions of his owu duty. Of all important questions, there foiv, let this, the most impor- tant, be first asked and first answered : In what country of the habitable globe, of great extent and large population, are means of knowledge the most generally diffused and enjoyed among the people ? This question admits of one, and only one answer. It is here ; it is here in these United States ; it is among tho descendants of those who settled at Jamestown ; of those who were pilgrims on the shore of Plymouth; and of those other races of men who, in subsequent times, have become joined in this great American family. Let one fact, incapable of doubt or dispute, satisfy every mind on this point. The population of the United States is twenty-three millions. Now, take the map of the continent of Europe, and spread it out before you. Take your scale and your dividers, and lay off in one area, in any shape you please, a triangle, square, circle, parallelogram, or trapezoid, and of an extent that shall contain one hundred and fifty millions of people, and there will be found within tho United States more persons who do habitually read and write than can be embraced within the lines of your demarcation. But there is something even more than this. Man is not only an intellectual, but he is also a religious being, and his religious feelings and habits require cultivation. Let the religious ele- ment in man's nature be neglected, let him be influenced by no higher motives than low self-interest, and subjected to no stronger restraint than the limits of civil authority, and he be- comes the creature of selfish passion or of blind fanaticism. The spectacle of a nation powerful and enlightened, but with- out Christian faith, has been presented, almost within our own day, as a warning beacon to the nations. On the other hand, the cultivation of the religious sentiment represses licentious- ness, incites to general benevolence and the practical acknowl- edgment of the brotherhood of man, inspires respect for law and order, and gives strength to the whole social fabric, at the same time that it conducts the human soul upwards to the Author of its being. Now I think it safe to say, that a greater portion of the people of the United States attend public worship, decently clad, well behaved, and well seated, than of any other country of the civ- ilized world. Edifices of religion are seen everywhere. Their aggregate cost would amount to an immense sum of money. They are, in general, kept in good repair, and consecrated to tho Atf APPEAL FOB THE UKIOX. 549 purpose of public worship. In these edifices the people regu- larly assemble on the Sabbath-day, which, by all classes, is sacredly set apart for rest from secular employment and for religious meditation and worship, to listen to the reading of the Holy Scriptures, and discourses from pious ministers of the several denominations. This attention to the wants of the intellect and of the soul, as manifested by the voluntary support of schools and colleges, of churches and benevolent institutions, is one of the most re- markable characteristics of the American people, not less strik- ingly exhibited in the new than in the older settlements of the country. On the spot where the first trees of the forest were felled, near the log cabins of the pioneers, are to be seen rising together the church and the school-house. So has it been from the beginning, and God grant that it may thus continue 1 Who does not admit that this unparalleled growth in pros- perity and renown is the result, under Providence, of the union of these States under a general Constitution, which guarantees to each State a republican form of government, and to every man the enjoyment of life, liberty, and the pursuit of happi- ness, live from civil tyranny or ecclesiastical domination ? And, to bring home this .idea to the present occasion, who does not feel that, when President Washington laid his hand on the foundation of the first Capitol, he performed a great work of perpetuation of the Union and the Constitution? Who does not feel that this seat of the general government, healthful in its situation, central in its position, near the moun- tains whence gush springs of wonderful virtue, teeming with Nature's richest products, and yet not far from the bays and the great estuaries of the sea, easily accessible, and generally agroi-nblo in climate and association, does give strength to the union of these States? that this city bearing an immortal n.-'.nie, with its broad streets and avenues, its public squares, and magnificent edifices of the general government, erected for tin*, purpose of carrying on within them the important busi- >t the several departments, for the reception of wonderful nii'.l curious inventions, for the preservation of the records of American learning and genius, of extensive collections of the products of Nature and Art, brought hither for study and com- n from all parts of the world ; adorned with numerous churches, and sprinkled over, I am happy to say, with many public schools, where all the children of the city, without dis- tinction, have the means of obtaining a good education; and with academies and colleges, professional schools and public libraries should continue to receive, as it has heretofore 550 WEBSTER. received, the fostering care of Congress, and should be re- garded as the permanent seat of the national government V With each succeeding year new interest is added to tin- >pot : it becomes connected with all the historical associations of our country, with her statesmen and her orators; and, alas! its cemetery is annually enriched by the ashes of her cho>en sons. Before u> i- the broad and beautiful river, separating two of the original thirteen States, which a late Piv>idcnt. a man of determined purpose and inllexiblo will, but patriotic heart, desired to span with arches of ever-enduring granite, sym- bolical of the firmly cemented union of the North and the South. That President was (Jeneral Jackson. On its banks ivpose the ashes of the Father of his Country; and at our side, by a singular felicity of position, overlooking the city which he designed, and which bears his name, rises to his memory the marble column, sublime in iN simple grandeur, and litly intended to reach a loftier height than any similar structure on the surface of the whole Karth. Let the votive offerings of his grateful countrymen be freely contributed, to carry this monument higher and still higher ! May 1 sa\ . another occasion. M Let it rise ! let it rise, till it meet the Sun in his coming; let the earliest light of the morning gild it, and parting day linger and play on its summit I" Fellow-citizens, what contemplations are awakened in our minds as we assemble hen' to m : nact a scene like that per- formed by Washington! Rethinks I see his venerable form now before me, as presented in the glorious statue by Houdon, now in the Capitol of Virginia. He is dignified and grave ; but concern and anxiety seem to soften the lineaments of his coun- tenance. The government over which he presides is yet in the crisis of experiment. Xot free from troubles at home, 1. the world in commotion and arms all around him. He sees that imposing foreign powers are half-disposed to try the strength of the recently-established American government. We perceive that mighty thoughts, mingled with fears;, as hopes, are struggling within him. He heads a short proces- sion over these then naked fields ; he crosses yonder stream on a fallen tree; he ascends to the top of this eminence, whose original oaks of the forest stand as thick around him as if the spot had been devoted to Druidical worship, and here he per- forms the appointed duty. And now, fellow-citi/ens, if this vision were a reality; if Washington actually were now amongst us, and if lie could draw around him the shades of the great public men of his >wn day, patriots and warriors, orators and statesmen, and were to address us in their presence, would he not say to us : "Ye men AN APPEAL FOB THE UNION. 551 of this generation, I rejoice, and thank God for being able to see that our labours and toils and sacrifices were not in vain. You are prosperous, you arc happy, you are grateful ; the lire of lib- erty burns brightly and steadily in your hearts, while DUTY and the LAW restrain it from bursting forth in wild and destructive conflagration. Cherish liberty, as you love it ; cherish its secu- rities, as yon wish to preserve it. Maintain the Constitution which we laboured so painfully to establish, and which has been to yon such a source of inestimable blessings. Preserve the union of the States, cemented as it was by our prayers, our tears, and our blood. Be true to God, to your country, ;ind to your duty. So shall the whole Eastern world follow the morn- ing Sun to contemplate yon as a nation ; so shall all generations honour yon, as they honour us; and so shall that Almighty Power which so graciously protected us, and which now pro- tects yon, shower its blessings upon you and your posterity." Crcat Father of your Country ! we heed your words ; we teel their force as if you now uttered them with lips of tlesh and blood. Your example teaches us, your affectionate addresses teach us, your public life teaches us your sense of the value, of the blessings of the Cnion. Those blessings our fathers have ta.-ted, and we have tasted, and still taste. Xor do \ve intend that those who come after us shall be denied the same high fruition. Onr honour as well as our happiness is concerned. We cannot, we dan- not, wo will not, betray our sacred trust. We will not lilch from posterity the treasure placed in our hand* to be transmitted to other generations. The bow that gilds the clouds in the. heavens, the pillars that uphold the lirmament, may disappear and fall away in the hour appointed ! ie will of (iod ; bul, until that day comes, or so long as our lives may last, no ruthless hand shall undermine that bright arch of Vnion and Liberty which spans the continent from Washington to ( 'alifornia. IY!low-citi/ens, we must sometimes be tolerant to folly, and patient at the sight of the extreme waywardness of men ; but I confess that, when I reflect on the renown of our past history, on our present prosperity and greatness, and on what the future hath yet to unfold, and when I see that there are men who can find in all this nothing good, nothing valuable, nothing truly glorious, I feel that all their reason has tied away from them, and left the entire control over their judgment and their actions to insanity and fanaticism; and, more than all, fellow- citi/cns, if the, purposes >f fanatics and disunionists should be accomplished, the patriotic and intelligent of our generation would seek to hide themselves from the scorn of the world, and go about to liud dishonourable graves. 552 WEBSTER. Fellow-citizens, take courage; be of good cheer. We shall come to no such ignoble end. We shall live, and not die. Burins the period allotted to our several lives, we shall con- tinue to rejoice in the return of this anniversary. The ill- omened sounds of fanaticism will be hushed ; the ghastly spec- tres of Secession and Disunion will disappear ; and the enemies of united constitutional liberty, if their hatred cannot be ap- peased, may prepare to have their eyeballs seared as they be- hold the steady flight of the American eagle, on his burnished wings, for years and years to come. President Fillmore, it is your singularly good fortune to perform an act such as that which the earliest of your prede- cessors performed fifty-eight years ago. You stand where ho stood ; you lay your hand on the corner-stone of a building designed greatly to extend that whose corner-stone he laid, ('hanged, changed is every thing around. The same Sun indeed shone upon his head which now shines upon yours. The same bmad river rolled at his feet, and bathes his last resting-place, that now rolls at yours. But the site of this city was then mainly an open Held. Streets and avenues have MHO laid out and completed, squares and public grounds inclosed and ornamented, until the city which bears his name, although comparatively inconsiderable in numbers and wealth, has lie- come quite lit to be the seat of government of a great and united people. Fellow-citizens, I now bring this address to a close, by ex- pressing to you, in the words of the great Roman orator, the deepest wish of my heart, and which I know dwells deeply in the hearts of all who hear me: "Duomodo luec opto ; unum, UT MOKIEXS POPULUM ROMANU3I LIBEHl M IIIiLlXQFAM ; llOC rnihi majus a diis immortalihiis dari mini potest : altermn, ut ita cuique eveniat, ut de republica quisque mereatur. "- And now, fellow-citizens, with hearts void of hatred, envy and malice towards our own countrymen, or any of them, or towards the subjects or citizens of other governments, or towards any member of the great family of Man ; but exulting, nevertheless, in our own peace, security, and happiness, in the grateful remembrance of the past, and the glorious hopes of the future, let us return to our homes, and with all humility and devotion offer our thanks to the Father of all our mercies, polit- ical, social, and religious. 2 This quotation is from Cicero, and maybe Englished thus: "Ouly these two tilings 1 crave, lirst, that at my death I may leave the Roman people free, than which no greater boon can be granted me by the immortal gods; next, that every man's lot may be carved out to him according to his merits as a citizen of the republic." FRANCIS BACON: SKETCH OF HIS LIFE. FRANCIS BACON, the great Light of modern Philosophy, was the son of Sir Nicholas Bacon, who for twenty years held the office of Lord Keeper of the Great Seal. He was born at York House, London, the residence of his father, on the 22d of January, 15G1... His mother, Anne Cooke, was his father's second wife, and had one other son, Anthony, two years older than Francis. As her oldest sister was the wife of Lord Treasurer Bur- leigh, Francis stood, from his birth, in a sort of double relation to the Court. Both Ladv Bnrleigh and Lady Bacon were highly educated women; their father, Sir Anthony Cooke, being the preceptor of King Kdward the Sixth. Lady Bacon, before her marriage, translated Bishop Jewel's Apology into Latin, and is said to have done it so well, that the good prelate could discover no error in it, nor suggest any alteration. Of the childhood of Francis and his brother little is known. Their early education was superintended by their accomplished mother. The health of Francis was delicate and fragile ; which may partly account for the stu- dions and thoughtful turn which seems to have marked his boyhood. Queen Elizabeth, it is said, took special delight in '' trving him with ques- tions," when he was a little boy; and was so much pleased with the sense and gravity of his answers, that she used to call him in sport her "young Lord Keeper." And Bacon himself tells us that, in his boyhood, the Queen once asked him how old he was, and that lie promptly replied, ' Two years younger than your Majesty's reign." It is iilso said that, when very young, he stole away from his playfellows, to investigate the cause of a singular echo in St. James's Fields, which had excited his curiosity. At the age of thirteen, Bacon entered Trinity College, Cambridge, where he remained three years, and then left without taking a degree. It is said that, while in college, he studied diligently the great models of antiquity; !>nt even at that early age he took a dislike to the philosophy of Aristotle, not on account of the author, to whom he ascribed all high attributes, but for the nnfriiitfulness of the method ; it being a philosophy strong only for di-pntations and contentions, but barren of works for the benefit of the iife of man. The Lord Keeper had designed his son Francis for a public career as a statesman or diplomatist, and with that view took him out of college, at of sixteen, and sent him to Paris, where he spent some time under of Sir Amvas Paulct. the F-nglish ambassador at the French Court. nl that while there he invented an ingenious method of writing in cipher. The main purpose in sending him abroad was, that he might stu.ly 7iien ; and with that view he travelled to various places in France and Italy ; but it well appears that, though he was a keen observer of men, lie could" not withdraw his mind altogether from the investigation of natu- ral phenomena. After about three years spent on the Continent, he was called home by the sudden death of his father. This event changed the whole, course, of his life. Sir Nicholas had intended to purchase an estate for Francis, as he had done for his other sons ; but, as death came upon 554 BACOX. him before this intention was carried out, the money was divided equally amonir all his children, the youngest son being thus left with only one fifth of what was intended for him : so that, instead of living only to study, he was under the necessity of studying how to live. Bacon now fixed upon the law as hi> profession, and in 1580 became i\ memher of (irav's Inn, which wa> one of the four principal schools or col- leges lor students of the law in London. As he had in leiral studies, and in June. I5S2, he was admitted as an utter harristcr, which was the first decree in lejral practice. February, 1.">SG, saw him advanced to what wa> called the hiirh table of (irav's Inn, and he soon after became a heneher. Meanwhile he had kept up his philosophical studies, and published the first fruits tliercof in a work rather ambitiously entitled Tin (lr<-iti*t l>irtli <>f Time; which, houever. fell so dead upon the world that it is now heard of only in one of his letters, written lon^ after- ward-:, to Father Fuli;cntio ; and its only clK ct at the. time was to mark him out as a rash spcculatist. In 1584, while yet a student of Cray's Inn. Bacon was elected to Parlia- ment by one of the borough con>titueueies of 1 )or-ct-liire. On th'. stajze he continued to figure COD&picuouslv for upwards of thirty year*. In the Kail of 15SIJ he took his scat in the [fou&C of Commons for Taunton ; and in the next Parliament we liud him represent in.i: Liverpool. In Feb- ruary. l.V.U, he was meinher for the County of Middlesex ; and from that time onward his reputation as a state-man stood so hi-h. that various constituencies appear In have striven for the honour of having him as their representative ; and in some instance's he was elected for several p . the same time. Bacon was an exceedingly industrious and useful member of 1'ar'iiameiit. As a practical legislator, lie was probably second to no man of his time. His irreat skill and dili-euce in the business u f his place caused him to l>e put upon many important committees; and whenever he ad- dressed the whole IIou.se, as he vcrv often did. he appeal's to have surpassed all the others both in commanding and rewarding the attention of the members, lien .lonson tells us that " the fear of every man who heard him was, lest he should make ;m end." One passage in his pariiamcntarv lite seems to call for some special notice. In the Parliament of 15'.l.>, upon a question of irrantiu;: supplies, the two Houses appointed each a committee, t-j confer together, and make a joint re|K>rt. When the result of that conference came up, Bacon opposed the action, claiming fr the Commons the exelusr.e ri^ht to originate that nature; and he moved that the House should "proceed herein by themselves apart from their Lordships." Thus his opposition went upon the ground of privilege. Nevertheless, both on that point, and also on the terms of the subsidy, he was outvoted, and he acquiesced. His conduct wa> very offensive to the Queen ; and he is charged with having met her repri- mand with " the most abject apologies." Even if this were true, it was nothing more than the whole House of Commons had often done before. But we have two letters from Bacon on the subject, addressed to Bur'.cL- !i and Essex; both in a tone of manly self-justification. The Queen was anury at his speeches, and lie expressed his -rief that she should " retain an hard' conceit of them." He adds the following: "It mi.irht please her sacred Majesty to think what mv end should he in those .speeches, if it were not dutv. and dutv alone. / din not att aini)>l<' Intt 1 kmni' t/n ntinmo u'di/ to please. And whereas popularity hath been objected, I muse what care 1 should take to please many, that taketh a course of life to deal with few." l T p to this time, and for some years longer. Bacon gained no luerame position. For reasons which I cannot stav to explain, his uncle, the Lord Treasurer, lent him but scanty and grudging help. The only thing indeed SKETCH OP HIS LIFE. 555 which lii's Lordship did for this illustrious kinsman was to procure for him, in 1589, the reversion of the clerkship of the Star Chamber, which was worth sumo .t'K',00 a year, hut which did not i'ali vacant till twenty years after. Though Bacon 'did his work well, hoth as a lawyer and a Legislator, still his thoughts and aspirations pointed elsewhere. He had indeed a strong desire of office, hut it was not a selfish desire : it was rather the in- structive yearning of his most original and comprehensive genius for leave to range in iis proper home. Jlis highest amliilion was for a place which should supply his needs, and at the same tune give him leisure to prosecute his intellectual conquests. Having taken all knowledge to be his province, with his vast contemplative ends he united hut moderate civil ends. He had indeed an ardent, admiring, and steadfast friend in the Earl of Kssex, who did all he could to help him in the matter of office nml salary; hut vas so rash in his temper, so ill-judging and so headstrong id his proceedings, that his friendship proved rather a hindrance than a help. In 151H the office of Attorney-! iencral became vacant. Bacon had hopes of the place, and Kssex lent his influence in that behalf; but the Queen's displeasure could not be overcome. After a delay of many months, during which Bacon was kept in suspense, the office, was giren to Sir Edward Coke. By this promotion, the place of Solicitor-General fell vacant. Bacon then fixed his eye on that office, and Kssex worked for him with, all his might ; but. after a suspense of a ycnr and a half, his hopes were again blasted by the appointment of Sergeant Fleming. Chagrined and mortified at the failure of his suit, the generous Essex next conceived the design of compensating Bacon with a liberal share of his own propertv. He accord- ingly proposed to give him an estate worth about .1800, equivalent to some $.")(>, 000 in our time. But liacon's insight of character naturally made him icluctant to incur sucli obligations, a> he could not but see that the Earl \\as likely to mar all by his violent courses. lie declined the offer. K>M'.\ insisted, and Bacon at last vielded, but with such words as show that he had Do just a presentiment of what the Earl was coming to. "My Lord," said he, '' I see I must be your homagcr and hold land of your gift.: but do you know the manner of doing homage by law ! Always it is with a saving O f his faith to the King and his other lords ; and therefore, my Lord, I can be no more yours than 1 wa>, ami it must be with the ancient savp! In April, 1590, the Mastership of the, liolls an office having charge of all patents that pass the (Jreat Seal, and of the records of the Chancery Court became vacant, and Bacon was a candidate for the place. Essex again supported his claims, but with the same result as before, suspense, and Anal disappointment. This was followed, the next year, by an estrange- ment between Bacon and Kssex. The Earl's rash and impetuous nature was carrying him into dangerous ways, and Bacon's wise counsels and friendly warnings were naturally distasteful to a man so averse to any self- restraint. In the Spring of 1599, before Essex set out on his expedition to Ireland, Bacon had .so far renewed his intercourse with him as to write him several fricndlv letters ot advice, warning him that " merit is worthier than fame," and that " obedience is better than sacrifice." In September follow- ing, the Earl suddenly returned from that ill-starred cxj>edition, covered with dishonour, and not free from disloyal and defiant thoughts. 1 now come, to what is commonly regarded as the darkest passage in Bacon's life. In some respects it is rather dark indeed ; yet the indictment, to me, has sometimes been great lv overcharged, an error which I would fain avoid. Some vears before this time, Bacon had been appointed by the Queen one of her counsel learned in the law. This office, he still held, and was of course bound to its duties. The crisis, which he had long foreboded, and had done his utmost to prevent, had now come. In the Spring of 1000 the Queen was for proceeding against Essex by public in- 550 BACON. formation. Bacon dissuaded her from this, but not without jriving her offence. She finally resolved that the matter should IK? heard before a commission, and her counsel hail their parts aoiirned them. Bacon he^ed to he excused, hut held himself ready to obey the (.^teen's commands, thinkinjr that by yielding so far he mijrht he IB a better position to serve KSM-X. At this time he knew nothing of the Earl's treasonable de>iu r ns, and looked upon the affair as a storm that would soon blow over, was acquitted of disloyalty, hut eensured for contempt and disobedience. By the Queen's order, Bacon drew up a narrative of what had passed, in which he touched the Karl's faults so tenderly, that the Queen told him " she perceived old love would not easily be forgotten" ; and he with -Treat adroitness replied that he hoped she meant that of herself. And in a letter written about this time, he sjn-aks as follows : " For my Lord of 1 am not servile to him, having regard to my sujK-rior duty. I have been much bound to him. And, on tin- other side, 1 have spent more timo and more thoughts about his wcll-doini; than I ever did about mine own." Kssex was a.irain at larire. and had his fate onee more in his own hands. But it soon appeared that lie was rather emlM>!dened than checked in his fatal career. While he was driving on his plot- in secret, the Queen had source.; of information which Bacon knew not of. In his ignorance of the whole truth. Bacon still kept up his defence of K-M-X. till at last the Quern, supposing him to know as much as her>elf. ^ot so anyry at his importunity that she would no longer see him. This was in the Fall of KiiH. Karly in .lanuarv, 1C>01, Bacon was a^ain admitted to the Queen's preseuee. and S]ioke his mind to her as follows: "Madam, I see you withdraw your favour from me, and now that I have ht many friends for your sake, I shall lose you too. A .irn at many love me not, l>ecanse they "think 1 have been against mv Lord Ks>ex ; and you love me not, because you know I have been for him : yet will 1 never repent me that I have dealt in simplic- ity of heart towards you both, without respect of cautions to myself." The Queen was moved by his earnestness, and spoke kindly to him, but said nothing of Kssex. Bacon then determined to meddle no more in the mat- ter, and did not see the Queen a^ain till the Karl had put himself beyond the reach of intercession. Thenceforth Kssex seems to have cast off all restraint. Left to his own head, and perhaps to the bad counsels of some who were nsiujj him as a tool, he plunged into crime with the recklessness of downright infatuation. Of his doin-rs suffice it to say that they were clearly treasonable, and that nothing less than treason could possibly be made out of them, < )n the 1'Jth of February he was formally arraigned and brought to trial. Bacon, as one of the Queen's counsel, took the part assigned to him. The defence broke down at all points, and Kssex was of course condemned. Bacon spoke twice in the trial ; and of his course the worst that can fairly be said appears to be. that the dues of personal pratitude did not withhold him from pressing the argument against the Karl somewhat more harshly than hi> duty to the Crown absolutely required. On the one hand.it is allowed that Kssex had "spent all his power, mijrht. authority, and amity" in Bacon's behalf. On the other hand. Bacon had tried his utmost to serve Kssex ; he had stuck by him to the -Treat and manifest peril of himself, and never ceased to plead his cause, till that cause became utterly hopeless. How much a man ou-rht to stake in such a ease, or whether he onirht to stake his all, is a question not easy to decide; and in such a sharp conflict between personal gratitude and public duty, there will always be differ- ences of opinion. Much the same is to be said touching the part sustained by Bacon after the execution. Kssex was something of a favourite with the people, and his fate drew forth some marks of popular odium against the Queen. It was deemed necessary to vindicate the action of the government, and to SKETCH OF HIS LIFE. 557 Bacon was assigned the task of drawing up, or of dressing into shape, "A Declaration of the Practices and Treasons attempted and committed by Robert late Earl of Essex," c., which was published in 1601. His instruc- tions for the writing were very precise, and his first draft was submitted to certain councillors, " who made almost a new writing," so that Bacon him- self " gave only words and form of style." In reference to this paper it has been said that "Bacon "exerci>ed his literary talents to blacken the Earl's memory." But it does not appear that he carried the blackening process anv further than a fair and just statement of the case would have that effect. Soon after the publication, a parliamentary election was held, and Bacon was returned both by Ipswich and St. Albans ; which infers that he had not lost ground in the public confidence. Upon the whole, that Bacon was enthusiastic in his friendship, probably none will affirm. But then neither was he bitter in his enmities. And if there was little nobleness of soul, there was surely nothing of malice, in his composition. In his treatment of Essex there is indeed nothing to praise ; nor, as it seems to me, is there very much to be positively blamed. To pronounce him " the meanest of mankind," is surely going too far; but that there was more than enough of meanness in him, must, I fear, be granted; for of that article " a little more than a little is by much too much." The death of the Qiieen, in March, 1603, and the accession of James the First made no considerable change in Bacon's prospects. He was anxious to be knighted, his chief reason being, " because 1 have found out an alder- man's daughter, an handsome maiden, to my liking." Accordingly, in July he was dubbed a knight by the King; but it was rather the. reverse of an honour, as some three hundred others were dubbed at the same time, lie was also elected to the new Parliament, both at Ipswich and St. Albans, and continued to take a very prominent part in the business of the House. In August, his office, as one of the learned counsel, was confirmed to him by patent, together with a pension of .60 a year. In May, 1606, ho was married to Alice Barnham, the " handsome maiden" already men- tioned. She was the daughter of a London merchant, and had a fortune of 220 a-year, which was settled upon herself, with an addition of 500 a-year from her husband. 'The accession of King James naturally drew on a proposal for uniting the two kingdoms of Kngland and Scotland. This most wise measure was strongly opposed by many of the English ; but Bacon supported it with all the weight of his name and talents, and doubtless thereby recommended himself not a little to the King's favour. In June, 1607, he attained the long-sought office of Solicitor-General ; and the next year the clerkship of the Star-Chamlx-r became vacant. Bacon had waited for it nearly twenty years. In October, 161.'J, the place of Attorney-General again fell vacant, and Bacon succeeded to it. The duties of this" office brought him into con- nection with the celebrated case of 1'caehrnan, which has entailed another blot on his name. Peachman was sin aged clergyman who, for some eccle- siastical offence, had been cited before the Court of High Commission, and deprived of his orders. Before the sentence, his house, was searched, and an unpublished sermon was found, which was allege;! to contain trea- sonable matter. Peachman was believed to have accomplices, and, as he would not reveal them, the Council resolved on putting him to torture. By the common law, the use of torture for extracting evidence was deemed illegal ; but such use was held to be justified in this case on the ground of its being for the purpose of discovery, and not of evidence. But it does not appear that Bacon was at all responsible for this outrage, any further than that, as Attorney-General, he was one of the commission appointed to attend the examination of the, prisoner. And his letters show that he aged in the, affair with reluctance, and that the step was taken against advice. It is also alleged that, to procure a capital sentence, Bacon 558 BACOX. tampered with the judges of the Kind's Bench ; but as the case was not to be tried by any of those judges, it does not well appear why lie should have tampered with them for that purpose. In August, 161">. IVaehman was tried at Taunton, and was convicted of hi'uh trea-ou ; hut the capital sen- tence was never carried out, because " many of the judges were of opinion that it was not treason." In June, 1616, Bacon was made a member of the Privy Council, and was formally congratulated thereupon bv the I" ui versify of Cambridge, which he then represented in Parliament. In March, 1617, Lord Chan- cellor Ellesmere resigned, and Bacon was appointed Lord Keeper of the (ireat Seal. A week later the Kin;: set out for Scotland, leaving his new Lord Keeper at the head of the Council, to manage affairs in his ah-eucc. In January, 1618, Sir Francis liccamc Lord Chancellor, and in the follow- ing July was raised to the peerage with the title of Baron Vcrulam. In the v\ork of Chancery, his energy and di-patch were something prodigious. Within three mouths after he became Lord Keeper, lie made a clean sweep of all the accumulated cases then on hand, and reported that there was not one cause remaining unheard. Seldom, if ever. before, had the work of that high court been so promptly done, or done more to the satisfaction of the public. In January, 1621. Bacon was created Viscount of St. Albans, and in the patent of promotion was particularly commended for his " integ- rity in the administration of justice." rnfortunatelv, during this period, Bacon could not make headway in political life without paying court to a l)old, insolent, and unscrupulous upstart. England had a weak though learned Kinir. and that King was mainly ffpveraed by a greed v and prodigal favourite, (Jeorgc Viilicrs, Duke of Buckingham, whom James had raised to that height for his handsome ]erson and dashing manners. Buckingham had set his heart upon what was called " the Spanish match, "that is the marriage of Charles. Prince of Wales, afterwards King Charles the First, to a Spanish Princess. Bacon wisely used his influence wit-h the. King against that match, and probably was in a great measure the means of defeating it. He thereby incurred the re>entment of Buckingham, though he had socially laid himself out in wise advice to him : and he stooped to very unworthy atonements in order to appease his anger and regain his favour. lint IJuckingham \ powerful with the King, and he greatly abused that power, to the oppression of the people and the misgovern men t of the kingdom. In his need and greed and vainglory, he availed himself of whatever twist he had on the too supple Chancellor, and doubtless did all he could to pervert Justin- in the Chancery, in order to repair the waste of his boundless prodigality. Hence Bacon became involved in practices which wrought his downfall, and have covered his name with dishonour. In January, 1621, three days after Bacon's last promotion. Parliament met, and was not in a mood to be trifled with. A few days later, a com- mittee was appointed, to report concerning the courts of justice. Their report, made on the loth of March, fell like 1 a thunderclap : the Lord Chancellor was charged with corruption in his otliee, and instam < alleged in proof. Measures were forthwith taken tor his impeachment. Before the time of trial came, twenty-two eases of bribery were drawn up against him. Bacon, sick unto death, as he thought himself, felt that his enemies had closed upon him. and begged only a fair hearing, that lie might give them an ingenuous answer. To the Kini: he wrote as follows : " For the briberies and Drifts wherewith lam charged, when the books of hearts shall be opened. 1 hope I shall not be found to have the troubled fountain of a corrupt heart, in a depraved habit of taking rewards to pervert justice ; howsoever I may be frail, and partake of the abuses of the times.'' And in his answer he says, " I never had bribe or reward in my eye or thought when I gave sentence or order." These, to be sure, are substantially tanta- SKETCH OF HIS LIFE. 559 mount to a confession of the matter charged. Nevertheless he was for proceeding with his defence, but from this the King and Buckingham dissuaded him ; for what cause, or hv what arguments, is not known. In- stead of standing trial, he wrote to the Lords, " ] lind matter sufficient and full, both to move me to desert my defence, and to move your Lordships to condemn and censure me." So, on the 3<)th of April, his full confession was read before the Lords, in which he says, "I do plainly and ingenu- ously confess that I am guilty of corruption, and do renounce all defence." One of the charges was, that he had given way to great exactions by his servants ; and " he confessed it to be a great fault, that he had looked no better to his servants." The sentence was. a tine of .40.000, imprisonment during the King's pleasure, incapability of holding any office in the State, or of sitting in Parliament, and prohibition to come within the verge of the Court. His own comment on this verdict is, " I was the justcst judge that was in England these fifty years ; but it was the justest censure in Parlia- ment that was these two" hundred years." The severest parts of the sentence were very soon remitted ; and within a year the whole was remitted, and also a pension of 1300 a-y ear conferred upon him by the King. Such is the upshot of this sad tale. Still it does not appear, nor is it alleged, that Bacon took bribes for the perversion of justice. During his Chancellorship he made orders and decrees at the rate of two thousand a-ycar. Of these decrees not one was ever set aside. None of his judgments were reversed. Kven those who first charged him with taking money ad- mitted that he decided against them. The truth seems to be, that in* this case the accumulated faults of the office were visited on the individual in- cumbent. Nor, perhaps, could they have been effectually cured hut by the, destruction of the very man who was the greatest that had complied with them : by such a sacrifice, they might indeed become so unspeakably odious, that even the worst men would take care to shun them. The Parliament was hot and stout, as it had reason to be, against the maladministration of the State. lint they were more just in their anger than discriminating as to its object.*. They demanded victims; and Bacon, in some respects, would be a most acceptable sacrifice, since the very height whereon he, stood would make his fall the more exemplary. Besides, if Parliament could n:>t get at the Chancellor, they might entertain the thought of strik- ing higher. And indeed the King and Buckingham seem to have been apprehensive that Bacon might triumph, should he proceed in his own defence, (for who could he expected to withstand so potent an enchanter, mming to the rescue of his good name?) in which case the public resent- ment, sharpened by defeat, might turn to other objects, and demand a dearer sacrifice. . Henceforth Bacon lived in strict retirement, and gave himself up unre- servedly to labours in which his heart was at home. He was among the -iimmoned to the first Parliament of Charles the First ; but he did not take his seat. For the last five years his health was very feeble, and lie was constantly looking death in the face. At last, a cold, caught in an ex- periment to test (lie preserving qualities of snow, resulted in a fever; and, after lingering a week, he died on the morning of Faster-day, April 9, IG2G. If Bacon's political life was, in some respects, ignoble and f.ilse, his intel- lectual life was altogether noble, and true, and has perhaps been more fruitful in substantial help to mankind than that of any other man. The fir>t instalment of his y^w/y.s, ten in number, was published in 1597, in a small volume, which also contained his Colours of Good and Evil, and his MedttatioHet Sacra. Some of these Essays were afterwards enlarged, and others added to them from time, to time, in repeated editions, till at last, the. whole fifty-eight appeared together in l(>2f>. In 1005, was published his Advancement of Learning, which was afterwards recast, enlarged, trans- 5GO BACON. lated into Latin, and published in 1023, with the title De Augment** Scien- tiarum. In 1609, his Wisdom of the Ancients came forth, translated into Latin. His Novum Orptnum made its appearance in the Fall of 1620. The proper English of this title is The N(iv Instrummt; hut the work is occupied with setting forth what is known as the Baconian, that is, the Inductive or Experimental Method of Scientific Investigation. It was the great work of his life, and so he regarded it. and kept toiling at it for thirty years. The object of the work, as stated by himself, was to " enlarge the bounds of reason and endow man's estate with new value." As his plan contemplated a much larger work, of which this was but a part, he gave, as his reason for publishing it, that he felt his life hastening to its close, and wished that portion of his work at least to be saved. The Xorum Onjannm was followed, in 1622, bv his History of Ifenry the Scccnth. Be- sides these, he has various other works, lx>th professional and philosophi- cal, but which my space does not permit me to mention in detail. Bacon appears to have been specially inspired with the faith, that a true and genuine knowledge of Nature would arm its possessor "itb Nature's power, by enabling him to harness up her forces and put them to work for the service of man. To this faith he clung with a tenacity that nothing could relax. And so strong was he in this faith, that he could not admit any knowledge of Nature to be real, which did not confer such power. Thus in his view power is the test and measure of knowledge; and this I take to be the true sense of the Baconian axiom, "knowledge is power." And this great idea, together with the method which it involves, was itself a prophecy, or rather the seminal principle, of all the stupendous achieve- ments which Science has since made in the mastery of Nature. I quote from Sir James Mackintosh : " That in which Bacon most ex- celled all other men was the range and compass of his intellectual view, and the power of contemplating many and distant objects together with- out indistinctness or confusion. This wide-ranging intellect was illumi- nated by the brightest Fancy that ever contented itself with the office of only ministering to Reason ; and from this singular relation of the two grand faculties of man it has resulted, that his philosophy, though illus- trated still more than adorned by the utmost splendour of imagery, con- tinues still subject to the undivided supremacy of Intellect. In the midst of all the prodigality of an imagination which, had it been independent, would have been poetical, his opinions remained severely rational. But, with all his greatness and beautv of intellect," Bacon was sadly wanting in moral elevation. In his position, a high and delicate honour, the sensitive chastity of principle which feels a stain as a wound, was es- pecially needful for his safety ; but it evidently had no ruling place in his breast. Still, though his intellectual merits can hardly be overdrawn, it is easy to overdraw his moral defects. He was not only greatly admired as a thinker, but deeply loved and honoured as a man, bv manv of the best and purest men of the time; which could hardlv have been the case but that, with all his blemishes, lie had great moral and social virtues. Though often straitened for means, he was always generous to his servants : his temper and carriage were eminently gentle and humane : he was never ac- cused of insolence to any human being, which is the common pleasure of mean-spirited men : his comlnci in Parliament was manly, his vi legislator were liberal, and leaning strongly towards improvement : it is not pretended that he ever <;ave an unjust or illegal judgment as Chancel- lor: his private life was blameless, and abounding in works of piety and charity : atid his losing the favour of the King and Buckingham, when they were in the full career of rapacity and corruption, fairly infers him to have resisted them as much as he could without losing the power to resist them at all. FRANCIS BACON. ESSAYS.* OF TKUTH. "WHAT is truth? " said jesting Pilate, and would not stay for an answer. 1 Certainly there be that delight in giddiness, and count it a bondage to fix a belief ; affecting free-will in think- ing, as well as in acting. And though the sects of philosophers of that kind be gone, yet there remain certain discoursing 2 wits, which are of the same veins, though there be not so much blood in them as was in those of the ancients. But it is not only the difficulty and labour which men take in finding out of truth, nor, again, that, when it is found, it imposeth upon nu-n's thoughts, that doth bring lies in favour; but a natural though corrupt love of the lie itself. One of the later schools of the Grecians examineth the matter, and is at a stand to think what should be in it, that men should love lies, where neither they make for pleasure, as with poets, 3 nor for advantage, as with the merchant, but for the lie's sake. But I cannot tell: this same truth is a naked and open daylight, that doth not show the masques and mummeries and triumphs of the world half so stately and daintily as candle-lights. Truth may perhaps come to the price of a pearl, that showeth best by day, but it will not rise to the price of a diamond or carbuncle, that showeth best * Bacon's Essays are the best-known and most popular of all his works. It is also one of those where the superiority of his genius appears to the greatest advantage; the novelty and depth of his reflections often receiving a strong relief from the triteness of the subject. It may be read from beginning to end in a few hours; and yet, alter the twentieth perusal, one seldom fails to remark in it something unobserved before. This indeed is a characteristic of all Ba- con's writings, and only to be accounted for by the inexhaustible aliment they furnish to our own thoughts, and the sympathetic activity they impart to our torpid faculties. DUUAI.I) STEWART. 1 Bacon, I think, mistakes here. Pilate seems to be in anything but a jesting mood. He is evidently much interested in the Prisoner before him, and is sur- prised, for an instant, out of his oflicial propriety; but presently bethinks liim- M-lHhat the question is altogether beside his oflicial duty, and proceeds at once to the business in hand. 2 Discoursing in the sense of discursive ; that is, roving or unsettled. .'{ Baron here supposes n fiction to be the same thing as a lie. But, properly speaking, poetry is antithetic, not to truth, but to matter of fact. 562 BACON. in varied lights. A mixture of a lie doth ever add pleasure. Doth any man doubt that, if there were taken out of men's minds vain opinions, flattering hopes, false valuations, imagi- nations as one would, and the like, it would leave the minds of a number of men poor shrunken tilings, full of melancholy and indisposition, and unpleasing to themselves? One of the fa- thers, in great severity, called poesy vinum dwmonum, 4 because it lilleth the imagination, and yet it is but with the shadow of a lie. But it is not the lie that passeth through the mind, but the lie that sinketh in, and settleth in it, that doth the hurt, such as we spake of before. But howsoever these things are thus in men's depraved judgments and affections, yet truth, which only doth judge itself, teaeheth, that the inquiry of truth, which is the love-making or wooing of it, the knowledge of truth, which is the presence of it* and the belief of truth, which is the enjoying of it. is the sovereign good of human nature. The first creature of (lod, in the works of the days, was the light of the sense; the last was the light of reason : and His sabbath work ever since is the illumination of His Spirit. First, He breathed light upon the face of the matter, or chaos ; then He breathed light into the face of man: and still lie breatheth and inspireth light into the face of His chosen. The poet that beautified the sect, 6 that Avas otherwise inferior to the rest, saith yet excellently well: "It is a pleasure to stand upon the shore, and to see ships tossed upon the sea ; a pleas- ure to stand in the window of a castle, and to see a battle, and the adventures thereof below: but no pleasure is comparable to the standing upon the vantage ground of truth," (a hill not to be commanded,' 1 and where the air is always dear and serene,) "and to see the errors and wanderings, and mists and tempests, in the vale below:" 7 so always that this prospect 8 be with pity, and not with swelling or pride. Certainly it is J lea ven upon Earth to have a man's mind move in charity, rest in Providence, and turn upon the poles of truth. 4 " The wine of evil spirits." 5 The allusion is to Lucretius, the Roman poet, and to the Epicurean sect of philosophers, whose doctrines Lucretius clothed in their most attractive garb. Epicurus himself was of a pure and blameless life; hut his leading tenet was that the chief aim of all philosophy should be to secure health of body and tran- quillity of mind. The using, however, of the term pleasure, to express tlii.s object, has at all times exposed the system to reproach; and, in fact, the name of the sect has too often serve. I as a cloak for luxury and libertinism. 6 That is, a hill having no hit/her hill in its neighbourhood. So, in a military sense, a higher hill commands a lower one standing near it. 7 This is rather a paraphrase than a translation of the fine passage in Lucretius. 8 Prospect is here used actively ; that is, in the sense of overlooking or looking down upon. OF DEATH. 563 To pass from theological and philosophical truth to the truth of civil business: It will be acknowledged, even by those that practise it not, that clear and round 9 dealing is the honour of mail's nature, and that mixture of falsehood is like alloy in coin of gold and silver, which may make the metal work the 1 totter, but it embaseth it. For these winding and crooked courses are the goings of the serpent ; which goeth basely upon the belly, and not upon the feet. There is no vice that doth so cover a man with shame as to be found false' and perfidious: and there- fore Montaigne 1 saith prettily, when he inquired the reason why the word of the lie should be such a disgrace and such an odious charge: saith he, "If it" be well weighed, to say that a man lieth, is as much as to say that he is brave towards (Jod and a coward towards men. For a lie faces God, and shrinks from man." Surely the wickedness of falsehood and broach of faith cannot possibly be so highly expressed, as in that it shall be the last peal to call the judgments of (iod upon the gener- ations of men; it being foretold that, when "Christ cometh," He shall not "find faith upon the Earth." OF DEATH. 2 MKV fear death as children fear to go in the dark; and as that natural fear in children is increased with tales, so is the other. Certainly, the contemplation of death, as the wages of sin, and passage; to another world, is holy and religious; but the fear of it, as a tribute; due unto Nature, is weak. Yet in religious meditations there is sometimes mixture of vanity and of superstition. You shall read in some of the friars' books of mortification, that, a man should think with himself what the pain is, if he have but his finger's end pressed or tortured ; and thereby imagine what the pains of death are, when the whole f .) I'ffihi, (lirrrt, dinrjirif/ht arc among the old senses of round. 1 Michael dc Montaigne, the celebrated French Kssayist. His Essays cm- variety of topic*, which arc. treated in a. sprightly and entertaining manner, and arc replete with remarks indicative of strong native good sense. !li- died in IW. The quotation is from the second hook of his A'.S.SY///X : " Lying i- a disgraceful vice, and one that Plutarch, an ancient writer, paints in most fnl rohmr<, when he says that it is ' affording testimony that one Jirxt (.oil, and then fears men.' It is not possible more happily to describe j; horrible, disgusting, and abandoned nature; for can we imagine any thing more vile than to be cowards with ivgard to men, and brave with regard to Qodf" 2 A portion of this Essay is borrowed from the writings of Seneca. 5C4 BACON. body is corrupted and dissolved ; when many times death pnss- eth with less pain than the torture of a limb ; for the most vital parts are not the quickest of sense. And by him that spake only as a philosopher and natural man, it was well said, YV///>a mortis magis tcrret quam morn (p.sa. 8 Groans and convulsions, and a discoloured face, and friends weeping, and blacks 4 and ob- sequies, and the like, show death terrible. It is worthy the observing, that there is no passion in the mind of man so weak but it mates 5 and masters the fear of death; and therefore death is no such terrible enemy, when a man hath so many at- tendants about him that can win the combat of him. Kevenge triumphs over death ; love slights it ; honour aspiivth to it; grief flieth to it; fear preoccupatcth ' it ; nay, we read, after Othothe emperor had slain himself, pity (which is the t -uderest of affections) provoked many to die out of mere compassion to their sovereign, and as the truest sort of followers. May, Sen- eca adds, niceiiess and satiety: i.'injlld ijiimmlt'ti unhm j muri i'cll<\ nun taittum jfortff <>((.^i.' A man would die, though he were neither valiant nor miserable, only upon a weariness to do the same thing so oft over and over. It is no less worthy to observe, how little alteration in good spirits the approaches of death make ; for the\ appear to be 1 the same men till the last instant. Augustus C'a-sar died in a com- pliment : J,iri: ] Galba with a sentence, 7- ' orn-ptuct'r, to subdue. So in Macbeth, v., ! : " My mind she has mated, and amaxcd my sight." 6 Preoccupate in the Latin sense \>l' anticipate. 7 "lleflert how often you do the same tilings: a man may wish to die, not only because he is either brave or wretched, but even because lie is surleited with lite." 8 "Li via, mindful of our union, live on, and tare thee well." 9 " His bodily strength and vitality were now forsaking Tiberius, but not his duplicity." 1 "I am growing into a god, I reckon." This was said as a rebuke of his flatterers, as in the well-known ease of Canute reproving his courtiers. 2 " Strike, if it will do the Uoman people any good.'' 3 " Be quick, if there remains any thing for me to do." OF UNITY IN RELIGION. 565 saith he, quifincm vitce extremum inter munera ponit naturce.* It is as natural to die as to be born ; and to a little infant perhaps the one is as painful as the other. He that dies in an earnest pursuit is like one that is wounded in hot blood ; who, for the time, scarce feels the hurt; and therefore a mind fixed and bent upon somewhat that is good doth avert the dolours of death : but, above all, believe it, the sweetest canticle is Nunc dimittis, when a man hath obtained worthy ends and expecta- tions. Death hath this also, that it openeth the gate to good fame, and extinguisheth envy : Extinctus amaUtur idem. 6 OF UNITY IN KELIGION. KELIGION being the chief band of human society, it is a happy thing whon itself is well contained within the true band of unity. The quarrels and divisions about religion were evils un- known to the heathen. The reason was, because the religion of the heathen consisted rather in rites and ceremonies than in any constant belief; for you may imagine what kind of faith theirs was, when the chief doctors and fathers of their church were the poets. JJut the true God hath this attribute, that He is a jealous God; and therefore His worship and religion will endure no mixture nor partner. We shall therefore speak a few words concerning the unity of the Church: what are the fruits thereof; what the bounds ; and what the means. The fruits of unity (next unto the well-pleasing of God, which is all in all) are two ; the one towards those that are without the Church, the other towards those that are within. For the former, it is certain that heresies and schisms are of all others the greatest scandals ; yea, more than corruption of manners : for as in the natural body a wound or solution of continuity 6 is than a corrupt humour, so in the spiritual. So that noth- ing doth so much keep men out of the Church, and drive men out of the Church, as breach of unity: and therefore, whenso- ever it, comet h to that pass that one saith, Ecce in Dcscrto, 7 an- other saith, Ecce in penetralibus ; 8 that is, when some men seek 4 " Who regards death as one of Nature's boons." The passage is quoted, but with some, inarr.m-ary, 1'roiu Juvenal. 5 " The same man will be loved when dead." 6 A solut ion <>r continuity is, for instance, a severing of a muscle or a sinew by a trans vei'su rut. 7 " Behold, he is in the desert." 8 " Behold, he is in the secret chambers." 506 BACO^. Christ in the conventicles of heretics, and others in an outward face of a church ; that voice had need continually to sound in men's ears, nolite exire, "go not out." The Doctor of the Gen- tiles (the propriety of whose vocation drew him to h:i cial care of those without) saith, " If a heathen come in, and hear you speak with several tongues, will he not say that you arc mad?" and, certainly, it is little better. When atheists and profane persons do hear of so many discordant and contrary opinions in religion, it doth avert 1 them from the Church, and maketh them "to sit, down in the chair of the scnrners." It is but a light thing to be vouched in so serious a matter, but yet it expresseth well the deformity: there is a master of scof- fing, 2 that in his catalogue of books of afeigned library sets down this title of a book, The Morris-Dunce oj 1I< /v//ot.- :| for, indeed, every sect of them hath a diverse posture, or cringe, by them- selves, which cannot but move derision in worldlings and depraved politics, 4 who are apt to contemn holy tin: As for the fruit towards those that are within, it is peace, which containeth infinite blessings: it estal>li>heth faith; it kindleth charity; the outward peace, of the Church distilloth into peace of conscience, and it turneth the labours of writing and reading of controversies into treatises of mortification and devotion. Concerning the bounds of unity, the true placing of them im- porteth exceedingly. 5 There appear to bo two extremes ; i'or to certain zealots all speech of pacification is odious. "Is it peace, Jehu ? " " What hast thou to do with peace V turn thee behind me." Peace is not the matter, but following and party. Contra- riwise, certain Laodiceans and lukewarm persons think they may accommodate points of religion, by middle ways, and taking part of both, and witty 7 reconcilements, as if they would make an ar- bitrement between God and man. Both these extremes are to be avoided ; which will be done if the league of Christians, penned by our Saviour himself, were in the two cross clauses thereof soundly and plainly expounded: "lie that is not with 9 That is, the peculiar nature of whose calling. 1 Avert in the Latin sense of turn away, or repel. 2 The allusion is to Rabelais, the jjreat French humovi>t- 3 Tin's dance, which was originally called the Morisco dance, is supposed to have been derived from the Moors of Spain; the dancers in earlier times black- eninjr their laces to resemble Moors. It was probably a. corruption of the an- cient Pyrrhic, dance, which was performed by men in armour. 4 Politii .s- was often used \'or politicians. 5 To import e.co'edinyty is to be of the utmost importance. 6 That is, peaee is not what they ic " In the garment there may be many colours, but let there be no rending of it." 1 "Avoid profane and vain babblings, and oppositions of science falsely so called." 2 In all such cases, Bacon uses as and that indiscriminately. 3 Alluding to Nebuchadnezzar's dream, which signified the short duration of his kingdom. Sec Daniel, ii., 33. 5G8 BACON. and clay in the toes of Xebuchadnezzar's image ; they may cleave, but they will not incorporate. Concerning the means of procuring unity, men must be .waro that, in the procuring or muniting 4 of religious unity, they do not dissolve and deface the laws of charity and of human society. There be two swords amongst Christians, the spiritual and temporal, and both have their due office and place in the maintenance of religion: but we may not take up the third sword, which is Mahomet's sword, or like unto it; that is, to propagate religion by wars, or by sanguinary persecutions to force consciences; except it be "in cases of overt scandal, blas- phemy, or intermixture of practice against the State: much less to nourish seditions; to authorize conspiracies and rebel- lions; to put the sword into the people'- hands, and the like, tending to the. subversion of all government, which is the ordi- nance of (iod: for this is but to dash the lirst table against the, second; and so to consider men as Christians, as we forget that they are men. Lucretius the poet, when he beheld the act of Agamemnon, that could endure the sacrificing of his own daughter, exclaimed, Tantum rcliyio potuit mnnhi-c innlnruin." AVhat would he have said, if he had known of the massacre in France, 6 or the powder treason of England V 7 lie would have been seven times more Epicure and atheist than he was ; for as the temporal sword is to be drawn with great circumspection in cases of religion, so it is a thing monstrous to put it into the hands of the common people; let that be left unto the Ana- baptists 8 and other furies. It was great blasphemy, when the Devil said, "I will ascend and be like the Highest"; but it is greater blasphemy to personate (iod, and bring Him in saying, "I will descend, and be like the prince of darkness"; and what 4 Muniting is fortifying or strengthening. 5 "To deeds so dreadful could religion prompt." The poet refers to Aga- memnon's sacrifice of his daughter Iphigenia, with the view of appeasing tho wrath of Diana. G He alludes to the massacre of the Huguenots, in France, which took place on Si, Uartholomew's day, August -21, 107-, by the order of Charles IX. and his mother, Catherine de Medici. 7 More generally known as " the Gunpowder Plot." 8 A set of desperate lunatics who appeared at Minister about I.V.O. .Winn- ing a special and conscious indwelling of the Holy (.Jhost, they of OOU themselves above all law, and often plunged into the grossest sensual!: cruelties. Hooker aptly says of them, " what strange fantastical opinion Boevct at any time entered into their heads, their use was to think the Spirit taught it them." And again: "These men, in whose mouths at the lirst sounded noth- ing but only mortification of the llesh, were come at the length to think they might lawfully have their six or seven wives apiece; they which at the first thought judgment and justice itself to lip merciless cruelty, accounted at tho length their own hands sanctified with being embrued in Christian blood." OF REVENGE. 569 is it better, to make the cause of religion to descend to the cruel and execrable actions of murdering princes, butchery of people, and subversion of States and governments? Surely this is to bring down the Holy Ghost, instead of the likeness of a dove, in the shape of a vulture or raven ; and to set out of the bark of a Christian church a flag of a bark of pirates and :ns: therefore it is most necessary that the Church by doctrine and decree, princes by their sword, and all learnings, both Christian and moral, as by their Mercury rod, 9 do damn, and send to Hell for ever those facts and opinions tending to the support of the same ; as hath been already in good part done. Surely, in councils concerning religion, that counsel of the Apostle would be prefixed, Ira hominis non implet justi- tiam Dei; 1 and it was a notable observation of a wise father, and no less ingenuously confessed, that those which held and persuaded pressure of consciences were commonly interested therein themselves for their own ends. OF REVENGE. REVENGE is a kind of wild justice, which the more Man's na- ture runs to, the more ought law to weed it out : for, as for the iirst wrong, it doth but offend the law, but the revenge of that wrung puttetUtlie law out of oflice. Certainly, in taking revenge, a man is but even with his enemy, but in passing it over he is superior ; for it is a prince's part to pardon: and Solomon, I am sure, saith, "It is the glory of a man to pass by an offence." That which is past is gone and irrevocable, and wise men have enough to do with things present and to come; therefore they do I nit t rifle with themselves that labour in past matters. There is no man dotli a wrong for the wrong's sake, but thereby to purchase himself profit, or pleasure, or honour, or the like; therefore why should I be angry with a man for loving himself than me V And if any man should do wrong merely out of ill-nature, why, yet it is but like the thorn or briar, which prick and scratch because they can do no other. The most tol- erable sort of revenge is for those wrongs which there is no law to remedy; but then let a man take hoed the revenge be such as 'J Alluding to the cadiiceus, with which Mercury, the messenger of the gods, Biiniinoned the s.'ml.s of the departed (<> the infernal regions. I " The wrath (>!' man worketh not tho righteousness of <;<>d." Observe that voitlfi here has the sense of lnilsar; 4 for the death of Tertinax; for the death of Henry the Third of France; 6 and many more. But in private revenges it is not so; nay, rather vindictive persons live the life of witches; who, as they are mischievous, so end they unfortunate. 6 OF ADVERSITY. IT was a high speech of Seneca, (after the manner of the Stoics), that "the good things which belong to prosperity are to bo wished, but the good things that belong to adversity are to be admired," 13ona rerum sccunclanim optabilia, advwtaman ////- rabilia. Certainly, if miracles be the command over Nature, they appear most in adversity. It is yet a higher speech of his than the other, (much too high for a heathen,) "It is true great- ness to have in one the fraility of a man, and the security of a 2 The allusion is to Cosmo de Medici, chief of the Florentine republic, ami much distinguished as an encourager of literature ami art. 3 l.y " public revenges," he means punishment awarded by the State with the sanction of the laws. 4 He alludes to the retribution dealt by Augustus and Antony to the mur- derers of Julius Caesar. It is related by ancient historians, as a singular fact, that not one of them died a natural death. 5 Henry HI. of France was assassinated in 15i)fl by Jacques Clement, a Jaco- bin monk, in the frenzy of fanaticism. Although Clement justly suffered pun- ishment, the end of this bloodthirsty and bigoted tyrant may be justly deemed ii retribution dealt by the hand of an offended Providence. For some excellent remarks on the subject of this K- passage from Burke, page 320 of this volume. OF ADVERSITY. 571 god," Vere magnum habere fragilitatem Jiominis, securitatem dei. This would have done better in poesy, where transcendencies are more allowed ; and the poets indeed have been busy with it; for it is in effect the thing which is figured in that strange fiction of the ancient poets, which seeraeth not to be without mystery; 7 nay, and to have some approach to the state of a Christian; "that Hercules, when he went to unbind Prome- theus, (by whom human nature is represented,) sailed the length of the great ocean in an earthen pot or pitcher," lively describing Christian resolution, that saileth in the frail bark of the flesh through the waves of the world. But, to speak in a mean. 8 the virtue of prosperity is temperance, the virtue of adversity is fortitude, which in morals is the more heroical virtue. Pros- perity is the blessing of the Old Testament, adversity is the btaning of the New, which carrieth the greater benediction, and the clearer revelation of God's favour. Yet, even in the Old Testament, if you listen to David's harp, you shall hear as many hoarse-like airs 9 as carols; and the pencil of the Holy Ghost hath laboured more in describing the afflictions of Job than the felicities of Solomon. Prosperity is not without many fears and distastes ; and adversity is not without comforts and hopes. We see in needleworks and embroideries, it is more pleasing to have a lively work upon a sad and solemn ground, than to have a dark and melancholy work upon a lightsome gr >iind : judge, therefore, of the pleasure of the heart by the pleasure of the eye. Certainly virtue is like precious odours, fragrant when they are incensed, 1 or crushed : for pros- pority doth best discover vice, but adversity doth best discover virtue. 7 Mystery, here is secret meaning ; like the hidden moral of a fable or myth. 8 " Speaking in a mean " is speaking with moderation. So in one of Words- worth'rf Ecclesiastical Sonnets : " The golden mean and quiet flow of truths that gollen hatred, temper strife." Funereal airs. It must be remembered that many of the Psalms of David \vcro written by him when persecuted by Saul, as also in the tribulation caused by the uickc.l conducl f his son Absalom. Some of them, too, though called ' Th<: Psalms of David," were really composed by the Jews in their captivity at IJahylon; as, for instance, the 137th Psalm, which so beautifully commences, 41 Uy the waters of JJahylon there we sat down." One of them is supposed to be the composition of Moses. 1 Incensed is set on fire or burned. 572 BACOtf. OF PARENTS AND CHILDREN. THE joys of parents are secret, and so are their griefs and fears ; they cannot utter the one, nor they will not utter the other. Children sweeten labours, but they make misfortunes more bitter ; they increase the cares of life, but they mitigate the remembrance of death. The perpetuity by generation is common to beasts; but memory, merit, and noble works are proper to men. And surely a man shall see the noblest works and foundations - have proceeded from childless men, which have sought to express the images of their minds where those of their bodies have failed: so the care of posterity is most in them that have no posterity. They that are the first raisers of their Houses are most indulgent towards their children, In-holding them as the continuance, not only of their kind, but of their work ; and so both children and creatures. The difference in affection of parents towards their several children is many times unequal, and sometimes unworthy, es- pecially in the mother ; as Solomon saith, "A wise son rejoiceth the father, but an ungracious son shames the mother." A man shall see, where there is a house full of children, one or two of the eldest respected, and the youngest made wantons ; 3 but in the midst some that are as it were forgotten, who, many times, nevertheless, prove the best. The illiberality of parents, in allowance towards their children, is a harmful error, makes them base, acquaints them with shifts, makes them sort 4 with mean company, and makes them surfeit more when they come to plenty: and therefore the proof is best 5 when men keep their authority towards their children, but not their purse. Men have a foolish manner (both parents and schoolmasters and ser- vants) in creating and breeding an emulation between brothers during childhood, which many times sorteth 6 to discord when they are men, and disturbeth families. 7 The Italians make little 2 Foundations, as the word is here used, are institutions or establishments, such as hospitals and other charitable' endowments. ,'J That is, petted into self-indulgent and petulant triflers. 4 Sort is contort, or associate. So in Hamlet, ii., -2 : " I will not sort you with tin- ivst of my servants." 5 Proof is sometimes equivalent to fact, instance, or result. IJere " the proof is best" means it proves, or turns out, best. So in Julius Or.var, ii., 1 : common proof that lowliness is young ambi: ion's ladder." 6 Sometimes to sort is to fall out, to happen, to come. So in Much Ado about Nothing, v., 4 : " I am glad that all things sort so well." 7 There is much justice in this remark. Children should be (aught to do what is right for its own sake, and because it is their duty to do so, and not that they may have the sclllsh gratification of obtaining the reward which their com- OF MARRIAGE AtfD SINGLE LIFE. 573 difference between children and nephews, or near kinsfolk ; but, so they be of the lump, they care not, though they pass not through their own body; and, to say truth, in nature it is much a like matter ; insomuch that we see a nephew sometimes resem- bleth an uncle or a kinsman more than his own parent, as the blood happens. Let parents choose betimes the vocations and courses they mean their children should take, for then they are most flexible ; and let them not too much apply themselves to the disposition of their children, as thinking they will take best to that which they have most mind to. It is true, that if the affection or aptness of the children be extraordinary, then it is good not to cross it ; but generally the precept is good, Optimum elige, suave et facile illudfaciet consuetude* Younger brothers are commonly fortunate, but seldom or never where the elder are disinherited. OF MARRIAGE AND SINGLE LIFE. HE that hath wife and children hath given hostages to for- tune ; for they are impediments to great enterprises, either of virtue or mischief. Certainly the best works, and of greatest merit for the public, have proceeded from the unmarried or childless men, which both in affection and means have man-led and endowed the, public. Yet it were great reason that those that have children should have greatest care of future times, unto which they know they must transmit their dearest pledges, there are who, though they lead a single life, yet their thoughts do end with themselves, and account future times im- pertinences ; 9 nay, there are some other that account wife and children but as bills of charges ; nay, more, there are some fool- ish rich covetous men that take a pride in having no children, because 1 they may be thought so much the richer ; for perhaps they have heard some talk, "Such an one is a great rich man," and another except to it, "Yea, but he hath a great charge of children " ; as if it were an abatement to his riches. But the most ordinary cause of a single life is liberty, especially in cer- panions have failed to secure, and of being led to think themselves superior to their companions. 8 " Select that course of life which is the most advantageous : habit will soon render it pleasant and easily endured." 9 Impertinence in its original sense; things irrelevant. 1 Because la here equivalent to in order that. So in St. Matthew, xx.,.>l: "And the multitude rebuked them, because they should hold their peuee." 574 BACON. tain self-pleasing and humorous 2 minds, which are so sensible of every restraint, as they will go near to think their girdles and garters to be bonds and shackles. Unmarried men aro best friends, best masters, best servants; but not always best sub- jects, for they are light to run away, and almost all fugitives are of that condition. A single life cloth well with churchmen, 3 for charity will hardly water the ground where it must first fill a pool. 4 It is indifferent for judges and magistrates ; for if they be facile and corrupt, you shall have a servant five times worse than a wife. Forsoldiers, I find the generals commonly, in their hortatives, put men in mind of their wives and children ; and I think the despising of marriage amongst the Turks maketh the vulgar soldier more base. Certainly wife and children are a kind of discipline of humanity; and single men, though they be many times more charitable, because their means are less exhaust, 6 yet, on the other side, they are more cruel and hard- hearted, (good to make severe inquisitors,) because their tender- ness is not so oft called upon. Grave natures, led by custom, and therefore constant, are commonly loving husbands, as was said of Ulysses, Vetulam snam prcctulit imnmrtalitati.* Chaste women are often proud and froward, as presuming upon the merit of their chastity. It is one of the best bonds, both of chastity and obedience, in the wife, if she think her husband wise, which she will never do if she find him jealous. Wives are young men's mistresses, companions for middle age, and old men's nurses ; so as a man may have a quarrel 7 to marry when he will: but yet he was reputed one of the wise men that made answer to the question when a man should marry, *' A young man not yet, an elder man not at all." It is often seen that IKK! husbands have very good wives ; whether it be that it raisrth the price of their husbands' kindness when it comes, or that the 2 Humorous was much used in the sense of whimsical or crotchety ; governed by humours. 3 Churchman for clergyman ; a frequent usage. So in Shakespeare often. 4 The meaning is, that, if clergymen have the expenses of a family t> sup port, they will hardly find means for the exercise of benevolence toward their parishioners. 5 Exhaust for exhausted. Many preterites were formed in like manner. Shakespeare abounds in them. Also in the Psalter: "And be ye l(ft up, ye everlasting doors." 6 "He preferred his aged wife Penelope to immortality." This was when Ulysses was entreated by the goddess Calypso to give up all thoughts of return- ing to Ithaca, and to remain with her in the enjoyment of immortality. 7 Quarrel was often equivalent to cause, reason, or excuse. So in Uolinshed : "He thought he had a good quarrel to attack him." And in Macbeth. iv.,:>: ' The chance of goodness be like our warranted quarrel"', that is, " May virtue's chance of success be as good, as well warranted, as our cause is just." OF GREAT PLACE. 575 wives take a pride in their patience : but this never fails, if the bad husbands were of their own choosing, against their friends' consent ; for then they will be sure to make good their own folly. OF GKEAT PLACE HEX in great place are thrice servants, servants of the sove- reign or State, servants of fame, and servants of business ; so as they have no freedom, neither in their persons, nor in their actions, nor in their times. It is a strange desire to seek power and to lose liberty ; or to seek power over others, and to lose power over a man's self. The rising unto place is laborious, and by pains men come to greater pains ; and it is sometimes base, and by indignities 8 men come to dignities. The standing is slippery, and the regress is either a downfall, or at least an eclipse, which is a melancholy thing : Cum non sis quifueris, non essecurvelis viverc.* -Nay, retire men cannot when they would, neither will they when it were reason ; but are impatient of pri- vateness even in age and sickness, which require the shadow ; l like old townsmen, that will be still sitting at their street-door, though thereby they offer age to scorn. Certainly great persons lind need to borrow other men's opinions to think themselves happy ; for if they judge by their own feeling, they cannot find it : but if they think with themselves what other men think of them, and that other men would fain be as they are, then they are happy as it were by report, when, perhaps, they find the contrary within ; for they are the first that find their own griefs, though they be the last that find their own faults. Cer- tainly men in great fortunes are strangers to themselves, and while they are in the puzzle of business they have no time to tend their health either of body or mind. Illi mors yrauis incu- /"/, qni twins nimis omnibus, iynotus moritur sifrz'. 2 In place there is license to do good and evil, whereof the latter is a curse ; for in evil the best condition is not to will, the second not to can. But power to do good is the true and lawful end of aspiring ; for good thoughts, though God accept them, yet towards men are little better than good dreams, except they be put in act ; 8 Indignities for basenesses or meannesses. y " Since you arc not what you were, there is no reason why you should wish to live." 1 Shadow for shade; that is, retirement. 2 4I Death presses heavily upon him who, too well known to all others, dies unknown to himself." 57G BACOX. and that cannot be without power and place, as the vantage :\n<\ commanding ground. Merit and good works is the end of man's motion, and conscience' 5 of the same- is the accomplishment of man's rest; for if a man can be partaker of (KX'I'S theatre, ho shall likewise be partaker of God's rest: Kt GO > "-, nt aspicerct opera, gw&fecerunt //r?/<".s* suce, vidit quod omnit not best at first. Neglect not, also, the ex- amples of those that have carried themselves ill in the same plan- ; not to set off thyself by taxing their memory, but to direct thyself what to avoid, lleform, therefore, without bra- very or scandal of former times and persons; hut y-f set it down to thyself, as well to create good precedents as to follow them. Keduce things to the first institution, and observe wherein and how they have degenerated; but yet ask counsel of both times, of the ancient time what is be>t, and of the later time what is fittest. Seek to make thy course regular, that men may know beforehand what they may expect ; but be not too positive and peremptory; and express thyself well when thou digressest from thy rule. Preserve the right of tin- place, but stir not questions of jurisdiction ; and rather assume thy right in silence, and y access ; keep times appointed; go through with that which is in hand, and interlace not business but of necessity. For corruption, do not only bind thine own hands or thy servants' hands from taking, but bind the hands of suitors also from offering ; for integrity 3 Conscience for consciousness. So Hooker: "The reason why the simpler sort are moved \viih authority is the eonacienee of their own ignorance." 4 "And God turned to behold the works which his hands had made, and he saw that every thing was very good." 5 Globe lor eirele. So in I'aradiae. Lost, ii., .")12 : "Him a globe of fiery sera- phim enclosed with bright emblazonry." (> IS rarer)/ in the sense of brarado or proud defiance. So in Julius Ctrsar, v., 1 : " They come down with fearful bravery, thinking by this lace to fasten in our thoughts that they h:i\c courage." 7 That is, " as matter of fact," or as a thing of course. 8 Facility here means easiness of access, or pliability. OF GREAT PLACE. 577 used doth the one, but integrity professed, and with a manifest detestation of bribery, doth the other ; and avoid not only the fault, but tho suspicion. Whosoever is found variable, and changeth manifestly without manifest cause, giveth suspicion of corruption: therefore always, when thou changcst thine opinion or course, profess it plainly, and declare it, together with the reasons that move thee to change, and do not think to steal it. 9 A servant or a favourite, if he be inward, 1 and no other apparent cause of esteem, is commonly thought but a by-way to close 2 corruption. For roughness, it is a needless cause of discontent : severity breedeth fear, but roughness breedeth hate. Even reproofs from authority ought to be grave, and not taunting. As for facility, it is worse than bri- bery : for bribes come but now and then ; but if importunity or idle respects 3 lead a man, he shall never be without; as Solo- mon saith, "To respect persons is not good ; for such a man will transgress for a piece of bread." It is most true that was anciently spoken, "A place showeth the man ; " and it showrtli some to the better and some to the worst'. Omnium rn/i.sr/j.sa capax iHtpcrii, nisi imperasset,* saith Tacitus of Galba ; but of Vespasian he saith, Solus imperantium, *!anus mu tutus inmeUus;* though the one was meant of suHiciency, the other of manners and affection. It is an assured sign of a worthy and generous spirit, whom honour amends ; for honour is, or should be, the place of virtue ; and as in Nat- ure things move violently to their place, and calmly in their place, so virtue in ambition is violent, in authority settled and calm. All rising to great place is by a winding stair ; and if !>< factions, it is good to side a man's self whilst he is in the rising, and to balance himself when he is placed. Use the memory of thy predecessor fairly and tenderly ; for, if thou dost not. it is a debt will sure be paid when thou art gone. If thou olleagues, respect them ; and rather call them when they look not for it, than exclude them when they have; reason to look to be called. I>e not too sensible or too remembering of thy place, in conversation and private answers to suitors; but let it rather be said, " When he sits in place, he is another man." To titeid is to do a thing secretly. So in The Taming of the Shrew, iii., 2: " T \vere jronil, mi-thinks, to xtwi. our marriage." 1 Jitmitnl. for in.thn itr. So in King Richard the Third, iii., 4: " Who is most ininirtl with the noble duke? " 1 I'lom: in tin- M-IISC of xrcrt't or hit entrance of bold persons into action, than soon after ; for boldness is an ill keeper of promise. Surely, as there are mountebanks for the natural body, so are there mountebanks for the politic body, men that undertake great cures, and perhaps have been lucky in two or three experiments, but want the grounds of science, and there- fore cannot hold out; nay, you shall see a bold fellow many times do Mahomet's miracle. Mahomet made the people be- lieve that he would call a hill to him, and from the top of it offer up his prayers for the observers of his law. The people assembled: Mahomet called the hill to come to him again and again ; and when the hill stood still, he was never a whit abashed, but said, "If the hill will not come to Mahomet. Ma- homet will go to the hill." So these men, when they have promised great matters and failed most shamefully, yet (if they have the perfection of boldness) they will but slight it over, and make a turn, and no more ado. Certainly, to men <>;' judgment, bold persons are a sport to behold ; nay. and to the vulgar also boldness hath somewhat of the ridiculous ; for, if absurdity be the subject of laughter, doubt you not bin boldness is seldom Without some absurdity: especially it is a sport to see when a bold fellow is out of countenance, for that puts his face into a most shrunken and wooden posture, as OF GOODNESS, AND GOODNESS OF NATURE. 579 needs it must: for in bashfulness the spirits do a little go and come ; but with bold men, upon like occasion, they stand at a stay ; like a stale at chess, where it is no mate, but yet the game cannot stir: 6 but this last were fitter for a satire than for a serious observation. This is well to be weighed, that bold- ness is ever blind ; for it seeth not dangers and inconveniences: therefore it is ill in counsel, good in execution ; so that the right use of bold persons is, that they never command in chief, but be seconds and under the direction of others ; for in counsel it is good to see dangers, and in execution not to see them except they be very great. OF GOODNESS, AND GOODNESS OF NATURE. I TAKE goodness in this sense, the affecting of the weal of men, which is that the Grecians call PMlanthropia; and the word humanity (as it is used) is a little too light to express it. Goodness I call the habit, and goodness of nature the inclina- tion. This, of all virtues and dignities of the mind, is the greatest, being the character of the Deity ; and without it man is a busy, mischievous, wretched thing, no better than a kind of vermin. Goodness answers to the theological virtue charity, and admits no excess but error. The desire of power in excess caused the angels to fall ; the desire of knowledge in excess caused man to fall ; but in charity there is no excess, neither can angel or man come in danger by it. The inclination to goodness is imprinted deeply in the nature of man ; insomuch that, if it issue not towards men, it will take unto other living nvutures ; as it is seen in the Turks, a cruel people, who never- theless are kind to beasts, and give alms to dogs and birds ; insomuch as Busbechius 7 reporteth, a Christian boy in Con- stantinople had like to have been stoned for gagging in a wag- gishness a long-billed fowl. 8 Errors, indeed, in this virtue, of 6 Stale-mate was a term in chess ; used when the game was ended by the king being alone and unchecked, and then forced into a situation from which he was unable to move; without going into check. A rather ignominious predicament. 7 A learned traveller, born in Flanders, in 1522. He was employed by the Krnperor Ferdinand as ambassador to the Sultan Solyman II. His Letters rela- tive to his travels in the Kast, which are written in Latin, contain much inter- esting information. They were the pocket companion of Gibbon. 8 In this instance the stork or crane was probably protected, not on the abstract grounds mentioned in the text, but for reasons of policy and gratitude combined. In Eastern climates the cranes and dogs are far more efficacious than human agency in removing fllth and offal, and thereby diminishing the chances of pestilence. Superstition, also, may have formed another motive, as 580 BACOX. goodness or charity, may be committed. The Italians have ail ungracious proverb. 'J'untoliwnche e, indeed, there was never law, or Beet, or opinion did so much magnif\ goodness as tin; C'hri>tian religion doth: therefore, to avoid the scandal and the danger both, it is good to take knowledge of the errors of a habit so excellent. Seek the good of other men, but be not in bondage to their faces or fancies ; for that is but facility or softness, which taketh an honest mind prisoner. Neither give thou ^Esop's cock a gem, who would be better pleased and happier if he had had a barley-corn. The example of God t cachet h the lesson truly: "He sendeth His rain, and niaketh His Sun to shine upon the just and the unjust"; but He doth not rain wealth, nor shine honour and virtues upon men equally: common benefits are to be communicate with all, but peculiar bcnelits with choice. And beware how in making the portraiture thou breakest the pattern ; for divinity maketh the love of ourselves the pattern, the love of our neighbours but the portraiture. "Sell all thou hast, and give it to the poor, and follow Me"; but sell not all thou hast except thou come and follow Me ; that is, except thou have a vocation wherein thou mayest do as much good with little means as with great ; for otherwise, in feeding the streams, thou driest the fountain. Neither is there only a habit of goodness directed by right reason ; but there is in some men, even in nature, a disposition towards it, as, on the other side, there is a natural malignity ; for there be that in their nature do not affect the good of oth- ers. The lighter sort of malignity turneth but to a crossness, or frowardness, or aptness to oppose, or ditlicileness, 1 or the like; but the deeper sort to envy, and mere mischief. Such men, in other men's calamities, are, as it were, in season, and we learn that storks were held there in a sort of religious reverence, because they were supposed to make every Winter the pilgrimage to Mecca. y Nicolo Machiavclli, a Florentine statesman, lie wrote " Discourses on the iirst Decade of Livy," which were conspicuous tor their liberality of sentiment, and just and profound relleetious. This work was succeeded by his famous treatise, The /'rince, his patron, Ca-sar JJorgia, being the model of the perfect prince (here described by him. The whole scope of this work is directed to one object the maintenance of pjwer, however acquired. The word .Y/,/<-;< . has been adopted to denote all that is deformed, insincere, and perlidious in politics. lie died in l.V.'T. 1 This hard word comes pretty near meauiug uiireasotiablene**, or unpcr- smulubleness. OF ATHEISM. 581 are ever on the loading part; not so good as the dogs that licked Lazarus' sores, but like flies that are still buzzing upon any thing that, is raw ; misanthropi, that make it their practice to bring men to the bough, and yet have never a tree for the purpose in thr-ir gardens, as Timon 2 had. Such dispositions are the very errors of human nature, and yet they are the fittest timber to make great politics of ; like to knee-timber, 8 that is good for ships that are ordained to be tossed, but not for building houses that shall stand firm. The parts and signs of goodness are many. If a man be gra- cious and courteous to strangers, it shows he is a citizen of the world, and that his heart is no island cut off from other lands, but a continent that joins to them : if he be compassionate towards the afflictions of others, it shows that his heart is like the noble tree that is wounded itself when it gives the balm: 4 if he easily pardons and remits offences, it shows that his mind is planted above injuries, so that he cannot be shot: if he be thankful for small benefits, it shows that he weighs men's minds, and not their trash: but, above all, if he have St. Paul's perfection, that he would wish to be an anathema 6 from Christ for the salvation of his brethren, it shows much of a Divine nature, and a kind of conformity with Christ himself. OF ATHEISM. 1 had rather believe all the fables in the Legend, 6 and the Talmud, 7 and the Alcoran, than that this universal frame is without a mind ; and therefore God never wrought miracles to convince atheism, because His ordinary works convince it. It 2 Timon of Athens, as he is generally called, was surnamed the Misanthrope, from the hatred which he bore it) his fellow-men. Going to the public, assembly on one occasion, he mounted the Rostrum, and stated that he had a flg-tree on which many worthy citizens had ended their days by the halter; that he was going to cut it down for the purpose of building on the spot, and therefore rec- ommended them to avail themselves of it before it was too late. :J A piece of timber that has grown crooked, and has been so cut that the trunk and branch form an angle. 4 lie probably here refers to the myrrh-tree. Incision is the method usually adopted for extracting the resinous juices of trees: as in the india-rubber and gutta-percha 6 A votive, and in the present instance a vicarious offering, lie alludes to the words of St. Paul in his Second Epistle to Timothy, ii., 10. The Legend was a collection of miraculous and wonderful stories; so called the book was appointed to be. read in churches on certain days. 7 This is the book that contains the Jewish traditions, and the Rabbinical explanations of the law. It is replete with wonderful narratives. 582 BACON. is true, that a little philosophy inclineth man's mind to atheism, but depth in philosophy bringeth men's minds about to relig- ion ; for, while the mind of man looketh upon second causes scattered, it may sometimes rest in them, and go no further ; but when it beholdeth the chain of them confederate, and linked together, it must needs fly to Providence and Deity : nay, even that school which is most accused of atheism doth most demon- strate religion ; that is, the school of Leucippus, 8 and Democ- ritus, 9 and Epicurus: for it is a thousand times more credible 1 that four mutable elements and one immutable fifth essence, 1 duly and eternally placed, need no God. than that an army of infinite small portions, or seeds unplaced, 2 should have pro- duced this order or beauty without a Divine marshal. The Scripture saith, "The fool hath said in his heart, there is no God"; it is not said, "The fool hath thought in his heart": so as he rather saith it by rote to himself, as that 3 he would have, than that he can thoroughly believe it, or be persuaded of it ; for none deny there is a God, but those for whom it maketh* that there were no God. It appeareth in nothing more that atheism is rather in the lip than in the heart of man, than by this, that atheists will ever be talking of that their opinion, as if they fainted in it within themselves, and would be glad to be strengthened by consent of others ; nay, more, you shall have atheists strive to get disciples, as it fareth with other sects ; and, which is most of all, you shall have of them that will suffer for atheism, and not recant: whereas, if they did truly think that there were no such thing as God, why should they trouble themselves ? Epicurus is charged, that he did but dis- 8 A Philosopher of Abdera; the first who taught the system of atoms, which was afterwards more fully developed by Deraocritus and Epicurus. 9 lie was a disciple of the last-named philosopher, and held the same princi- ples : he also denied the existence of the soul alter death. He is considered to have been the parent of experimental Philosophy, and was the first t what is now confirmed by science, that the Milky Way is an accumulation of stars. 1 The "four mutable elements" are earth, water, air, and fire, of which all visible things were thought to be composed. The "fifth essence," commonly called quintessence, was an immaterial principle, superior to the four elements; a spirit-power. 2 The Epicureans held that the Universe consisted, originally, of atoms dif- fused chaotically through space, and that, after infinite- trials and encounters, without any counsel or design, these did at last, by a lucky chance, "entangle and settle themselves in this beautiful and regular frame of the world which \ve now sec." In other words, that old chaos grew into the present order I tuitous concourse of those atoms. 3 Here that is equivalent to the compound relative tchat, that which. The usage was very common. 4 That is, whose ends it serves, or whose interest it is. OF ATHEISM. 583 serable for his credit's sake, when lie affirmed there were blessed natures, but such as enjoyed themselves without hav- ing respect to the government of the world ; wherein they say he did temporize, though in secret he thought there was no God: but certainly he is traduced, for his words are noble and divine: JVbft Dcos vulgi negare profanum; sedvulgi opiniones Diis applicare pro/cmwm. 5 Plato could have said no more ; and, although he had the confidence to deny the administration, he had not the power to deny the nature. The Indians of the West have names for their particular gods, though they have no name for God: as if the heathens should have had the names Jupiter, Apollo, Mars, &c., but not the word Deus: which shows that even those barbarous people have the notion, though they have not the latitude and extent of it; so that against atheists the very savages take part with the very sub- tilest philosophers. The contemplative atheist is rare, a Di- agoras, a Bion, a Lucian, perhaps, and some others: and yet they seem to be more than they are ; for that all that impugn a received religion, or superstition, are, by the adverse part, branded with the name of atheists: but the great atheists in- deed are hypocrites, which are ever handling holy things, but without feeling ; so as they must needs be cauterized in the end. The causes of atheism are, divisions in religion, if there be many ; for any one main division addeth zeal to both sides, but many divisions introduce atheism: another is, scandal of priests, when it is come to that which St. Bernard saith, Non estjam di- cere, ut populus, sic sacerdos; quia nee sic populus, ut sacerdos: 6 a third is, custom of profane scoffing in holy matters, which doth by little and little deface the reverence of religion: and lastly, learned times, especially with peace and prosperity ; for troubles and adversities do more bow men's minds to religion. They that deny a God destroy man's nobility ; for certainly iimn is of kin to the beasts by his body ; and, if he be not of kin to God by his spirit, he is a base and ignoble creature. It de- stroys likewise magnanimity, and the raising of human nature ; for take an example of a dog, and mark what a generosity and courage he will put on when he finds himself maintained by a 5 " It is not profane to deny the gods of the common people; but to apply to the gods the notions of the common people, is profane." "It is not now to be said, As the people so the priest, for the people are not so bad as the priests." St. Bernard. Abbot of Clairvaux, founded a hundred and sixty convents, and died in 1153. He was unsparing in his censures of the <>f his time. Gibbon speaks of him as follows: "Princes and pontiffs trembled at tho freedom of his apostolical censures: France, England, and Milan consulted and obeyed his judgment in a schism of the Church: tho debt was i-cpayed by tho gratitude of Innocent tho Second; and his successor, Eu- geuius the Third, was the friend and disciple of tho holy Bernard." 584 BACON. man, who to him is instead of a God, or melior natura ; T which courage is manifestly such as that creature, without that con- fidence of a better nature than his own, could never attain. So man, when he resteth and assureth himself upon Divine pro- tection and favour, gathereth a force and faith which human nature in itself could not obtain ; therefore, as atheism is in all respects hateful, so in this, that it depriveth human nature of the means to exalt itself above human frailty. As it is in partic- ular persons, so it is in nations: never was there such a state for magnanimity as Kome. Of this state hear what Cicero saith: Quam volumits, licet, Patres conscript I, nns am<:/iiiix, ttinicn ncc num- cro Iliapanos, nccrobmr (iaUos*, nee calUditate Pcenos, nee artibvs Grcccos, ncc < hoc ipso hujus ycntis et tcrrce domestico nati- voque sensn Italos ipsos et Latinos; sed pietate, ac religione, atque hacuna sapimtia, qwl l)trinc.d i.-i circums/Hwt, deliberate. Often so in Shakespeare. .- Shrrinf, lien-, is ill or mischievous. So in Kitty Henry the Eighth, v., 2 : " I>o my Lord of Canterbury a shrewd turn, and he is your friend for ever." 588 BACON. of themselves waste the public. Divide with reason between self-love and society; and be so true to thyself as thou be not i'alse to others, specially to thy king and country. It is a poor centre of a man's actions, himself. It is right earth: for that only stands fast upon his own centre ; whereas all things that have atlinity with the heavens, move upon the centreof another, which they benefit.. The referring of all to a man's self is more tolerable in a sovereign prince, because themselves an- not only themselves, but their good and evil is at the peril of the public fortune: but it is a desperate evil in a servant to a prince, or a citizen in a republic ; for whatsoever affairs pass such a man's hands, he crooketh them to his own ends, which must needs be? often eccentric to the ends of his master or State: therefore let princes or States choose such servant- as have not this mark, except they mean their service should be made but the acces- sary. That which maketli the effect more pernicious is, that all proportion is lost. It were disproportion enough for the ser- vant's good to be preferred before the master's; but yet it is a greater extreme, when a little good of the servant shall carry things agaiuM a great good of the master's: and yet that is tin- case of bad oliicer>, treasurers, ambassadors, generals, and other false and corrupt servants ; which seta bias upon their bowl, 7 of their own petty ends and envies, to the overthrow of their master's great and important affairs. And, for the most part, the good such servants receive is after the model of their own fortune ; but the hurt they sell for that good is after the model of their master's fortune. And certainly it is the nature of ex- treme self-lovers, as they will set a house on tire, an s it ^ but to roast their eggs: and yet these men many times hold credit with their masters because their study is but to pit them, and profit themselves ; and for either respect they will abandon the good of their affairs. Wisdom for a man's self is, in many branches thereof, a depraved thing: it is the wisdom of rats, that will be sun leave a house somewhat before it fall: it is the wisdom of the fox, that thrusts out the badger who digged and made room for him: it is the wisdom of crocodiles, that shed tears when they would devour. But that which is specially to be noted is that those which (as Cicero says of Pompey) are ani C Bacon adhered to the old astronomy, which made the Kartli the ecu; the system. The Copernioan sy.-tem was not gem-rally received in Kngland till many years later. 7 A bias is, properly, a weight placed in one side of a bowl, which deflects it from the straight line. 8 An t for if, occurs continually in Shakespeare. OF INNOVATIONS. 580 rivali, 9 arc many times unfortunate ; and whereas they have all their time sacrificed to themselves, they become in the end themselves sacrifices to the inconstancy of fortune, whose wings they thought by their self-wisdom to have pinioned. OF INNOVATIONS. As the births of living creatures at first are ill-shapen, so are all innovations, which arc the births of time ; yet, notwithstand- ing, as those that first bring honour into their family are com- monly more worthy than most that succeed, so the first precedent (if it be good) is seldom attained by imitation: for ill, to man's nature as it stands perverted, hath a natural motion strongest in continuance ; but good, as a forced motion, strongest at first. Surely every medicine l is an innovation ; and he that will not apply nc\v remedies must expect new evils: for time is the greatest innovator; and if time of course alter things to the worse, and wisdom and counsel shall not alter them to the bet- ter, what shall be the end V It is true that what is settled by custom, though it be not good, yet at least it is fit; and those things which have long gone together arc, as it were, confeder- ate within themselves: whereas new things piece not so well but, though they help by their utility, yet they trouble by their inconformity ; besides, they are like strangers, more admired, and less favoured. All this is true, if time stood still ; which, contrariwise, moveth so round, 2 that a froward retention of custom is as turbulent a thing as an innovation ; and they that ;ice too much old times are but a scorn to the new. It were good, therefore, that men in their innovations would follow t!ie example of time itself, which indeed innovateth greatly, but quietly, and by degrees scarce to be perceived ; for, otherwise, whatsoever is new is unlocked for ; and ever it mends some, and other ; and he that is holpen 4 takes it for a fortune, and '. " Lovers of themselves, without a competitor." 1 Ali'dic'uu: and rcmr.dy arc here used as synonymous. j Hnunil, a.s applied to speech or action, means plain, bold, downright, de- cidf.d. So I'oionius, in Hamlet, says, " I went round to work." But the word sometimes appears to have the sense of rapid. And so Addison seems to use it: "Sir Roger heard them on a round trot"; though here it may very well mean downright or decided. '.', To jinir i.-i, properly, to male less or worse. So the Earl of Somerset to King James: I only cleave to that which is so little, as that it will suflVr no jmiriiif) or diminution." The word has long heen out of use except in impair. 4 JIo/jicii, or ltot/>, is the old preterite ofhclp. Used continually in the Psal- ter; often in Shakespeare also. 590 BACON. thanks the time ; and he that is hurt, for a wrong, and imputeth it to the author. It is good also not to try experiments in States, except the necessity be urgent, or the utility evident ; and well to beware that it be the reformation that draweth on the change, and not the desire of change that pretendeth the reformation: 3 and lastly, that the novelty, though it be not rejected, yet be held for a suspect ; and, as the Scripture saith, " That we make a stand upon the ancient way, and then look about us, and dis- cover what is the straight and right way, and so to walk in it." OF SEEMING WISE. IT hath been an opinion, that the French are wiser than they seem, and the Spaniards si-em wiser than they are; but, how- soever it be between nations, certainly it is so between man and man ; for, as the apostle saith of godliness, "Ilaving a show of godliness, but denying the power thereof"; so certainly there are, in points of wisdom and sutliciencv, 7 that do nothing or little very solemnly; may no conutu muius* It is a ridiculous thing, and fit for a satire to persons of judgment, to see what shifts these formalists have, and what prospectives 9 to make superficies to seem body, that hath depth and bulk. Some are so close and reserved, as they will not show their wares but by a dark light, and seem always to keep hack somewhat; and when they know within themselves they speak of that they do not well know, would nevertheless seem to others to know of that which they may not well speak. Some help them with countenance and gesture, and are wise by signs ; peM saith of Piso, that when he answered him he fetched one of his brows up to his forehead, and bent the other down to his chin ; liespondcs, altero adfronttin sublato, altero ad menlum d. supcrcilio, crudditatcm tibi non placcrc. 1 Some think to bear it 5 For some capital observations on this subject, see, among the pieces from J>nrke, page 213; also, pages 'J.Y7 'J.VJ. G "Hold for a suspect" of course means the same as "held in suspicion," Shakespeare has a like usage repeatedly. So in The Comedy of Errors, iii., 1 : " You draw within the compass of suspect th' unviolated honour of your wife." 7 Sufficiency appears to be used here in the sense of authority, or //.' So Shakespeare, in Measure for Mcaaure, i., 1: "Then no more remains but t' add sujficicncy, as your worth is able, and let them work." 8 " Achieve nothing with a mighty effort." !) Prospect ire is an old term for a perspective gla-s. So Daniel, as quoted by N'ares: " Take here this proxjicctin', and therein note and tell what th< for well maye.-t. thou there observe their shadows." Through such pro.-pi-ctives things were often made to M-em very different from what they really wen-. 1 " With one brow raised lo your forehead, the other bent downward . chin, you an>uer thateruelty delights you not.'' OF FRIENDSHIP." 591 by speaking a great word, and being peremptory ; and go on, and tako by admittance that which they cannot make good. Some, whatsoever is beyond their reach, will seem to despise, or make light of it, as impertinent or curious; 2 and sO would have their ignorance seem judgment. Some are never without a difference, 3 and commonly, by amusing men with a subtilty, blanch 4 the matter ; of whom A. Gellius saith, Hominem ddirum, qui verbormn minutiis rcrum frangit ponderaJ* Of which kind also Plato, in his Protagoras, bringeth in Prodicus in scorn, and maketh him make a speech that consisteth of distinctions from the beginning to the end. Generally, such men, in all delibera- tions, find ease to be of the negative side, and affect a credit to object and foretell difficulties ; for, when propositions are de- nied, there is an end of them ; but if they be allowed, it requir- eth a new work ; which false point of wisdom is the bane of business. To conclude, there is no decaying merchant, or in- ward beggar/' hath so many tricks to uphold the credit of their wealth as these empty persons have to maintain the credit of their sufficiency. Seeming wise men may make shift to get opinion ; but let no man choose them for employment ; for, certainly, you were better take for business a man somewhat absurd than over-formal. OF FRIENDSHIP. IT had been hard for him that spake it to have put more truth and untruth together in few words than in that speech, "Who- soever is delighted in solitude, is either a wild beast or a god" : 7 for it is most true, that a natural and secret hatred and avcr- sation towards 8 society in any man hath somewhat of the savage beast ; but it is most untrue that it should have any character at all of the Divine nature, except it proceed, not out of a pleasure in solitude, but out of a love and desire to seques- 2 Impertinent is irrelevant ; and curious is over-nice. '.\ Difference in the sense of subtile distinction. 4 Blanch, here, ia evade or elude. So Haoon, again, in his Henry the Svraith : "The judges of that time thought it was a dangerous thing to admit if* and a.s- to qualify the words of treason, whereby every man might express his malice, UuLMancAhia danger." So too in Itdiquice Wattoniance : " I suppose you will not blanch Paris iu your way." .". "A foolish man, who fritters away weighty matters by fine-spun trifling with words." <; One. really insolvent, though to the world he does not appear so. 7 The quotation JH from Ari-totlc's Ethics. 8 A venation towards is the same as avernion to. 592 BACON. tcr a man's self for a higher conversation ; such as is found to h-.ive been falsi-ly and feignedly in some of the 1 heathen, as Epimenides, the Candian ; Xuma, the lioman ; Empedocles, the Sicilian ; and Apollonius, of Tyana ;'' and truly and really in divers of the ancient hermits and ho!.. <>f the Church. But little; do men perceive what solitude is, and ho\v far it ex- tendeth ; for a crowd is not company, and faces are but a gallery of pictures, and talk but a tinkling cymbal, where there is no love. The Latin adage meeteth v, ith it a little: M(I,KI xiititiHJu; 1 because in a great town friends are scattered, so that there is not that fellowship, for the most part, which is in less neighbourhoods: but we may go further, and ailirin most truly, that it is a mere- and miserable solitude to want, true friends, without which the world is but a wilder- ness ; and, even in this sense also of solitude, whosoever in the frame of his nature and aiTections is unlit for friendship, he taketh it of the beast, and not from humanity. A principal fruit of friendship is the ease and discha the fulness and swellings of the heart, which passions of all kinds do cause, and induce. We know diseases of stoppings and suffocations an- the nut dangerous in the body ; and it is not much otherwise in the mind: you may take sar/.a ;: to open the liver, steel to open the spleen, llower of sulphur for the lungs, castoreum for the brain ; but no receipt openeth the heart but a true friend, to whom you may impart griefs, joys, fears, hopes, suspicions, counsels, and whatsoever lieth upon the heart to oppress it, in a kind of civil shrift or confession. It is a strange thing to observe- how high a rate 1 great kings and monarchs do set upon this fruit of friendship whereof we speak; so great, as they purchase it many times at the hazard of their own safety and greatness: for princes, in regard of the distance of their fortune from that of their subjects a<: vants, cannot gather this fruit, except, to make then; capable thereof, they raise some persons to be as it wen panions, and almost equals to themselves, which many times Borteth to inconvenience. The modern languages give unto such 9 Epimenides, a poet of Crete, is said to have fallen into a sleep whic! lilty-seven year.-, lie was also said to have lived % JH!> years. Ntuna preU'iuled that he was instrueted in the art of legislation by the divine nymph Kirer dwelt in the. Arieian grove. Kmpedoeles, the Sicilian philosopher, d. himself to be immortal, and to be able to cure all evils: IK- is said by some to have retired from society, that his death might not be known. Apollonins, <>f Tyana, the Pythagorean philosopher, pretended to miraculous powers, and after his death a temple was erected to him at that place. 1 "A great city is a great desert." '2 Mi-re, again, lor absolute or utter. See page 507, note 8. 3 Sarza is the old name for sarsaparilla. OF FRIENDSHIP. 593 persons the name of favourites, or privadoes, as if it were mat- ter of grace or conversation ; but the Roman name attaineth the true use and cause thereof, naming them participcscurarnui ; for it is that which tietli the knot: and wo see plainly that this hath been done, not by weak and passionate princes only, but by the wisest and most politic that ever reigned, who have oftentimes joined t:> themselves some of their servants, whom both themselves have called friends, and allowed others like- wise to call them in the same manner, using the word which is received between private men. L. Sulla, when he commanded Rome, raised Pompey (after surnamed The Great) to that height that Pompey vaunted him- self for Sulla's overmatch ; for when he had carried the Consul- ship for a friend of his, against the pursuit of Sulla, and that Sulla did a little resent thereat, and began to speak great, Pom- pey turned upon him again, and in elYect bade him be quiet, for that more men adored the Sun rising than the Sun setting. "With Julius ('ji'sar, Pecimus IJrutus had obtained that interest, as he set him down in his testament for heir in remainder after his nephew ; and this was the man that had power with him to draw him forth to his death: for when Ca'sar would have dis- charged the Senate, in regard of some ill presages, and specially a dream of Calpurnia, this man lifted him gently by the arm out of his chair, telling him he hoped he would not dismiss the Senate till his wife had dreamt a better dream: and it seemed his favour was so great, as Antonius, in a letter which is re- cited verbatim in one of Cicero's Philippics, calleth him vcnefica, "vitch"; as if he had enchanted Caesar. Augustus raised Agrippa, though of mean birth, to that height, as, when he con- sulted with .Miecenas about the marriage of his daughter Julia, Ma-cenas took the liberty to tell him, that he must either marry his daughter to Agrippa, or take away his life; there was no third way, ho had made him so great. With Tiberius Caesar, Sejanusliad ascended to that height, as they two were termed and reckoned as a pair of friends. Tiberius, in a letter to him, saith, Jfcjcc pro amicitia nostril non occuUctvi:* and the whole Senate dedicated an altar to Friendship, as to a goddess, in ropectof the great dearness of friendship between them two. Tim like, or more, was between Septimius Scverus and Plautia- inis ; for In- forced his eldest son to marry the daughter of Plau- tianus, and would often maintain Plautianiis in doing affronts to his son ; and did write also, in u letter to the Senate, by these words: "I love the man so well, as I wish he may over-live me." Now, if these prince* had been as a Trajan or a Marcus Aure- 4 ' On account of our friendship, I have not concealed these things," 594 BACON. lius, a man might have thought that this had proceeded of an abundant goodness of nature ; but being men so wise, of such strength and severity of mind, and so extreme lovers of them- selves, as all these were, it proveth most plainly that they found their own felicity, though as great as ever happened to mortal men, but as an half-piece, except they might have a friend to make it entire: and yet, which is more, they were princes that had wives, sons, nephews ; yet all these could not supply the comfort of friendship. It is not to be forgotten what Comineus observeth of his first master, Duke Charles the Hardy, 5 namely, that he would com- municate his secrets with none ; and, least of all, those secrets which troubled him most. "Whereupon he goeth on and saith, that towards his latter time that closeness did impair and a little perish his understanding. Surely Comineus might have made the same judgment also, if it had pleased him, of his second master, Louis the Eleventh, whose closeness was indeed his tormentor. The parable 7 of Pythagoras is dark, but true, Cor ne cdito, "Eat not the heart." Certainly, if a man would give it a hard phrase, those that want friends to open themselves unto are cannibals of their own hearts: but one thing is most admir- able, (wherewith I will conclude this first fruit of friendship,) which is, that this communicating of a man's self to his friend works two contrary effects ; for it redoubleth joys, and cutteth griefs in halves: for there is no man that imparteth his joys to his friend, but he joyeth the more ; and no man that imparteth his griefs to his friend, but he grieveth the less. So that it is, in truth, of operation upon a man's mind of like virtue as the alchymists used to attribute to their stone for man's body, that it worketh all contrary ejffects, but still to the good and benefit of nature. But yet, without praying in aid 8 of alchymists, there is a manifest image of this in the ordinary course of Nature ; for, in bodies, union strengthened and cherisheth any natural action ; and, on the other side, weaken eth and dulleth any violent impression ; and even so is it of 9 minds. 5 Charles the Bold, Duke of Burgundy, the antagonist of Louis XL of France. Comines spent his early years at his Court, but afterwards passed into tin- ser- vice of Louis XI. This monarch was notorious for his cruelty, treachery, ami dissimulation. G The use of perish as a transitive verh is not peculiar to Bacon. Beaumont and Fletcher have it in The Maitfs Tragedy, iv., 1: " Let not my sins ;rnWi your noble youth." Also in The Honest Man's fortune, i., _' : "ilis wants and miseries bnvcperisJi'd his good face." 7 Parable and proverb were formerly synonymous. 8 To pray In aid is an old law phrase for calling one in to help who has an interest iu the cause. 9 O/vr&s, as it still is, often equivalent to in respect of. OF FRIENDSHIP. 595 The second fruit of friendship is healthful and sovereign for the understanding, as the first is for the affections ; for friend- ship maketh indeed a fair day in the* affections from storm and tempests, but it maketh daylight in the understanding, out of darkness and confusion of thoughts. Neither is this to be understood only of faithful counsel, which a man receiveth from his friend ; but, before you come to that, certain it is that, whosoever hath his mind fraught with many thoughts, his wits and understanding do clarify and break up in the communi- cating and discoursing with another: he tosseth his thoughts more easily ; he marshalleth them more orderly ; he seeth how they look when they are turned into words: linally, he waxeth wiser than himself ; and that more by an hour's discourse than by a day's meditation. It was well said by Themistocles to the King of Persia, "That speech was like cloth of arras, opened and put abroad ; l whereby the imagery doth appear in figure ; whereas in thoughts they lie but as in packs." Neither is this second fruit of friendship, in opening the understanding, re- strained only to such friends as are able to give a man counsel, (they indeed are best,) but even without that a man learneth of himself, and bringeth his own thoughts to light, and whetteth his wits as against a stone, which itself cuts not. In a word, a man were better relate himself to a statue or picture, than to suffer his thoughts to pass in smother. Add now, to make this second fruit of friendship complete, that other point which lieth more open, and falleth within vul- gar 2 observation, which is faithful counsel from a friend. Heraclitus saith well in one of his enigmas, "Dry light is ever the best"; and certain it is, that the light that a man receiveth by counsel from another is drier and purer than that which ;li from his own understanding and judgment; which is ever infused and drenched in his alt'ections and customs. So as there is as much difference between the counsel that a friend giveth, and that a man giveth himself, as there is between the counsel of a friend and of a flatterer ; for there is no such flat- terer as is a man's self, and there is no such remedy against llattery of a man's self as the Mberty of a friend. Counsel is of two sorts ; the one concerning manners-, the other concerning business: for the first, the best preservative to keep the mind in health is the faithful admonition of a friend. The calling of a man's self to a strict account is a medicine sometimes too 1 That is, like tapestries, opened aud spread out. Many of the tapestries or hangings formerly used for lining rooms had pictures and sentences embroid- ered in them. This is characteristically alluded to by Falstaff in 1 Henry the Fourth, iv., 2 : " Slaves as ragged as Lazarus in tl\G painted cloth." 2 Vulgar and common are used interchangeably by old writers. 59G - BACON. piercing and corrosive ; reading good books of morality is a little flat and dead ; observing our faults in others is sometimes improper for our case ; but the be.-t receipt (best, I say, to work and best to take) is the admonition of a friend. It is a strange thing to behold what gross errors and extreme absurdities many (especially of the greater sort) do commit, for want of a friend to tell them of them, to the great damage both of their fame and fortune : for, as St. .James -aith, they arc as men "that look sometimes into a glass, and presently forget their own shape and favour." As for business, a man may think, if he wilJ, that two eyes see no more than one ; or, that a game- ster seeth always more than a looker-on ; or, that a man in anger is as wise as he that hath said over the four-and-tuenty letters; 8 or, that a musket may be shot off as well upon the arm as upon a rest; and such other fond 4 and high imagina- tions, to think himself all in all: but, when all is done, the help of good counsel is that which setteth business straight: and if any man think that he will take counsel, but.it shall be by pieces; asking counsel in one business of one man, and in an- other business of another man ; it is well, (that is to say. ' perhaps, than if he asked none at. all,) but he runneth two dan- gers, one, that he shall not be faithfully counselled ; for it is a rare thing, except it be from a perfect and entire friend, to have counsel given, but such as shall be bowed and crooked to some ends which he hath that giveth it ; the other, that he shall have counsel given, hurtful and unsafe, (though with good meaning,) and mixed partly of mischief and partly of remedy ; even as ii' you would call a physician that is thought good tor the cure of the disease you complain of, but is unacquainted with your body ; and therefore may put you in a way for a pres- ent cure, but overt hrowetli your health in some other kind, and so cure the disease, and kill the patient: but a friend, that is wholly acquainted with a man's estate, ' will beware, by further- ing any present business, how he dasheth upon other inconven- ience: and therefore rest not upon scattered counsels; they Avill rather distract and mislead than settle and direct. After these two noble iruits t>f 1'ricndsiiip, (peace in the affec- tions and support of the judgment,) followeth the last fruit, which is like the pomegranate, full of many kernels ; I mean aid, and bearing a part in ail actions and occasions. Here the best way to represent to lifo the manifold use of friendship, is 8 Ho alludes to the recommendation whirli moralists ha\ v often given, that a person in anger should go through the alphabet to himself before he allows himself (o t^u-ik. 4 Fond is often j\mlish in old writers. So in Shakespeare, passim. 5 Estate in the .sen.-e of M' ,//<, that i^, conuitiun. Often so. OF EXPENSE. 597 to cast and see how many things there are which a man can not < do himself ; and then it will appear that it was a sparing speech of the ancients to say "that a friend is another himself"; for that' 1 a friend is far more than himself. Men have their time, and die many times in desire of some things which they prin- cipally take to heart ; the bestowing of a child, the finishing of a work, or the like. If a man have a true friend, he may rest almost secure that the care of those things will continue after him ; so that a man hath, as it were, two lives in his desires. A man hath a body, and that body is confined to a place; but where friendship is, all oilhvs of life are, as it were, granted to him and his deputy ; for he may exercise them by his friend. I low many things are there, which a man cannot, with any face or comeliness, say or do himself ! A man can scarce allege his own merits, with modesty, much less extol them ; a man cannot sometimes brook to supplicate or beg, and a number of the like: but all these things are graceful in a friend's mouth, which are blushing in a man's own. So, again, a man's person hath many proper relations which he cannot put off. A man cannot speak t.> his son but as a father; to his wife but as a husband ; to his enemy but upon terms : whereas a friend may speak as the case requires, and not as it sorteth 7 with the per- son. But to enumerate these 1 things were endless: I have given the rule, where a man can fitly play his own part; if he have not a friend, he may quit the stage. OF EXPENSE. RICHES are for spending, and spending for honour and good actions ; therefore extraordinary expense must be limited by the worth of the occasion : for voluntary undoing may be as well for a man's country as for the kingdom of Heaven; but ordinary expense ought to be limited by a man's estate, and led with such regard, as it be within his compass ; and nject to deceit and abuse of servants ; and ordered to the iiow, that the bills may be less than the estimation abroad. Certainly, if a man will keep but of even hand, 8 his ordinary expenses ought to be but to the half of his receipts ; and if he think to wax rich, but to the third part. It is no baseness for the greatest to descend and look into their own estate. Some G Equivalent to because, or inasmuch as. A very frequent usage. 7 lien; Kort is suit or a<;-oril. So in Kin;/ Jli'iiry the Fifth, iv., 1, speaking of the name I'istol : " it sorts well with your nerc.eness." b " Oi'eveu hand " is equivalent to in an equal balance. 508 BACON. forbear it, not upon negligence alone, but doubting 9 to bring themselves into melancholy, in respect they shall find it broken; but wounds cannot be cured without searching. He that can- not look into his own estate at all had need both choose well those whom he employeth, and change them often ; for new are more timorous and less subtle. He that can look into his estate but seldom, it behoveth him to turn all to certainties. A man had need, if he be plentiful in some kind of expense, to be as saving again in some other : as, 1 if he be plentiful in diet, to be saving in apparel ; if he be plentiful in the hall, to be saving in the stable, and the like ; for he that is plentiful in ex- penses of all kinds will hardly be preserved from decay. In clearing of a man's estate, he may as well hurt himself in being too sudden, as in letting it run on too long ; for hasty seeing is commonly as disadvantageable as interest. Besides, he that clears at once will relapse ; for, finding himself out of straits, ho will revert to his customs ; but he that cleareth by degrees in- duceth a habit of frugality, and gaineth as well upon his mind as upon his estate. Certainly, who hath a state to repair, may not despise small things : and, commonly, it is less dishonour- able to abridge petty charges than to stoop to petty getting*. A man ought warily to begin charges which, once begun, will continue ; but in matters that return not he may be more mag- nificent. OF SUSPICION. SUSPICIONS amongst thoughts are like bats amongst birds, they ever fly by twilight: certainly they are to be repressed, or at the least well guarded ; for they cloud the mind, they lose friends, and they check 2 with business, whereby business can- not goon currently and constantly: they dispose kings to tyr- anny, husbands to jealousy, wise men to irresolution and melancholy: they are defects, not in the heart, but in the Drain; for they take place in the stoutest natures, as in the example of Henry the Seventh of England. There was not a more suspicious man nor a more stout:- 3 and in such a composi- tion they do small hurt ; for commonly they are not admitted, but with examination, whether they be likely or no ; but in fearful natures they gain ground too fast. There is nothing makes a man suspect much, more than to know little ; and 9 To doubt was often used in the sense of to fear. 1 As here has the force of for instance. Olleii so. 2 That is, clash, or interfere. 3 Stout, in old language, is stubborn, or, sometimes, haughty. OF DISCOURSE. 599 therefore men should remedy suspicion by procuring to know more, and not to keep their suspicions in smother. What would men have ? Do they think those they employ and deal with are saints? Do they not think they will have their own ends, and be truer to themselves than to them? Therefore there is no better way to moderate suspicions, than to account upon such suspicions as true, and yet to bridle them as false: for so far a man ought to make use of suspicions as to provide, as if that should be true that he suspects, yet it may do him no hurt. Suspicions that the mind of itself gathers are but buzzes ; but suspicions that are artificially nourished, and put into men's heads by the tales and whisperings of others, have stings. Cer- tainly, the best mean to clear the way in this same wood of suspicions, is frankly to communicate them with the party that he suspects: for thereby he shall be sure to know more of the truth of them than he did before ; and withal shall make that party more circumspect, not to give further cause of suspicion. But this would not be done to men of base natures ; for they, if they find themselves once suspected, will never be true. The Italian says, Sospetto licentia fede ;* as if suspicion did give A passport to faith ; but it ought rather to kindle it to discharge itself. OF DISCOUESE. SOME in their discourse desire rather commendation of wit, in being able to hold all arguments, than of judgment, in discern- ii:- what is true ; as if it were a praise to know what might be said, and not what should be thought. Some have certain com- mon places and themes wherein they are good, and want variety ; which kind of poverty is for the most part tedious, and, when it is once perceived, ridiculous. The honourablest part of talk is to give the occasion ; and again to moderate and pass to somewhat f >r then a man leads the dance. It is good in discourse, and h of conversation, to vary, and intermingle speech of the present occasion with arguments, tales with reasons, asking of questions with telling of opinions, and jest with earnest ; for it is a dull thing to tire, and, as we say now, to jade any thing too far. As for jest, there be certain things which ought to be privi- leged from it, namely, religion, matters of State, great persons, any man's present business of importance, and any case that di MTveth pity; yet there be some that think their wits have been asleep, except they dart out somewhat that is piquant, and to the quick. That is a vein which would be bridled : Farce, puer, 4 " Suspicion dissolves the obligation to fidelity." COO BACON. stimuli s, etfortiusutere 7cm. 6 And, generally, men ought to find the difference net ween saltness and bitterness. Certainly, lie that liuth a satirical vein, as he maketh others afraid of his wit, so he had need be afraid of others' memory. He that quest ion- eth much shall learn much, and content much, but especially if he apply his questions to the skill of the persons whom lie asketh ; for he shall give them occasion to please themselves in speaking, and himself shall continually gather knowledge: but let his questions not be troublesome, for that is fit for a poser ; 6 and let him be sure to leave other men their turns to speak: nay, if there be any that would reign and take up all the time, let him find means to take them off, and to bring others on, as musicians use to do with those that dance too long galliards. 7 If you dissemble sometimes your knowledge of that you are thought to know, you shall be thought, another time, to know that you know not. Speech of a man's self ought to be seldom, and well chosen. I knew one was wont to say in scorn, "lie must needs be a wi-e man, he speaks so much of himself": and there is but one case wherein a man may commend himself with good grace, and that is in commending virtue in another, especially if it be such a virtue whereunto himself pivtcmleth. Speech of touch 8 towards others should be sparingly used ; for discourse ought to be as a field, without coming home to any man. I knew two noblemen, of the west part of England, whereof the one was given to scoff, but kept ever royal cheer in hi; house; the other would ask of those that had been at the other's table, "Tell truly, was there never a flout or dry blow given ? " To which the guest would answer, "Such and such a thing passed." The lord would say, "I thought he would mar a good dinner." Discretion of speech is more than eloquence ; and to speak agreeably to him with whom we deal, is more than to speak in good words, or in good order. A good continued speech, without a good speech of interlocution, shows slowness ; and a good reply, or second speech, without a good settled speech, showeth shallowness and weakness. As we B beasts, that those that are weakest in the course, are yet nim- blest in the turn ; as it is betwixt the greyhound and the hare. To use too many circumstances, ere one come to the matter, is wearisome ; to use none at all, is blunt. 5 " Boy, spare the spur, and more tightly hold the reins." 6 A poser is one who tests or examines. 7 The galliavd was a sprightly dance much used iu Bacon's time. 8 Personal hits, or glances at particular individuals . OF KICHES. 601 OF KICHES. I CANNOT call riches better than the baggage of virtue : the Roman word is better, impedimenta; for as the baggage is to an army, so is riches to virtue ; it cannot be spared nor left behind, but it hindereth the march ; yea, and the care of it sometimes loseth or disturbeth the victory. Of great riches there is no real use, except it be in the distribution ; the rest is but conceit: so saith Solomon, " Where much is, there are many to consume it ; and what hath the owner but the sight of it with his eyes? " The personal fruition in any man cannot reach to feel great riches : there is a custody of them, or a power of dole and dona- tive of them, or a fame of them, but no solid use to the owner. Do you not see what feigned prices are set upon little stones and rarities? and what works of ostentation are undertaken, because 9 there might seem to be some use of great riches? But then you will say, they may be of use to buy men out of dangers or troubles ; as Solomon saith, "Riches are as a strong- hold in the imagination of the rich man " : but this is excellently expressed, that it is in imagination, and not always in fact ; for, certainly, great riches have sold more men than they have bought out. Seek not proud riches, but such as thou mayest get justly, use soberly, distribute cheerfully, and leave content- edly: yet have no abstract nor friarly contempt of them ; but distinguish, as Cicero saith well of Rabirius Posthumus, In fnn/>}/ficandce appwcbat, non avaritice prcedam, sed in- Ixnutatl qiiceri. 1 Hearken also to Solomon, and be- ware ol' hasty gathering of riches: Qui festinat ad divitias, non fnt inxunx.' 2 The poets feign, that when Plutus (which is riches) is sent from Jupiter, he limps, and goes slowly; but when he is sent from Pluto, he runs, and is swift of foot ; meaning, that riches gotten by good means and just labour pace slowly; but when they come by the death of others, (as by the course of inheritance, testaments, and the like,) they come tumbling upon a man: but it might be applied likewise to Pluto, taking him for the Devil ; for when riches come from the Devil, (as by fraud and oppression, and unjust means,) they come upon speed. The ways to enrich are many, and most of them foul: parsimony is one of the best, and yet is not innocent; for it withhokleth men from works of liberality and charity. The improvement of the ground is the most natural obtaining of II Hero because is in order that. See page 573, note 1. 1 " In his anvicfy to increase his fort tine, it was evident that not the gratifi- cation ofavarire was nought, but the means of doing good." 2 " lie who hastens to riches will not be without guilt." 602 BACOX. riches, for it is our great mother's blessing, the Earth ; but it is slow ; and yet, where men of great wealth do stoop to hus- bandry, it multiplieth riches exceedingly. I knew a nobleman in England that had the greatest audits :; of any man in my time, a great grazier, a great sheep-master, a great timber- man, a great collier, a great corn-man, a great lead-man, and so of iron, and a number of the like points of husbandry ; so as the earth seemed a sea to him in respect of the perpetual impor- tation. It was truly observed by one, that himself "came very hardly to a little riches, and very easily to great riches"; for when a man's stock is come to that, that he can expect the prime of markets, 4 and overcome 6 those bargains which for their greatness are few men's money, and be partner in the industries of younger men, he cannot but increase mainly. The gains of ordinary trades and vocations are honest, and furthered by two things, chiefly, by diligence, and by a good name for good and fair dealing ; but the gains of bargains are of a more doubtful nature, when men shall wait upon others' necessity; broke 7 by servants and instruments to draw them on ; put off others cunningly that would be better chapmen, 8 and the like practices, which are crafty and naught: as for the chopping 9 of bargains, when a man buys not to hold, but to sell over again, that commonly grindeth double, both upon the seller and upon the buyer. Sharings do greatly enrich, if the hands be well chosen that are trusted. Usury is the certainest means of gain, though one of the worst ; as that whereby a man doth eat .his bread, in suclore vultus alicni ; l and, besides, doth plough upon Sundays: but yet, certain though it be, it hath flaws ; for that the scriveners and brokers do value unsound 3 Audit here means a rent-roll, or account of income. 4 That is, wait till the markets are at their best. The use of expect for await was common. So in Hebrews, x., 13: " Expecting, till his enemies be made- his footstool." And in The Merchant of Venice, v., 1: "Sweet soul, let's in, and there expect their coming." 5 Overcome in the sense of overtake, or come upon. 6 Here mainly is greatly. So in Hamlet, iv., 7 : " As by your safety, greatness, wisdom, all things else, you mainly wore stirr'd up." 7 To broke, as the word is here used, is to : ' lie Itrokcs with all that can in such a suit corrupt the tender honour of a maid." 8 Chapmen for jwrchasers, or traders; the old meaning of the word. So in Troilns and Crcssida, iv., 1: "You do as chapmen do, dispraise the thing that you desire to buy." 9 To chop, as the word is here used, is to change, to traffic, as in buying to sell again. Hence the phrase "a chopping mind," or "a chopping sea." So Pryden, in The Hind and Panther: "Every hour your form is chopp'd ami changed, like winds before a storm." 1 " In the sweat of another's brow." OF RICHES. 603 men to serve their own turn. 2 The fortune in being the first in an invention, or in a privilege, doth cause sometimes a wonder- ful overgrowth in riches, as it was with the first sugar-man 8 in the Canaries: therefore, if a man can play the true logician, to have as well judgment as invention, he may do great matters, especially if the times be fit. He that resteth upon gains cer- tain shall hardly grow to great riches; and he that puts all upon adventures doth oftentimes break and come to poverty: it is good, therefore, to guard adventures with certainties that may uphold losses. Monopolies, and coemption of wares for re-sale, where they are not restrained, are great means to en- rich ; especially if the party have intelligence what things are like to come into request, and so store himself beforehand. Riches gotten by service, though it be of the best rise, yet when they are gotten by flattery, feeding humours, and other servile conditions, they may be placed amongst the worst. 4 As for fishing for testaments and executorships, (as Tacitus saith of Seneca, Testamenla et orbos tanquum indagine capi,**) it is yet worse, by how much men submit themselves to meaner persons than in service. Believe not much them that seem to despise riches, for they despise them that despair of them ; and none worse when they come to them. Be not penny-wise : riches have wings, and sometimes they fly away of themselves, sometimes they must be set flying to bring in more. Men leave their riches either to their kindred or to the public ; and moderate portions pros- per host in both. A great state left to an heir is as a lure to all the birds of prey round about to seize on him, if he be not the better stablished in years and judgment: likewise, glorious 6 gifts and foundations are like sacrifices without salt ; and but the painted sepulchres of alms, which soon will putrefy and corrupt inwardly. Therefore measure not thine advancements 7 by quantity, but frame them by measure : and defer not char- ities till death ; for, certainly, if a man weigh it rightly, he that doth so is rather liberal of another man's than of his own. 2 That is, as crafty penmen and panders falsely represent knaves as trust- worthy, in order to cntc.h victims. Sec note 7, just above. 3 The flrst planters of the sngar-cane. 4 This is obscure; but the meaning may come something thus: "Riches gotten by service, though the service be of the highest price, or of the most lu. crative sort, yet, if it proceed by sinister arts and base compliances, are to be reckoned .-iinong the worst." This use of rise seems odd, but is the same at bottom as in the phrase, " a rise of value," or " a rise of prices." 5 " Wills and childless parents, taken as with a net." 6 Glorious in the sense of the Latin gloriosus ; that is, boastful, or ostenta- tious. A frequent usage. 7 Advances ; gifts of money or property. 604 is A cox. ' OF NATURE IX MEX. NATURE is often hidden, sometimes overcome, seldom extin- guished. Force maketh nature more violent in the return, doctrine and discourse maketh nature' less importune/ but cus- tom only doth alter and subdue nature. He that seeketh vic- tory over his nature, let him not set himself too great nor too small tasks ; for the first will make him dejected by often fail- ings, and the second will make him a small proceeder, though by often prevailing*. And, at the first, let him practise with helps, as swimmers do with bladders or. rushes; but, after a time, let him practise with disadvantages, as dancers do with thick shoes; for it breeds great perfection if the practice be harder than the use. Where nature is mighty, and therefore the victory hard, the degrees had need be, lir.-t to stay and ar- rest nature in time ; (like to him that would say over the four- and-twenty letters when he was angry :> then to go le>s in quantity ; as if one should, in forbearing wine, come from drink- ing healths to a draught at a meal ; and, lastly, to discontinue altogether: but if a man have the fortitude and resolution to enfranchise himself at once, that is the best : "Opthmis il!e animi vindex la'dentia pert us Vincuhi (|ui rupit, dedoluitquc serael." Xeither is the ancient rule amiss, to bend nature as a wand to a contrary extreme, whereby to set it right: understanding it where the contrary extreme is no vice. Let not a man force a habit upon himself with a perpetual continuance, but with some intermission; for the pause reinforceth the new onset: and if a man that is not perfect be ever in practice, he shall as well practise his errors as his abilities, and induce one habit of both ; and there is no means to help this but by seasonable in- termissions. But let not a man trust his victory over his nature too far, for nature will lie buried a great time, and yet revive upon the occasion or temptation; like as it was with ^Esop's damsel, turned from a cat to a woman, who sat very demurely at the board's end till a mouse ran before her: therefore let a man either avoid the occasion altogether, or put himself often to it, that he may be little moved with it. A man's nature is best perceived in privateness, for there is no affectation ; in passion, for that putteth a man out of his precepts ; and in a new case or experiment, for there custom leaveth him. They 8 Importune for importunate ; that is. troublesome. 9 "Ho is the best assertor of the soul, who bin-Ms the bonds that pall him, and grieves it out at ont;c." The quotation is from Ovid's Remedy for Love. OF CUSTOM AXD EDUCATION. 605 are happy men whose natures sort with their vocations ; other- wise they may say, Multum incola fnit anima mca, 1 when they converse in those things they do not affect. 2 In studies, what- soever a man commandeth upon himself, let him set hours for it ; but whatsoever is agreeable to his nature, let him take no care for any set times ; for his thoughts will fly to it of them- selves, so as the spaces of other business or studies will suffice. A man's nature runs either to herbs or weeds ; therefore let him seasonably water the one, and destroy the other. OF CUSTOM AND EDUCATION. MEN'S thoughts are much according to their inclination; their discourse and speeches according to their learning and infused opinions ; but their deeds are after 8 as they have been accustomed: and therefore, as Machiavel well noteth, (though in an evil-favoured instance,) there is no trusting to the force of nature, nor to the bravery of words, except it be corroborate by eu^tom. His instance is, that, for the achieving of a desperate conspiracy, a man should not rest upon the fierceness of any man's nature, or his resolute undertakings, but take such a one as hath had his hands formerly in blood: but Machiavel knew not of a Friar Clement, nor a llavillac,* nor a Jaureguy, 6 nor a JJaltazar Gerard; 6 yet his rule holdeth still, that nature, nor augment of words, are not so forcible as custom. Only superstition is now so well advanced, that men in the first blood are us firm as butchers by occupation ; and votary resolution 7 j* mado equipollent to custom, even in matter of blood. In other things, the predominancy of custom is everywhere visi- ble, insomuch as u man would wonder to hear men profess, protest, engage, give great words, and then do just as they have done before, as if they were dead images and engines, moved only by the wheels of custom. We see also the reign or tyr- anny of custom, what it is. The Indians (I mean the sect of 1 " My soul has long been a sojourncr." 2 That is, " when their course of life is in those things which they do not like" Jl'-n- the verb converse has the same sense us the substantive in Philippians, i., 27 : " Let your conversation be us becometh the Gospel of Christ." 3 A good instance of after used in the sense of according. 4 The assassin of Henry tiie Fourth of France, in KJ10. .') Hi-, attempted to assassinate William, Prince of Orange, and wounded him severely. Philip tlie Second, in 1">82, set a price upon the Prince's head. 6 lie assassinated the Prince of Orange in l.VU; a crime which he ia sup- I to have meditated for six years. 7 A resolution confirmed and consecrated by a solemn vow. 606 BACOX. their wise men) Jay themselves quietly upon a stack of wood, and so sacrifice themselves by fire: nay, the wives strive to be burned with the corpses of their husbands. The lads of Sparta, of ancient time, were wont to be scoured upon the altar of Diana, without so much as queching. 8 I remember, in the be- ginning of Queen Elizabeth's time of England, an Irish rebel, condemned, put up a petition to the deputy that he might be hanged in a withe, and not in a halter, because it had been so used with former rebels. There be monks in Russia for pen- ance, that will sit a whole night in a vessel of water, till they be engaged with hard ice. Many examples may be put of the force of custom, both upon mind and body ; therefore, since custom is the principal magis- trate of man's life, let men by all means endeavour to obtain good customs. Certainly, custom is most perfect when it be- ginneth in young years: this we call education, which is, in effect, but an early custom. So we see, in languages, the tongue is more pliant to all expressions and sounds, the joints are more supple to all feats of activity and motions, in youth than afterwards ; for it is true, that late learners cannot so well take the ply,' 1 except it be in some minds that have not suffered themselves to fix, but have kept themselves open and prepared to receive continual amendment, which is exceeding rare: but if the force of custom, simple and separate, be great, the force of custom, copulate and conjoined and collegiate, is far greater; for there example teacheth, company comforteth, 1 emulation quickeneth, glory raiseth ; so as in such places the force of cus- tom is in his 2 exaltation. 3 Certainly, the great multiplication of virtues upon human nature resteth upon societies well or- dained and disciplined ; for commonwealths and good govern- ments do nourish virtue grown, but do not much mend the seeds: but the misery is, that the most effectual means are now applied to the ends least to be desired. 8 To quech, or to quick, is an old word for to tnoi'e, to stir, to flinch. 9 Ply is bent, turn, or direction. So used by Macaulay : " The Czar's mind had taken a strange /%, which it retained to the last." 1 To comfort is here used in its original sense, to make strong. So in the Litany : " That it may please Thee to con^fort and help the weak-hearted." 2 His for its, referring to custom; its not being then an aceepted word. Shakespeare and the English Bible are lull of like instances; as, "if the salt have lost his savour," and " the fruit-tree yielding fruit alter his kind." 3 Exaltation is here used in its old astrological sense ; a planet being said to be in its exaltation when it was in the sign where its influence was supposed to be the strongest. OF YOUTH AtfD AGE. 607 OF YOUTH AND AGE. A MAN that is young in years may be old in hours, if he have lost no time ; but that happeneth rarely. Generally, youth is like the first cogitations, not so wise as the second, for there is a youth in thoughts, as well as in ages ; and yet the invention of young men is more lively than that of old, and imaginations stream into their minds better, and, as it were, more divinely. Natures that have much heat, and great and violent desires and perturbations, are not ripe for action till they have passed the meridian of their years ; as it was with Julius Csesar and Septi- mius Severus, of the latter of whom it is said, Juventutem eyit erroribus, imo furoribus plcnam ; 4 and yet he was the ablest em- peror, almost, of all the list: but reposed natures may do well in youth, as it is seen in Augustus Caesar, Cosmos duke of Flor- ence, Gaston de Foix, 5 and others. On the other side, heat and vivacity in age is an excellent composition for business. Young men are fitter to invent than to judge, fitter for execution than for counsel, and fitter for new projects than for settled busi- ness ; for the experience of age, in things that fall within the compass of it, directeth them ; but in new things abuseth them. The errors of young men are the ruin of business ; but the errors of aged men amount but to this, that more might have been done, or sooner. Young men, in the conduct and manage of actions, embrace more than they can hold ; stir more than they can quiet ; fly to the end, without consideration of the means and degrees ; pursue some few principles which they have chanced upon, absurdly ; care not to innovate, 6 which draws unknown incon- nces ; use extreme remedies at first, and, that which doub- leth all errors, will not acknowledge or retract them ; like an unready horse, that will neither stop nor turn. Men of age object too much, consult too long, adventure too little, repent too soon, and seldom drive business home to the full period, but content themselves with a mediocrity of success. Certainly it is good to compound employments of both ; for that will be good for the present, because the virtues of either age may cor- rect the defects of both ; and good for succession, that young men may be learners, while men in age are actors ; and, lastly, good for extern accidents, because authority followeth old men, 4 " His youth was full of errors, and even of frantic passions." 5 A nephew of Louis the Twelfth : he commanded the French armies in Italy against tin; Spaniards, and was killed in the battle of Ravenna, in 1512. (', That is, are not cautious in innovating, or are not careful how they inno- vate. This use of the infinitive was very common. COS BACON. and favour and popularity youth: but, for the moral part, per- haps youth will have the preemineii fC hath for the politic. A certain rabbin, upon the text, "Your young men shall see visions, and your old men shall dream dreams," infer- reth that young men arc admitted nearer to God than old, be- cause vision is a clearer revelation than a dream; and, certainly, the more a man drinketh of the world, the more it intoxicateth ; and age doth profit rather in the powers of understanding than in the virtues of the will and affections. There In- some have an over-early ripeness in their years, which fadeth betimes: these are, first, such as have brittle wits, the edge whereof is soon turned ; such as was Ib-imogrnes 7 the rhetorician, whose books are exceeding subtile, who afterwards waxed stupid: a second sort is of those that have some natural dispositions, which have better grace in youth than in age : such as is a llu- ent and luxuriant speech, which becomes youth well, but not age: so Tully saith of Ilortensius, !<}< ,,i mnmlmt, >i/> decebat: 8 the third is of such as take too high a strain at the first, and are magnanimous more than tract of years can uphold; as was Scipio Africanus, of whom L ivy saith, in effect, / primis (.rdi'luDit.* OF BEAUTY. VIRTUE is like a rich stone, best plain set ; and surely virtue is best in a body that is comely, though not of delicate feature*, and that hath rather dignity of presence than beauty of aspect ; neither is it almost 1 seen that very beautiful persons are other- wise of great virtue, as if nature were rather busy not to err than in labour to produce excellency ; and then-fore they prove accomplished, but not of great spirit ; and study rather behav- iour than virtue. But this holds not always; for Augustus Caesar, Titus Vespasianus, Philip le Bel of France, Edward the Fourth of England. Alcibiades of Athens, Ismael the Sophy of Persia, were all high and great spirits, and yet the most beauti- ful men of their times. In beauty, that of favour is more than that of colour, and that of decent and gracious- motion more than that of favour. That is the best part of beauty which 7 He lived in the second century after Christ, and i.s said to have ' memory at the age <>l 'twenty-five. 8 " He remained the same, but the same was no longer becoming to him." 9 " His last deeds lell short of the lirst." 1 Almost, here, has the iorv of inso- much as it was a proverb amongst the Grecian.--, that "lie that was praised to his hurt should have a push 6 rise upon his nose "; as we say that a blister will rise upon one's tongue that tells a lie. Certainly moderate praise, used with opportunity, and not vulgar, is that which doeth the good. Solomon saith, "lie that praiseth his friend aloud, rising early, it shall be to him no bet- ter than a curse." Too much magnifying of man or matter doth irritate contradiction, and procure envy and scorn. To praise a man's self cannot be decent, except it be in rare < but to praise a man's office or profession, he may do it with good grace, and with a kind of magnanimity. The Cardinals of llome, which are theologues, and friars, and schoolmen, have a phrase of notable contempt and scorn towards civil business ; for they call all temporal business of wars, embassages, judi- cature, and other employments, *//'// prevent 4 information by questions, though port incur. The parts of a judge in hearing arc four, to direct the evidence; to moderate length, repeti- tion, or importinency of speech ; to recapitulate, select, and col- late the material points of that which hath been said ; and to give the rule or sentence. Whatsoever is above these is too much, and proceedeth cither of glory, 5 and willingness to speak, or of impatience to hear, or of shortness of memory, or of want of a staid and equal attention. It is a strango tiling to see that the boldness of advocates should prevail with judges, whereas they should imitate (Jod, in whose seat they sit, who represseth the presumptuous, and giveth grace 6 to the modest ; but it is more strange that judges should have noted favourites, which cannot but cause multiplication of fees, and suspicion of by-ways. There is due from the judge to the advocate some commendation and gracing, where causes are well handled and fair pleaded, especially towards the side which obtainoth not ; for that upholds in the client the reputation of his counsel, and beats down in him the conceit of his cause. 7 There is likewise due to the public a civil reprehension of advocates, where there appeareth cunning counsel, gross neglect, slight informa- 2 " lie will rain snares upon them." 3 " It is the duty of a judge to consider not only the facts but the circum- stances of the case." 4 Prevent in its old sense of anticipate or. forestall. 5 Glory here is vainglory ; that is rauntinr/ or display. See page 603, note G. 6 Grace in ihe sense of favour. So in St. James, iv., G: "God rcsisteth the proud, but giveth grace unto the humble." 7 That is, abates his conlidence in the goodness of his cause. Conceit for opinion. So in King Henry the Eiakth, ii., .". : " 1 shall not fail to approve the fair conceit the King hath of you." Also in the Scripture saying : Seest thou a man wise in his own conceit t " OF JUDICATURE. 615 lion, indiscreet pressing, or an over-bold defence. And let not the counsel at the bar chop 8 with the judge, nor wind himself into the handling of the cause anew after the judge hath de- c-hired his sentence ; but, on the other side, let not the judge meet the cause half way, nor give occasion to the party to say his counsel or proofs were not heard. Thirdly, for that that concerns clerks and ministers. The place of justice is a hallowed place ; and therefore not only the bench, but the footpace 9 and precincts and purprise 1 thereof ought to be preserved without scandal and corruption ; for, cer- tainly, "Grapes," as the Scripture saith, "will not be gathered of thorns or thistles" ; neither can justice yield her fruit with sweetness amongst the briars and brambles of catching and polling- clerks and ministers. The attendance of courts is sub- ject to four bad instruments: first, certain persons that are sowers of suits, which make the court swell, and the country pine: the second sort is of those that engage courts in quarrels of jurisdiction, and are not truly amid curice, butparasiti curicef in pulling a court up beyond her bounds for their own scraps and advantage: the third sort is of those that maybe accounted the left hands of courts ; persons that are full of nimble and sinister tricks and shifts, whereby they pervert the plain and direct courses of courts, and bring justice into oblique lines and labyrinths: and the fourth is the poller and exacter of fees; which justifies the common resemblance of the courts of jus- tic* 1<> the bush whercunto while the sheep flies for defence in weut her, he is sure to lose part of his fleece. On the other side, an ancient clerk, skilful in precedents, wary in proceeding, and understanding in the business of the court, is an excellent fin- a court, and doth many times point the way to the judge himself. Fourthly, for that which may concern the sovereign and Es- tate. Judges ought, above all, to remember the conclusion of ;<>man Twelve Tables, Salus populi suprema lex ; 4 and to know that laws, except they be in order to that end, are but things captious, and oracles not well inspired: therefore it is a 8 To chop, here, is to bandy words. Sec page 602, note 9. TL\\U footpace is what we call the lobby. 1 The purprise is the enclosure. So in Holland's Plutarch : " Their wives and children were to assemble all together unto a certain place in Phocis, and en- vhon the whole purprine and precinct thereof with a huge quantity of wood." 2 To poll is an old word for to pillage, to plunder. Poller, a little further on, has the same sense. So Burton : " Ho may rail doxvnright at a spoiler of couu- and yet in office be a most grievous poller himself." i ' friends of the court," but "parasites of the court." 4 " The safety of the people is the supremo law." 616 BACON 1 . happy tiling in a State, when kings and states 5 do often con- suit with judges ; and, again, when judges do often consult with the king and State: the one, when there is matter of law intervenient in business of State; the other, when there is some consideration of State intorvenient in matter of law ; for many times the things deduced to judgment may be meum and tuum, when the reason and consequence thereof may trench to point of Estate. I call matter of Estate, not only the parts of sovereignty, but whatsoever introduceth any great alteration or dangerous precedent ; or concerneth manifestly any great por- tion of people: and let no man weakly conceive that just laws and true policy have any antipathy ; fur they are like the spirits and sinews, that one moves with the other. Let judges also re- member that Solomon's throne was supported by lions on both sides: let them be lions, but yet lions under the throne ; being circumspect that they do not check or oppose any points of sovereignty. Let not judges, also, be so ignorant of their own right as to think there is not left them, as a principal part of their ofllce, a wise use and application of laws; for they may remember what the apostle saith of a greater law than theirs: Nos scimus quia lex bona est, modo quis cd utatiir legitime.* OF A2s T GEK. To seek to extinguish anger utterly is but a bravery 7 of the Stoics. "We have better oracles : " Be angry, but sin not ; let not the Sun go down upon your anger." Anger must be limited and confined both in race and in time. "We will first speak how the natural inclination and habit "to be angry" may be attem- pered and calmed ; secondly, how the particular motions of anger may be repressed, or at least refrained from doing mis- chief ; thirdly, how to raise anger, or appease anger in another. For the first, there is no other way but to meditate and rumi- nate well upon the effects of anger, how it troubles man's life ; and the best time to do this, is to look back upon anger when the fit is thoroughly over. Seneca saith well, that "anger is like ruin, which breaks itself upon that it falls." The Scripture exhorteth us "to possess our souls in patience" ; whosoever is out of patience, is out of possession of his soul. Men must not turn bees, animasque in vulture ponunt.* Anger is certainly a 5 States for orders. See page 193, note -2. 6 " Wo know that the law is good, if a man use it lawfully." 7 liravery, again, for boast or bravado. See page 576, note 0. 8 "Ami sting their lives into the wound." OF 'ANGER. C17 kind of baseness, as it appears well in the weakness of those subjects in whom it reigns, children, women, old folks, sick folks. Only men must beware that they carry their anger rather with scorn than with fear ; so that they may seem rather to be above the injury than below it ; which is a thing easily done, if a man will give law to himself in it. For the second point, the causes and motives of anger are chiefly three : first, to be too sensible of hurt ; for no man is angry that feels not himself hurt ; and therefore tender and delicate persons must needs be oft angry, they have so many things to trouble them, which more robust natures have little sense of : the next is, the apprehension and construction of the injury offered, to be, in the circumstances thereof, full of con- tempt ; for contempt is that which putteth an edge upon anger, as much or more than the hurt itself ; and therefore, when men are ingenious in picking out circumstances of contempt, they do kindle their anger much : lastly, opinion of the touch 9 of a man's reputation doth multiply and sharpen anger; wherein the remedy is, that a man should have, as Gonsalvo was wont to say, telam honoris crassiorim. 1 But, in all refrainings of anger, it is the best remedy to win time, and to make a man's self be- lieve that the opportunity of his revenge is not yet come ; but that he foresees a time for it, and so to still himself in the mean time, and reserve it. To contain 2 anger from mischief, though it take hold of a man, there be two things whereof you must have special cau- tion : the one, of extreme bitterness of words, especially if they be aculeate and proper ; 8 for communia, maledicta* are nothing so much: and, again, that in anger a man reveal no secrets ; for that makes him not fit for society : the other, that you do not peremptorily break off in any business in a fit of anger ; but, howsoever you show bitterness, do not act any thing that is not revocable. For raising or appeasing anger in another, it is done chiefly by choosing of times, when men are frowardest and worst disposed, to incense them; again, by gathering (as was touched before) all 9 A peculiar use of touch, but meaning, apparently, about the same as stain or stigma : " the notion that one's reputation is touched." So in the often-quoted but misunderstood passage in Troilus and Cressida, iii., 3: " One touch of nat- ure makes the whole world kin"; where the context shows that "one touch of nature " is equivalent to one natural blemish, weakness, or folly, 1 "A thicker covering of honour." 2 Contain, refrain, and restrain are often used indiscriminately by old writers. So in Troilus and Cressida, v., 2: " O, contain yourself; your passion drawr, cars hither." 3 That is, pointed, or stinging, and personal. 4 " General reproaches." 618 BACON. that you can find out to aggravate the contempt : and tho two remedies are by the contraries ; the former to take good times, when first to relate to a man an angry business, for the first im- pression is much ; and the other is, to sever, as much as may be, the construction of the injury from the point of contempt ; im- puting it to misunderstanding, fear, passion, or what you will. DISCREDITS OF LEAEXIXG. HERE is the first distemper of learning, when men study words and not matter. And how is it possible but this should have an operation to discredit learning, even with vulgar capaci- ties, when they sre learned men's works like the first letter of a patent, or limned book ; which though it hath large nourishes, yet it is but a letter? It seems to me that Pygmalion's frenzy 5 is a good emblem or portraiture of this vanity: for words are, but the images of matter; and except they have life of r and invention, to fall in love with them is all one as to fall in love with a picture. But yet notwithstanding it is a thing not hastily to be <-on. demned, to clothe and adorn the obscurity even of philosophy itself with sensible and plausible elocution. For hereof we have great examples in Xenophon, Cicero, Seneca, Plutap-h, anil of Plato also in some degree ; and hereof likewise there is great use: for, surely, to the severe inquisition of truth and the deep progress into philosophy, it is some hindrance, because it is too early satisfactory to the mind of man, and quencheth the desire of further search, before we come to a just period ; but then, if a man be to have any use of such knowledge in civil occasions of conference, counsel, persuasion, discourse, or the like, then shall he find it prepared to his hands in those authors which write in that manner. But the excess of this is so justly contemptible, that as Hercules, when he saw the linage of Adonis, Venus' minion, in a temple, said in disdain, JV/7 sacri cs ; so there is none of Hercules' followers in learning, that is, the more seven* and laborious sort of inquirers into truth, but will despise those delicacies and affectations, as indeed Capable of no divineness. And thus much of the first disease or distem- per of learning. The second which followeth is in nature worse than the for- 5 Pygmalion is said to have made an image of a maiden so beautiful, that lie went mad with love for it, and prayed Aphrodite to breathe life into it. The prayer being granted, he then married the maiden. DISCREDITS OF LEARNING. 619 mer: for, as substance of matter is better than beauty of words, so, contrariwise, vain matter is worse than vain words: wherein it seemeth the reprehension of St. Paul was not only proper for those times, but prophetical for the times following ; and not only respective to divinity, but extensive 6 to all knowledge: Devita prof anas vocum novitates, et oppositiones falsi nwnini* scien- tice. 1 For he assigneth two marks and badges of suspected and falsified science: the one, the novelty and strangeness of terms ; the other, the strictness of positions, which of necessity dotli induce oppositions, and so questions and altercations. Surely, like as many substances in Nature which are solid do putrefy and corrupt into worms ; so it is the property of good and sound knowledge to putrefy and dissolve into a number of subtile, idle, unwholesome, and (as I may term them) vermiculate ques- ticn , which have indeed a kind of quickness and life of spirit, but no soundness of matter or goodness of quality. This kind of degenerate learning did chiefly reign amongst the schoolmen; who having sharp and strong wits, and abundance of leisure, and small variety of reading, but their wits being shut up in the cells of a few authors, (chiefly Aristotle their dictator,) as their persons were shut up in the cells of monasteries and col- leges, and knowing little history, either of Nature or time did, out of no great quantity of matter and infinite agitation of wit, spin out unto us those laborious webs of learning which are extant in their books. For the wit and mind of man, if it work upon matter, which is the contemplation of the creatures of God, worketh according to the stuff, and is limited thereby ; but if it work upon itself, as the spider worketh his web, then it is endless, and brings forth indeed cobwebs of learning, admi- rable for the fineness of thread and work, but of no substance or profit. This same unprofitable subtilty or curiosity is of two sorts ; either in the subject itself that they handle, when it is a fruitless speculation or controversy, (whereof there are no small number both in divinity and philosophy,) or in the manner or method of handling of a knowledge, which amongst them was this : Upon every particular position or assertion to frame objections, and to those objections, solutions ; which solutions were for the most part not confutations, but distinctions : whereas indeed UK; strength of all sciences is, as the strength of the old man's faggot, in the bond. For the harmony of a science, supporting each part the other, is and ought to* be the true and brief confu- 6 Extensive for extensible; the active form "with the passive sense. This indiscriminate use of active an spoken of Socrates, to call philosophy down from Heaven to converse upon the Earth ; that is, to leave natural philosophy aside, and to apply knowledge only to manners and policy. But, as both Heaven and Earth do conspire and contribute to the use and benefit of man ; so the end ought to be, from both philosophies to separate and reject vain speculations, and whatsoever is empty and void, and to preserve and augment whatsoever is solid and fruitful: that knowledge may not be as a courtesan, for pleasure and vanity only, or as a bond-woman, to acquire and gain to her master's use ; but as a spouse, for generation, fruit, and comfort. DIGNITY AND VALUE OF KNOWLEDGE. FIRST let us seek the dignity of knowledge in the archetype or first platform, which is in the attributes and acts of (iod. as far as they are revealed to man and may be observed with sobriety ; 1 " She turns aside from her course, and picks up the rolling gold.* DIGNITY AND VALUE OF KNOWLEDGE. 625 wherein we may not seek it by the name of learning ; for all learning is knowledge acquired, and all knowledge in God is original: and therefore we must look for it by another name, that of wisdom or sapience, as the Scriptures call it. It is so, then, that in the work of the creation, we see a double emanation of virtue from God ; the one referring more properly to power, the other to wisdom ; the one expressed in making the subsistence of the matter, and the other in disposing the beauty of the form. This being supposed, it is to be observed that for any thing which appeareth in the history of the creation, the confused mass and matter of heaven and earth was made in a moment ; and the order and disposition of that chaos or mass was the work of six days; such a note of difference it pleased God to put upon the works of power and the works of wisdom ; wherewith concurreth, that in the former it is not set down that God said, "Let there be heaven and earth," as it is set down of the works following ; but actually, that God made heaven and earth; the one carrying the style of a manufacture, and the other of a law, decree, or counsel. -M'terthe creation was finished, it is set down unto us that man was placed in the garden to work therein ; which work, so appointed to him, could be no other thaii work of contempla- tion ; that is, when the end of work is but for exercise and ex- periment, not for necessity; for, there being then no reluctation of the creature, nor sweat of the brow, man's employment must of consequence have been matter of delight in the experiment, and not mutter of labour for the use. Again, the iirst acts which man performed in Paradise consisted of the two summary parts of knowledge ; the view of creatures, and the imposition of names. As for the knowledge which induced the fall, it was not the natural knowledge of creatures, but the moral knowl- eil^r of good and evil ; wherein the supposition was, that God's commandments or prohibitions were not the originals of good and evil, but that they had other beginnings, which man aspired .to know ; to the end to make a total defection from God and to depend wholly upon himself. To descend to Moses the lawgiver, and God's first pen : he is adorned by the Scriptures with this addition and commendation, "That he was seen in all the learning of the Egyptians "; which nation we know was one of the most ancient schools of the world; lor so Plato brings in the Egyptian priest saying unto Solon, " You Grecians are ever children ; you have no knowl- edge of antiquity, nor antiquity of knowledge." Take a view of the ceremonial law of Moses: you shall iind, besides the preiig- u ration of Christ, the badge or difference of the people of God, the exercise and impression of obedience, and other divine uses 626 BACOX. and fruits thereof, that some of the most learned Rabbins have travailed profitably and profoundly to observe, some of them a natural, some of them a moral sense, or reduction of many of the ceremonies and ordinances. As in the law of the leprosy, where it is said, "If the whiteness have overspread the flesh, the patient may pake abroad for clean; but if there be any whole flesh remaining, he is to be shut up for unclean "; one of thorn noteth a principle of Nature, that putrefaction is more conta- gious before maturity than after : and another noteth a position of moral philosophy, that men abandoned to vice do not so much corrupt manners, as those that are half good and half evil. So in this and very many other places in that law, there is to be found, besides the theological sense, much aspersion of phi- losophy. So likewise in the person of Solomon the King, we see the gift or endowment of wisdom and learning, both in Solomon's petition and in God's assent thereunto, preferred before all other terrene and temporal felicity. J3y virtue of which grant or donative of God, Solomon became enabled not only to write those excellent parables or aphorisms concerning divine and moral philosophy ; but also to compile a natural history of all verdure, from the cedar upon the mountain to the moss upon the wall, (which is but a rudiment between putrefaction and an herb,) and also of all things that breathe or move. Nay, the same Solomon the King, although he excelled in the glory of treasure and magnificent buddings, of shipping and navigation, of service and attendance, of fame and renown, and the like, yet he maketh no claim to any of those glories, but only to the glory of inquisition of truth; for so he saith expressly, "The glory of God is to conceal a thing, but the glory of the king is to find it out"; as if, according to the innocent play of children, the Divine Majesty took delight to hide His works, to the end to have them found out; and as if kings could not obtain a greater honour than to be God's playfellows in that game ; con- sidering the great commandment of wits and means, whereby nothing needeth to be hidden from them. Neither did the dispensation of God vary in the times after our Saviour came into the world ; for our Saviour himself did first show His power to subdue ignorance, by His conference with the priests and doctors of the law, before He showed His power to subdue Nature by His miracles. And the coining of the Holy Spirit was chiefly figured and expressed in the simili- tude and gift of tongues, which are but n/dcnld t<-ii>itii to the similitude of the Divine rule. Again, for the pleasure and delight of knowledge and learn- ing, it far surpasseth all other in Nature. For, shall the pleas- 4 Generosity hi the Latin sense ot nobleness, excellence, or magnanimity. VB 02161